This is a modern-English version of Greenmantle, originally written by Buchan, John. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

[Illustration]

Greenmantle

by John Buchan


Contents

1. A Mission is Proposed
2. The Gathering of the Missionaries
3. Peter Pienaar
4. Adventures of Two Dutchmen on the Loose
5. Further Adventures of the Same
6. The Indiscretions of the Same
7. Christmastide
8. The Essen Barges
9. The Return of the Straggler
10. The Garden-House of Suliman the Red
11. The Companions of the Rosy Hours
12. Four Missionaries See Light in Their Mission
13. I Move in Good Society
14. The Lady of the Mantilla
15. An Embarrassed Toilet
16. The Battered Caravanserai
17. Trouble By the Waters of Babylon
18. Sparrows on the Housetops
19. Greenmantle
20. Peter Pienaar Goes to the Wars
21. The Little Hill
22. The Guns of the North

To
Caroline Grosvenor

During the past year, in the intervals of an active life, I have amused myself with constructing this tale. It has been scribbled in every kind of odd place and moment—in England and abroad, during long journeys, in half-hours between graver tasks; and it bears, I fear, the mark of its gipsy begetting. But it has amused me to write, and I shall be well repaid if it amuses you—and a few others—to read.

During the past year, in the breaks of my busy life, I've enjoyed putting together this story. I've written it in all sorts of random places and moments—in England and overseas, during long travels, and in spare half-hour slots between more serious tasks; and I’m afraid it shows the signs of its spontaneous creation. But I’ve found joy in writing it, and I'll feel rewarded if it brings some enjoyment to you—and a few others—when you read it.

Let no man or woman call its events improbable. The war has driven that word from our vocabulary, and melodrama has become the prosiest realism. Things unimagined before happen daily to our friends by sea and land. The one chance in a thousand is habitually taken, and as often as not succeeds. Coincidence, like some new Briareus, stretches a hundred long arms hourly across the earth. Some day, when the full history is written—sober history with ample documents—the poor romancer will give up business and fall to reading Miss Austen in a hermitage.

Let no one say the events are unlikely. The war has erased that word from our language, and melodrama has turned into the most mundane realism. Things we never imagined happen every day to our friends on land and at sea. The one in a thousand chance is regularly taken, and just as often it works out. Coincidence, like a new Briareus, stretches out a hundred long arms every hour across the globe. Someday, when the complete history is written—serious history with plenty of documents—the struggling storyteller will quit their job and devote their time to reading Miss Austen in a quiet retreat.

The characters of the tale, if you think hard, you will recall. Sandy you know well. That great spirit was last heard of at Basra, where he occupies the post that once was Harry Bullivant’s. Richard Hannay is where he longed to be, commanding his battalion on the ugliest bit of front in the West. Mr John S. Blenkiron, full of honour and wholly cured of dyspepsia, has returned to the States, after vainly endeavouring to take Peter with him. As for Peter, he has attained the height of his ambition. He has shaved his beard and joined the Flying Corps.

The characters in the story, if you think hard, you'll remember. You know Sandy well. That great spirit was last heard from in Basra, where he took the position that used to belong to Harry Bullivant. Richard Hannay is where he always wanted to be, leading his battalion on the most difficult section of the front in the West. Mr. John S. Blenkiron, full of honor and completely cured of his stomach issues, has returned to the States after unsuccessfully trying to take Peter with him. As for Peter, he has reached the peak of his dreams. He has shaved his beard and joined the Flying Corps.

CHAPTER I.
A Mission is Proposed

I had just finished breakfast and was filling my pipe when I got Bullivant’s telegram. It was at Furling, the big country house in Hampshire where I had come to convalesce after Loos, and Sandy, who was in the same case, was hunting for the marmalade. I flung him the flimsy with the blue strip pasted down on it, and he whistled.

I had just finished breakfast and was filling my pipe when I got Bullivant’s telegram. I was at Furling, the big country house in Hampshire where I had come to recover after Loos, and Sandy, who was in the same situation, was looking for the marmalade. I tossed him the flimsy with the blue strip glued on it, and he whistled.

“Hullo, Dick, you’ve got the battalion. Or maybe it’s a staff billet. You’ll be a blighted brass-hat, coming it heavy over the hard-working regimental officer. And to think of the language you’ve wasted on brass-hats in your time!”

“Helo, Dick, you've got the battalion. Or maybe it's a staff position. You'll be a stuck-up officer, looking down on the hard-working regimental officer. And to think of all the insults you've thrown at high-ranking officers in your day!”

I sat and thought for a bit, for the name “Bullivant’ carried me back eighteen months to the hot summer before the war. I had not seen the man since, though I had read about him in the papers. For more than a year I had been a busy battalion officer, with no other thought than to hammer a lot of raw stuff into good soldiers. I had succeeded pretty well, and there was no prouder man on earth than Richard Hannay when he took his Lennox Highlanders over the parapets on that glorious and bloody 25th day of September. Loos was no picnic, and we had had some ugly bits of scrapping before that, but the worst bit of the campaign I had seen was a tea-party to the show I had been in with Bullivant before the war started. [Major Hannay’s narrative of this affair has been published under the title of The Thirty-nine Steps.]

I sat and thought for a moment, as the name “Bullivant” brought back memories from eighteen months ago, to that hot summer before the war. I hadn’t seen him since, although I had read about him in the news. For more than a year, I had been a busy battalion officer, focused solely on turning a bunch of inexperienced recruits into solid soldiers. I did pretty well, and there was no prouder person on earth than Richard Hannay when he led his Lennox Highlanders over the parapets on that glorious and bloody day of September 25th. Loos was no walk in the park, and we had faced some tough fighting before that, but the worst part of the campaign I had experienced was nothing compared to what I had dealt with alongside Bullivant before the war began. [Major Hannay’s narrative of this affair has been published under the title of The Thirty-nine Steps.]

The sight of his name on a telegram form seemed to change all my outlook on life. I had been hoping for the command of the battalion, and looking forward to being in at the finish with Brother Boche. But this message jerked my thoughts on to a new road. There might be other things in the war than straightforward fighting. Why on earth should the Foreign Office want to see an obscure Major of the New Army, and want to see him in double-quick time?

The sight of his name on a telegram form seemed to change my entire perspective on life. I had been hoping for command of the battalion and looking forward to being there at the end with Brother Boche. But this message pulled my thoughts onto a different path. There could be more to the war than just straightforward fighting. Why on earth would the Foreign Office want to meet with an unknown Major of the New Army, and why the rush?

“I’m going up to town by the ten train,” I announced; “I’ll be back in time for dinner.”

“I’m taking the ten o’clock train into town,” I said; “I’ll be back in time for dinner.”

“Try my tailor,” said Sandy. “He’s got a very nice taste in red tabs. You can use my name.”

“Check out my tailor,” said Sandy. “He has great taste in red tabs. You can mention my name.”

An idea struck me. “You’re pretty well all right now. If I wire for you, will you pack your own kit and mine and join me?”

An idea hit me. “You’re doing pretty well now. If I send a message for you, will you pack your bag and mine and come join me?”

“Right-o! I’ll accept a job on your staff if they give you a corps. If so be as you come down tonight, be a good chap and bring a barrel of oysters from Sweeting’s.”

“Sure! I’ll take a job on your team if they give you a group. If that’s the case, when you come down tonight, be a good guy and bring a barrel of oysters from Sweeting’s.”

I travelled up to London in a regular November drizzle, which cleared up about Wimbledon to watery sunshine. I never could stand London during the war. It seemed to have lost its bearings and broken out into all manner of badges and uniforms which did not fit in with my notion of it. One felt the war more in its streets than in the field, or rather one felt the confusion of war without feeling the purpose. I dare say it was all right; but since August 1914 I never spent a day in town without coming home depressed to my boots.

I traveled up to London in a typical November drizzle, which cleared up to a watery sunshine around Wimbledon. I never liked London during the war. It seemed to lose its direction and was filled with all kinds of badges and uniforms that didn’t match what I thought it should be. You felt the war more in its streets than on the battlefield, or rather, you felt the chaos of war without understanding its purpose. I suppose it was fine; but since August 1914, I never spent a day in the city without coming home feeling down.

I took a taxi and drove straight to the Foreign Office. Sir Walter did not keep me waiting long. But when his secretary took me to his room I would not have recognized the man I had known eighteen months before.

I took a cab and went straight to the Foreign Office. Sir Walter didn't make me wait long. But when his assistant led me to his office, I wouldn't have recognized the guy I knew eighteen months ago.

His big frame seemed to have dropped flesh and there was a stoop in the square shoulders. His face had lost its rosiness and was red in patches, like that of a man who gets too little fresh air. His hair was much greyer and very thin about the temples, and there were lines of overwork below the eyes. But the eyes were the same as before, keen and kindly and shrewd, and there was no change in the firm set of the jaw.

His large frame looked like it had lost some weight, and there was a slouch in his strong shoulders. His face didn't have its healthy color anymore and was flushed in spots, like someone who doesn't get enough fresh air. His hair was much grayer and very sparse around the temples, and there were signs of too much work under his eyes. But his eyes were just like they used to be—sharp, warm, and perceptive—and his jaw still had the same firm line.

“We must on no account be disturbed for the next hour,” he told his secretary. When the young man had gone he went across to both doors and turned the keys in them.

“We must not be disturbed for the next hour,” he told his secretary. Once the young man left, he walked over to both doors and locked them.

“Well, Major Hannay,” he said, flinging himself into a chair beside the fire. “How do you like soldiering?”

“Well, Major Hannay,” he said, throwing himself into a chair next to the fire. “What do you think of being a soldier?”

“Right enough,” I said, “though this isn’t just the kind of war I would have picked myself. It’s a comfortless, bloody business. But we’ve got the measure of the old Boche now, and it’s dogged as does it. I count on getting back to the front in a week or two.”

“That's true,” I said, “but this isn’t exactly the kind of war I would have chosen. It’s a brutal, grim situation. But we understand the old Boche now, and it’s persistence that pays off. I plan on getting back to the front in a week or two.”

“Will you get the battalion?” he asked. He seemed to have followed my doings pretty closely.

“Are you going to get the battalion?” he asked. He seemed to have kept a pretty close eye on what I was doing.

“I believe I’ve a good chance. I’m not in this show for honour and glory, though. I want to do the best I can, but I wish to heaven it was over. All I think of is coming out of it with a whole skin.”

“I believe I have a good chance. I’m not in this competition for honor and glory, though. I want to do my best, but I really wish it was over. All I think about is getting through it safely.”

He laughed. “You do yourself an injustice. What about the forward observation post at the Lone Tree? You forgot about the whole skin then.”

He laughed. “You're being hard on yourself. What about the forward observation post at the Lone Tree? You totally forgot about the entire setup then.”

I felt myself getting red. “That was all rot,” I said, “and I can’t think who told you about it. I hated the job, but I had to do it to prevent my subalterns going to glory. They were a lot of fire-eating young lunatics. If I had sent one of them he’d have gone on his knees to Providence and asked for trouble.”

I felt myself blush. “That was complete nonsense,” I said, “and I have no idea who told you that. I hated the job, but I had to do it to keep my subordinates from getting themselves killed. They were a bunch of reckless young fools. If I had sent one of them, he’d have dropped to his knees and asked for trouble.”

Sir Walter was still grinning.

Sir Walter was still smiling.

“I’m not questioning your caution. You have the rudiments of it, or our friends of the Black Stone would have gathered you in at our last merry meeting. I would question it as little as your courage. What exercises my mind is whether it is best employed in the trenches.”

“I’m not doubting your caution. You have the basics down, or the folks from the Black Stone would have taken you in at our last fun gathering. I wouldn’t question it any more than your bravery. What’s on my mind is whether it’s best used in the trenches.”

“Is the War Office dissatisfied with me?” I asked sharply.

“Is the War Office unhappy with me?” I asked sharply.

“They are profoundly satisfied. They propose to give you command of your battalion. Presently, if you escape a stray bullet, you will no doubt be a Brigadier. It is a wonderful war for youth and brains. But ... I take it you are in this business to serve your country, Hannay?”

“They are extremely happy. They suggest that you lead your battalion. If you manage to dodge a stray bullet, you’ll definitely become a Brigadier. This is an incredible war for the young and the smart. But... I assume you’re in this to serve your country, Hannay?”

“I reckon I am,” I said. “I am certainly not in it for my health.”

“I guess I am,” I said. “I’m definitely not doing this for my health.”

He looked at my leg, where the doctors had dug out the shrapnel fragments, and smiled quizzically.

He looked at my leg, where the doctors had removed the shrapnel fragments, and smiled in a puzzled way.

“Pretty fit again?” he asked.

"Back in shape?" he asked.

“Tough as a sjambok. I thrive on the racket and eat and sleep like a schoolboy.”

“Tough as a whip. I thrive on the noise and eat and sleep like a kid.”

He got up and stood with his back to the fire, his eyes staring abstractedly out of the window at the wintry park.

He got up and stood with his back to the fire, his eyes staring blankly out of the window at the snowy park.

“It is a great game, and you are the man for it, no doubt. But there are others who can play it, for soldiering today asks for the average rather than the exception in human nature. It is like a big machine where the parts are standardized. You are fighting, not because you are short of a job, but because you want to help England. How if you could help her better than by commanding a battalion—or a brigade—or, if it comes to that, a division? How if there is a thing which you alone can do? Not some embusque business in an office, but a thing compared to which your fight at Loos was a Sunday-school picnic. You are not afraid of danger? Well, in this job you would not be fighting with an army around you, but alone. You are fond of tackling difficulties? Well, I can give you a task which will try all your powers. Have you anything to say?”

“It’s a great game, and you’re definitely the right person for it. But there are others who can play too, because being a soldier today requires average qualities rather than exceptional ones. It’s like a big machine where everything is standardized. You’re fighting not because you need a job but because you want to help England. What if you could help her better by commanding a battalion—or a brigade—or, if it comes to that, a division? What if there’s something you alone can do? Not some office job, but something that makes your fight at Loos look like a Sunday school picnic. You’re not afraid of danger? Well, in this role you wouldn’t be fighting with an army around you, but all by yourself. You like taking on tough challenges? I can give you a task that will test all your abilities. Do you have anything to say?”

My heart was beginning to thump uncomfortably. Sir Walter was not the man to pitch a case too high.

My heart was starting to race uncomfortably. Sir Walter wasn't the type to raise a case too high.

“I am a soldier,” I said, “and under orders.”

“I’m a soldier,” I said, “and I’m following orders.”

“True; but what I am about to propose does not come by any conceivable stretch within the scope of a soldier’s duties. I shall perfectly understand if you decline. You will be acting as I should act myself—as any sane man would. I would not press you for worlds. If you wish it, I will not even make the proposal, but let you go here and now, and wish you good luck with your battalion. I do not wish to perplex a good soldier with impossible decisions.”

“True; but what I’m about to suggest is definitely not part of a soldier’s responsibilities. I’ll completely understand if you say no. You’d be acting as I would if I were in your position—as any reasonable person would. I wouldn’t want to pressure you for anything. If you’d like, I won’t even make the proposal, I’ll just let you go right now and wish you good luck with your battalion. I don’t want to confuse a good soldier with impossible choices.”

This piqued me and put me on my mettle.

This intrigued me and challenged me.

“I am not going to run away before the guns fire. Let me hear what you propose.”

“I’m not going to flee before the guns go off. Let me hear what you have in mind.”

Sir Walter crossed to a cabinet, unlocked it with a key from his chain, and took a piece of paper from a drawer. It looked like an ordinary half-sheet of note-paper.

Sir Walter walked over to a cabinet, unlocked it with a key from his keychain, and pulled out a piece of paper from a drawer. It looked like a regular half-sheet of notepaper.

“I take it,” he said, “that your travels have not extended to the East.”

“I assume,” he said, “that you haven’t traveled to the East.”

“No,” I said, “barring a shooting trip in East Africa.”

“No,” I said, “except for a safari in East Africa.”

“Have you by any chance been following the present campaign there?”

“Have you been following the current campaign there?”

“I’ve read the newspapers pretty regularly since I went to hospital. I’ve got some pals in the Mesopotamia show, and of course I’m keen to know what is going to happen at Gallipoli and Salonika. I gather that Egypt is pretty safe.”

“I’ve been reading the newspapers pretty regularly since I went to the hospital. I have some friends in the Mesopotamia show, and of course, I’m eager to know what’s going to happen at Gallipoli and Salonika. I hear that Egypt is fairly safe.”

“If you will give me your attention for ten minutes I will supplement your newspaper reading.”

“If you can give me your attention for ten minutes, I’ll add to your newspaper reading.”

Sir Walter lay back in an arm-chair and spoke to the ceiling. It was the best story, the clearest and the fullest, I had ever got of any bit of the war. He told me just how and why and when Turkey had left the rails. I heard about her grievances over our seizure of her ironclads, of the mischief the coming of the Goeben had wrought, of Enver and his precious Committee and the way they had got a cinch on the old Turk. When he had spoken for a bit, he began to question me.

Sir Walter leaned back in an armchair and talked to the ceiling. It was the best story, the clearest and most detailed, I had ever heard about any part of the war. He explained exactly how and why and when Turkey had gone off track. I learned about her frustrations over our takeover of her battleships, the trouble that the arrival of the Goeben had caused, Enver and his important Committee, and how they had gained control over the old Turk. After he had talked for a while, he started to ask me questions.

“You are an intelligent fellow, and you will ask how a Polish adventurer, meaning Enver, and a collection of Jews and gipsies should have got control of a proud race. The ordinary man will tell you that it was German organization backed up with German money and German arms. You will inquire again how, since Turkey is primarily a religious power, Islam has played so small a part in it all. The Sheikh-ul-Islam is neglected, and though the Kaiser proclaims a Holy War and calls himself Hadji Mohammed Guilliamo, and says the Hohenzollerns are descended from the Prophet, that seems to have fallen pretty flat. The ordinary man again will answer that Islam in Turkey is becoming a back number, and that Krupp guns are the new gods. Yet—I don’t know. I do not quite believe in Islam becoming a back number.”

“You're a smart guy, and you might wonder how a Polish adventurer, meaning Enver, along with a group of Jews and gypsies, managed to take control of a proud race. The average person would tell you it was due to German organization, supported by German money and German weapons. You might ask again how, given that Turkey is mainly a religious power, Islam has played such a minor role in all of this. The Sheikh-ul-Islam is overlooked, and although the Kaiser announces a Holy War and calls himself Hadji Mohammed Guilliamo, claiming the Hohenzollerns are descended from the Prophet, that doesn't seem to have had much impact. The average person would once again say that Islam in Turkey is becoming outdated and that Krupp guns are the new deities. Yet—I don't know. I’m not entirely convinced that Islam is becoming outdated.”

“Look at it in another way,” he went on. “If it were Enver and Germany alone dragging Turkey into a European war for purposes that no Turk cared a rush about, we might expect to find the regular army obedient, and Constantinople. But in the provinces, where Islam is strong, there would be trouble. Many of us counted on that. But we have been disappointed. The Syrian army is as fanatical as the hordes of the Mahdi. The Senussi have taken a hand in the game. The Persian Moslems are threatening trouble. There is a dry wind blowing through the East, and the parched grasses wait the spark. And that wind is blowing towards the Indian border. Whence comes that wind, think you?”

“Look at it another way,” he continued. “If it were just Enver and Germany pulling Turkey into a European war for reasons that no Turk really cared about, we might expect the regular army to comply, and things to stay calm in Constantinople. But in the provinces, where Islam is strong, there would be issues. Many of us were counting on that. But we’ve been let down. The Syrian army is just as fanatical as the followers of the Mahdi. The Senussi are getting involved. The Persian Muslims are threatening problems. There’s a dry wind blowing through the East, and the parched grass is waiting for a spark. And that wind is blowing towards the Indian border. Where do you think that wind is coming from?”

Sir Walter had lowered his voice and was speaking very slow and distinct. I could hear the rain dripping from the eaves of the window, and far off the hoot of taxis in Whitehall.

Sir Walter had lowered his voice and was speaking very slowly and clearly. I could hear the rain dripping from the eaves of the window, and in the distance, the honk of taxis in Whitehall.

“Have you an explanation, Hannay?” he asked again.

“Do you have an explanation, Hannay?” he asked again.

“It looks as if Islam had a bigger hand in the thing than we thought,” I said. “I fancy religion is the only thing to knit up such a scattered empire.”

“It seems like Islam had a bigger role in this than we expected,” I said. “I think religion is the only thing that can bring together such a scattered empire.”

“You are right,” he said. “You must be right. We have laughed at the Holy War, the jehad that old Von der Goltz prophesied. But I believe that stupid old man with the big spectacles was right. There is a jehad preparing. The question is, How?”

“You're right,” he said. “You have to be right. We've mocked the Holy War, the jihad that old Von der Goltz predicted. But I think that foolish old man with the thick glasses was actually correct. There’s a jihad coming. The question is, How?”

“I’m hanged if I know,” I said; “but I’ll bet it won’t be done by a pack of stout German officers in pickelhaubes. I fancy you can’t manufacture Holy Wars out of Krupp guns alone and a few staff officers and a battle cruiser with her boilers burst.”

“I have no idea,” I said; “but I bet it won’t be done by a bunch of stout German officers in pickelhaubes. I don’t think you can create Holy Wars just with Krupp guns and a few staff officers along with a battle cruiser with its boilers blown.”

“Agreed. They are not fools, however much we try to persuade ourselves of the contrary. But supposing they had got some tremendous sacred sanction—some holy thing, some book or gospel or some new prophet from the desert, something which would cast over the whole ugly mechanism of German war the glamour of the old torrential raids which crumpled the Byzantine Empire and shook the walls of Vienna? Islam is a fighting creed, and the mullah still stands in the pulpit with the Koran in one hand and a drawn sword in the other. Supposing there is some Ark of the Covenant which will madden the remotest Moslem peasant with dreams of Paradise? What then, my friend?”

“Agreed. They’re not fools, no matter how much we try to convince ourselves otherwise. But what if they had some powerful sacred endorsement—some holy object, some scripture or gospel, or a new prophet from the desert, something that could cloak the whole brutal reality of the German war in the allure of the old overwhelming assaults that took down the Byzantine Empire and rattled the walls of Vienna? Islam is a warrior faith, and the mullah still stands in the pulpit with the Koran in one hand and a drawn sword in the other. What if there is some Ark of the Covenant that could drive the farthest Moslem peasant wild with dreams of Paradise? Then what, my friend?”

“Then there will be hell let loose in those parts pretty soon.”

“Then there will be chaos in those areas pretty soon.”

“Hell which may spread. Beyond Persia, remember, lies India.”

“Hell that could spread. Remember, beyond Persia is India.”

“You keep to suppositions. How much do you know?” I asked.

“You stick to assumptions. How much do you really know?” I asked.

“Very little, except the fact. But the fact is beyond dispute. I have reports from agents everywhere—pedlars in South Russia, Afghan horse-dealers, Turcoman merchants, pilgrims on the road to Mecca, sheikhs in North Africa, sailors on the Black Sea coasters, sheep-skinned Mongols, Hindu fakirs, Greek traders in the Gulf, as well as respectable Consuls who use cyphers. They tell the same story. The East is waiting for a revelation. It has been promised one. Some star—man, prophecy, or trinket—is coming out of the West. The Germans know, and that is the card with which they are going to astonish the world.”

“Not much, except the fact. But that fact is undeniable. I have reports from agents everywhere—vendors in South Russia, horse dealers in Afghanistan, Turcoman merchants, pilgrims on the way to Mecca, sheikhs in North Africa, sailors along the Black Sea coast, Mongols in sheepskin, Hindu mystics, Greek traders in the Gulf, and even respectable Consuls using codes. They all share the same story. The East is waiting for a revelation. It has been promised one. Some star—whether a person, prophecy, or artifact—is coming from the West. The Germans know, and that's the card they're going to use to wow the world.”

“And the mission you spoke of for me is to go and find out?”

“And the mission you mentioned for me is to go and find out?”

He nodded gravely. “That is the crazy and impossible mission.”

He nodded seriously. “That’s the crazy and impossible mission.”

“Tell me one thing, Sir Walter,” I said. “I know it is the fashion in this country if a man has a special knowledge to set him to some job exactly the opposite. I know all about Damaraland, but instead of being put on Botha’s staff, as I applied to be, I was kept in Hampshire mud till the campaign in German South West Africa was over. I know a man who could pass as an Arab, but do you think they would send him to the East? They left him in my battalion—a lucky thing for me, for he saved my life at Loos. I know the fashion, but isn’t this just carrying it a bit too far? There must be thousands of men who have spent years in the East and talk any language. They’re the fellows for this job. I never saw a Turk in my life except a chap who did wrestling turns in a show at Kimberley. You’ve picked about the most useless man on earth.”

“Tell me one thing, Sir Walter,” I said. “I know it’s common in this country for a man with specific expertise to be assigned to a job that’s completely the opposite. I’m well-versed in Damaraland, but instead of being placed on Botha’s staff, like I applied to be, I was stuck in the mud of Hampshire until the campaign in German South West Africa was over. I know someone who could easily pass as an Arab, but do you really think they would send him to the East? They left him in my battalion—which worked out well for me because he saved my life at Loos. I understand the trend, but isn’t this just taking it a bit too far? There must be thousands of men who have spent years in the East and can speak any language. They’re the right people for this job. I’ve never seen a Turkish person in my life except for a guy who did wrestling acts in a show in Kimberley. You’ve chosen the most useless man on the planet.”

“You’ve been a mining engineer, Hannay,” Sir Walter said. “If you wanted a man to prospect for gold in Barotseland you would of course like to get one who knew the country and the people and the language. But the first thing you would require in him would be that he had a nose for finding gold and knew his business. That is the position now. I believe that you have a nose for finding out what our enemies try to hide. I know that you are brave and cool and resourceful. That is why I tell you the story. Besides ...”

“You’ve worked as a mining engineer, Hannay,” Sir Walter said. “If you were looking for someone to explore for gold in Barotseland, you’d definitely want someone who understands the land, the people, and their language. But the most important thing you’d need is someone with a knack for discovering gold and who knows what they’re doing. That’s the situation we’re in now. I believe you have a talent for uncovering what our enemies are trying to conceal. I know you’re brave, composed, and resourceful. That’s why I’m sharing this story with you. Besides...”

He unrolled a big map of Europe on the wall.

He spread out a large map of Europe on the wall.

“I can’t tell you where you’ll get on the track of the secret, but I can put a limit to the quest. You won’t find it east of the Bosporus—not yet. It is still in Europe. It may be in Constantinople, or in Thrace. It may be farther west. But it is moving eastwards. If you are in time you may cut into its march to Constantinople. That much I can tell you. The secret is known in Germany, too, to those whom it concerns. It is in Europe that the seeker must search—at present.”

“I can’t tell you where to start looking for the secret, but I can limit your search. You won’t find it east of the Bosporus—not just yet. It’s still in Europe. It might be in Constantinople or Thrace. It could be farther west, but it’s moving towards the east. If you act quickly, you might intercept its journey to Constantinople. That’s all I can tell you. The secret is also known in Germany, to those who need to know. It’s in Europe that the seeker must look—for now.”

“Tell me more,” I said. “You can give me no details and no instructions. Obviously you can give me no help if I come to grief.”

"Tell me more," I said. "You won't give me any details or instructions. Clearly, you can't help me if I run into trouble."

He nodded. “You would be beyond the pale.”

He nodded. “You would be out of line.”

“You give me a free hand.”

“You're giving me total freedom.”

“Absolutely. You can have what money you like, and you can get what help you like. You can follow any plan you fancy, and go anywhere you think fruitful. We can give no directions.”

“Definitely. You can have as much money as you want, and you can get all the help you need. You can follow any plan you choose and go anywhere you think will be beneficial. We can't give any specific guidance.”

“One last question. You say it is important. Tell me just how important.”

“One last question. You say it’s important. Tell me exactly how important.”

“It is life and death,” he said solemnly. “I can put it no higher and no lower. Once we know what is the menace we can meet it. As long as we are in the dark it works unchecked and we may be too late. The war must be won or lost in Europe. Yes; but if the East blazes up, our effort will be distracted from Europe and the great coup may fail. The stakes are no less than victory and defeat, Hannay.”

“It’s a matter of life and death,” he said seriously. “I can’t stress that enough. Once we understand what the threat is, we can face it. As long as we’re in the dark, it operates freely and we might be too late. The war has to be won or lost in Europe. Yes; but if the East ignites, our focus will shift from Europe and the major coup might fail. The stakes are nothing less than victory or defeat, Hannay.”

I got out of my chair and walked to the window. It was a difficult moment in my life. I was happy in my soldiering; above all, happy in the company of my brother officers. I was asked to go off into the enemy’s lands on a quest for which I believed I was manifestly unfitted—a business of lonely days and nights, of nerve-racking strain, of deadly peril shrouding me like a garment. Looking out on the bleak weather I shivered. It was too grim a business, too inhuman for flesh and blood. But Sir Walter had called it a matter of life and death, and I had told him that I was out to serve my country. He could not give me orders, but was I not under orders—higher orders than my Brigadier’s? I thought myself incompetent, but cleverer men than me thought me competent, or at least competent enough for a sporting chance. I knew in my soul that if I declined I should never be quite at peace in the world again. And yet Sir Walter had called the scheme madness, and said that he himself would never have accepted.

I got up from my chair and walked to the window. It was a tough time in my life. I was happy as a soldier, especially enjoying the company of my fellow officers. I was asked to venture into enemy territory on a mission I felt completely unprepared for—a matter of lonely days and nights, constant anxiety, and life-threatening danger surrounding me like a cloak. Looking out at the bleak weather made me shiver. It was too harsh and inhumane for anyone. But Sir Walter had described it as a matter of life and death, and I’d told him I was ready to serve my country. He couldn’t give me orders, but was I not under orders—higher orders than my Brigadier’s? I believed I was unfit for this, but smarter people thought I was capable, or at least good enough for a fair shot. Deep down, I knew that if I refused, I would never feel at peace in the world again. Yet Sir Walter had called the plan madness and said he himself would never have accepted it.

How does one make a great decision? I swear that when I turned round to speak I meant to refuse. But my answer was Yes, and I had crossed the Rubicon. My voice sounded cracked and far away.

How does someone make a great decision? I swear that when I turned to speak, I intended to refuse. But my answer was Yes, and I had crossed the Rubicon. My voice sounded broken and distant.

Sir Walter shook hands with me and his eyes blinked a little.

Sir Walter shook my hand, and his eyes blinked slightly.

“I may be sending you to your death, Hannay—Good God, what a damned task-mistress duty is!—If so, I shall be haunted with regrets, but you will never repent. Have no fear of that. You have chosen the roughest road, but it goes straight to the hill-tops.”

“I might be sending you to your death, Hannay—Good God, what a terrible taskmaster duty is!—If that’s the case, I’ll be filled with regrets, but you will never look back. Don’t worry about that. You’ve picked the toughest path, but it leads directly to the mountaintops.”

He handed me the half-sheet of note-paper. On it were written three words—“Kasredin”, “cancer”, and “v. I.

He gave me the half-sheet of note paper. On it were three words—“Kasredin”, “cancer”, and “v. I.

“That is the only clue we possess,” he said. “I cannot construe it, but I can tell you the story. We have had our agents working in Persia and Mesopotamia for years—mostly young officers of the Indian Army. They carry their lives in their hands, and now and then one disappears, and the sewers of Baghdad might tell a tale. But they find out many things, and they count the game worth the candle. They have told us of the star rising in the West, but they could give us no details. All but one—the best of them. He had been working between Mosul and the Persian frontier as a muleteer, and had been south into the Bakhtiari hills. He found out something, but his enemies knew that he knew and he was pursued. Three months ago, just before Kut, he staggered into Delamain’s camp with ten bullet holes in him and a knife slash on his forehead. He mumbled his name, but beyond that and the fact that there was a Something coming from the West he told them nothing. He died in ten minutes. They found this paper on him, and since he cried out the word ‘Kasredin’ in his last moments, it must have had something to do with his quest. It is for you to find out if it has any meaning.”

“That’s the only clue we have,” he said. “I can’t figure it out, but I can tell you the story. We’ve had agents working in Persia and Mesopotamia for years—mostly young officers from the Indian Army. They put their lives on the line, and every so often one goes missing, and the sewers of Baghdad might have a story to tell. But they uncover a lot of information, and they think the risk is worth it. They’ve mentioned a star rising in the West, but they couldn’t provide any details. Except for one—the best of them. He had been working as a muleteer between Mosul and the Persian border and had gone south into the Bakhtiari hills. He discovered something, but his enemies realized he knew too much and chased after him. Three months ago, just before Kut, he stumbled into Delamain’s camp with ten bullet wounds and a knife cut on his forehead. He whispered his name, but besides that and the fact that there was something coming from the West, he didn’t say anything else. He died within ten minutes. They found this paper on him, and since he shouted out the word ‘Kasredin’ in his last moments, it must have been related to his mission. It’s up to you to find out if it means anything.”

I folded it up and placed it in my pocket-book.

I folded it up and put it in my wallet.

“What a great fellow! What was his name?” I asked.

“What a great guy! What was his name?” I asked.

Sir Walter did not answer at once. He was looking out of the window. “His name,” he said at last, “was Harry Bullivant. He was my son. God rest his brave soul!”

Sir Walter didn’t reply immediately. He was staring out of the window. “His name,” he finally said, “was Harry Bullivant. He was my son. May God rest his brave soul!”

CHAPTER II.
The Gathering of the Missionaries

I wrote out a wire to Sandy, asking him to come up by the two-fifteen train and meet me at my flat.

I texted Sandy, asking him to take the two-fifteen train and meet me at my apartment.

“I have chosen my colleague,” I said.

“I’ve chosen my colleague,” I said.

“Billy Arbuthnot’s boy? His father was at Harrow with me. I know the fellow—Harry used to bring him down to fish—tallish, with a lean, high-boned face and a pair of brown eyes like a pretty girl’s. I know his record, too. There’s a good deal about him in this office. He rode through Yemen, which no white man ever did before. The Arabs let him pass, for they thought him stark mad and argued that the hand of Allah was heavy enough on him without their efforts. He’s blood-brother to every kind of Albanian bandit. Also he used to take a hand in Turkish politics, and got a huge reputation. Some Englishman was once complaining to old Mahmoud Shevkat about the scarcity of statesmen in Western Europe, and Mahmoud broke in with, ‘Have you not the Honourable Arbuthnot?’ You say he’s in your battalion. I was wondering what had become of him, for we tried to get hold of him here, but he had left no address. Ludovick Arbuthnot—yes, that’s the man. Buried deep in the commissioned ranks of the New Army? Well, we’ll get him out pretty quick!”

“Billy Arbuthnot’s son? His dad was at Harrow with me. I know the guy—Harry used to bring him down to fish—tallish, with a lean, high-boned face and a pair of brown eyes like a pretty girl’s. I know his background, too. There’s a lot about him in this office. He rode through Yemen, which no white man had ever done before. The Arabs let him pass because they thought he was completely mad and figured the hand of Allah was heavy enough on him without their help. He’s blood-brother to every kind of Albanian bandit. Plus, he used to get involved in Turkish politics and earned quite a reputation. One Englishman was once complaining to old Mahmoud Shevkat about the lack of statesmen in Western Europe, and Mahmoud jumped in with, ‘Don’t you have the Honourable Arbuthnot?’ You say he’s in your battalion. I was curious about what happened to him since we tried to reach him here, but he didn’t leave an address. Ludovick Arbuthnot—yes, that’s the guy. Buried deep in the commissioned ranks of the New Army? Well, we’ll retrieve him pretty quickly!”

“I knew he had knocked about the East, but I didn’t know he was that kind of swell. Sandy’s not the chap to buck about himself.”

“I knew he had traveled around the East, but I didn’t realize he was that kind of fancy guy. Sandy’s not the type to brag about himself.”

“He wouldn’t,” said Sir Walter. “He had always a more than Oriental reticence. I’ve got another colleague for you, if you like him.”

“He wouldn’t,” Sir Walter said. “He always had a more than Eastern reserve. I’ve got another colleague for you, if you want him.”

He looked at his watch. “You can get to the Savoy Grill Room in five minutes in a taxi-cab. Go in from the Strand, turn to your left, and you will see in the alcove on the right-hand side a table with one large American gentleman sitting at it. They know him there, so he will have the table to himself. I want you to go and sit down beside him. Say you come from me. His name is Mr John Scantlebury Blenkiron, now a citizen of Boston, Mass., but born and raised in Indiana. Put this envelope in your pocket, but don’t read its contents till you have talked to him. I want you to form your own opinion about Mr Blenkiron.”

He checked his watch. “You can get to the Savoy Grill Room in five minutes by taxi. Enter from the Strand, turn left, and you’ll see a table in the alcove on the right with a large American gentleman sitting there. They know him, so he’ll have the table to himself. I want you to go and sit next to him. Tell him you’re coming from me. His name is Mr. John Scantlebury Blenkiron, now living in Boston, Mass., but originally from Indiana. Keep this envelope in your pocket, but don’t read what’s inside until you’ve talked to him. I want you to form your own opinion about Mr. Blenkiron.”

I went out of the Foreign Office in as muddled a frame of mind as any diplomatist who ever left its portals. I was most desperately depressed. To begin with, I was in a complete funk. I had always thought I was about as brave as the average man, but there’s courage and courage, and mine was certainly not the impassive kind. Stick me down in a trench and I could stand being shot at as well as most people, and my blood could get hot if it were given a chance. But I think I had too much imagination. I couldn’t shake off the beastly forecasts that kept crowding my mind.

I left the Foreign Office feeling as confused as any diplomat ever has. I was incredibly depressed. To start with, I was really anxious. I always thought I was pretty brave, like most people, but there's different kinds of courage, and mine definitely wasn't the calm type. If you put me in a trench, I could handle being shot at like anyone else, and I could get fired up if the situation called for it. But I think I had too much imagination. I couldn't get rid of the terrible thoughts that kept invading my mind.

In about a fortnight, I calculated, I would be dead. Shot as a spy—a rotten sort of ending! At the moment I was quite safe, looking for a taxi in the middle of Whitehall, but the sweat broke on my forehead. I felt as I had felt in my adventure before the war. But this was far worse, for it was more cold-blooded and premeditated, and I didn’t seem to have even a sporting chance. I watched the figures in khaki passing on the pavement, and thought what a nice safe prospect they had compared to mine. Yes, even if next week they were in the Hohenzollern, or the Hairpin trench at the Quarries, or that ugly angle at Hooge. I wondered why I had not been happier that morning before I got that infernal wire. Suddenly all the trivialities of English life seemed to me inexpressibly dear and terribly far away. I was very angry with Bullivant, till I remembered how fair he had been. My fate was my own choosing.

In about two weeks, I figured I would be dead. Shot as a spy—a terrible way to go! Right now, I was safe, trying to find a taxi in the middle of Whitehall, but sweat was forming on my forehead. I felt the same way I did during my adventure before the war. But this was much worse, as it was colder and more calculated, and I didn’t seem to have even a fair chance. I watched the soldiers in khaki walking by on the sidewalk and thought about how much safer their future looked compared to mine. Yes, even if next week they were in the Hohenzollern, or the Hairpin trench at the Quarries, or that nasty spot at Hooge. I wondered why I hadn’t felt happier that morning before I got that awful message. Suddenly, all the little things about English life felt incredibly precious and painfully distant. I was really mad at Bullivant until I remembered how fair he had been. My fate was my own doing.

When I was hunting the Black Stone the interest of the problem had helped to keep me going. But now I could see no problem. My mind had nothing to work on but three words of gibberish on a sheet of paper and a mystery of which Sir Walter had been convinced, but to which he couldn’t give a name. It was like the story I had read of Saint Teresa setting off at the age of ten with her small brother to convert the Moors. I sat huddled in the taxi with my chin on my breast, wishing that I had lost a leg at Loos and been comfortably tucked away for the rest of the war.

When I was searching for the Black Stone, the challenge kept me motivated. But now, I couldn't see any challenge at all. My mind had nothing to focus on except for three nonsensical words on a piece of paper and a mystery that Sir Walter believed in, but couldn't name. It was like the story I read about Saint Teresa setting off at the age of ten with her little brother to convert the Moors. I sat cramped in the taxi with my chin on my chest, wishing I had lost a leg at Loos and could be comfortably out of the war.

Sure enough I found my man in the Grill Room. There he was, feeding solemnly, with a napkin tucked under his chin. He was a big fellow with a fat, sallow, clean-shaven face. I disregarded the hovering waiter and pulled up a chair beside the American at the little table. He turned on me a pair of full sleepy eyes, like a ruminating ox.

Sure enough, I found my guy in the Grill Room. There he was, eating seriously, with a napkin tucked under his chin. He was a big guy with a fat, pale, clean-shaven face. I ignored the waiter hovering around and pulled up a chair next to the American at the small table. He looked at me with a pair of heavy, sleepy eyes, like a thoughtful cow.

“Mr Blenkiron?” I asked.

"Mr. Blenkiron?" I asked.

“You have my name, Sir,” he said. “Mr John Scantlebury Blenkiron. I would wish you good morning if I saw anything good in this darned British weather.”

“You have my name, Sir,” he said. “Mr. John Scantlebury Blenkiron. I’d wish you good morning if I saw anything good in this darn British weather.”

“I come from Sir Walter Bullivant,” I said, speaking low.

“I’m from Sir Walter Bullivant,” I said quietly.

“So?” said he. “Sir Walter is a very good friend of mine. Pleased to meet you, Mr—or I guess it’s Colonel—”

“So?” he said. “Sir Walter is a really good friend of mine. Nice to meet you, Mr—or I guess it’s Colonel—”

“Hannay,” I said; “Major Hannay.” I was wondering what this sleepy Yankee could do to help me.

“Hannay,” I said; “Major Hannay.” I was thinking about what this laid-back American could do to help me.

“Allow me to offer you luncheon, Major. Here, waiter, bring the carte. I regret that I cannot join you in sampling the efforts of the management of this hotel. I suffer, Sir, from dyspepsia—duodenal dyspepsia. It gets me two hours after a meal and gives me hell just below the breast-bone. So I am obliged to adopt a diet. My nourishment is fish, Sir, and boiled milk and a little dry toast. It’s a melancholy descent from the days when I could do justice to a lunch at Sherry’s and sup off oyster-crabs and devilled bones.” He sighed from the depths of his capacious frame.

“Let me treat you to lunch, Major. Waiter, please bring the menu. I’m sorry that I can’t enjoy what the hotel has to offer. I have a condition, Sir, called duodenal dyspepsia. It kicks in about two hours after I eat and causes me a lot of discomfort right below my chest. So, I have to stick to a strict diet. My meals consist of fish, boiled milk, and a bit of dry toast. It’s a sad change from the days when I could really enjoy a lunch at Sherry’s and feast on oyster-crabs and deviled bones.” He sighed deeply from his large frame.

I ordered an omelette and a chop, and took another look at him. The large eyes seemed to be gazing steadily at me without seeing me. They were as vacant as an abstracted child’s; but I had an uncomfortable feeling that they saw more than mine.

I ordered an omelette and a chop, then glanced at him again. His big eyes seemed to be staring right at me but not really seeing me. They looked as empty as an distracted child's; still, I had a weird sense that he was perceiving more than I was.

“You have been fighting, Major? The Battle of Loos? Well, I guess that must have been some battle. We in America respect the fighting of the British soldier, but we don’t quite catch on to the de-vices of the British Generals. We opine that there is more bellicosity than science among your highbrows. That is so? My father fought at Chattanooga, but these eyes have seen nothing gorier than a Presidential election. Say, is there any way I could be let into a scene of real bloodshed?”

“You’ve been fighting, Major? The Battle of Loos? I guess that must have been quite a battle. We in America respect the bravery of the British soldier, but we don’t quite understand the strategies of the British Generals. We think there’s more aggression than strategy among your leaders. Is that true? My father fought at Chattanooga, but I’ve seen nothing bloodier than a Presidential election. Is there any chance I could witness some real bloodshed?”

His serious tone made me laugh. “There are plenty of your countrymen in the present show,” I said. “The French Foreign Legion is full of young Americans, and so is our Army Service Corps. Half the chauffeurs you strike in France seem to come from the States.”

His serious tone made me laugh. “There are plenty of your fellow countrymen in the current show,” I said. “The French Foreign Legion is full of young Americans, and so is our Army Service Corps. Half the drivers you meet in France seem to come from the States.”

He sighed. “I did think of some belligerent stunt a year back. But I reflected that the good God had not given John S. Blenkiron the kind of martial figure that would do credit to the tented field. Also I recollected that we Americans were nootrals—benevolent nootrals—and that it did not become me to be butting into the struggles of the effete monarchies of Europe. So I stopped at home. It was a big renunciation, Major, for I was lying sick during the Philippines business, and I have never seen the lawless passions of men let loose on a battlefield. And, as a stoodent of humanity, I hankered for the experience.”

He sighed. “I did think about doing something aggressive a year ago. But then I realized that God hadn’t given John S. Blenkiron the kind of warrior look that would fit in on a battlefield. I also remembered that we Americans were neutral—benevolent neutrals—and it wasn't right for me to interfere in the struggles of the weak monarchies of Europe. So I stayed home. It was a big sacrifice, Major, because I was sick during the Philippines conflict, and I’ve never witnessed the wild passions of men unleashed on a battlefield. And, as a student of humanity, I longed for that experience.”

“What have you been doing?” I asked. The calm gentleman had begun to interest me.

“What have you been up to?” I asked. The composed man had started to pique my interest.

“Waal,” he said, “I just waited. The Lord has blessed me with money to burn, so I didn’t need to go scrambling like a wild cat for war contracts. But I reckoned I would get let into the game somehow, and I was. Being a nootral, I was in an advantageous position to take a hand. I had a pretty hectic time for a while, and then I reckoned I would leave God’s country and see what was doing in Europe. I have counted myself out of the bloodshed business, but, as your poet sings, peace has its victories not less renowned than war, and I reckon that means that a nootral can have a share in a scrap as well as a belligerent.”

“Waal,” he said, “I just waited. The Lord has blessed me with money to burn, so I didn’t need to go scrambling like a wildcat for war contracts. But I figured I’d get involved in some way, and I did. Being neutral, I was in a good position to take part. I had a pretty hectic time for a while, and then I thought I’d leave God’s country and see what was going on in Europe. I’ve counted myself out of the bloodshed business, but, as your poet sings, peace has its victories just as famous as war, and I think that means a neutral can have a share in a fight just as much as a belligerent.”

“That’s the best kind of neutrality I’ve ever heard of,” I said.

"That’s the best kind of neutrality I’ve ever heard of," I said.

“It’s the right kind,” he replied solemnly. “Say, Major, what are your lot fighting for? For your own skins and your Empire and the peace of Europe. Waal, those ideals don’t concern us one cent. We’re not Europeans, and there aren’t any German trenches on Long Island yet. You’ve made the ring in Europe, and if we came butting in it wouldn’t be the rules of the game. You wouldn’t welcome us, and I guess you’d be right. We’re that delicate-minded we can’t interfere and that was what my friend, President Wilson, meant when he opined that America was too proud to fight. So we’re nootrals. But likewise we’re benevolent nootrals. As I follow events, there’s a skunk been let loose in the world, and the odour of it is going to make life none too sweet till it is cleared away. It wasn’t us that stirred up that skunk, but we’ve got to take a hand in disinfecting the planet. See? We can’t fight, but, by God! some of us are going to sweat blood to sweep the mess up. Officially we do nothing except give off Notes like a leaky boiler gives off steam. But as individooal citizens we’re in it up to the neck. So, in the spirit of Jefferson Davis and Woodrow Wilson, I’m going to be the nootralist kind of nootral till Kaiser will be sorry he didn’t declare war on America at the beginning.”

“It’s the right kind,” he replied seriously. “Say, Major, what are you fighting for? For your own safety and your Empire and the peace of Europe. Well, those ideals don’t matter to us at all. We’re not Europeans, and there aren’t any German trenches on Long Island yet. You’ve created the situation in Europe, and if we jumped in, it wouldn’t follow the rules. You wouldn’t welcome us, and I guess you’d be right. We’re so sensitive that we can’t interfere, and that’s what my friend, President Wilson, meant when he said that America was too proud to fight. So we’re neutral. But we’re also benevolent neutrals. As I see it, there’s a skunk let loose in the world, and the smell of it is going to make life pretty unpleasant until it’s taken care of. It wasn’t us who stirred up that skunk, but we need to help clean up the mess. Get it? We can’t fight, but, by God! some of us are going to work hard to clean it up. Officially, we do nothing except send out Notes like a leaky boiler lets out steam. But as individual citizens, we’re deeply involved. So, in the spirit of Jefferson Davis and Woodrow Wilson, I’m going to be the neutral kind of neutral until the Kaiser regrets not declaring war on America in the first place.”

I was completely recovering my temper. This fellow was a perfect jewel, and his spirit put purpose into me.

I was totally regaining my composure. This guy was a real gem, and his enthusiasm motivated me.

“I guess you British were the same kind of nootral when your Admiral warned off the German fleet from interfering with Dewey in Manila Bay in ’98.” Mr Blenkiron drank up the last drop of his boiled milk and lit a thin black cigar.

“I guess you Brits were just as neutral when your Admiral warned the German fleet not to interfere with Dewey in Manila Bay in ’98.” Mr. Blenkiron finished the last drop of his boiled milk and lit a thin black cigar.

I leaned forward. “Have you talked to Sir Walter?” I asked.

I leaned in. “Have you spoken to Sir Walter?” I asked.

“I have talked to him, and he has given me to understand that there’s a deal ahead which you’re going to boss. There are no flies on that big man, and if he says it’s good business then you can count me in.”

“I’ve talked to him, and he’s made it clear that there’s a deal coming up that you’re going to lead. That big guy knows what he’s doing, and if he says it’s a good opportunity, then you can count me in.”

“You know that it’s uncommonly dangerous?”

“You know that it’s really dangerous?”

“I judged so. But it don’t do to begin counting risks. I believe in an all-wise and beneficent Providence, but you have got to trust Him and give Him a chance. What’s life anyhow? For me, it’s living on a strict diet and having frequent pains in my stomach. It isn’t such an almighty lot to give up, provided you get a good price in the deal. Besides, how big is the risk? About one o’clock in the morning, when you can’t sleep, it will be the size of Mount Everest, but if you run out to meet it, it will be a hillock you can jump over. The grizzly looks very fierce when you’re taking your ticket for the Rockies and wondering if you’ll come back, but he’s just an ordinary bear when you’ve got the sight of your rifle on him. I won’t think about risks till I’m up to my neck in them and don’t see the road out.”

“I thought so. But it doesn’t help to start counting risks. I believe in a wise and caring Providence, but you have to trust Him and give Him a chance. What’s life anyway? For me, it’s living on a strict diet and dealing with constant stomach pains. It’s not such a huge sacrifice, as long as you get a good deal out of it. Besides, how big is the risk? Around one o’clock in the morning, when you can’t sleep, it feels as big as Mount Everest, but if you face it head-on, it’s just a small hill you can leap over. The bear looks very scary when you’re buying your ticket for the Rockies and wondering if you’ll make it back, but he’s just a regular bear when you have your rifle aimed at him. I won’t worry about risks until I’m in deep and can’t see a way out.”

I scribbled my address on a piece of paper and handed it to the stout philosopher. “Come to dinner tonight at eight,” I said.

I quickly wrote down my address on a piece of paper and gave it to the chubby philosopher. “Join me for dinner tonight at eight,” I said.

“I thank you, Major. A little fish, please, plain-boiled, and some hot milk. You will forgive me if I borrow your couch after the meal and spend the evening on my back. That is the advice of my noo doctor.”

“I appreciate it, Major. Just a small fish, please, boiled plain, and some hot milk. I hope you don’t mind if I use your couch after dinner and lie on my back for the evening. That’s what my new doctor suggested.”

I got a taxi and drove to my club. On the way I opened the envelope Sir Walter had given me. It contained a number of jottings, the dossier of Mr Blenkiron. He had done wonders for the Allies in the States. He had nosed out the Dumba plot, and had been instrumental in getting the portfolio of Dr Albert. Von Papen’s spies had tried to murder him, after he had defeated an attempt to blow up one of the big gun factories. Sir Walter had written at the end: “The best man we ever had. Better than Scudder. He would go through hell with a box of bismuth tablets and a pack of Patience cards.”

I grabbed a taxi and headed to my club. On the way, I opened the envelope Sir Walter had given me. It contained several notes, the profile of Mr. Blenkiron. He had done amazing things for the Allies in the States. He uncovered the Dumba plot and played a key role in securing Dr. Albert's portfolio. Von Papen’s spies had tried to kill him after he thwarted an attempt to blow up one of the big gun factories. Sir Walter had written at the end: “The best man we ever had. Better than Scudder. He would go through hell with a box of bismuth tablets and a pack of Patience cards.”

I went into the little back smoking-room, borrowed an atlas from the library, poked up the fire, and sat down to think. Mr Blenkiron had given me the fillip I needed. My mind was beginning to work now, and was running wide over the whole business. Not that I hoped to find anything by my cogitations. It wasn’t thinking in an arm-chair that would solve the mystery. But I was getting a sort of grip on a plan of operations. And to my relief I had stopped thinking about the risks. Blenkiron had shamed me out of that. If a sedentary dyspeptic could show that kind of nerve, I wasn’t going to be behind him.

I went into the small back smoking room, borrowed an atlas from the library, stoked the fire, and sat down to think. Mr. Blenkiron had given me the boost I needed. My mind was starting to work now, and I was considering the whole situation. Not that I expected to find anything through my thoughts. It wasn’t by sitting in an armchair that I would solve the mystery. But I was starting to get a clearer idea of a plan of action. And thankfully, I had stopped worrying about the risks. Blenkiron had made me feel ashamed for even thinking that way. If a sedentary guy with stomach issues could show that kind of courage, I wasn’t going to fall behind him.

I went back to my flat about five o’clock. My man Paddock had gone to the wars long ago, so I had shifted to one of the new blocks in Park Lane where they provide food and service. I kept the place on to have a home to go to when I got leave. It’s a miserable business holidaying in an hotel.

I went back to my apartment around five o’clock. My guy Paddock had gone off to war a long time ago, so I moved to one of the new buildings on Park Lane where they offer meals and services. I kept the place so I’d have a home to return to when I got time off. It’s pretty miserable trying to take a vacation in a hotel.

Sandy was devouring tea-cakes with the serious resolution of a convalescent.

Sandy was eagerly eating tea cakes with the focused determination of someone recovering from an illness.

“Well, Dick, what’s the news? Is it a brass hat or the boot?”

“Well, Dick, what’s the scoop? Is it a promotion or getting fired?”

“Neither,” I said. “But you and I are going to disappear from His Majesty’s forces. Seconded for special service.”

“Neither,” I said. “But you and I are going to vanish from His Majesty’s forces. Assigned for special duty.”

“O my sainted aunt!” said Sandy. “What is it? For Heaven’s sake put me out of pain. Have we to tout deputations of suspicious neutrals over munition works or take the shivering journalist in a motor-car where he can imagine he sees a Boche?”

“O my sainted aunt!” said Sandy. “What is it? For Heaven’s sake, put me out of my misery. Do we have to bring suspicious neutrals to the munitions factory or take the terrified journalist in a car where he can think he sees a German soldier?”

“The news will keep. But I can tell you this much. It’s about as safe and easy as to go through the German lines with a walking-stick.”

“The news can wait. But I can tell you this much. It’s about as safe and easy as trying to cross the German lines with just a walking stick.”

“Come, that’s not so dusty,” said Sandy, and began cheerfully on the muffins.

“Come on, that’s not so bad,” said Sandy, and started happily on the muffins.

I must spare a moment to introduce Sandy to the reader, for he cannot be allowed to slip into this tale by a side-door. If you will consult the Peerage you will find that to Edward Cospatrick, fifteenth Baron Clanroyden, there was born in the year 1882, as his second son, Ludovick Gustavus Arbuthnot, commonly called the Honourable, etc. The said son was educated at Eton and New College, Oxford, was a captain in the Tweeddale Yeomanry, and served for some years as honorary attache at various embassies. The Peerage will stop short at this point, but that is by no means the end of the story. For the rest you must consult very different authorities. Lean brown men from the ends of the earth may be seen on the London pavements now and then in creased clothes, walking with the light outland step, slinking into clubs as if they could not remember whether or not they belonged to them. From them you may get news of Sandy. Better still, you will hear of him at little forgotten fishing ports where the Albanian mountains dip to the Adriatic. If you struck a Mecca pilgrimage the odds are you would meet a dozen of Sandy’s friends in it. In shepherds’ huts in the Caucasus you will find bits of his cast-off clothing, for he has a knack of shedding garments as he goes. In the caravanserais of Bokhara and Samarkand he is known, and there are shikaris in the Pamirs who still speak of him round their fires. If you were going to visit Petrograd or Rome or Cairo it would be no use asking him for introductions; if he gave them, they would lead you into strange haunts. But if Fate compelled you to go to Llasa or Yarkand or Seistan he could map out your road for you and pass the word to potent friends. We call ourselves insular, but the truth is that we are the only race on earth that can produce men capable of getting inside the skin of remote peoples. Perhaps the Scots are better than the English, but we’re all a thousand per cent better than anybody else. Sandy was the wandering Scot carried to the pitch of genius. In old days he would have led a crusade or discovered a new road to the Indies. Today he merely roamed as the spirit moved him, till the war swept him up and dumped him down in my battalion.

I need to take a moment to introduce Sandy to you, as he can't just slip into this story unnoticed. If you check the Peerage, you'll see that Edward Cospatrick, the fifteenth Baron Clanroyden, had a second son born in 1882 named Ludovick Gustavus Arbuthnot, usually referred to as the Honourable. This son was educated at Eton and New College, Oxford, served as a captain in the Tweeddale Yeomanry, and worked for several years as an honorary attaché at various embassies. The Peerage stops there, but that's only part of the story. For more, you need to look at different sources. Occasionally, you might spot lean, tanned men from distant lands on the streets of London, walking briskly in tailored clothes, slipping into clubs as if unsure whether they belong. They might have news about Sandy. Even better, you’ll hear tales of him at those little forgotten fishing villages where the Albanian mountains meet the Adriatic. If you embarked on a pilgrimage to Mecca, chances are you’d run into a dozen of Sandy’s friends along the way. In shepherds' huts in the Caucasus, you'll find bits of the clothes he has left behind, as he has a habit of shedding garments as he travels. He’s known in the caravanserais of Bokhara and Samarkand, and shikaris in the Pamirs still share stories about him around their fires. If you were planning to visit Petrograd, Rome, or Cairo, asking him for introductions wouldn't help; if he gave them, they would lead you to some unusual places. But if fate brought you to Llasa, Yarkand, or Seistan, he could plot your journey and connect you with influential friends. We like to think of ourselves as insular, but the reality is we're the only race on earth capable of truly understanding remote cultures. Perhaps the Scots are better at it than the English, but we’re all vastly better than anyone else. Sandy was the wandering Scot at the peak of brilliance. In ancient times, he would have led a crusade or found a new route to the Indies. Nowadays, he just wanders where his spirit takes him, until the war swept him up and dropped him into my battalion.

I got out Sir Walter’s half-sheet of note-paper. It was not the original—naturally he wanted to keep that—but it was a careful tracing. I took it that Harry Bullivant had not written down the words as a memo for his own use. People who follow his career have good memories. He must have written them in order that, if he perished and his body was found, his friends might get a clue. Wherefore, I argued, the words must be intelligible to somebody or other of our persuasion, and likewise they must be pretty well gibberish to any Turk or German that found them.

I took out Sir Walter’s half-sheet of notepaper. It wasn't the original—of course, he wanted to keep that—but it was a careful copy. I figured that Harry Bullivant hadn’t written down the words as a note for himself. People who follow his career have good memories. He must have written them so that, if he died and his body was discovered, his friends could get a clue. So, I concluded, the words had to make sense to someone like us, but they would probably be complete nonsense to any Turk or German who found them.

The first, “Kasredin”, I could make nothing of. I asked Sandy.

The first one, “Kasredin”, didn’t make any sense to me. I asked Sandy.

“You mean Nasr-ed-din,” he said, still munching crumpets.

“You mean Nasr-ed-din,” he said, still chewing on crumpets.

“What’s that?” I asked sharply.

“What’s that?” I asked sharply.

“He’s the General believed to be commanding against us in Mesopotamia. I remember him years ago in Aleppo. He talked bad French and drank the sweetest of sweet champagne.”

“He’s the General thought to be leading the fight against us in Mesopotamia. I remember him from years ago in Aleppo. He spoke poor French and drank the sweetest champagne.”

I looked closely at the paper. The “K” was unmistakable.

I examined the paper closely. The "K" was clear as day.

“Kasredin is nothing. It means in Arabic the House of Faith, and might cover anything from Hagia Sofia to a suburban villa. What’s your next puzzle, Dick? Have you entered for a prize competition in a weekly paper?”

“Kasredin is nothing. It means in Arabic the House of Faith, and could refer to anything from Hagia Sofia to a suburban villa. What’s your next puzzle, Dick? Have you signed up for a prize competition in a weekly magazine?”

Cancer,” I read out.

“Cancer,” I read out.

“It is the Latin for a crab. Likewise it is the name of a painful disease. It is also a sign of the Zodiac.”

“It’s the Latin word for a crab. It’s also the name of a painful disease. Plus, it’s a sign of the Zodiac.”

V. I,” I read.

“V. I,” I read.

“There you have me. It sounds like the number of a motor-car. The police would find out for you. I call this rather a difficult competition. What’s the prize?”

“There you have me. It sounds like a car number. The police would figure it out for you. I think this is quite a tough competition. What’s the prize?”

I passed him the paper. “Who wrote it? It looks as if he had been in a hurry.”

I handed him the paper. “Who wrote this? It looks like they were in a hurry.”

“Harry Bullivant,” I said.

"Harry Bullivant," I said.

Sandy’s face grew solemn. “Old Harry. He was at my tutor’s. The best fellow God ever made. I saw his name in the casualty list before Kut. ... Harry didn’t do things without a purpose. What’s the story of this paper?”

Sandy's expression turned serious. "Old Harry. He was at my tutor’s. The best guy God ever created. I saw his name on the casualty list before Kut. ... Harry didn’t do anything without a reason. What’s the deal with this paper?”

“Wait till after dinner,” I said. “I’m going to change and have a bath. There’s an American coming to dine, and he’s part of the business.”

“Wait until after dinner,” I said. “I’m going to change and take a bath. There’s an American coming to dine, and he’s part of the business.”

Mr Blenkiron arrived punctual to the minute in a fur coat like a Russian prince’s. Now that I saw him on his feet I could judge him better. He had a fat face, but was not too plump in figure, and very muscular wrists showed below his shirt-cuffs. I fancied that, if the occasion called, he might be a good man with his hands.

Mr. Blenkiron arrived right on time in a fur coat that looked like something a Russian prince would wear. Now that I saw him standing, I could get a better impression of him. He had a round face, but he wasn't overweight, and his muscular wrists were visible below his shirt cuffs. I imagined that, if the situation required it, he could handle himself well.

Sandy and I ate a hearty meal, but the American picked at his boiled fish and sipped his milk a drop at a time. When the servant had cleared away, he was as good as his word and laid himself out on my sofa. I offered him a good cigar, but he preferred one of his own lean black abominations. Sandy stretched his length in an easy chair and lit his pipe. “Now for your story, Dick,” he said.

Sandy and I had a filling meal, but the American nibbled at his boiled fish and sipped his milk slowly. Once the servant cleared the table, he kept his promise and settled onto my sofa. I offered him a nice cigar, but he chose one of his own skinny, nasty ones. Sandy settled back in an armchair and lit his pipe. “Now let’s hear your story, Dick,” he said.

I began, as Sir Walter had begun with me, by telling them about the puzzle in the Near East. I pitched a pretty good yarn, for I had been thinking a lot about it, and the mystery of the business had caught my fancy. Sandy got very keen.

I started, just like Sir Walter had started with me, by telling them about the puzzle in the Near East. I spun a pretty good story since I had been thinking a lot about it, and the mystery of it all had really intrigued me. Sandy became very interested.

“It is possible enough. Indeed, I’ve been expecting it, though I’m hanged if I can imagine what card the Germans have got up their sleeve. It might be any one of twenty things. Thirty years ago there was a bogus prophecy that played the devil in Yemen. Or it might be a flag such as Ali Wad Helu had, or a jewel like Solomon’s necklace in Abyssinia. You never know what will start off a jehad! But I rather think it’s a man.”

“It’s definitely possible. Honestly, I’ve been expecting it, although I can’t imagine what tricks the Germans have. It could be any number of things. Thirty years ago, there was a fake prophecy that caused major trouble in Yemen. Or it could be a flag like the one Ali Wad Helu had, or a jewel like Solomon’s necklace in Abyssinia. You never know what might trigger a jehad! But I have a feeling it’s a person.”

“Where could he get his purchase?” I asked.

“Where could he get his supplies?” I asked.

“It’s hard to say. If it were merely wild tribesmen like the Bedouin he might have got a reputation as a saint and miracle-worker. Or he might be a fellow that preached a pure religion, like the chap that founded the Senussi. But I’m inclined to think he must be something extra special if he can put a spell on the whole Moslem world. The Turk and the Persian wouldn’t follow the ordinary new theology game. He must be of the Blood. Your Mahdis and Mullahs and Imams were nobodies, but they had only a local prestige. To capture all Islam—and I gather that is what we fear—the man must be of the Koreish, the tribe of the Prophet himself.”

“It’s hard to say. If he were just wild tribesmen like the Bedouin, he might have earned a reputation as a saint and miracle worker. Or he could be someone who preached a pure religion, like the guy who started the Senussi. But I think he has to be something really special if he can influence the entire Muslim world. The Turk and the Persian wouldn’t follow any ordinary new theology. He must be from a distinguished lineage. Your Mahdis, Mullahs, and Imams were average individuals, but they had only local recognition. To unite all of Islam—and I understand that’s what we’re worried about—the man must be from the Koreish, the tribe of the Prophet himself.”

“But how could any impostor prove that? For I suppose he’s an impostor.”

“But how could any fake prove that? I mean, I assume he’s a fake.”

“He would have to combine a lot of claims. His descent must be pretty good to begin with, and there are families, remember, that claim the Koreish blood. Then he’d have to be rather a wonder on his own account—saintly, eloquent, and that sort of thing. And I expect he’d have to show a sign, though what that could be I haven’t a notion.”

“He would need to bring together a lot of claims. His lineage has to be quite impressive to start with, and there are families that claim to have Koreish blood, remember. Then he’d need to be quite exceptional on his own—saintly, eloquent, and all that. I also expect he’d need to show a sign, although I have no idea what that could be.”

“You know the East about as well as any living man. Do you think that kind of thing is possible?” I asked.

“You know the East as well as anyone alive. Do you think that's possible?” I asked.

“Perfectly,” said Sandy, with a grave face.

“Absolutely,” Sandy replied, looking serious.

“Well, there’s the ground cleared to begin with. Then there’s the evidence of pretty well every secret agent we possess. That all seems to prove the fact. But we have no details and no clues except that bit of paper.” I told them the story of it.

“Well, the ground is cleared to start with. Then there’s the evidence from pretty much every secret agent we have. That all seems to prove the point. But we have no details and no clues except for that piece of paper.” I shared the story about it.

Sandy studied it with wrinkled brows. “It beats me. But it may be the key for all that. A clue may be dumb in London and shout aloud at Baghdad.”

Sandy looked at it with furrowed brows. “I don’t know. But it could be important after all. A clue might not make sense in London but be obvious in Baghdad.”

“That’s just the point I was coming to. Sir Walter says this thing is about as important for our cause as big guns. He can’t give me orders, but he offers the job of going out to find what the mischief is. Once he knows that, he says he can checkmate it. But it’s got to be found out soon, for the mine may be sprung at any moment. I’ve taken on the job. Will you help?”

"That’s exactly what I was getting to. Sir Walter says this is just as crucial for our cause as heavy artillery. He can’t give me orders, but he’s offered me the task of figuring out what’s going on. Once he knows that, he says he can counter it. But we need to figure it out quickly because the mine could go off at any moment. I’ve accepted the task. Will you help?"

Sandy was studying the ceiling.

Sandy was staring at the ceiling.

“I should add that it’s about as safe as playing chuck-farthing at the Loos Cross-roads, the day you and I went in. And if we fail nobody can help us.”

“I should add that it's about as safe as playing chuck-farthing at the Loos Crossroads, the day you and I went in. And if we fail, no one can help us.”

“Oh, of course, of course,” said Sandy in an abstracted voice.

“Oh, of course, of course,” Sandy said distractedly.

Mr Blenkiron, having finished his after-dinner recumbency, had sat up and pulled a small table towards him. From his pocket he had taken a pack of Patience cards and had begun to play the game called the Double Napoleon. He seemed to be oblivious of the conversation.

Mr. Blenkiron, having wrapped up his post-dinner relaxation, sat up and pulled a small table closer to him. From his pocket, he took out a pack of Patience cards and started playing a game called the Double Napoleon. He appeared to be completely unaware of the conversation around him.

Suddenly I had a feeling that the whole affair was stark lunacy. Here were we three simpletons sitting in a London flat and projecting a mission into the enemy’s citadel without an idea what we were to do or how we were to do it. And one of the three was looking at the ceiling, and whistling softly through his teeth, and another was playing Patience. The farce of the thing struck me so keenly that I laughed.

Suddenly, I felt that the whole situation was completely crazy. Here we were, three fools sitting in a flat in London, trying to plan a mission into the enemy's stronghold without any idea of what we were supposed to do or how to do it. One of us was staring at the ceiling, whistling softly, while another was playing Solitaire. The absurdity of it all hit me so hard that I started to laugh.

Sandy looked at me sharply.

Sandy glared at me.

“You feel like that? Same with me. It’s idiocy, but all war is idiotic, and the most whole-hearted idiot is apt to win. We’re to go on this mad trail wherever we think we can hit it. Well, I’m with you. But I don’t mind admitting that I’m in a blue funk. I had got myself adjusted to this trench business and was quite happy. And now you have hoicked me out, and my feet are cold.”

“You feel like that? Same here. It’s crazy, but all war is crazy, and the biggest fool is likely to win. We’re supposed to follow this crazy path wherever we think we can find success. Well, I’m in. But I won’t pretend I’m not feeling really anxious. I had gotten used to this trench situation and was pretty happy. And now you’ve pulled me out, and my feet are cold.”

“I don’t believe you know what fear is,” I said.

“I don’t think you understand what fear really is,” I said.

“There you’re wrong, Dick,” he said earnestly. “Every man who isn’t a maniac knows fear. I have done some daft things, but I never started on them without wishing they were over. Once I’m in the show I get easier, and by the time I’m coming out I’m sorry to leave it. But at the start my feet are icy.”

“Here you’re mistaken, Dick,” he said earnestly. “Every guy who isn’t crazy knows fear. I’ve done some silly things, but I never jumped into them without wishing they were done. Once I’m in the situation, I feel better, and by the time I’m wrapping up, I regret leaving it. But at the beginning, my feet are freezing.”

“Then I take it you’re coming?”

“Then I guess you’re in?”

“Rather,” he said. “You didn’t imagine I would go back on you?”

“Rather,” he said. “You didn’t think I would back out on you?”

“And you, sir?” I addressed Blenkiron.

“And you, sir?” I said to Blenkiron.

His game of Patience seemed to be coming out. He was completing eight little heaps of cards with a contented grunt. As I spoke, he raised his sleepy eyes and nodded.

His game of Solitaire seemed to be coming together. He was finishing eight small piles of cards with a satisfied grunt. As I spoke, he lifted his sleepy eyes and nodded.

“Why, yes,” he said. “You gentlemen mustn’t think that I haven’t been following your most engrossing conversation. I guess I haven’t missed a syllable. I find that a game of Patience stimulates the digestion after meals and conduces to quiet reflection. John S. Blenkiron is with you all the time.”

“Of course,” he said. “You guys shouldn’t think that I haven’t been paying attention to your fascinating conversation. I suppose I haven’t missed a word. I find that playing a game of Solitaire helps with digestion after meals and encourages some quiet thinking. John S. Blenkiron is with you all the time.”

He shuffled the cards and dealt for a new game.

He mixed the cards and dealt for a new game.

I don’t think I ever expected a refusal, but this ready assent cheered me wonderfully. I couldn’t have faced the thing alone.

I never thought I would get a refusal, but this quick agreement made me really happy. I couldn’t have handled the situation by myself.

“Well, that’s settled. Now for ways and means. We three have got to put ourselves in the way of finding out Germany’s secret, and we have to go where it is known. Somehow or other we have to reach Constantinople, and to beat the biggest area of country we must go by different roads. Sandy, my lad, you’ve got to get into Turkey. You’re the only one of us that knows that engaging people. You can’t get in by Europe very easily, so you must try Asia. What about the coast of Asia Minor?”

“Well, that’s settled. Now for the next steps. We three need to find out Germany’s secret, and we have to go where it’s known. Somehow, we need to reach Constantinople, and to cover the most ground, we should take different routes. Sandy, my friend, you have to get into Turkey. You’re the only one among us who knows how to engage with those people. It won’t be easy to get in from Europe, so you should try Asia instead. What do you think about the coast of Asia Minor?”

“It could be done,” he said. “You’d better leave that entirely to me. I’ll find out the best way. I suppose the Foreign Office will help me to get to the jumping-off place?”

“It can be done,” he said. “You should leave that completely to me. I’ll figure out the best way. I assume the Foreign Office will assist me in getting to the starting point?”

“Remember,” I said, “it’s no good getting too far east. The secret, so far as concerns us, is still west of Constantinople.”

“Remember,” I said, “there's no point in going too far east. The key, as far as we're concerned, is still to the west of Constantinople.”

“I see that. I’ll blow in on the Bosporus by a short tack.”

“I get that. I’ll sail in on the Bosporus by a quick angle.”

“For you, Mr Blenkiron, I would suggest a straight journey. You’re an American, and can travel through Germany direct. But I wonder how far your activities in New York will allow you to pass as a neutral?”

“For you, Mr. Blenkiron, I'd recommend a direct trip. You're an American and can travel straight through Germany. But I’m curious how much your activities in New York will let you appear neutral?”

“I have considered that, Sir,” he said. “I have given some thought to the pecooliar psychology of the great German nation. As I read them they’re as cunning as cats, and if you play the feline game they will outwit you every time. Yes, Sir, they are no slouches at sleuth-work. If I were to buy a pair of false whiskers and dye my hair and dress like a Baptist parson and go into Germany on the peace racket, I guess they’d be on my trail like a knife, and I should be shot as a spy inside of a week or doing solitary in the Moabite prison. But they lack the larger vision. They can be bluffed, Sir. With your approval I shall visit the Fatherland as John S. Blenkiron, once a thorn in the side of their brightest boys on the other side. But it will be a different John S. I reckon he will have experienced a change of heart. He will have come to appreciate the great, pure, noble soul of Germany, and he will be sorrowing for his past like a converted gun-man at a camp meeting. He will be a victim of the meanness and perfidy of the British Government. I am going to have a first-class row with your Foreign Office about my passport, and I am going to speak harsh words about them up and down this metropolis. I am going to be shadowed by your sleuths at my port of embarkation, and I guess I shall run up hard against the British Legations in Scandinavia. By that time our Teutonic friends will have begun to wonder what has happened to John S., and to think that maybe they have been mistaken in that child. So, when I get to Germany they will be waiting for me with an open mind. Then I judge my conduct will surprise and encourage them. I will confide to them valuable secret information about British preparations, and I will show up the British lion as the meanest kind of cur. You may trust me to make a good impression. After that I’ll move eastwards, to see the demolition of the British Empire in those parts. By the way, where is the rendezvous?”

“I’ve thought about that, Sir,” he said. “I’ve given some consideration to the unique psychology of the great German nation. From what I see, they’re as clever as cats, and if you play their game, they’ll outsmart you every time. Yes, Sir, they know their detective work well. If I were to buy a pair of fake whiskers, dye my hair, dress like a Baptist minister, and head into Germany claiming to seek peace, I imagine they'd be on my trail like a hawk, and I’d end up getting shot as a spy within a week or stuck in solitary confinement in their prison. But they lack a broader perspective. They can be deceived, Sir. With your permission, I plan to visit the Fatherland as John S. Blenkiron, once a thorn in the side of their brightest minds. But this will be a different John S. I think he will have undergone a change of heart. He will have come to appreciate the great, pure, noble spirit of Germany and will feel regret for his past like a reformed criminal at a revival meeting. He will portray himself as a victim of the cruelty and treachery of the British Government. I’m going to have a serious argument with your Foreign Office about my passport, and I’ll be using strong words about them all over this city. I expect your agents will be keeping an eye on me at my departure point, and I guess I’ll have a tough time with the British Legations in Scandinavia. By that time, our Teutonic friends will start to wonder what’s happened to John S. and consider that maybe they were wrong about me. So, when I arrive in Germany, they'll be waiting for me with an open mind. Then I think my actions will surprise and reassure them. I’ll share valuable secret information about British plans, and I’ll expose the British lion as a coward. You can count on me to make a great impression. After that, I’ll head east, to witness the downfall of the British Empire in those areas. By the way, where is the rendezvous?”

“This is the 17th day of November. If we can’t find out what we want in two months we may chuck the job. On the 17th of January we should forgather in Constantinople. Whoever gets there first waits for the others. If by that date we’re not all present, it will be considered that the missing man has got into trouble and must be given up. If ever we get there we’ll be coming from different points and in different characters, so we want a rendezvous where all kinds of odd folk assemble. Sandy, you know Constantinople. You fix the meeting-place.”

“This is the 17th of November. If we can't figure out what we want in two months, we might as well give up. On the 17th of January, we should meet in Constantinople. Whoever arrives first will wait for the others. If by then we're not all there, it'll be assumed that the missing person has run into trouble and must be written off. When we finally get there, we'll be coming from different places and in different roles, so we need a spot where all sorts of interesting people gather. Sandy, you know Constantinople. You choose the meeting place.”

“I’ve already thought of that,” he said, and going to the writing-table he drew a little plan on a sheet of paper. “That lane runs down from the Kurdish Bazaar in Galata to the ferry of Ratchik. Half-way down on the left-hand side is a cafe kept by a Greek called Kuprasso. Behind the cafe is a garden, surrounded by high walls which were parts of the old Byzantine Theatre. At the end of the garden is a shanty called the Garden-house of Suliman the Red. It has been in its time a dancing-hall and a gambling hell and God knows what else. It’s not a place for respectable people, but the ends of the earth converge there and no questions are asked. That’s the best spot I can think of for a meeting-place.”

“I’ve already considered that,” he said, and moved to the writing table where he sketched a small plan on a piece of paper. “That lane goes from the Kurdish Bazaar in Galata to the Ratchik ferry. Halfway down on the left side is a cafe run by a Greek named Kuprasso. Behind the cafe is a garden, enclosed by tall walls that were part of the old Byzantine Theatre. At the back of the garden is a shack called the Garden-house of Suliman the Red. It has been, at different times, a dance hall and a gambling den, and God knows what else. It’s not a place for respectable folks, but all kinds of people show up there, and no questions are asked. That’s the best spot I can think of for a meeting.”

The kettle was simmering by the fire, the night was raw, and it seemed the hour for whisky-punch. I made a brew for Sandy and myself and boiled some milk for Blenkiron.

The kettle was simmering by the fire, the night was chilly, and it felt like the right time for whisky punch. I made a drink for Sandy and me and heated some milk for Blenkiron.

“What about language?” I asked. “You’re all right, Sandy?”

“What’s up with the language?” I asked. “You good, Sandy?”

“I know German fairly well; and I can pass anywhere as a Turk. The first will do for eavesdropping and the second for ordinary business.”

“I know German pretty well; and I can blend in anywhere as a Turk. The first helps for eavesdropping and the second for regular business.”

“And you?” I asked Blenkiron.

"And you?" I asked Blenkiron.

“I was left out at Pentecost,” he said. “I regret to confess I have no gift of tongues. But the part I have chosen for myself don’t require the polyglot. Never forget I’m plain John S. Blenkiron, a citizen of the great American Republic.”

“I was left out at Pentecost,” he said. “I regret to admit I don’t have the gift of tongues. But the role I’ve chosen for myself doesn’t require being multilingual. Never forget I’m just plain John S. Blenkiron, a citizen of the great American Republic.”

“You haven’t told us your own line, Dick,” Sandy said.

“You haven’t told us your own story, Dick,” Sandy said.

“I am going to the Bosporus through Germany, and, not being a neutral, it won’t be a very cushioned journey.”

“I’m traveling to the Bosporus through Germany, and since I'm not neutral, it definitely won’t be a smooth journey.”

Sandy looked grave.

Sandy looked serious.

“That sounds pretty desperate. Is your German good enough?”

“That sounds pretty desperate. Is your German good?”

“Pretty fair; quite good enough to pass as a native. But officially I shall not understand one word. I shall be a Boer from Western Cape Colony: one of Maritz’s old lot who after a bit of trouble has got through Angola and reached Europe. I shall talk Dutch and nothing else. And, my hat! I shall be pretty bitter about the British. There’s a powerful lot of good swear-words in the taal. I shall know all about Africa, and be panting to get another whack at the verdommt rooinek. With luck they may send me to the Uganda show or to Egypt, and I shall take care to go by Constantinople. If I’m to deal with the Mohammedan natives they’re bound to show me what hand they hold. At least, that’s the way I look at it.”

“Pretty decent; good enough to pass as a local. But officially, I won’t understand a single word. I'll be a Boer from Western Cape Colony: one of Maritz’s old group who, after some trouble, made it through Angola and reached Europe. I’ll speak Dutch and nothing else. And, my goodness! I’ll definitely be pretty bitter about the British. There are a ton of great swear words in the language. I’ll know all about Africa and be eager to get another shot at the verdommt rooinek. If I'm lucky, they might send me to the Uganda exhibit or to Egypt, and I'll make sure to go through Constantinople. If I have to deal with the Muslim locals, they’re bound to show me their cards. At least, that’s how I see it.”

We filled our glasses—two of punch and one of milk—and drank to our next merry meeting. Then Sandy began to laugh, and I joined in. The sense of hopeless folly again descended on me. The best plans we could make were like a few buckets of water to ease the drought of the Sahara or the old lady who would have stopped the Atlantic with a broom. I thought with sympathy of little Saint Teresa.

We filled our glasses—two with punch and one with milk—and toasted to our next fun get-together. Then Sandy started laughing, and I joined in. The feeling of pointless absurdity washed over me again. The best plans we could come up with were like a few buckets of water trying to ease the drought in the Sahara or the old lady who thought she could stop the Atlantic with a broom. I thought with sympathy of little Saint Teresa.

CHAPTER III.
Peter Pienaar

Our various departures were unassuming, all but the American’s. Sandy spent a busy fortnight in his subterranean fashion, now in the British Museum, now running about the country to see old exploring companions, now at the War Office, now at the Foreign Office, but mostly in my flat, sunk in an arm-chair and meditating. He left finally on December 1st as a King’s Messenger for Cairo. Once there I knew the King’s Messenger would disappear, and some queer Oriental ruffian take his place. It would have been impertinence in me to inquire into his plans. He was the real professional, and I was only the dabbler.

Our various goodbyes were pretty low-key, except for the American’s. Sandy spent a hectic two weeks in his own way—sometimes at the British Museum, sometimes traveling around the country to meet old explorer friends, sometimes at the War Office, sometimes at the Foreign Office, but mostly in my apartment, sunk into an armchair and lost in thought. He finally left on December 1st as a King’s Messenger headed for Cairo. Once he got there, I knew the King’s Messenger would vanish, and some strange Eastern thug would take his place. It would have been rude for me to ask about his plans. He was the real pro, and I was just a hobbyist.

Blenkiron was a different matter. Sir Walter told me to look out for squalls, and the twinkle in his eye gave me a notion of what was coming. The first thing the sportsman did was to write a letter to the papers signed with his name. There had been a debate in the House of Commons on foreign policy, and the speech of some idiot there gave him his cue. He declared that he had been heart and soul with the British at the start, but that he was reluctantly compelled to change his views. He said our blockade of Germany had broken all the laws of God and humanity, and he reckoned that Britain was now the worst exponent of Prussianism going. That letter made a fine racket, and the paper that printed it had a row with the Censor. But that was only the beginning of Mr Blenkiron’s campaign. He got mixed up with some mountebanks called the League of Democrats against Aggression, gentlemen who thought that Germany was all right if we could only keep from hurting her feelings. He addressed a meeting under their auspices, which was broken up by the crowd, but not before John S. had got off his chest a lot of amazing stuff. I wasn’t there, but a man who was told me that he never heard such clotted nonsense. He said that Germany was right in wanting the freedom of the seas, and that America would back her up, and that the British Navy was a bigger menace to the peace of the world than the Kaiser’s army. He admitted that he had once thought differently, but he was an honest man and not afraid to face facts. The oration closed suddenly, when he got a brussels-sprout in the eye, at which my friend said he swore in a very unpacifist style.

Blenkiron was a different story. Sir Walter told me to watch out for trouble, and the sparkle in his eye hinted at what was coming. The first thing the sportsman did was write a letter to the papers signed with his name. There had been a debate in the House of Commons about foreign policy, and some idiot’s speech gave him the perfect opportunity. He declared that he had been completely supportive of the British at first, but now he felt forced to change his position. He said our blockade of Germany had violated all the laws of God and humanity and that Britain was now the worst example of Prussianism around. That letter caused quite a stir, and the paper that published it had a confrontation with the Censor. But that was just the beginning of Mr. Blenkiron’s campaign. He got involved with some charlatans called the League of Democrats against Aggression, guys who thought that Germany was fine as long as we didn’t hurt her feelings. He spoke at a meeting they organized, which was disrupted by the crowd, but not before John S. spouted a bunch of wild ideas. I wasn’t there, but a guy who was told me he never heard such incoherent nonsense. He said Germany was justified in wanting freedom of the seas, that America would back her up, and that the British Navy was a bigger threat to world peace than the Kaiser’s army. He admitted that he used to think differently, but he was an honest man and not afraid to confront the truth. The speech ended abruptly when he got a Brussels sprout in the eye, at which point my friend said he cursed in a very unpacifist manner.

After that he wrote other letters to the Press, saying that there was no more liberty of speech in England, and a lot of scallywags backed him up. Some Americans wanted to tar and feather him, and he got kicked out of the Savoy. There was an agitation to get him deported, and questions were asked in Parliament, and the Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs said his department had the matter in hand. I was beginning to think that Blenkiron was carrying his tomfoolery too far, so I went to see Sir Walter, but he told me to keep my mind easy.

After that, he wrote more letters to the press, claiming there was no freedom of speech in England, and a bunch of troublemakers supported him. Some Americans wanted to tar and feather him, and he got kicked out of the Savoy. There was a movement to have him deported, and questions were raised in Parliament, with the Under-Secretary for Foreign Affairs saying his department was handling the situation. I was starting to think Blenkiron was taking his nonsense too far, so I went to talk to Sir Walter, but he told me not to worry.

“Our friend’s motto is ‘Thorough’,” he said, “and he knows very well what he is about. We have officially requested him to leave, and he sails from Newcastle on Monday. He will be shadowed wherever he goes, and we hope to provoke more outbreaks. He is a very capable fellow.”

“Our friend's motto is 'Thorough,'” he said, “and he knows exactly what he’s doing. We’ve officially asked him to leave, and he’s sailing from Newcastle on Monday. He’ll be followed everywhere he goes, and we hope to stir up more incidents. He’s a very skilled guy.”

The last I saw of him was on the Saturday afternoon when I met him in St James’s Street and offered to shake hands. He told me that my uniform was a pollution, and made a speech to a small crowd about it. They hissed him and he had to get into a taxi. As he departed there was just the suspicion of a wink in his left eye. On Monday I read that he had gone off, and the papers observed that our shores were well quit of him.

The last time I saw him was on Saturday afternoon when I ran into him on St. James's Street and offered to shake hands. He told me that my uniform was an eyesore and gave a speech to a small crowd about it. They booed him, and he had to get into a taxi. As he left, there was just a hint of a wink in his left eye. On Monday, I read that he had taken off, and the papers noted that our shores were better off without him.

I sailed on December 3rd from Liverpool in a boat bound for the Argentine that was due to put in at Lisbon. I had of course to get a Foreign Office passport to leave England, but after that my connection with the Government ceased. All the details of my journey were carefully thought out. Lisbon would be a good jumping-off place, for it was the rendezvous of scallywags from most parts of Africa. My kit was an old Gladstone bag, and my clothes were the relics of my South African wardrobe. I let my beard grow for some days before I sailed, and, since it grows fast, I went on board with the kind of hairy chin you will see on the young Boer. My name was now Brandt, Cornelis Brandt—at least so my passport said, and passports never lie.

I set sail on December 3rd from Liverpool on a boat heading to Argentina that was scheduled to stop in Lisbon. Of course, I needed to get a Foreign Office passport to leave England, but after that, I had no further ties to the Government. I had planned all the details of my journey carefully. Lisbon would be a great starting point since it was a meeting place for shady characters from various parts of Africa. My luggage was an old Gladstone bag, and my clothes were leftover pieces from my South African wardrobe. I let my beard grow for a few days before departure, and since it grows quickly, I boarded the ship with a scruffy look similar to that of a young Boer. My name was now Brandt, Cornelis Brandt—at least that’s what my passport said, and passports never lie.

There were just two other passengers on that beastly boat, and they never appeared till we were out of the Bay. I was pretty bad myself, but managed to move about all the time, for the frowst in my cabin would have sickened a hippo. The old tub took two days and a night to waddle from Ushant to Finisterre. Then the weather changed and we came out of snow-squalls into something very like summer. The hills of Portugal were all blue and yellow like the Kalahari, and before we made the Tagus I was beginning to forget I had ever left Rhodesia. There was a Dutchman among the sailors with whom I used to patter the taal, and but for “Good morning” and “Good evening” in broken English to the captain, that was about all the talking I did on the cruise.

There were only two other passengers on that terrible boat, and they didn't show up until we were out of the Bay. I was feeling pretty bad myself, but I managed to move around constantly, since the stuffiness in my cabin would have made a hippo sick. The old boat took two days and a night to slowly get from Ushant to Finisterre. Then the weather changed and we went from snow squalls to something almost like summer. The hills of Portugal were all blue and yellow like the Kalahari, and before we reached the Tagus, I was starting to forget I'd ever left Rhodesia. There was a Dutchman among the sailors with whom I would chat in his language, and aside from saying “Good morning” and “Good evening” in broken English to the captain, that was about all the talking I did on the trip.

We dropped anchor off the quays of Lisbon on a shiny blue morning, pretty near warm enough to wear flannels. I had now got to be very wary. I did not leave the ship with the shore-going boat, but made a leisurely breakfast. Then I strolled on deck, and there, just casting anchor in the middle of the stream, was another ship with a blue and white funnel I knew so well. I calculated that a month before she had been smelling the mangrove swamps of Angola. Nothing could better answer my purpose. I proposed to board her, pretending I was looking for a friend, and come on shore from her, so that anyone in Lisbon who chose to be curious would think I had landed straight from Portuguese Africa.

We dropped anchor off the docks of Lisbon on a bright blue morning, almost warm enough to wear flannels. I had to be very cautious now. I didn’t leave the ship on the shore-going boat, but took my time with breakfast. Then I wandered on deck, and there, just dropping anchor in the middle of the river, was another ship with a blue and white funnel I recognized well. I figured that a month ago, it had been near the mangrove swamps of Angola. Nothing could better serve my plan. I intended to board her, pretending I was looking for a friend, and come ashore from her so that anyone in Lisbon who was curious would think I had just arrived from Portuguese Africa.

I hailed one of the adjacent ruffians, and got into his rowboat, with my kit. We reached the vessel—they called her the Henry the Navigator—just as the first shore-boat was leaving. The crowd in it were all Portuguese, which suited my book.

I called over one of the nearby tough guys and climbed into his rowboat with my gear. We arrived at the ship—they called her the Henry the Navigator—just as the first shore boat was setting off. The people in it were all Portuguese, which worked for me.

But when I went up the ladder the first man I met was old Peter Pienaar.

But when I climbed the ladder, the first person I encountered was old Peter Pienaar.

Here was a piece of sheer monumental luck. Peter had opened his eyes and his mouth, and had got as far as “Allemachtig”, when I shut him up.

Here was a stroke of incredible luck. Peter had opened his eyes and his mouth, and had gotten as far as “Allemachtig” when I cut him off.

“Brandt,” I said, “Cornelis Brandt. That’s my name now, and don’t you forget it. Who is the captain here? Is it still old Sloggett?”

“Brandt,” I said, “Cornelis Brandt. That’s my name now, so don’t forget it. Who’s the captain here? Is it still old Sloggett?”

Ja,” said Peter, pulling himself together. “He was speaking about you yesterday.”

Yeah,” said Peter, gathering himself. “He was talking about you yesterday.”

This was better and better. I sent Peter below to get hold of Sloggett, and presently I had a few words with that gentleman in his cabin with the door shut.

This just kept getting better. I sent Peter down to find Sloggett, and soon I was having a brief conversation with that guy in his cabin with the door closed.

“You’ve got to enter my name in the ship’s books. I came aboard at Mossamedes. And my name’s Cornelis Brandt.”

“You need to add my name to the ship’s records. I boarded at Mossamedes. My name is Cornelis Brandt.”

At first Sloggett was for objecting. He said it was a felony. I told him that I dared say it was, but he had got to do it, for reasons which I couldn’t give, but which were highly creditable to all parties. In the end he agreed, and I saw it done. I had a pull on old Sloggett, for I had known him ever since he owned a dissolute tug-boat at Delagoa Bay.

At first, Sloggett wanted to object. He said it was a serious crime. I told him I was sure it was, but he had to go through with it for reasons I couldn’t explain, although they were very respectable for everyone involved. In the end, he agreed, and I saw it happen. I had leverage over old Sloggett because I had known him ever since he owned a shady tugboat at Delagoa Bay.

Then Peter and I went ashore and swaggered into Lisbon as if we owned De Beers. We put up at the big hotel opposite the railway station, and looked and behaved like a pair of lowbred South Africans home for a spree. It was a fine bright day, so I hired a motor-car and said I would drive it myself. We asked the name of some beauty-spot to visit, and were told Cintra and shown the road to it. I wanted a quiet place to talk, for I had a good deal to say to Peter Pienaar.

Then Peter and I went ashore and strutted into Lisbon like we owned De Beers. We checked into the big hotel across from the train station and acted like a couple of uncouth South Africans back for a party. It was a beautiful, sunny day, so I rented a car and said I’d drive it myself. We asked for a nice spot to visit and were told about Cintra and given directions. I was looking for a quiet place to talk, because I had a lot to discuss with Peter Pienaar.

I christened that car the Lusitanian Terror, and it was a marvel that we did not smash ourselves up. There was something immortally wrong with its steering gear. Half a dozen times we slewed across the road, inviting destruction. But we got there in the end, and had luncheon in an hotel opposite the Moorish palace. There we left the car and wandered up the slopes of a hill, where, sitting among scrub very like the veld, I told Peter the situation of affairs.

I named that car the Lusitanian Terror, and it’s a miracle we didn’t wreck ourselves. There was something seriously wrong with its steering. Half a dozen times we skidded across the road, flirting with disaster. But we made it in the end and had lunch at a hotel across from the Moorish palace. We left the car there and hiked up the hill, where, sitting among scrub that looked a lot like the veld, I told Peter what was going on.

But first a word must be said about Peter. He was the man that taught me all I ever knew of veld-craft, and a good deal about human nature besides. He was out of the Old Colony—Burgersdorp, I think—but he had come to the Transvaal when the Lydenburg goldfields started. He was prospector, transport-rider, and hunter in turns, but principally hunter. In those early days he was none too good a citizen. He was in Swaziland with Bob Macnab, and you know what that means. Then he took to working off bogus gold propositions on Kimberley and Johannesburg magnates, and what he didn’t know about salting a mine wasn’t knowledge. After that he was in the Kalahari, where he and Scotty Smith were familiar names. An era of comparative respectability dawned for him with the Matabele War, when he did uncommon good scouting and transport work. Cecil Rhodes wanted to establish him on a stock farm down Salisbury way, but Peter was an independent devil and would call no man master. He took to big-game hunting, which was what God intended him for, for he could track a tsessebe in thick bush, and was far the finest shot I have seen in my life. He took parties to the Pungwe flats, and Barotseland, and up to Tanganyika. Then he made a speciality of the Ngami region, where I once hunted with him, and he was with me when I went prospecting in Damaraland.

But first, I need to say a few words about Peter. He was the one who taught me everything I ever knew about outdoor skills, and quite a bit about human nature too. He came from the Old Colony—Burgersdorp, I believe—but moved to the Transvaal when the Lydenburg goldfields opened up. He worked as a prospector, transport rider, and hunter, but mainly as a hunter. In those early days, he wasn't exactly a model citizen. He was in Swaziland with Bob Macnab, and you know what that implies. Then he got into the business of selling fake gold schemes to the wealthy in Kimberley and Johannesburg, and he knew everything about tampering with mining operations. After that, he was in the Kalahari, where he and Scotty Smith were well-known figures. His reputation improved during the Matabele War, where he did some excellent scouting and transport work. Cecil Rhodes wanted to set him up on a stock farm near Salisbury, but Peter was too independent to let anyone be his boss. He turned to big-game hunting, which was what he was truly meant for, as he could track a tsessebe in dense bush and was the best shot I have ever seen. He took groups to the Pungwe flats, Barotseland, and all the way up to Tanganyika. Then he specialized in the Ngami region, where I once hunted with him, and he was by my side when I went prospecting in Damaraland.

When the Boer War started, Peter, like many of the very great hunters, took the British side and did most of our intelligence work in the North Transvaal. Beyers would have hanged him if he could have caught him, and there was no love lost between Peter and his own people for many a day. When it was all over and things had calmed down a bit, he settled in Bulawayo and used to go with me when I went on trek. At the time when I left Africa two years before, I had lost sight of him for months, and heard that he was somewhere on the Congo poaching elephants. He had always a great idea of making things hum so loud in Angola that the Union Government would have to step in and annex it. After Rhodes Peter had the biggest notions south of the Line.

When the Boer War started, Peter, like many of the top hunters, took the British side and did most of our intelligence work in North Transvaal. Beyers would have hanged him if he had caught him, and there was a lot of tension between Peter and his own people for a long time. When it was all over and things had settled a bit, he moved to Bulawayo and would go with me on treks. When I left Africa two years earlier, I hadn’t seen him for months, and I heard he was somewhere in the Congo poaching elephants. He always had big plans to make so much noise in Angola that the Union Government would have to step in and annex it. After Rhodes, Peter had the biggest ambitions south of the Line.

He was a man of about five foot ten, very thin and active, and as strong as a buffalo. He had pale blue eyes, a face as gentle as a girl’s, and a soft sleepy voice. From his present appearance it looked as if he had been living hard lately. His clothes were of the cut you might expect to get at Lobito Bay, he was as lean as a rake, deeply browned with the sun, and there was a lot of grey in his beard. He was fifty-six years old, and used to be taken for forty. Now he looked about his age.

He was a man around five foot ten, very thin and energetic, and as strong as a bull. He had light blue eyes, a face as gentle as a girl’s, and a soft, sleepy voice. From how he looked, it seemed like he had been living rough lately. His clothes had the style you'd expect to find at Lobito Bay; he was as lean as a rake, deeply tanned from the sun, and there was a lot of gray in his beard. He was fifty-six years old, but people used to think he was only forty. Now he looked about his age.

I first asked him what he had been up to since the war began. He spat, in the Kaffir way he had, and said he had been having hell’s time.

I first asked him what he had been doing since the war started. He spat, in that Kaffir way he had, and said it had been a nightmare.

“I got hung up on the Kafue,” he said. “When I heard from old Letsitela that the white men were fighting I had a bright idea that I might get into German South West from the north. You see I knew that Botha couldn’t long keep out of the war. Well, I got into German territory all right, and then a skellum of an officer came along, and commandeered all my mules, and wanted to commandeer me with them for his fool army. He was a very ugly man with a yellow face.” Peter filled a deep pipe from a kudu-skin pouch.

“I got stuck on the Kafue,” he said. “When I heard from old Letsitela that the white guys were fighting, I had a bright idea that I might sneak into German South West from the north. You see, I knew that Botha couldn’t stay out of the war for long. Well, I made it into German territory all right, and then a jerk of an officer showed up, commandeered all my mules, and wanted to take me along with them for his stupid army. He was a really ugly man with a yellow face.” Peter filled a deep pipe from a kudu-skin pouch.

“Were you commandeered?” I asked.

"Were you conscripted?" I asked.

“No. I shot him—not so as to kill, but to wound badly. It was all right, for he fired first on me. Got me too in the left shoulder. But that was the beginning of bad trouble. I trekked east pretty fast, and got over the border among the Ovamba. I have made many journeys, but that was the worst. Four days I went without water, and six without food. Then by bad luck I fell in with “Nkitla—you remember, the half-caste chief. He said I owed him money for cattle which I bought when I came there with Carowab. It was a lie, but he held to it, and would give me no transport. So I crossed the Kalahari on my feet. Ugh, it was as slow as a vrouw coming from nachtmaal. It took weeks and weeks, and when I came to Lechwe’s kraal, I heard that the fighting was over and that Botha had conquered the Germans. That, too, was a lie, but it deceived me, and I went north into Rhodesia, where I learned the truth. But by then I judged the war had gone too far for me to make any profit out of it, so I went into Angola to look for German refugees. By that time I was hating Germans worse than hell.”

“No. I shot him—not to kill, but to seriously injure him. It was justified since he shot at me first. He hit me in the left shoulder too. But that was the start of a lot of trouble. I headed east quickly and crossed the border into Ovamba territory. I've traveled many times, but that was the worst. I went four days without water and six without food. Then, unfortunately, I ran into Nkitla—you remember him, the half-caste chief. He claimed I owed him money for cattle I bought when I arrived there with Carowab. It was a lie, but he stuck to it and wouldn’t help me with transport. So, I had to walk across the Kalahari. Ugh, it felt as slow as a woman coming back from church. It took weeks and weeks, and when I finally got to Lechwe’s kraal, I heard that the fighting was over and that Botha had defeated the Germans. That too was a lie, but it fooled me, and I continued north into Rhodesia, where I found out the truth. By then, I figured the war had progressed too far for me to gain anything from it, so I went into Angola to look for German refugees. By that point, I was hating Germans more than ever.”

“But what did you propose to do with them?” I asked.

“But what do you plan to do with them?” I asked.

“I had a notion they would make trouble with the Government in those parts. I don’t specially love the Portugoose, but I’m for him against the Germans every day. Well, there was trouble, and I had a merry time for a month or two. But by and by it petered out, and I thought I had better clear for Europe, for South Africa was settling down just as the big show was getting really interesting. So here I am, Cornelis, my old friend. If I shave my beard will they let me join the Flying Corps?”

“I had a feeling they would cause problems with the government over there. I don't particularly like the Portuguese, but I'm on their side against the Germans anytime. Well, there was some trouble, and I had a good time for a month or two. But eventually, it fizzled out, and I thought it was best to head to Europe, because South Africa was calming down just as things were getting really exciting. So here I am, Cornelis, my old friend. If I shave my beard, will they let me join the Flying Corps?”

I looked at Peter sitting there smoking, as imperturbable as if he had been growing mealies in Natal all his life and had run home for a month’s holiday with his people in Peckham.

I watched Peter sitting there smoking, as calm as if he had been growing corn in Natal his whole life and had come home for a month’s vacation with his family in Peckham.

“You’re coming with me, my lad,” I said. “We’re going into Germany.”

“You're coming with me, kid,” I said. “We're heading into Germany.”

Peter showed no surprise. “Keep in mind that I don’t like the Germans,” was all he said. “I’m a quiet Christian man, but I’ve the devil of a temper.”

Peter didn’t seem surprised. “Just remember that I’m not a fan of the Germans,” was all he said. “I’m a calm Christian guy, but I have a really bad temper.”

Then I told him the story of our mission. “You and I have got to be Maritz’s men. We went into Angola, and now we’re trekking for the Fatherland to get a bit of our own back from the infernal English. Neither of us knows any German—publicly. We’d better plan out the fighting we were in—Kakamas will do for one, and Schuit Drift. You were a Ngamiland hunter before the war. They won’t have your dossier, so you can tell any lie you like. I’d better be an educated Afrikander, one of Beyers’s bright lads, and a pal of old Hertzog. We can let our imagination loose about that part, but we must stick to the same yarn about the fighting.”

Then I told him about our mission. “You and I need to be Maritz’s guys. We went into Angola, and now we’re making our way for the Fatherland to get a little payback from the damn English. Neither of us publicly knows any German. We should plan the battles we were in—Kakamas is one, and Schuit Drift too. You were a hunter from Ngamiland before the war. They won’t have your dossier, so you can say whatever you want. I should be an educated Afrikander, one of Beyers’s sharp guys, and a buddy of old Hertzog. We can get creative about that part, but we need to keep the same story about the fighting.”

Ja, Cornelis,” said Peter. (He had called me Cornelis ever since I had told him my new name. He was a wonderful chap for catching on to any game.) “But after we get into Germany, what then? There can’t be much difficulty about the beginning. But once we’re among the beer-swillers I don’t quite see our line. We’re to find out about something that’s going on in Turkey? When I was a boy the predikant used to preach about Turkey. I wish I was better educated and remembered whereabouts in the map it was.”

Yeah, Cornelis,” said Peter. (He had called me Cornelis ever since I told him my new name. He was great at picking up on any game.) “But what happens after we get into Germany? The start shouldn’t be too hard. But once we’re around the beer drinkers, I’m not really sure what our plan is. We’re supposed to find out about something happening in Turkey? When I was a kid, the pastor used to talk about Turkey. I wish I was better educated and remembered where it is on the map.”

“You leave that to me,” I said; “I’ll explain it all to you before we get there. We haven’t got much of a spoor, but we’ll cast about, and with luck will pick it up. I’ve seen you do it often enough when we hunted kudu on the Kafue.”

“You leave that to me,” I said; “I’ll explain everything to you before we get there. We don’t have much of a trail, but we’ll search around, and if we’re lucky, we’ll find it. I’ve seen you do it plenty of times when we hunted kudu on the Kafue.”

Peter nodded. “Do we sit still in a German town?” he asked anxiously. “I shouldn’t like that, Cornelis.”

Peter nodded. “Are we supposed to just stay put in a German town?” he asked nervously. “I wouldn’t like that, Cornelis.”

“We move gently eastward to Constantinople,” I said.

“We're heading slowly east to Constantinople,” I said.

Peter grinned. “We should cover a lot of new country. You can reckon on me, friend Cornelis. I’ve always had a hankering to see Europe.”

Peter grinned. “We should explore a lot of new places. You can count on me, friend Cornelis. I've always wanted to see Europe.”

He rose to his feet and stretched his long arms.

He got up and stretched his long arms.

“We’d better begin at once. God, I wonder what’s happened to old Solly Maritz, with his bottle face? Yon was a fine battle at the drift when I was sitting up to my neck in the Orange praying that Brits’ lads would take my head for a stone.”

“We should get started right away. God, I wonder what happened to old Solly Maritz, with his bottle-shaped face? That was a great fight at the drift when I was sitting neck-deep in the Orange, praying that Brits’ guys would mistake my head for a rock.”

Peter was as thorough a mountebank, when he got started, as Blenkiron himself. All the way back to Lisbon he yarned about Maritz and his adventures in German South West till I half believed they were true. He made a very good story of our doings, and by his constant harping on it I pretty soon got it into my memory. That was always Peter’s way. He said if you were going to play a part, you must think yourself into it, convince yourself that you were it, till you really were it and didn’t act but behaved naturally. The two men who had started that morning from the hotel door had been bogus enough, but the two men that returned were genuine desperadoes itching to get a shot at England.

Peter was as much of a fraud when he got going as Blenkiron himself. All the way back to Lisbon, he talked endlessly about Maritz and his adventures in German South West until I almost believed they were true. He spun a great story about what we did, and by constantly repeating it, I quickly memorized it. That was always Peter’s method. He said if you were going to play a role, you had to fully immerse yourself, convince yourself that you were that person until you truly became it and didn’t just act but behaved naturally. The two guys who had left that morning from the hotel door had been fake enough, but the two men who returned were real desperados eager to take on England.

We spent the evening piling up evidence in our favour. Some kind of republic had been started in Portugal, and ordinarily the cafes would have been full of politicians, but the war had quieted all these local squabbles, and the talk was of nothing but what was doing in France and Russia. The place we went to was a big, well-lighted show on a main street, and there were a lot of sharp-eyed fellows wandering about that I guessed were spies and police agents. I knew that Britain was the one country that doesn’t bother about this kind of game, and that it would be safe enough to let ourselves go.

We spent the evening gathering evidence that supported our position. A new republic had emerged in Portugal, and normally the cafés would have been filled with politicians, but the war had silenced all those local disputes, and the conversation revolved around what was happening in France and Russia. The place we visited was a big, well-lit venue on a main street, and there were quite a few sharp-eyed individuals around who I suspected were spies and police officers. I knew that Britain was the one country that doesn’t engage in this kind of thing, so it would be safe enough for us to relax.

I talked Portuguese fairly well, and Peter spoke it like a Lourenco Marques bar-keeper, with a lot of Shangaan words to fill up. He started on curacao, which I reckoned was a new drink to him, and presently his tongue ran freely. Several neighbours pricked up their ears, and soon we had a small crowd round our table.

I spoke Portuguese pretty well, and Peter used it like a bartender from Lourenco Marques, throwing in a bunch of Shangaan words. He began with curacao, which I figured was a new drink for him, and soon he was talking away non-stop. A few neighbors perked up, and before long, we had a small crowd gathered around our table.

We talked to each other of Maritz and our doings. It didn’t seem to be a popular subject in that cafe. One big blue-black fellow said that Maritz was a dirty swine who would soon be hanged. Peter quickly caught his knife-wrist with one hand and his throat with the other, and demanded an apology. He got it. The Lisbon boulevardiers have not lost any lions.

We chatted about Maritz and what we had been up to. It didn’t seem to be a popular topic in that café. One big guy with dark skin said that Maritz was a filthy pig who would soon be hanged. Peter quickly grabbed his wrist with one hand and his throat with the other, demanding an apology. He got it. The Lisbon boulevardiers have not lost any bravery.

After that there was a bit of a squash in our corner. Those near to us were very quiet and polite, but the outer fringe made remarks. When Peter said that if Portugal, which he admitted he loved, was going to stick to England she was backing the wrong horse, there was a murmur of disapproval. One decent-looking old fellow, who had the air of a ship’s captain, flushed all over his honest face, and stood up looking straight at Peter. I saw that we had struck an Englishman, and mentioned it to Peter in Dutch.

After that, there was a bit of a crowd in our corner. The people close to us were very quiet and polite, but those on the outskirts were making comments. When Peter said that if Portugal, which he acknowledged he loved, was going to support England, she was backing the wrong horse, there was a murmur of disapproval. One respectable-looking older man, who had the presence of a ship’s captain, turned red all over his honest face and stood up, looking directly at Peter. I realized that we had offended an Englishman and mentioned it to Peter in Dutch.

Peter played his part perfectly. He suddenly shut up, and, with furtive looks around him, began to jabber to me in a low voice. He was the very picture of the old stage conspirator.

Peter played his role perfectly. He suddenly fell silent and, glancing around cautiously, started to whisper to me in a low voice. He was the very image of the classic stage conspirator.

The old fellow stood staring at us. “I don’t very well understand this damned lingo,” he said; “but if so be you dirty Dutchmen are sayin’ anything against England, I’ll ask you to repeat it. And if so be as you repeats it I’ll take either of you on and knock the face off him.”

The old guy stood staring at us. “I don’t really understand this damn language,” he said; “but if you dirty Dutchmen are saying anything against England, I want you to repeat it. And if you do, I’ll take either of you on and knock the block off him.”

He was a chap after my own heart, but I had to keep the game up. I said in Dutch to Peter that we mustn’t get brawling in a public house. “Remember the big thing,” I said darkly. Peter nodded, and the old fellow, after staring at us for a bit, spat scornfully, and walked out.

He was a guy I really liked, but I had to act like everything was fine. I told Peter in Dutch that we shouldn’t start a fight in a pub. “Remember the big deal,” I said seriously. Peter nodded, and the old man, after looking at us for a moment, spat in disgust and left.

“The time is coming when the Englander will sing small,” I observed to the crowd. We stood drinks to one or two, and then swaggered into the street. At the door a hand touched my arm, and, looking down, I saw a little scrap of a man in a fur coat.

“The time is coming when the Englishman will be quiet,” I said to the crowd. We raised our drinks to one another, and then strutted into the street. At the door, a hand touched my arm, and, looking down, I saw a tiny man in a fur coat.

“Will the gentlemen walk a step with me and drink a glass of beer?” he said in very stiff Dutch.

“Will the gentlemen take a step with me and grab a beer?” he said in very formal Dutch.

“Who the devil are you?” I asked.

“Who the hell are you?” I asked.

Gott strafe England!” was his answer, and, turning back the lapel of his coat, he showed some kind of ribbon in his buttonhole.

God punish England! was his answer, and, turning back the lapel of his coat, he showed some kind of ribbon in his buttonhole.

“Amen,” said Peter. “Lead on, friend. We don’t mind if we do.”

“Amen,” said Peter. “Go ahead, buddy. We’re good with that.”

He led us to a back street and then up two pairs of stairs to a very snug little flat. The place was filled with fine red lacquer, and I guessed that art-dealing was his nominal business. Portugal, since the republic broke up the convents and sold up the big royalist grandees, was full of bargains in the lacquer and curio line.

He took us to a back street and then up two sets of stairs to a really cozy little apartment. The place was filled with beautiful red lacquer, and I figured that selling art was his main business. Since the republic closed down the convents and sold off the large royalist estates, Portugal had plenty of bargains when it came to lacquer and curios.

He filled us two long tankards of very good Munich beer.

He poured us two large tankards of really good Munich beer.

Prosit,” he said, raising his glass. “You are from South Africa. What make you in Europe?”

Cheers,” he said, raising his glass. “You’re from South Africa. What brings you to Europe?”

We both looked sullen and secretive.

We both looked gloomy and reserved.

“That’s our own business,” I answered. “You don’t expect to buy our confidence with a glass of beer.”

“That's our business,” I replied. “You don't think you can win our trust with a beer.”

“So?” he said. “Then I will put it differently. From your speech in the cafe I judge you do not love the English.”

“So?” he said. “Let me rephrase that. Based on what you said in the café, I can tell you don’t love the English.”

Peter said something about stamping on their grandmothers, a Kaffir phrase which sounded gruesome in Dutch.

Peter mentioned something about stepping on their grandmothers, a Kaffir phrase that sounded gruesome in Dutch.

The man laughed. “That is all I want to know. You are on the German side?”

The man laughed. “That’s all I want to know. Are you on the German side?”

“That remains to be seen,” I said. “If they treat me fair I’ll fight for them, or for anybody else that makes war on England. England has stolen my country and corrupted my people and made me an exile. We Afrikanders do not forget. We may be slow but we win in the end. We two are men worth a great price. Germany fights England in East Africa. We know the natives as no Englishmen can ever know them. They are too soft and easy and the Kaffirs laugh at them. But we can handle the blacks so that they will fight like devils for fear of us. What is the reward, little man, for our services? I will tell you. There will be no reward. We ask none. We fight for hate of England.”

“That’s for us to find out,” I said. “If they treat me fairly, I’ll fight for them, or for anyone else who goes to war with England. England has taken my country, corrupted my people, and turned me into an exile. We Afrikanders don’t forget. We might be slow, but we win in the end. We two are men worth a lot. Germany is fighting England in East Africa. We understand the locals better than any Englishman ever could. They’re too soft and easy, and the locals laugh at them. But we can handle the Africans so that they’ll fight fiercely out of fear of us. What’s the reward, little man, for our services? I’ll tell you—there won’t be any reward. We don’t want any. We fight out of hatred for England.”

Peter grunted a deep approval.

Peter grunted his approval.

“That is good talk,” said our entertainer, and his close-set eyes flashed. “There is room in Germany for such men as you. Where are you going now, I beg to know.”

“That’s a good conversation,” said our host, and his closely set eyes sparkled. “There’s a place in Germany for men like you. Where are you headed now, if I may ask?”

“To Holland,” I said. “Then maybe we will go to Germany. We are tired with travel and may rest a bit. This war will last long and our chance will come.”

“To Holland,” I said. “Then maybe we'll go to Germany. We’re tired from traveling and could use a rest. This war will last a long time and our chance will come.”

“But you may miss your market,” he said significantly. “A ship sails tomorrow for Rotterdam. If you take my advice, you will go with her.”

“But you might miss your opportunity,” he said with emphasis. “A ship is leaving for Rotterdam tomorrow. If you take my advice, you should go with her.”

This was what I wanted, for if we stayed in Lisbon some real soldier of Maritz might drop in any day and blow the gaff.

This is what I wanted because if we stayed in Lisbon, some real soldier of Maritz could show up any day and spill the beans.

“I recommend you to sail in the Machado,” he repeated. “There is work for you in Germany—oh yes, much work; but if you delay the chance may pass. I will arrange your journey. It is my business to help the allies of my fatherland.”

“I suggest you set sail on the Machado,” he said again. “There’s work for you in Germany—oh yes, plenty of work; but if you wait too long, the opportunity might slip away. I’ll take care of your journey. It’s my duty to help the supporters of my homeland.”

He wrote down our names and an epitome of our doings contributed by Peter, who required two mugs of beer to help him through. He was a Bavarian, it seemed, and we drank to the health of Prince Rupprecht, the same blighter I was trying to do in at Loos. That was an irony which Peter unfortunately could not appreciate. If he could he would have enjoyed it.

He wrote down our names and a summary of our actions contributed by Peter, who needed two mugs of beer to get through it. He was a Bavarian, it seemed, and we toasted to the health of Prince Rupprecht, the same jerk I was trying to take down at Loos. That was an irony that Peter sadly couldn't grasp. If he could, he would have enjoyed it.

The little chap saw us back to our hotel, and was with us the next morning after breakfast, bringing the steamer tickets. We got on board about two in the afternoon, but on my advice he did not see us off. I told him that, being British subjects and rebels at that, we did not want to run any risks on board, assuming a British cruiser caught us up and searched us. But Peter took twenty pounds off him for travelling expenses, it being his rule never to miss an opportunity of spoiling the Egyptians.

The little guy saw us back to our hotel and was with us the next morning after breakfast, bringing the steamer tickets. We got on board around two in the afternoon, but I advised him not to see us off. I told him that, being British subjects and rebels at that, we didn’t want to take any risks on board, just in case a British cruiser caught up with us and searched us. But Peter took twenty pounds from him for travel expenses, since it was his rule never to miss an opportunity to take advantage of others.

As we were dropping down the Tagus we passed the old Henry the Navigator.

As we were going down the Tagus, we passed the old Henry the Navigator.

“I met Sloggett in the street this morning,” said Peter, “and he told me a little German man had been off in a boat at daybreak looking up the passenger list. Yon was a right notion of yours, Cornelis. I am glad we are going among Germans. They are careful people whom it is a pleasure to meet.”

“I ran into Sloggett on the street this morning,” said Peter, “and he mentioned that a little German guy had been out in a boat at dawn checking the passenger list. That was a great idea of yours, Cornelis. I’m glad we’re going to be around Germans. They’re thoughtful people who are nice to meet.”

CHAPTER IV.
Adventures of Two Dutchmen on the Loose

The Germans, as Peter said, are a careful people. A man met us on the quay at Rotterdam. I was a bit afraid that something might have turned up in Lisbon to discredit us, and that our little friend might have warned his pals by telegram. But apparently all was serene.

The Germans, as Peter mentioned, are a cautious people. A man met us at the dock in Rotterdam. I was a little worried that something might have happened in Lisbon to tarnish our reputation, and that our little friend might have alerted his buddies by telegram. But it seemed that everything was calm.

Peter and I had made our plans pretty carefully on the voyage. We had talked nothing but Dutch, and had kept up between ourselves the role of Maritz’s men, which Peter said was the only way to play a part well. Upon my soul, before we got to Holland I was not very clear in my own mind what my past had been. Indeed the danger was that the other side of my mind, which should be busy with the great problem, would get atrophied, and that I should soon be mentally on a par with the ordinary backveld desperado.

Peter and I had carefully made our plans during the journey. We only spoke Dutch and maintained the role of Maritz’s men between us, which Peter said was the best way to act well. Honestly, by the time we reached Holland, I wasn’t really sure about my own past. The worry was that the other side of my mind, which needed to focus on the big issues, would stagnate, and I’d soon be mentally on the same level as an ordinary backcountry outlaw.

We had agreed that it would be best to get into Germany at once, and when the agent on the quay told us of a train at midday we decided to take it.

We had agreed that it was best to get into Germany right away, and when the agent at the dock told us about a train at noon, we decided to catch it.

I had another fit of cold feet before we got over the frontier. At the station there was a King’s Messenger whom I had seen in France, and a war correspondent who had been trotting round our part of the front before Loos. I heard a woman speaking pretty clean-cut English, which amid the hoarse Dutch jabber sounded like a lark among crows. There were copies of the English papers for sale, and English cheap editions. I felt pretty bad about the whole business, and wondered if I should ever see these homely sights again.

I had another moment of uncertainty before we crossed the border. At the station, I spotted a King’s Messenger I had seen in France, along with a war correspondent who had been covering our area of the front before Loos. I heard a woman speaking clear English, which, amidst the harsh Dutch chatter, sounded like a songbird among crows. There were English newspapers for sale and affordable English editions. I felt pretty uneasy about the whole situation and wondered if I would ever see these familiar sights again.

But the mood passed when the train started. It was a clear blowing day, and as we crawled through the flat pastures of Holland my time was taken up answering Peter’s questions. He had never been in Europe before, and formed a high opinion of the farming. He said he reckoned that such land would carry four sheep a morgen. We were thick in talk when we reached the frontier station and jolted over a canal bridge into Germany.

But the mood changed when the train started. It was a clear, windy day, and as we slowly moved through the flat fields of Holland, I spent my time answering Peter’s questions. He had never been to Europe before and had a great impression of the farming. He said he thought that kind of land could support four sheep per morgen. We were deep in conversation when we reached the border station and bumped over a canal bridge into Germany.

I had expected a big barricade with barbed wire and entrenchments. But there was nothing to see on the German side but half a dozen sentries in the field-grey I had hunted at Loos. An under-officer, with the black-and-gold button of the Landsturm, hoicked us out of the train, and we were all shepherded into a big bare waiting-room where a large stove burned. They took us two at a time into an inner room for examination. I had explained to Peter all about this formality, but I was glad we went in together, for they made us strip to the skin, and I had to curse him pretty seriously to make him keep quiet. The men who did the job were fairly civil, but they were mighty thorough. They took down a list of all we had in our pockets and bags, and all the details from the passports the Rotterdam agent had given us.

I had expected a huge barricade with barbed wire and trenches. But on the German side, there was just a handful of guards in the field-gray uniforms I had seen at Loos. An under-officer, wearing the black-and-gold button of the Landsturm, pulled us off the train, and we were all taken to a large empty waiting room with a big stove burning. They brought us in two at a time for inspection. I had explained to Peter all about this procedure, but I was glad we went in together since they made us strip completely, and I had to really yell at him to keep him quiet. The guys handling the inspection were pretty polite, but they were extremely thorough. They noted everything we had in our pockets and bags and recorded all the details from the passports the Rotterdam agent had given us.

We were dressing when a man in a lieutenant’s uniform came in with a paper in his hand. He was a fresh-faced lad of about twenty, with short-sighted spectacled eyes.

We were getting dressed when a guy in a lieutenant’s uniform walked in holding a piece of paper. He was a fresh-faced young man of about twenty, with short-sighted eyes behind glasses.

“Herr Brandt,” he called out.

“Mr. Brandt,” he called out.

I nodded.

I nodded.

“And this is Herr Pienaar?” he asked in Dutch.

“And this is Mr. Pienaar?” he asked in Dutch.

He saluted. “Gentlemen, I apologize. I am late because of the slowness of the Herr Commandant’s motor-car. Had I been in time you would not have been required to go through this ceremony. We have been advised of your coming, and I am instructed to attend you on your journey. The train for Berlin leaves in half an hour. Pray do me the honour to join me in a bock.”

He greeted them. “Gentlemen, I apologize for being late; it was due to the slow speed of the Commandant's car. If I had arrived on time, you wouldn’t have needed to go through this ceremony. We were informed of your arrival, and I was asked to accompany you on your journey. The train to Berlin leaves in half an hour. Please do me the honor of joining me for a drink.”

With a feeling of distinction we stalked out of the ordinary ruck of passengers and followed the lieutenant to the station restaurant. He plunged at once into conversation, talking the Dutch of Holland, which Peter, who had forgotten his school-days, found a bit hard to follow. He was unfit for active service, because of his eyes and a weak heart, but he was a desperate fire-eater in that stuffy restaurant. By his way of it Germany could gobble up the French and the Russians whenever she cared, but she was aiming at getting all the Middle East in her hands first, so that she could come out conqueror with the practical control of half the world.

Feeling special, we stepped away from the crowd of passengers and followed the lieutenant to the station restaurant. He immediately jumped into conversation, speaking Dutch from Holland, which Peter, who had forgotten what he learned in school, found a little hard to keep up with. He was unfit for active duty because of his eyesight and a weak heart, but he acted like a brave warrior in that stuffy restaurant. According to him, Germany could defeat the French and Russians whenever she wanted, but first, she was focused on taking control of the Middle East, so she could emerge victorious with practical control over half the world.

“Your friends the English,” he said grinning, “will come last. When we have starved them and destroyed their commerce with our under-sea boats we will show them what our navy can do. For a year they have been wasting their time in brag and politics, and we have been building great ships—oh, so many! My cousin at Kiel—” and he looked over his shoulder.

“Your friends the English,” he said with a grin, “will come in last. Once we’ve starved them and wrecked their trade with our submarines, we’ll show them what our navy can do. For a year, they’ve been wasting their time on bragging and politics while we’ve been building massive ships—oh, so many! My cousin at Kiel—” and he glanced over his shoulder.

But we never heard about that cousin at Kiel. A short sunburnt man came in and our friend sprang up and saluted, clicking his heels like a pair of tongs.

But we never heard about that cousin in Kiel. A short, sunburned man walked in and our friend jumped up and greeted him, snapping his heels together like a pair of tongs.

“These are the South African Dutch, Herr Captain,” he said.

“These are the South African Dutch, Captain,” he said.

The new-comer looked us over with bright intelligent eyes, and started questioning Peter in the taal. It was well that we had taken some pains with our story, for this man had been years in German South West, and knew every mile of the borders. Zorn was his name, and both Peter and I thought we remembered hearing him spoken of.

The newcomer sized us up with bright, sharp eyes and began asking Peter questions in the language. It was good that we had worked on our story, because this guy had spent years in German South West and knew every inch of the borders. His name was Zorn, and both Peter and I thought we remembered hearing about him.

I am thankful to say that we both showed up pretty well. Peter told his story to perfection, not pitching it too high, and asking me now and then for a name or to verify some detail. Captain Zorn looked satisfied.

I’m glad to say that we both performed pretty well. Peter told his story perfectly, not exaggerating, and asked me occasionally for a name or to confirm some detail. Captain Zorn looked pleased.

“You seem the right kind of fellows,” he said. “But remember”—and he bent his brows on us—“we do not understand slimness in this land. If you are honest you will be rewarded, but if you dare to play a double game you will be shot like dogs. Your race has produced over many traitors for my taste.”

“You seem like the right kind of guys,” he said. “But remember”—and he frowned at us—“we don’t tolerate dishonesty in this land. If you’re honest, you’ll be rewarded, but if you try to play both sides, you’ll be shot like dogs. Your kind has produced too many traitors for my liking.”

“I ask no reward,” I said gruffly. “We are not Germans or Germany’s slaves. But so long as she fights against England we will fight for her.”

“I don’t want any reward,” I said gruffly. “We’re not Germans or slaves to Germany. But as long as she fights against England, we’ll fight for her.”

“Bold words,” he said; “but you must bow your stiff necks to discipline first. Discipline has been the weak point of you Boers, and you have suffered for it. You are no more a nation. In Germany we put discipline first and last, and therefore we will conquer the world. Off with you now. Your train starts in three minutes. We will see what von Stumm will make of you.”

“Strong words,” he said, “but you need to submit to discipline first. Discipline has been the weak spot for you Boers, and it has cost you. You’re no longer a nation. In Germany, we prioritize discipline above all else, and that’s why we will conquer the world. Now, off with you. Your train leaves in three minutes. We’ll see what von Stumm thinks of you.”

That fellow gave me the best “feel” of any German I had yet met. He was a white man and I could have worked with him. I liked his stiff chin and steady blue eyes.

That guy gave me the best "vibe" of any German I'd met so far. He was a white man, and I could have teamed up with him. I liked his strong chin and calm blue eyes.

My chief recollection of our journey to Berlin was its commonplaceness. The spectacled lieutenant fell asleep, and for the most part we had the carriage to ourselves. Now and again a soldier on leave would drop in, most of them tired men with heavy eyes. No wonder, poor devils, for they were coming back from the Yser or the Ypres salient. I would have liked to talk to them, but officially of course I knew no German, and the conversation I overheard did not signify much. It was mostly about regimental details, though one chap, who was in better spirits than the rest, observed that this was the last Christmas of misery, and that next year he would be holidaying at home with full pockets. The others assented, but without much conviction.

My main memory of our trip to Berlin was how ordinary it felt. The lieutenant with glasses dozed off, and mostly we had the carriage to ourselves. Every now and then, a soldier on leave would come in, most of them worn out with tired eyes. It's no surprise, poor guys, since they were coming back from the Yser or the Ypres salient. I would have liked to chat with them, but officially I didn't know any German, and the conversation I overheard didn’t mean much. It mostly revolved around regiment details, though one guy, who was in better spirits than the rest, mentioned that this would be the last Christmas of suffering, and that next year he'd be celebrating at home with pockets full of money. The others agreed, but without much enthusiasm.

The winter day was short, and most of the journey was made in the dark. I could see from the window the lights of little villages, and now and then the blaze of ironworks and forges. We stopped at a town for dinner, where the platform was crowded with drafts waiting to go westward. We saw no signs of any scarcity of food, such as the English newspapers wrote about. We had an excellent dinner at the station restaurant, which, with a bottle of white wine, cost just three shillings apiece. The bread, to be sure, was poor, but I can put up with the absence of bread if I get a juicy fillet of beef and as good vegetables as you will see in the Savoy.

The winter day was short, and most of the journey was spent in the dark. I could see the lights of small villages from the window, and occasionally the glow of ironworks and forges. We stopped at a town for dinner, where the platform was packed with trains waiting to head west. There were no signs of any food shortages like the English newspapers had reported. We had a fantastic dinner at the station restaurant, which, along with a bottle of white wine, cost just three shillings each. The bread, to be fair, was not great, but I can handle the lack of bread if I get a juicy fillet of beef and vegetables as good as those you’d find in the Savoy.

I was a little afraid of our giving ourselves away in our sleep, but I need have had no fear, for our escort slumbered like a hog with his mouth wide open. As we roared through the darkness I kept pinching myself to make myself feel that I was in the enemy’s land on a wild mission. The rain came on, and we passed through dripping towns, with the lights shining from the wet streets. As we went eastward the lighting seemed to grow more generous. After the murk of London it was queer to slip through garish stations with a hundred arc lights glowing, and to see long lines of lamps running to the horizon. Peter dropped off early, but I kept awake till midnight, trying to focus thoughts that persistently strayed. Then I, too, dozed and did not awake till about five in the morning, when we ran into a great busy terminus as bright as midday. It was the easiest and most unsuspicious journey I ever made.

I was a bit worried about giving ourselves away while we slept, but I shouldn't have been, since our escort was out cold, snoring loudly. As we raced through the darkness, I kept pinching myself to remind me that I was in enemy territory on a wild mission. The rain started pouring, and we passed through soggy towns with lights shining off the wet streets. As we traveled east, the lighting seemed to brighten. After the gloom of London, it felt strange to glide through bright stations with a hundred arc lights glowing and to see long rows of lamps stretching to the horizon. Peter fell asleep early, but I stayed awake until midnight, trying to concentrate on thoughts that kept wandering. Eventually, I dozed off and didn't wake up until around five in the morning, when we arrived at a bustling train station that was bright as midday. It was the easiest and most inconspicuous journey I've ever had.

The lieutenant stretched himself and smoothed his rumpled uniform. We carried our scanty luggage to a droschke, for there seemed to be no porters. Our escort gave the address of some hotel and we rumbled out into brightly lit empty streets.

The lieutenant stretched and adjusted his wrinkled uniform. We took our minimal luggage to a droschke, as there didn't seem to be any porters around. Our escort shared the address of a hotel, and we rolled out into the brightly lit, empty streets.

“A mighty dorp,” said Peter. “Of a truth the Germans are a great people.”

“A strong town,” said Peter. “Honestly, the Germans are a great people.”

The lieutenant nodded good-humouredly.

The lieutenant nodded cheerfully.

“The greatest people on earth,” he said, “as their enemies will soon bear witness.”

“The greatest people on earth,” he said, “as their enemies will soon testify.”

I would have given a lot for a bath, but I felt that it would be outside my part, and Peter was not of the washing persuasion. But we had a very good breakfast of coffee and eggs, and then the lieutenant started on the telephone. He began by being dictatorial, then he seemed to be switched on to higher authorities, for he grew more polite, and at the end he fairly crawled. He made some arrangements, for he informed us that in the afternoon we would see some fellow whose title he could not translate into Dutch. I judged he was a great swell, for his voice became reverential at the mention of him.

I would have given a lot for a bath, but I felt it wouldn't be appropriate, and Peter wasn't into washing up. However, we had a really good breakfast with coffee and eggs, and then the lieutenant got on the phone. At first, he was bossy, but then he seemed to be talking to higher-ups, because he became more polite, and by the end, he was practically groveling. He made some arrangements and told us that in the afternoon we would meet some guy whose title he couldn't translate into Dutch. I figured he was a big deal since the lieutenant's voice turned respectful when he mentioned him.

He took us for a walk that morning after Peter and I had attended to our toilets. We were an odd pair of scallywags to look at, but as South African as a wait-a-bit bush. Both of us had ready-made tweed suits, grey flannel shirts with flannel collars, and felt hats with broader brims than they like in Europe. I had strong-nailed brown boots, Peter a pair of those mustard-coloured abominations which the Portuguese affect and which made him hobble like a Chinese lady. He had a scarlet satin tie which you could hear a mile off. My beard had grown to quite a respectable length, and I trimmed it like General Smuts’. Peter’s was the kind of loose flapping thing the taakhaar loves, which has scarcely ever been shaved, and is combed once in a blue moon. I must say we made a pretty solid pair. Any South African would have set us down as a Boer from the back-veld who had bought a suit of clothes in the nearest store, and his cousin from some one-horse dorp who had been to school and thought himself the devil of a fellow. We fairly reeked of the sub-continent, as the papers call it.

He took us for a walk that morning after Peter and I had taken care of our hygiene. We looked like a strange pair, but as South African as can be. Both of us wore ready-made tweed suits, grey flannel shirts with flannel collars, and felt hats with wider brims than they're used to in Europe. I had sturdy brown boots, while Peter wore a pair of those awful mustard-colored shoes that the Portuguese like, which made him walk like a Chinese lady. He had a bright red satin tie that could be heard from a mile away. My beard had grown to a respectable length, and I trimmed it like General Smuts. Peter’s was the kind of loose, flapping mess that the taakhaar loves, which has hardly ever been shaved and is combed once in a blue moon. I must say, we made quite the pair. Any South African would have seen us as a Boer from the countryside who had bought a suit from the nearest store, along with his cousin from some small town who had been to school and thought he was quite something. We certainly gave off a strong vibe of the subcontinent, as the papers call it.

It was a fine morning after the rain, and we wandered about in the streets for a couple of hours. They were busy enough, and the shops looked rich and bright with their Christmas goods, and one big store where I went to buy a pocket-knife was packed with customers. One didn’t see very many young men, and most of the women wore mourning. Uniforms were everywhere, but their wearers generally looked like dug-outs or office fellows. We had a glimpse of the squat building which housed the General Staff and took off our hats to it. Then we stared at the Marinamt, and I wondered what plots were hatching there behind old Tirpitz’s whiskers. The capital gave one an impression of ugly cleanness and a sort of dreary effectiveness. And yet I found it depressing—more depressing than London. I don’t know how to put it, but the whole big concern seemed to have no soul in it, to be like a big factory instead of a city. You won’t make a factory look like a house, though you decorate its front and plant rose-bushes all round it. The place depressed and yet cheered me. It somehow made the German people seem smaller.

It was a nice morning after the rain, and we wandered around the streets for a couple of hours. They were lively enough, and the shops looked bright and festive with their Christmas merchandise, and one large store where I went to buy a pocket knife was packed with customers. There weren’t many young men, and most of the women were in mourning. Uniforms were everywhere, but the people wearing them mostly looked like workers or office types. We caught a glimpse of the squat building that housed the General Staff and tipped our hats to it. Then we looked at the Marinamt, and I wondered what schemes were brewing there behind old Tirpitz’s whiskers. The capital gave off a vibe of sterile cleanliness and a sort of dreary efficiency. Yet, I found it depressing—more so than London. I can’t quite explain it, but the whole big setup felt soulless, more like a factory than a city. You can’t make a factory look like a home, even if you decorate its facade and plant rose bushes all around it. The place was both depressing and oddly uplifting. It somehow made the German people seem smaller.

At three o’clock the lieutenant took us to a plain white building in a side street with sentries at the door. A young staff officer met us and made us wait for five minutes in an ante-room. Then we were ushered into a big room with a polished floor on which Peter nearly sat down. There was a log fire burning, and seated at a table was a little man in spectacles with his hair brushed back from his brow like a popular violinist. He was the boss, for the lieutenant saluted him and announced our names. Then he disappeared, and the man at the table motioned us to sit down in two chairs before him.

At three o’clock, the lieutenant took us to a plain white building on a side street, with guards at the door. A young staff officer met us and made us wait for five minutes in a small waiting area. Then we were led into a large room with a polished floor where Peter almost sat down. There was a log fire burning, and sitting at a table was a short man in glasses with his hair slicked back like a popular violinist. He was the head guy because the lieutenant saluted him and announced our names. After that, the lieutenant left, and the man at the table gestured for us to take a seat in two chairs in front of him.

“Herr Brandt and Herr Pienaar?” he asked, looking over his glasses.

“Herr Brandt and Herr Pienaar?” he asked, peering over his glasses.

But it was the other man that caught my eye. He stood with his back to the fire leaning his elbows on the mantelpiece. He was a perfect mountain of a fellow, six and a half feet if he was an inch, with shoulders on him like a shorthorn bull. He was in uniform and the black-and-white ribbon of the Iron Cross showed at a buttonhole. His tunic was all wrinkled and strained as if it could scarcely contain his huge chest, and mighty hands were clasped over his stomach. That man must have had the length of reach of a gorilla. He had a great, lazy, smiling face, with a square cleft chin which stuck out beyond the rest. His brow retreated and the stubby back of his head ran forward to meet it, while his neck below bulged out over his collar. His head was exactly the shape of a pear with the sharp end topmost.

But it was the other guy that caught my eye. He stood with his back to the fire, leaning his elbows on the mantelpiece. He was a towering guy, six and a half feet tall if he was an inch, with shoulders like a beefy bull. He was in uniform, and the black-and-white ribbon of the Iron Cross showed at his buttonhole. His tunic was all wrinkled and strained, as if it could barely contain his massive chest, and his powerful hands were clasped over his stomach. That man must have had the reach of a gorilla. He had a big, relaxed, smiling face with a square cleft chin that jutted out prominently. His forehead receded, and the stubby back of his head sloped forward to meet it, while his neck bulged out over his collar. His head was shaped exactly like a pear, with the pointy end at the top.

He stared at me with his small bright eyes and I stared back. I had struck something I had been looking for for a long time, and till that moment I wasn’t sure that it existed. Here was the German of caricature, the real German, the fellow we were up against. He was as hideous as a hippopotamus, but effective. Every bristle on his odd head was effective.

He looked at me with his small, bright eyes, and I looked back. I had found something I had been searching for a long time, and until that moment, I wasn’t sure it was real. Here was the caricature of a German, the real German, the guy we were up against. He was as ugly as a hippo but effective. Every bristle on his strange head was effective.

The man at the table was speaking. I took him to be a civilian official of sorts, pretty high up from his surroundings, perhaps an Under-Secretary. His Dutch was slow and careful, but good—too good for Peter. He had a paper before him and was asking us questions from it. They did not amount to much, being pretty well a repetition of those Zorn had asked us at the frontier. I answered fluently, for I had all our lies by heart.

The man at the table was talking. I figured he was some kind of government official, likely a higher-up, maybe an Under-Secretary. His Dutch was slow and deliberate, but it was good—too good for Peter. He had a paper in front of him and was asking us questions from it. They didn’t really add up to much, mostly just a rehash of what Zorn had asked us at the border. I answered easily since I had all our lies memorized.

Then the man on the hearthrug broke in. “I’ll talk to them, Excellency,” he said in German. “You are too academic for those outland swine.”

Then the man on the hearthrug interrupted. “I’ll talk to them, Your Excellency,” he said in German. “You’re too scholarly for those backwoods fools.”

He began in the taal, with the thick guttural accent that you get in German South West. “You have heard of me,” he said. “I am the Colonel von Stumm who fought the Hereros.”

He started in the taal, with the heavy, throaty accent typical of German South West. “You’ve heard of me,” he said. “I’m Colonel von Stumm, the one who fought against the Hereros.”

Peter pricked up his ears. “Ja, Baas, you cut off the chief Baviaan’s head and sent it in pickle about the country. I have seen it.”

Peter perked up. “Yeah, Boss, you chopped off the chief Baviaan’s head and sent it around the country in a jar. I’ve seen it.”

The big man laughed. “You see I am not forgotten,” he said to his friend, and then to us: “So I treat my enemies, and so will Germany treat hers. You, too, if you fail me by a fraction of an inch.” And he laughed loud again.

The big guy laughed. “You see, I’m not forgotten,” he said to his friend, and then to us: “This is how I deal with my enemies, and this is how Germany will deal with hers. You will too, if you let me down even a little.” And he laughed loudly again.

There was something horrible in that boisterousness. Peter was watching him from below his eyelids, as I have seen him watch a lion about to charge.

There was something awful in that loudness. Peter was watching him from beneath his eyelids, like I’ve seen him watch a lion getting ready to charge.

He flung himself on a chair, put his elbows on the table, and thrust his face forward.

He threw himself into a chair, rested his elbows on the table, and leaned his face forward.

“You have come from a damned muddled show. If I had Maritz in my power I would have him flogged at a wagon’s end. Fools and pig-dogs, they had the game in their hands and they flung it away. We could have raised a fire that would have burned the English into the sea, and for lack of fuel they let it die down. Then they try to fan it when the ashes are cold.”

“You’ve come from a messed-up situation. If I had Maritz in my control, I’d have him whipped at the back of a wagon. Idiots and useless fools, they had the victory within reach and threw it away. We could have started a fire that would have driven the English into the sea, and because they didn’t keep it going, it went out. Then they try to reignite it when the ashes are cold.”

He rolled a paper pellet and flicked it into the air. “That is what I think of your idiot general,” he said, “and of all you Dutch. As slow as a fat vrouw and as greedy as an aasvogel.”

He rolled a paper pellet and flicked it into the air. “That’s how I feel about your stupid general,” he said, “and all you Dutch. As slow as a fat woman and as greedy as a vulture.”

We looked very glum and sullen.

We looked pretty down and gloomy.

“A pair of dumb dogs,” he cried. “A thousand Brandenburgers would have won in a fortnight. Seitz hadn’t much to boast of, mostly clerks and farmers and half-castes, and no soldier worth the name to lead them, but it took Botha and Smuts and a dozen generals to hunt him down. But Maritz!” His scorn came like a gust of wind.

“A couple of stupid dogs,” he shouted. “A thousand Brandenburgers would have taken them down in two weeks. Seitz didn’t have much to brag about—mostly clerks, farmers, and mixed-race recruits—and no soldier of any worth to lead them, but it took Botha and Smuts and a dozen generals to track him down. But Maritz!” His contempt hit like a sharp breeze.

“Maritz did all the fighting there was,” said Peter sulkily. “At any rate he wasn’t afraid of the sight of the khaki like your lot.”

“Maritz did all the fighting there was,” Peter said sulkily. “At least he wasn’t scared of seeing the khaki like your lot.”

“Maybe he wasn’t,” said the giant in a cooing voice; “maybe he had his reasons for that. You Dutchmen have always a feather-bed to fall on. You can always turn traitor. Maritz now calls himself Robinson, and has a pension from his friend Botha.”

“Maybe he wasn’t,” said the giant in a soothing tone; “maybe he had his reasons for that. You Dutchmen always have a safety net. You can always switch sides. Maritz now goes by Robinson, and he’s getting a pension from his buddy Botha.”

“That,” said Peter, “is a very damned lie.”

"That," Peter said, "is a total lie."

“I asked for information,” said Stumm with a sudden politeness. “But that is all past and done with. Maritz matters no more than your old Cronjes and Krugers. The show is over, and you are looking for safety. For a new master perhaps? But, man, what can you bring? What can you offer? You and your Dutch are lying in the dust with the yoke on your necks. The Pretoria lawyers have talked you round. You see that map,” and he pointed to a big one on the wall. “South Africa is coloured green. Not red for the English, or yellow for the Germans. Some day it will be yellow, but for a little it will be green—the colour of neutrals, of nothings, of boys and young ladies and chicken-hearts.”

“I asked for information,” Stumm said suddenly polite. “But that's all in the past. Maritz doesn’t matter any more than your old Cronjes and Krugers. The show is over, and you’re just looking for safety. Maybe a new master? But seriously, what can you offer? You and your Dutch are lying in the dust with a yoke around your necks. The Pretoria lawyers have twisted your minds. Do you see that map?” He pointed to a large one on the wall. “South Africa is colored green. Not red for the English, or yellow for the Germans. Someday it’ll be yellow, but for now it’s green—the color of neutrals, of nothingness, of boys and young ladies and cowards.”

I kept wondering what he was playing at.

I kept wondering what he was up to.

Then he fixed his eyes on Peter. “What do you come here for? The game’s up in your own country. What can you offer us Germans? If we gave you ten million marks and sent you back you could do nothing. Stir up a village row, perhaps, and shoot a policeman. South Africa is counted out in this war. Botha is a cleverish man and has beaten you calves’-heads of rebels. Can you deny it?”

Then he looked at Peter. “What are you doing here? The game is over in your own country. What can you give us Germans? Even if we gave you ten million marks and sent you back, you wouldn't be able to do anything. Maybe cause some trouble in a village and shoot a policeman. South Africa is out of this war. Botha is a pretty smart guy and has taken down your bunch of clueless rebels. Can you deny it?”

Peter couldn’t. He was terribly honest in some things, and these were for certain his opinions.

Peter couldn't. He was painfully honest about certain things, and these were definitely his opinions.

“No,” he said, “that is true, Baas.”

“No,” he said, “that’s true, Boss.”

“Then what in God’s name can you do?” shouted Stumm.

“Then what the hell can you do?” shouted Stumm.

Peter mumbled some foolishness about nobbling Angola for Germany and starting a revolution among the natives. Stumm flung up his arms and cursed, and the Under-Secretary laughed.

Peter mumbled some nonsense about taking over Angola for Germany and sparking a revolution among the locals. Stumm threw his arms up and swore, while the Under-Secretary chuckled.

It was high time for me to chip in. I was beginning to see the kind of fellow this Stumm was, and as he talked I thought of my mission, which had got overlaid by my Boer past. It looked as if he might be useful.

It was finally time for me to contribute. I was starting to get a sense of what this Stumm was like, and as he spoke, I thought about my mission, which had been overshadowed by my Boer history. It seemed like he could be helpful.

“Let me speak,” I said. “My friend is a great hunter, but he fights better than he talks. He is no politician. You speak truth. South Africa is a closed door for the present, and the key to it is elsewhere. Here in Europe, and in the east, and in other parts of Africa. We have come to help you to find the key.”

“Let me talk,” I said. “My friend is an excellent hunter, but he fights better than he speaks. He’s not a politician. You’re right. South Africa is a closed door for now, and the key is somewhere else. It’s here in Europe, in the East, and in other parts of Africa. We’ve come to help you find the key.”

Stumm was listening. “Go on, my little Boer. It will be a new thing to hear a taakhaar on world-politics.”

Stumm was listening. “Go on, my little Boer. It will be a new thing to hear a taakhaar on world politics.”

“You are fighting,” I said, “in East Africa; and soon you may fight in Egypt. All the east coast north of the Zambesi will be your battle-ground. The English run about the world with little expeditions. I do not know where the places are, though I read of them in the papers. But I know my Africa. You want to beat them here in Europe and on the seas. Therefore, like wise generals, you try to divide them and have them scattered throughout the globe while you stick at home. That is your plan?”

“You're fighting,” I said, “in East Africa; and soon you might fight in Egypt. The entire east coast north of the Zambezi will be your battleground. The English are running around the world with small expeditions. I don't know where these places are, even though I read about them in the news. But I know my Africa. You want to defeat them here in Europe and on the seas. So, like smart generals, you're trying to divide them and spread them out across the globe while you stay at home. Is that your plan?”

“A second Falkenhayn,” said Stumm, laughing.

“A second Falkenhayn,” Stumm said with a laugh.

“Well, England will not let East Africa go. She fears for Egypt and she fears, too, for India. If you press her there she will send armies and more armies till she is so weak in Europe that a child can crush her. That is England’s way. She cares more for her Empire than for what may happen to her allies. So I say press and still press there, destroy the railway to the Lakes, burn her capital, pen up every Englishman in Mombasa island. At this moment it is worth for you a thousand Damaralands.”

“Well, England won’t let go of East Africa. She worries about Egypt and also about India. If you push her on this, she’ll send armies and more armies until she’s so weak in Europe that a kid could take her down. That’s just how England operates. She cares more about her Empire than what might happen to her allies. So, I say keep pushing, keep pushing; destroy the railway to the Lakes, burn down her capital, trap every Englishman on Mombasa island. Right now, this is worth a thousand Damaralands to you.”

The man was really interested and the Under-Secretary, too, pricked up his ears.

The man was genuinely interested, and the Under-Secretary also perked up his ears.

“We can keep our territory,” said the former; “but as for pressing, how the devil are we to press? The accursed English hold the sea. We cannot ship men or guns there. South are the Portuguese and west the Belgians. You cannot move a mass without a lever.”

“We can keep our territory,” said the former; “but how on earth are we supposed to press? The damn English control the sea. We can’t send men or guns over there. To the south are the Portuguese and to the west the Belgians. You can’t move a mass without a lever.”

“The lever is there, ready for you,” I said.

“The lever is right there, waiting for you,” I said.

“Then for God’s sake show it me,” he cried.

“Then for goodness' sake show it to me,” he shouted.

I looked at the door to see that it was shut, as if what I had to say was very secret.

I glanced at the door to make sure it was closed, as if what I had to say was really confidential.

“You need men, and the men are waiting. They are black, but they are the stuff of warriors. All round your borders you have the remains of great fighting tribes, the Angoni, the Masai, the Manyumwezi, and above all the Somalis of the north, and the dwellers on the upper Nile. The British recruit their black regiments there, and so do you. But to get recruits is not enough. You must set whole nations moving, as the Zulu under Tchaka flowed over South Africa.”

“You need men, and the men are ready. They are Black, but they are made of warrior material. All around your borders, you can see the remnants of powerful fighting tribes: the Angoni, the Masai, the Manyumwezi, and especially the Somalis of the north, as well as the people living along the upper Nile. The British recruit their Black regiments from there, and so do you. But just getting recruits isn’t enough. You need to mobilize entire nations, like the Zulu did under Tchaka, as they swept across South Africa.”

“It cannot be done,” said the Under-Secretary.

“It can't be done,” said the Under-Secretary.

“It can be done,” I said quietly. “We two are here to do it.”

“It can be done,” I said softly. “We’re both here to make it happen.”

This kind of talk was jolly difficult for me, chiefly because of Stumm’s asides in German to the official. I had, above all things, to get the credit of knowing no German, and, if you understand a language well, it is not very easy when you are interrupted not to show that you know it, either by a direct answer, or by referring to the interruption in what you say next. I had to be always on my guard, and yet it was up to me to be very persuasive and convince these fellows that I would be useful. Somehow or other I had to get into their confidence.

This kind of conversation was really challenging for me, mainly because of Stumm’s side comments in German to the official. I really needed to make it clear that I didn’t know any German, and when you actually understand a language well, it’s tough not to give yourself away when interrupted, whether by responding directly or referencing the interruption in what you say next. I had to stay on my toes, but at the same time, I needed to be very convincing and prove to these guys that I’d be helpful. I had to find a way to earn their trust.

“I have been for years up and down in Africa—Uganda and the Congo and the Upper Nile. I know the ways of the Kaffir as no Englishman does. We Afrikanders see into the black man’s heart, and though he may hate us he does our will. You Germans are like the English; you are too big folk to understand plain men. ‘Civilize,’ you cry. ‘Educate,’ say the English. The black man obeys and puts away his gods, but he worships them all the time in his soul. We must get his gods on our side, and then he will move mountains. We must do as John Laputa did with Sheba’s necklace.”

“I have spent years traveling around Africa—Uganda, the Congo, and the Upper Nile. I understand the ways of the local people like no Englishman does. We Afrikanders can see into the hearts of black men, and even if they hate us, they still do what we want. You Germans are like the English; you're too big a people to really get the common man. ‘Civilize,’ you shout. ‘Educate,’ say the English. The black man listens and puts aside his gods, but he secretly worships them deep down. We need to win over his gods, and then he can do anything. We should do what John Laputa did with Sheba’s necklace.”

“That’s all in the air,” said Stumm, but he did not laugh.

"That's all up in the air," said Stumm, but he didn't laugh.

“It is sober common sense,” I said. “But you must begin at the right end. First find the race that fears its priests. It is waiting for you—the Mussulmans of Somaliland and the Abyssinian border and the Blue and White Nile. They would be like dried grasses to catch fire if you used the flint and steel of their religion. Look what the English suffered from a crazy Mullah who ruled only a dozen villages. Once get the flames going and they will lick up the pagans of the west and south. This is the way of Africa. How many thousands, think you, were in the Mahdi’s army who never heard of the Prophet till they saw the black flags of the Emirs going into battle?”

“It’s just common sense,” I said. “But you have to start at the right place. First, find the group that fears its religious leaders. They’re out there—the Muslims of Somaliland, the Abyssinian border, and the Blue and White Nile. They’d ignite easily if you used the spark of their faith. Look at what the English faced from a mad Mullah who only controlled a few villages. Once you get the fire started, it will spread and engulf the pagans of the west and south. This is how things work in Africa. How many thousands do you think were in the Mahdi’s army who had never even heard of the Prophet until they saw the black flags of the Emirs going into battle?”

Stumm was smiling. He turned his face to the official and spoke with his hand over his mouth, but I caught his words. They were: “This is the man for Hilda.” The other pursed his lips and looked a little scared.

Stumm was smiling. He turned his face to the official and spoke with his hand over his mouth, but I caught his words. They were: “This is the guy for Hilda.” The other one pursed his lips and looked a bit scared.

Stumm rang a bell and the lieutenant came in and clicked his heels. He nodded towards Peter. “Take this man away with you. We have done with him. The other fellow will follow presently.”

Stumm rang a bell, and the lieutenant entered, clicking his heels. He nodded toward Peter. “Take this man with you. We’re done with him. The other guy will follow soon.”

Peter went out with a puzzled face and Stumm turned to me.

Peter stepped outside with a confused expression, and Stumm faced me.

“You are a dreamer, Brandt,” he said. “But I do not reject you on that account. Dreams sometimes come true, when an army follows the visionary. But who is going to kindle the flame?”

“You're a dreamer, Brandt,” he said. “But I won’t hold that against you. Dreams can sometimes become reality, especially when an army supports the visionary. But who’s going to light the fire?”

“You,” I said.

"You," I said.

“What the devil do you mean?” he asked.

“What do you mean?” he asked.

“That is your part. You are the cleverest people in the world. You have already half the Mussulman lands in your power. It is for you to show us how to kindle a holy war, for clearly you have the secret of it. Never fear but we will carry out your order.”

“That is your role. You are the smartest people in the world. You already control half of the Muslim lands. It’s up to you to show us how to start a holy war, because you clearly have the secret to it. Don’t worry, we’ll follow your orders.”

“We have no secret,” he said shortly, and glanced at the official, who stared out of the window.

“We don’t have any secrets,” he said briefly, glancing at the official, who was staring out the window.

I dropped my jaw and looked the picture of disappointment. “I do not believe you,” I said slowly. “You play a game with me. I have not come six thousand miles to be made a fool of.”

I dropped my jaw and looked completely disappointed. “I can't believe you,” I said slowly. “You’re playing games with me. I didn’t travel six thousand miles to be made a fool of.”

“Discipline, by God,” Stumm cried. “This is none of your ragged commandos.” In two strides he was above me and had lifted me out of my seat. His great hands clutched my shoulders, and his thumbs gouged my armpits. I felt as if I were in the grip of a big ape. Then very slowly he shook me so that my teeth seemed loosened and my head swam. He let me go and I dropped limply back in the chair.

“Discipline, for God's sake,” Stumm yelled. “These aren’t your scrappy commandos.” In just two strides, he was above me and lifted me out of my seat. His huge hands gripped my shoulders, and his thumbs pushed into my armpits. I felt like I was caught in the grip of a large ape. Then, very slowly, he shook me until my teeth felt loose and my head spun. He let me go, and I flopped back down into the chair.

“Now, go! Futsack! And remember that I am your master. I, Ulric von Stumm, who owns you as a Kaffir owns his mongrel. Germany may have some use for you, my friend, when you fear me as you never feared your God.”

“Now, go! Futsack! And remember that I am your master. I, Ulric von Stumm, who owns you like a Kaffir owns his mongrel. Germany might find some use for you, my friend, when you fear me the way you’ve never feared your God.”

As I walked dizzily away the big man was smiling in his horrible way, and that little official was blinking and smiling too. I had struck a dashed queer country, so queer that I had had no time to remember that for the first time in my life I had been bullied without hitting back. When I realized it I nearly choked with anger. But I thanked heaven I had shown no temper, for I remembered my mission. Luck seemed to have brought me into useful company.

As I walked away feeling dizzy, the big guy was grinning in his creepy way, and that little official was blinking and smiling as well. I had landed in a really strange place, so strange that I hadn't even had time to realize that for the first time in my life, I had been pushed around without fighting back. When I became aware of it, I almost choked on my anger. But I was grateful I hadn't lost my cool because I remembered my mission. It seemed like luck had led me to some helpful people.

CHAPTER V.
Further Adventures of the Same

Next morning there was a touch of frost and a nip in the air which stirred my blood and put me in buoyant spirits. I forgot my precarious position and the long road I had still to travel. I came down to breakfast in great form, to find Peter’s even temper badly ruffled. He had remembered Stumm in the night and disliked the memory; this he muttered to me as we rubbed shoulders at the dining-room door. Peter and I got no opportunity for private talk. The lieutenant was with us all the time, and at night we were locked in our rooms. Peter discovered this through trying to get out to find matches, for he had the bad habit of smoking in bed.

The next morning, there was a hint of frost and a chill in the air that energized me and lifted my spirits. I forgot about my risky situation and the long journey still ahead. I came down to breakfast feeling great, only to find Peter in a really bad mood. He had been thinking about Stumm during the night and didn't like it; he muttered this to me as we bumped into each other at the dining-room door. Peter and I didn't get a chance to talk privately. The lieutenant was with us the whole time, and at night we were locked in our rooms. Peter found this out when he tried to sneak out to look for matches because he had the bad habit of smoking in bed.

Our guide started on the telephone, and announced that we were to be taken to see a prisoners’ camp. In the afternoon I was to go somewhere with Stumm, but the morning was for sight-seeing. “You will see,” he told us, “how merciful is a great people. You will also see some of the hated English in our power. That will delight you. They are the forerunners of all their nation.”

Our guide kicked things off over the phone and announced that we were heading to visit a prisoner camp. I was scheduled to go somewhere with Stumm in the afternoon, but the morning was reserved for sightseeing. “You’ll see,” he told us, “just how merciful a great nation can be. You’ll also see some of the despised English under our control. That should make you happy. They represent their entire nation.”

We drove in a taxi through the suburbs and then over a stretch of flat market-garden-like country to a low rise of wooded hills. After an hour’s ride we entered the gate of what looked like a big reformatory or hospital. I believe it had been a home for destitute children. There were sentries at the gate and massive concentric circles of barbed wire through which we passed under an arch that was let down like a portcullis at nightfall. The lieutenant showed his permit, and we ran the car into a brick-paved yard and marched through a lot more sentries to the office of the commandant.

We took a taxi through the suburbs and then across a stretch of flat, garden-like countryside to a low rise of wooded hills. After an hour’s drive, we arrived at what looked like a large reformatory or hospital. I think it used to be a home for needy children. There were guards at the gate and thick circles of barbed wire as we passed under an arch that came down like a portcullis at night. The lieutenant showed his permit, and we drove the car into a brick-paved yard and walked past more guards to the commandant's office.

He was away from home, and we were welcomed by his deputy, a pale young man with a head nearly bald. There were introductions in German which our guide translated into Dutch, and a lot of elegant speeches about how Germany was foremost in humanity as well as martial valour. Then they stood us sandwiches and beer, and we formed a procession for a tour of inspection. There were two doctors, both mild-looking men in spectacles, and a couple of warders—under-officers of the good old burly, bullying sort I knew well. That was the cement which kept the German Army together. Her men were nothing to boast of on the average; no more were the officers, even in crack corps like the Guards and the Brandenburgers; but they seemed to have an inexhaustible supply of hard, competent N.C.O.s.

He was away from home, and we were greeted by his deputy, a pale young man with almost a bald head. There were introductions in German, which our guide translated into Dutch, along with a lot of sophisticated speeches about how Germany was at the forefront of humanity as well as military honor. Then they served us sandwiches and beer, and we formed a line for a tour of inspection. There were two doctors, both mild-mannered men in glasses, and a couple of guards—under-officers of the good old tough, bullying type I was familiar with. That was the glue that held the German Army together. Their soldiers were nothing to brag about on average; neither were the officers, even in elite units like the Guards and the Brandenburgers; but they seemed to have an endless supply of solid, capable N.C.O.s.

We marched round the wash-houses, the recreation-ground, the kitchens, the hospital—with nobody in it save one chap with the “flu.” It didn’t seem to be badly done. This place was entirely for officers, and I expect it was a show place where American visitors were taken. If half the stories one heard were true there were some pretty ghastly prisons away in South and East Germany.

We walked around the laundry rooms, the playground, the kitchens, and the hospital—where there was only one guy with the flu. It didn’t seem too bad. This place was exclusively for officers, and I guess it was a showcase for American visitors. If half the stories you hear are true, there are some pretty horrific prisons out in South and East Germany.

I didn’t half like the business. To be a prisoner has always seemed to me about the worst thing that could happen to a man. The sight of German prisoners used to give me a bad feeling inside, whereas I looked at dead Boches with nothing but satisfaction. Besides, there was the off-chance that I might be recognized. So I kept very much in the shadow whenever we passed anybody in the corridors. The few we met passed us incuriously. They saluted the deputy-commandant, but scarcely wasted a glance on us. No doubt they thought we were inquisitive Germans come to gloat over them. They looked fairly fit, but a little puffy about the eyes, like men who get too little exercise. They seemed thin, too. I expect the food, for all the commandant’s talk, was nothing to boast of. In one room people were writing letters. It was a big place with only a tiny stove to warm it, and the windows were shut so that the atmosphere was a cold frowst. In another room a fellow was lecturing on something to a dozen hearers and drawing figures on a blackboard. Some were in ordinary khaki, others in any old thing they could pick up, and most wore greatcoats. Your blood gets thin when you have nothing to do but hope against hope and think of your pals and the old days.

I really didn’t like the situation. Being a prisoner has always seemed to me one of the worst things that could happen to a person. Seeing German prisoners would give me a bad feeling inside, while I felt nothing but satisfaction when looking at dead Germans. Plus, there was a chance I might be recognized. So, I stayed in the shadows whenever we passed anyone in the hallways. The few we encountered hardly noticed us. They greeted the deputy-commandant but barely glanced our way. They probably thought we were nosy Germans there to gloat over them. They seemed fairly healthy but looked a bit puffy around the eyes, like guys who don’t get enough exercise. They looked thin, too. I bet the food, despite the commandant’s words, was nothing to brag about. In one room, people were writing letters. It was a large space with only a small stove to heat it, and the windows were closed, making the atmosphere feel cold and stuffy. In another room, a guy was giving a lecture on something to about a dozen listeners while drawing figures on a blackboard. Some were in regular khaki, others wore whatever they could find, and most had on overcoats. Your blood gets thin when all you can do is cling to hope and think about your friends and the good old days.

I was moving along, listening with half an ear to the lieutenant’s prattle and the loud explanations of the deputy-commandant, when I pitchforked into what might have been the end of my business. We were going through a sort of convalescent room, where people were sitting who had been in hospital. It was a big place, a little warmer than the rest of the building, but still abominably fuggy. There were about half a dozen men in the room, reading and playing games. They looked at us with lack-lustre eyes for a moment, and then returned to their occupations. Being convalescents I suppose they were not expected to get up and salute.

I was going along, only half-listening to the lieutenant's chatter and the loud explanations from the deputy-commandant when I stumbled into what could have been the end of my business. We were passing through a sort of recovery room, where people who had been in the hospital were sitting. It was a big space, a bit warmer than the rest of the building, but still really stuffy. There were about six men in the room, reading and playing games. They glanced at us with dull eyes for a moment, then went back to what they were doing. Being in recovery, I guess they weren’t expected to get up and salute.

All but one, who was playing Patience at a little table by which we passed. I was feeling very bad about the thing, for I hated to see these good fellows locked away in this infernal German hole when they might have been giving the Boche his deserts at the front. The commandant went first with Peter, who had developed a great interest in prisons. Then came our lieutenant with one of the doctors; then a couple of warders; and then the second doctor and myself. I was absent-minded at the moment and was last in the queue.

All but one, who was playing Solitaire at a small table we passed. I was feeling really upset about it because I hated seeing these good guys trapped in this awful German place when they could have been out there giving the enemy what they deserved at the front. The commandant went first with Peter, who had become really interested in prisons. Then came our lieutenant with one of the doctors; then a couple of guards; and then the second doctor and me. I was lost in thought at that moment and was last in line.

The Patience-player suddenly looked up and I saw his face. I’m hanged if it wasn’t Dolly Riddell, who was our brigade machine-gun officer at Loos. I had heard that the Germans had got him when they blew up a mine at the Quarries.

The Patience player suddenly looked up and I saw his face. I swear it was Dolly Riddell, who was our brigade machine-gun officer at Loos. I had heard that the Germans had captured him when they blew up a mine at the Quarries.

I had to act pretty quick, for his mouth was agape, and I saw he was going to speak. The doctor was a yard ahead of me.

I had to act fast because his mouth was open, and I could tell he was about to speak. The doctor was a step ahead of me.

I stumbled and spilt his cards on the floor. Then I kneeled to pick them up and gripped his knee. His head bent to help me and I spoke low in his ear.

I tripped and dropped his cards on the floor. Then I knelt to pick them up and held onto his knee. He leaned down to help me, and I whispered in his ear.

“I’m Hannay all right. For God’s sake don’t wink an eye. I’m here on a secret job.”

“I’m Hannay, for sure. Please don’t make a fuss. I’m here on a covert mission.”

The doctor had turned to see what was the matter. I got a few more words in. “Cheer up, old man. We’re winning hands down.”

The doctor turned to see what was going on. I managed to say a few more words. “Cheer up, man. We’re winning easily.”

Then I began to talk excited Dutch and finished the collection of the cards. Dolly was playing his part well, smiling as if he was amused by the antics of a monkey. The others were coming back, the deputy-commandant with an angry light in his dull eye. “Speaking to the prisoners is forbidden,” he shouted.

Then I started to speak in excited Dutch and finished collecting the cards. Dolly was playing his role well, smiling as if he found the monkey's antics entertaining. The others were coming back, the deputy commandant with an angry glint in his dull eye. “Talking to the prisoners is not allowed,” he shouted.

I looked blankly at him till the lieutenant translated.

I stared at him with a blank expression until the lieutenant translated.

“What kind of fellow is he?” said Dolly in English to the doctor. “He spoils my game and then jabbers High-Dutch at me.”

“What kind of guy is he?” Dolly asked the doctor in English. “He messes up my game and then talks to me in Dutch.”

Officially I knew English, and that speech of Dolly’s gave me my cue. I pretended to be very angry with the very damned Englishman, and went out of the room close by the deputy-commandant, grumbling like a sick jackal. After that I had to act a bit. The last place we visited was the close-confinement part where prisoners were kept as a punishment for some breach of the rules. They looked cheerless enough, but I pretended to gloat over the sight, and said so to the lieutenant, who passed it on to the others. I have rarely in my life felt such a cad.

Officially, I knew English, and Dolly’s speech gave me my opening. I faked being really angry with that insufferable Englishman and left the room near the deputy-commandant, grumbling like a sick jackal. After that, I had to put on a bit of an act. The last place we visited was the solitary confinement area where prisoners were held for breaking the rules. They looked pretty miserable, but I acted like I was enjoying the sight and said as much to the lieutenant, who relayed it to the others. I’ve rarely felt like such a jerk in my life.

On the way home the lieutenant discoursed a lot about prisoners and detention-camps, for at one time he had been on duty at Ruhleben. Peter, who had been in quod more than once in his life, was deeply interested and kept on questioning him. Among other things he told us was that they often put bogus prisoners among the rest, who acted as spies. If any plot to escape was hatched these fellows got into it and encouraged it. They never interfered till the attempt was actually made and then they had them on toast. There was nothing the Boche liked so much as an excuse for sending a poor devil to “solitary”.

On the way home, the lieutenant talked a lot about prisoners and detention camps since he had once been stationed at Ruhleben. Peter, who had been in jail more than once, was very interested and kept asking him questions. One of the things he mentioned was that they often mixed in fake prisoners among the others who acted as spies. If anyone planned an escape, these guys got involved and encouraged it. They never stepped in until the attempt was really happening, and then they caught them easily. There was nothing the Germans liked more than having a reason to send someone to "solitary."

That afternoon Peter and I separated. He was left behind with the lieutenant and I was sent off to the station with my bag in the company of a Landsturm sergeant. Peter was very cross, and I didn’t care for the look of things; but I brightened up when I heard I was going somewhere with Stumm. If he wanted to see me again he must think me of some use, and if he was going to use me he was bound to let me into his game. I liked Stumm about as much as a dog likes a scorpion, but I hankered for his society.

That afternoon, Peter and I went our separate ways. He stayed with the lieutenant, while I headed to the station with my bag, accompanied by a Landsturm sergeant. Peter was really upset, and I didn’t like how things looked; but I felt better when I found out I was going somewhere with Stumm. If he wanted to see me again, he must think I could be helpful, and if he was going to use me, he had to let me in on his plans. I didn’t like Stumm any more than a dog likes a scorpion, but I craved his company.

At the station platform, where the ornament of the Landsturm saved me all the trouble about tickets, I could not see my companion. I stood waiting, while a great crowd, mostly of soldiers, swayed past me and filled all the front carriages. An officer spoke to me gruffly and told me to stand aside behind a wooden rail. I obeyed, and suddenly found Stumm’s eyes looking down at me.

At the station platform, where the Landsturm decoration got me out of dealing with tickets, I couldn't see my friend. I waited as a large crowd, mostly soldiers, moved past me and filled the front carriages. An officer told me harshly to step aside behind a wooden barrier. I complied, and suddenly, I saw Stumm looking down at me.

“You know German?” he asked sharply.

"You know German?" he asked sharply.

“A dozen words,” I said carelessly. “I’ve been to Windhuk and learned enough to ask for my dinner. Peter—my friend—speaks it a bit.”

“A dozen words,” I said casually. “I’ve been to Windhuk and picked up enough to order my dinner. Peter—my friend—knows a little of it.”

“So,” said Stumm. “Well, get into the carriage. Not that one! There, thickhead!”

“Okay,” said Stumm. “Get in the carriage. Not that one! The other one, you clueless fool!”

I did as I was bid, he followed, and the door was locked behind us. The precaution was needless, for the sight of Stumm’s profile at the platform end would have kept out the most brazen. I wondered if I had woken up his suspicions. I must be on my guard to show no signs of intelligence if he suddenly tried me in German, and that wouldn’t be easy, for I knew it as well as I knew Dutch.

I did as I was told, he followed, and the door was locked behind us. The precaution was unnecessary, because just seeing Stumm’s profile at the end of the platform would have scared off the boldest person. I wondered if I had raised his suspicions. I had to be careful to show no signs of understanding if he suddenly tested me in German, and that wouldn’t be easy, since I knew it as well as I knew Dutch.

We moved into the country, but the windows were blurred with frost, and I saw nothing of the landscape. Stumm was busy with papers and let me alone. I read on a notice that one was forbidden to smoke, so to show my ignorance of German I pulled out my pipe. Stumm raised his head, saw what I was doing, and gruffly bade me put it away, as if he were an old lady that disliked the smell of tobacco.

We moved to the countryside, but the windows were frosted over, and I couldn’t see the landscape. Stumm was occupied with paperwork and left me alone. I noticed a sign that said smoking was prohibited, so to demonstrate my lack of knowledge about German, I took out my pipe. Stumm looked up, saw what I was doing, and gruffly told me to put it away, as if he were an old lady who couldn’t stand the smell of tobacco.

In half an hour I got very bored, for I had nothing to read and my pipe was verboten. People passed now and then in the corridors, but no one offered to enter. No doubt they saw the big figure in uniform and thought he was the deuce of a staff swell who wanted solitude. I thought of stretching my legs in the corridor, and was just getting up to do it when somebody slid the door back and a big figure blocked the light.

In half an hour, I became really bored because I had nothing to read, and smoking my pipe was forbidden. People walked by in the corridors occasionally, but no one came in. They probably saw the big guy in uniform and figured he must be an important officer who wanted to be left alone. I considered getting up to stretch my legs in the corridor when someone slid the door open, and a large figure blocked the light.

He was wearing a heavy ulster and a green felt hat. He saluted Stumm, who looked up angrily, and smiled pleasantly on us both.

He was wearing a thick overcoat and a green felt hat. He nodded at Stumm, who looked up angrily, and smiled kindly at both of us.

“Say, gentlemen,” he said, “have you room in here for a little one? I guess I’m about smoked out of my car by your brave soldiers. I’ve gotten a delicate stomach ...”

“Hey, guys,” he said, “do you have space in here for a small one? I think I’m about to be chased out of my car by your tough soldiers. I’ve got a sensitive stomach...”

Stumm had risen with a brow of wrath, and looked as if he were going to pitch the intruder off the train. Then he seemed to halt and collect himself, and the other’s face broke into a friendly grin.

Stumm had gotten up with an angry expression and looked ready to throw the intruder off the train. Then he seemed to pause and gather himself, and the other person's face lit up with a friendly smile.

“Why, it’s Colonel Stumm,” he cried. (He pronounced it like the first syllable in “stomach”.) “Very pleased to meet you again, Colonel. I had the honour of making your acquaintance at our Embassy. I reckon Ambassador Gerard didn’t cotton to our conversation that night.” And the new-comer plumped himself down in the corner opposite me.

“Wow, it’s Colonel Stumm,” he exclaimed. (He pronounced it like the first syllable in “stomach.”) “It’s great to see you again, Colonel. I had the pleasure of meeting you at our Embassy. I guess Ambassador Gerard didn’t really like our chat that night.” And the newcomer settled into the corner across from me.

I had been pretty certain I would run across Blenkiron somewhere in Germany, but I didn’t think it would be so soon. There he sat staring at me with his full, unseeing eyes, rolling out platitudes to Stumm, who was nearly bursting in his effort to keep civil. I looked moody and suspicious, which I took to be the right line.

I was pretty sure I would bump into Blenkiron somewhere in Germany, but I didn’t expect it to be this soon. There he was, staring at me with his vacant eyes, spouting clichés to Stumm, who was almost bursting with the effort to remain polite. I looked grumpy and wary, which I thought was the right approach.

“Things are getting a bit dead at Salonika,” said Mr Blenkiron, by way of a conversational opening.

“Things are getting a bit quiet in Salonika,” Mr. Blenkiron said to start the conversation.

Stumm pointed to a notice which warned officers to refrain from discussing military operations with mixed company in a railway carriage.

Stumm pointed to a notice that warned officers not to talk about military operations in mixed company on a train.

“Sorry,” said Blenkiron, “I can’t read that tombstone language of yours. But I reckon that that notice to trespassers, whatever it signifies, don’t apply to you and me. I take it this gentleman is in your party.”

“Sorry,” Blenkiron said, “I can’t read that tombstone language of yours. But I think that notice for trespassers, whatever it means, doesn’t apply to you and me. I assume this gentleman is with you.”

I sat and scowled, fixing the American with suspicious eyes.

I sat and glared, eyeing the American with suspicion.

“He is a Dutchman,” said Stumm; “South African Dutch, and he is not happy, for he doesn’t like to hear English spoken.”

“He's a Dutchman,” said Stumm; “South African Dutch, and he’s not happy because he doesn’t like hearing English spoken.”

“We’ll shake on that,” said Blenkiron cordially. “But who said I spoke English? It’s good American. Cheer up, friend, for it isn’t the call that makes the big wapiti, as they say out west in my country. I hate John Bull worse than a poison rattle. The Colonel can tell you that.”

“We’ll shake on that,” Blenkiron said with a friendly tone. “But who said I speak English? It’s good American. Cheer up, my friend, because it’s not the call that makes the big wapiti, as they say out west in my country. I can’t stand John Bull more than a poison rattlesnake. The Colonel can tell you that.”

I dare say he could, but at that moment, we slowed down at a station and Stumm got up to leave. “Good day to you, Herr Blenkiron,” he cried over his shoulder. “If you consider your comfort, don’t talk English to strange travellers. They don’t distinguish between the different brands.”

I would say he could, but just then, we slowed down at a station and Stumm got up to leave. “Good day to you, Mr. Blenkiron,” he called over his shoulder. “If you care about your comfort, don’t speak English to unfamiliar travelers. They don’t recognize the different varieties.”

I followed him in a hurry, but was recalled by Blenkiron’s voice.

I rushed to catch up with him, but Blenkiron's voice stopped me.

“Say, friend,” he shouted, “you’ve left your grip,” and he handed me my bag from the luggage rack. But he showed no sign of recognition, and the last I saw of him was sitting sunk in a corner with his head on his chest as if he were going to sleep. He was a man who kept up his parts well.

“Hey, buddy,” he yelled, “you dropped your bag,” and he passed me my bag from the luggage rack. But he didn’t show any sign of knowing me, and the last I saw of him was slumped in a corner with his head on his chest as if he was about to fall asleep. He was a guy who played his role really well.

There was a motor-car waiting—one of the grey military kind—and we started at a terrific pace over bad forest roads. Stumm had put away his papers in a portfolio, and flung me a few sentences on the journey.

There was a military-style grey sedan waiting for us, and we took off at a crazy speed over rough forest roads. Stumm had tucked his papers away in a portfolio and tossed a few comments my way about the trip.

“I haven’t made up my mind about you, Brandt,” he announced. “You may be a fool or a knave or a good man. If you are a knave, we will shoot you.”

“I haven’t made up my mind about you, Brandt,” he said. “You could be a fool, a crook, or a good person. If you’re a crook, we will shoot you.”

“And if I am a fool?” I asked.

“And what if I'm a fool?” I asked.

“Send you to the Yser or the Dvina. You will be respectable cannon-fodder.”

“Send you to the Yser or the Dvina. You will be decent cannon fodder.”

“You cannot do that unless I consent,” I said.

“You can’t do that unless I agree,” I said.

“Can’t we?” he said, smiling wickedly. “Remember you are a citizen of nowhere. Technically, you are a rebel, and the British, if you go to them, will hang you, supposing they have any sense. You are in our power, my friend, to do precisely what we like with you.”

“Can’t we?” he said, grinning mischievously. “Don’t forget you’re a citizen of nowhere. Technically, you’re a rebel, and if you go to the British, they’ll hang you, assuming they have any sense. We have the power over you, my friend, to do exactly what we want.”

He was silent for a second, and then he said, meditatively:

He paused for a moment, then said thoughtfully:

“But I don’t think you are a fool. You may be a scoundrel. Some kinds of scoundrel are useful enough. Other kinds are strung up with a rope. Of that we shall know more soon.”

“But I don’t think you’re a fool. You might be a scoundrel. Some types of scoundrels are actually useful. Other types get hanged. We’ll find out more about that soon.”

“And if I am a good man?”

“And what if I’m a good person?”

“You will be given a chance to serve Germany, the proudest privilege a mortal man can have.” The strange man said this with a ringing sincerity in his voice that impressed me.

“You will have the opportunity to serve Germany, the greatest privilege a human being can have.” The strange man said this with a heartfelt sincerity in his voice that moved me.

The car swung out from the trees into a park lined with saplings, and in the twilight I saw before me a biggish house like an overgrown Swiss chalet. There was a kind of archway, with a sham portcullis, and a terrace with battlements which looked as if they were made of stucco. We drew up at a Gothic front door, where a thin middle-aged man in a shooting-jacket was waiting.

The car pulled out from the trees into a park filled with young trees, and in the fading light, I saw a fairly large house that resembled an oversized Swiss chalet. There was an archway with a fake portcullis and a terrace with battlements that looked like they were made of stucco. We stopped at a Gothic front door, where a slender middle-aged man in a shooting jacket was waiting.

As we moved into the lighted hall I got a good look at our host. He was very lean and brown, with the stoop in the shoulder that one gets from being constantly on horseback. He had untidy grizzled hair and a ragged beard, and a pair of pleasant, short-sighted brown eyes.

As we entered the brightly lit hall, I got a good look at our host. He was very thin and tan, with the stoop in his shoulders that comes from spending a lot of time on horseback. He had messy graying hair and a scruffy beard, along with a pair of friendly, short-sighted brown eyes.

“Welcome, my Colonel,” he said. “Is this the friend you spoke of?”

“Welcome, Colonel,” he said. “Is this the friend you mentioned?”

“This is the Dutchman,” said Stumm. “His name is Brandt. Brandt, you see before you Herr Gaudian.”

“This is the Dutchman,” Stumm said. “His name is Brandt. Brandt, this is Herr Gaudian.”

I knew the name, of course; there weren’t many in my profession that didn’t. He was one of the biggest railway engineers in the world, the man who had built the Baghdad and Syrian railways, and the new lines in German East. I suppose he was about the greatest living authority on tropical construction. He knew the East and he knew Africa; clearly I had been brought down for him to put me through my paces.

I knew the name, of course; there weren't many in my profession who didn't. He was one of the top railway engineers in the world, the guy who built the Baghdad and Syrian railways, along with the new lines in German East Africa. I guess he was the greatest living expert on tropical construction. He was familiar with the East and he knew Africa; it was clear I had been brought here for him to test my skills.

A blonde maidservant took me to my room, which had a bare polished floor, a stove, and windows that, unlike most of the German kind I had sampled, seemed made to open. When I had washed I descended to the hall, which was hung round with trophies of travel, like Dervish jibbahs and Masai shields and one or two good buffalo heads. Presently a bell was rung. Stumm appeared with his host, and we went in to supper.

A blonde maid took me to my room, which had a bare polished floor, a stove, and windows that, unlike most of the German ones I had encountered, actually opened. After I washed up, I went down to the hall, which was decorated with travel souvenirs, like Dervish jibbahs and Masai shields, along with a couple of impressive buffalo heads. Soon, a bell was rung. Stumm showed up with his host, and we went in for supper.

I was jolly hungry and would have made a good meal if I hadn’t constantly had to keep jogging my wits. The other two talked in German, and when a question was put to me Stumm translated. The first thing I had to do was to pretend I didn’t know German and look listlessly round the room while they were talking. The second was to miss not a word, for there lay my chance. The third was to be ready to answer questions at any moment, and to show in the answering that I had not followed the previous conversation. Likewise, I must not prove myself a fool in these answers, for I had to convince them that I was useful. It took some doing, and I felt like a witness in the box under a stiff cross-examination, or a man trying to play three games of chess at once.

I was really hungry and would have enjoyed a good meal if I hadn’t been busy trying to stay sharp. The other two were speaking in German, and whenever I was asked something, Stumm would translate. First, I had to pretend I didn’t understand German and just look around the room like I wasn’t paying attention while they talked. Second, I needed to catch every word because that was my opportunity. Third, I had to be ready to answer questions at any moment, making it clear in my responses that I hadn’t been following the earlier conversation. Also, I had to make sure my answers didn’t make me look dumb because I needed to show them I was valuable. It was quite a challenge, and I felt like a witness on the stand being grilled or someone trying to play three games of chess at the same time.

I heard Stumm telling Gaudian the gist of my plan. The engineer shook his head.

I heard Stumm telling Gaudian the main points of my plan. The engineer shook his head.

“Too late,” he said. “It should have been done at the beginning. We neglected Africa. You know the reason why.”

“Too late,” he said. “This should have been done from the start. We ignored Africa. You know why.”

Stumm laughed. “The von Einem! Perhaps, but her charm works well enough.”

Stumm laughed. “The von Einem! Maybe, but her charm definitely does the trick.”

Gaudian glanced towards me while I was busy with an orange salad. “I have much to tell you of that. But it can wait. Your friend is right in one thing. Uganda is a vital spot for the English, and a blow there will make their whole fabric shiver. But how can we strike? They have still the coast, and our supplies grow daily smaller.”

Gaudian looked at me while I was focused on making an orange salad. “I have a lot to share about that. But it can wait. Your friend is correct about one thing. Uganda is a crucial location for the English, and a blow there will shake their entire structure. But how can we attack? They still have the coast, and our supplies are getting less every day.”

“We can send no reinforcements, but have we used all the local resources? That is what I cannot satisfy myself about. Zimmerman says we have, but Tressler thinks differently, and now we have this fellow coming out of the void with a story which confirms my doubt. He seems to know his job. You try him.”

“We can't send any reinforcements, but have we used all the local resources? That's what I can't be sure about. Zimmerman says we have, but Tressler disagrees, and now we have this guy coming out of nowhere with a story that backs up my doubt. He seems to know what he’s doing. You should check him out.”

Thereupon Gaudian set about questioning me, and his questions were very thorough. I knew just enough and no more to get through, but I think I came out with credit. You see I have a capacious memory, and in my time I had met scores of hunters and pioneers and listened to their yarns, so I could pretend to knowledge of a place even when I hadn’t been there. Besides, I had once been on the point of undertaking a job up Tanganyika way, and I had got up that country-side pretty accurately.

Thereafter, Gaudian started questioning me, and his questions were quite detailed. I knew just enough and not more to get by, but I think I did well. You see, I have a good memory, and over time I had met many hunters and pioneers and heard their stories, so I could fake knowledge of a place even if I hadn't been there. Plus, I had almost taken a job in the Tanganyika area, and I had learned about that region pretty well.

“You say that with our help you can make trouble for the British on the three borders?” Gaudian asked at length.

“You're saying that with our help you can cause problems for the British at the three borders?” Gaudian asked after a pause.

“I can spread the fire if some one else will kindle it,” I said.

“I can spread the fire if someone else will start it,” I said.

“But there are thousands of tribes with no affinities.”

“But there are thousands of tribes with no connections.”

“They are all African. You can bear me out. All African peoples are alike in one thing—they can go mad, and the madness of one infects the others. The English know this well enough.”

“They're all African. You can back me up on this. All African peoples share one thing—they can go crazy, and the insanity of one spreads to the others. The English are well aware of this.”

“Where would you start the fire?” he asked.

“Where would you start the fire?” he asked.

“Where the fuel is dryest. Up in the North among the Mussulman peoples. But there you must help me. I know nothing about Islam, and I gather that you do.”

"Where the fuel is driest. Up in the North among the Muslim peoples. But you have to help me there. I don’t know anything about Islam, and I hear that you do."

“Why?” he asked.

“Why?” he asked.

“Because of what you have done already,” I answered.

“Because of what you’ve already done,” I answered.

Stumm had translated all this time, and had given the sense of my words very fairly. But with my last answer he took liberties. What he gave was: “Because the Dutchman thinks that we have some big card in dealing with the Moslem world.” Then, lowering his voice and raising his eyebrows, he said some word like “Ühnmantl”.

Stumm had been translating all this time and had captured the meaning of my words quite well. But with my last response, he took some liberties. What he suggested was: “Because the Dutchman thinks we have some big advantage in dealing with the Muslim world.” Then, lowering his voice and raising his eyebrows, he said something like “Ühnmantl.”

The other looked with a quick glance of apprehension at me. “We had better continue our talk in private, Herr Colonel,” he said. “If Herr Brandt will forgive us, we will leave him for a little to entertain himself.” He pushed the cigar-box towards me and the two got up and left the room.

The other person shot me a quick, worried look. “We should continue our conversation in private, Colonel,” he said. “If Brandt doesn’t mind, we’ll leave him here to keep himself occupied.” He nudged the cigar box towards me, and then the two of them got up and left the room.

I pulled my chair up to the stove, and would have liked to drop off to sleep. The tension of the talk at supper had made me very tired. I was accepted by these men for exactly what I professed to be. Stumm might suspect me of being a rascal, but it was a Dutch rascal. But all the same I was skating on thin ice. I could not sink myself utterly in the part, for if I did I would get no good out of being there. I had to keep my wits going all the time, and join the appearance and manners of a backveld Boer with the mentality of a British intelligence-officer. Any moment the two parts might clash and I would be faced with the most alert and deadly suspicion.

I pulled my chair up to the stove and felt ready to fall asleep. The conversation at dinner had really worn me out. These guys accepted me for exactly who I claimed to be. Stumm might think I'm a trickster, but at least it’s a Dutch trickster. Still, I was walking on thin ice. I couldn't completely dive into the role, because if I did, I wouldn’t benefit from being there at all. I had to stay sharp all the time, blending the appearance and mannerisms of a rural Boer with the mindset of a British intelligence officer. At any moment, the two sides could collide, and I’d find myself facing intense and deadly suspicion.

There would be no mercy from Stumm. That large man was beginning to fascinate me, even though I hated him. Gaudian was clearly a good fellow, a white man and a gentleman. I could have worked with him for he belonged to my own totem. But the other was an incarnation of all that makes Germany detested, and yet he wasn’t altogether the ordinary German, and I couldn’t help admiring him. I noticed he neither smoked nor drank. His grossness was apparently not in the way of fleshly appetites. Cruelty, from all I had heard of him in German South West, was his hobby; but there were other things in him, some of them good, and he had that kind of crazy patriotism which becomes a religion. I wondered why he had not some high command in the field, for he had had the name of a good soldier. But probably he was a big man in his own line, whatever it was, for the Under-Secretary fellow had talked small in his presence, and so great a man as Gaudian clearly respected him. There must be no lack of brains inside that funny pyramidal head.

There would be no mercy from Stumm. That big guy was starting to fascinate me, even though I hated him. Gaudian was clearly a decent person, a white guy and a gentleman. I could have worked with him since he was part of my own group. But Stumm represented everything that makes Germany disliked, and yet he wasn’t exactly your average German, and I couldn’t help but admire him. I noticed he neither smoked nor drank. His crudeness didn’t seem to come from physical desires. Cruelty, from everything I had heard about him in German South West, was his thing; but there were other sides to him, some of them good, and he had that kind of wild patriotism that turns into a religion. I wondered why he hadn’t received a high command in the field, since he had the reputation of being a good soldier. But he was probably a big shot in his own right, whatever that was, because the Under-Secretary guy had talked small around him, and such a prominent person like Gaudian clearly respected him. There had to be some serious brains in that odd pyramidal head of his.

As I sat beside the stove I was casting back to think if I had got the slightest clue to my real job. There seemed to be nothing so far. Stumm had talked of a von Einem woman who was interested in his department, perhaps the same woman as the Hilda he had mentioned the day before to the Under-Secretary. There was not much in that. She was probably some minister’s or ambassador’s wife who had a finger in high politics. If I could have caught the word Stumm had whispered to Gaudian which made him start and look askance at me! But I had only heard a gurgle of something like “Ühnmantl”, which wasn’t any German word that I knew.

As I sat next to the stove, I was trying to remember if I had picked up even the slightest hint about my real job. So far, there didn’t seem to be anything. Stumm had mentioned a von Einem woman who was interested in his department, possibly the same Hilda he had talked about the day before with the Under-Secretary. That didn’t add up to much. She was probably just some minister’s or ambassador’s wife involved in high politics. If only I could have caught the word Stumm had whispered to Gaudian that made him react and glance at me suspiciously! But all I heard was a muffled sound like “Ühnmantl,” which isn’t a German word I recognized.

The heat put me into a half-doze and I began dreamily to wonder what other people were doing. Where had Blenkiron been posting to in that train, and what was he up to at this moment? He had been hobnobbing with ambassadors and swells—I wondered if he had found out anything. What was Peter doing? I fervently hoped he was behaving himself, for I doubted if Peter had really tumbled to the delicacy of our job. Where was Sandy, too? As like as not bucketing in the hold of some Greek coaster in the Aegean. Then I thought of my battalion somewhere on the line between Hulluch and La Bassee, hammering at the Boche, while I was five hundred miles or so inside the Boche frontier.

The heat made me doze off a bit, and I started to daydream about what other people were up to. Where had Blenkiron been headed on that train, and what was he doing right now? He had been mingling with ambassadors and important people—I wondered if he had discovered anything. What about Peter? I really hoped he was acting responsibly, because I doubted Peter understood the sensitivity of our mission. And where was Sandy, too? Most likely stuck in the hold of some Greek freighter in the Aegean. Then I thought about my battalion somewhere along the front line between Hulluch and La Bassee, fighting the Germans, while I was about five hundred miles inside enemy territory.

It was a comic reflection, so comic that it woke me up. After trying in vain to find a way of stoking that stove, for it was a cold night, I got up and walked about the room. There were portraits of two decent old fellows, probably Gaudian’s parents. There were enlarged photographs, too, of engineering works, and a good picture of Bismarck. And close to the stove there was a case of maps mounted on rollers.

It was such a funny sight that it woke me up. After struggling to figure out how to light the stove on a chilly night, I got up and started pacing the room. There were portraits of two respectable old men, likely Gaudian’s parents. There were also large photos of engineering projects and a nice picture of Bismarck. And next to the stove, there was a case of maps mounted on rollers.

I pulled out one at random. It was a geological map of Germany, and with some trouble I found out where I was. I was an enormous distance from my goal and moreover I was clean off the road to the East. To go there I must first go to Bavaria and then into Austria. I noticed the Danube flowing eastwards and remembered that that was one way to Constantinople.

I randomly picked one out. It was a geological map of Germany, and after some effort, I figured out where I was. I was really far from my destination, and I was completely off the road to the East. To get there, I had to first head to Bavaria and then into Austria. I saw the Danube flowing east and remembered that was one route to Constantinople.

Then I tried another map. This one covered a big area, all Europe from the Rhine and as far east as Persia. I guessed that it was meant to show the Baghdad railway and the through routes from Germany to Mesopotamia. There were markings on it; and, as I looked closer, I saw that there were dates scribbled in blue pencil, as if to denote the stages of a journey. The dates began in Europe, and continued right on into Asia Minor and then south to Syria.

Then I tried another map. This one covered a large area, all of Europe from the Rhine and as far east as Persia. I figured it was meant to show the Baghdad railway and the routes from Germany to Mesopotamia. There were markings on it; and, as I looked closer, I noticed that there were dates scribbled in blue pencil, as if to indicate the stages of a journey. The dates started in Europe and continued all the way into Asia Minor and then south to Syria.

For a moment my heart jumped, for I thought I had fallen by accident on the clue I wanted. But I never got that map examined. I heard footsteps in the corridor, and very gently I let the map roll up and turned away. When the door opened I was bending over the stove trying to get a light for my pipe.

For a moment, my heart raced because I thought I had stumbled upon the clue I was looking for. But I never got that map checked out. I heard footsteps in the hallway, and I quietly rolled the map up and turned away. When the door opened, I was leaning over the stove trying to get a light for my pipe.

It was Gaudian, to bid me join him and Stumm in his study.

It was Gaudian to ask me to join him and Stumm in his study.

On our way there he put a kindly hand on my shoulder. I think he thought I was bullied by Stumm and wanted to tell me that he was my friend, and he had no other language than a pat on the back.

On our way there, he placed a gentle hand on my shoulder. I think he believed I was being bullied by Stumm and wanted to reassure me that he was my friend, and his only way of communicating that was with a comforting pat on the back.

The soldier was in his old position with his elbows on the mantelpiece and his formidable great jaw stuck out.

The soldier was back in his usual spot, leaning on the mantelpiece with his strong jaw jutting out.

“Listen to me,” he said. “Herr Gaudian and I are inclined to make use of you. You may be a charlatan, in which case you will be in the devil of a mess and have yourself to thank for it. If you are a rogue you will have little scope for roguery. We will see to that. If you are a fool, you will yourself suffer for it. But if you are a good man, you will have a fair chance, and if you succeed we will not forget it. Tomorrow I go home and you will come with me and get your orders.”

“Listen to me,” he said. “Herr Gaudian and I are looking to use your skills. You might be a fraud, in which case you’ll be in big trouble and it’ll be your own fault. If you’re a con artist, you won’t have much opportunity for that. We’ll take care of that. If you’re a fool, you’ll pay the price for it. But if you’re a good person, you’ll have a real chance, and if you succeed, we won’t forget it. Tomorrow, I’m going home and you’ll come with me to get your instructions.”

I made shift to stand at attention and salute.

I managed to stand at attention and salute.

Gaudian spoke in a pleasant voice, as if he wanted to atone for Stumm’s imperiousness. “We are men who love our Fatherland, Herr Brandt,” he said. “You are not of that Fatherland, but at least you hate its enemies. Therefore we are allies, and trust each other like allies. Our victory is ordained by God, and we are none of us more than His instruments.”

Gaudian spoke in a friendly tone, as if he wanted to make up for Stumm’s arrogance. “We are men who love our country, Herr Brandt,” he said. “You may not be from that country, but at least you hate its enemies. So we are allies, and we should trust each other like allies. Our victory is destined by God, and we are all just His instruments.”

Stumm translated in a sentence, and his voice was quite solemn. He held up his right hand and so did Gaudian, like a man taking an oath or a parson blessing his congregation.

Stumm translated in a single sentence, and his voice was very serious. He raised his right hand, and so did Gaudian, like someone swearing an oath or a pastor blessing his congregation.

Then I realized something of the might of Germany. She produced good and bad, cads and gentlemen, but she could put a bit of the fanatic into them all.

Then I realized something about the power of Germany. She produced both good and bad people, scoundrels and gentlemen, but she could instill a bit of fanaticism in them all.

CHAPTER VI.
The Indiscretions of the Same

I was standing stark naked next morning in that icy bedroom, trying to bathe in about a quart of water, when Stumm entered. He strode up to me and stared me in the face. I was half a head shorter than him to begin with, and a man does not feel his stoutest when he has no clothes, so he had the pull on me every way.

I was standing completely naked the next morning in that cold bedroom, trying to wash with about a quart of water, when Stumm came in. He walked up to me and looked me directly in the face. I was half a head shorter than him to start with, and a guy doesn’t feel his strongest without clothes, so he had the advantage over me in every way.

“I have reason to believe that you are a liar,” he growled.

“I have a good reason to think that you’re lying,” he growled.

I pulled the bed-cover round me, for I was shivering with cold, and the German idea of a towel is a pocket-handkerchief. I own I was in a pretty blue funk.

I wrapped the blanket around me because I was shivering from the cold, and in Germany, a towel feels more like a pocket handkerchief. I admit I was feeling pretty anxious.

“A liar!” he repeated. “You and that swine Pienaar.”

“A liar!” he repeated. “You and that pig Pienaar.”

With my best effort at surliness I asked what we had done.

With my best attempt at being grumpy, I asked what we had done.

“You lied, because you said you know no German. Apparently your friend knows enough to talk treason and blasphemy.”

“You lied because you said you didn’t know any German. Apparently, your friend knows enough to talk about treason and blasphemy.”

This gave me back some heart.

This lifted my spirits a bit.

“I told you I knew a dozen words. But I told you Peter could talk it a bit. I told you that yesterday at the station.” Fervently I blessed my luck for that casual remark.

“I told you I knew a dozen words. But I mentioned that Peter could speak it a bit. I told you that yesterday at the station.” I was really grateful for that offhand comment.

He evidently remembered, for his tone became a trifle more civil.

He clearly remembered, because his tone became a bit more polite.

“You are a precious pair. If one of you is a scoundrel, why not the other?”

“You're a valuable duo. If one of you is a bad apple, why not the other?”

“I take no responsibility for Peter,” I said. I felt I was a cad in saying it, but that was the bargain we had made at the start. “I have known him for years as a great hunter and a brave man. I knew he fought well against the English. But more I cannot tell you. You have to judge him for yourself. What has he done?”

“I take no responsibility for Peter,” I said. I felt like a jerk for saying it, but that was the deal we made from the beginning. “I’ve known him for years as a great hunter and a brave man. I knew he fought well against the English. But I can’t tell you anything more. You need to judge him for yourself. What has he done?”

I was told, for Stumm had got it that morning on the telephone. While telling it he was kind enough to allow me to put on my trousers.

I was informed, because Stumm had received the news that morning over the phone. While he shared it, he was considerate enough to let me put on my pants.

It was just the sort of thing I might have foreseen. Peter, left alone, had become first bored and then reckless. He had persuaded the lieutenant to take him out to supper at a big Berlin restaurant. There, inspired by the lights and music—novel things for a backveld hunter—and no doubt bored stiff by his company, he had proceeded to get drunk. That had happened in my experience with Peter about once in every three years, and it always happened for the same reason. Peter, bored and solitary in a town, went on the spree. He had a head like a rock, but he got to the required condition by wild mixing. He was quite a gentleman in his cups, and not in the least violent, but he was apt to be very free with his tongue. And that was what occurred at the Franciscana.

It was exactly the kind of thing I could have predicted. Peter, left alone, got first bored and then reckless. He convinced the lieutenant to take him out for dinner at a big restaurant in Berlin. There, influenced by the lights and music—new experiences for a backwoods hunter—and probably bored out of his mind with his company, he ended up getting drunk. This had happened with Peter about once every three years in my experience, and it always occurred for the same reason. Peter, feeling bored and alone in a town, would go on a binge. He had a head like a rock, but he managed to get to the right state by mixing drinks wildly. He was quite a gentleman when he drank, not at all violent, but he could be very loose with his words. And that’s what happened at the Franciscana.

He had begun by insulting the Emperor, it seemed. He drank his health, but said he reminded him of a wart-hog, and thereby scarified the lieutenant’s soul. Then an officer—some tremendous swell at an adjoining table had objected to his talking so loud, and Peter had replied insolently in respectable German. After that things became mixed. There was some kind of a fight, during which Peter calumniated the German army and all its female ancestry. How he wasn’t shot or run through I can’t imagine, except that the lieutenant loudly proclaimed that he was a crazy Boer. Anyhow the upshot was that Peter was marched off to gaol, and I was left in a pretty pickle.

He had started by insulting the Emperor, it seemed. He raised a toast to him but then said he reminded him of a wart hog, which really upset the lieutenant. Then an officer—some big shot at a nearby table—objected to Peter talking so loudly, and Peter replied arrogantly in proper German. After that, things got chaotic. There was some sort of fight, during which Peter insulted the German army and all its female relatives. I can’t believe he wasn’t shot or stabbed, except that the lieutenant loudly declared he was a crazy Boer. Anyway, the bottom line was that Peter was taken off to jail, and I was left in quite a mess.

“I don’t believe a word of it,” I said firmly. I had most of my clothes on now and felt more courageous. “It is all a plot to get him into disgrace and draft him off to the front.”

“I don’t believe a word of it,” I said firmly. I had most of my clothes on now and felt more courageous. “It’s all a scheme to get him into trouble and send him off to the front.”

Stumm did not storm as I expected, but smiled.

Stumm didn’t explode with rage as I thought he would; instead, he smiled.

“That was always his destiny,” he said, “ever since I saw him. He was no use to us except as a man with a rifle. Cannon-fodder, nothing else. Do you imagine, you fool, that this great Empire in the thick of a world-war is going to trouble its head to lay snares for an ignorant traakhaar?”

"That was always his fate," he said, "ever since I laid eyes on him. He was useless to us except as a guy with a gun. Just cannon fodder, nothing more. Do you really think, you idiot, that this massive Empire, right in the middle of a world war, is going to bother with laying traps for an ignorant traakhaar?"

“I wash my hands of him,” I said. “If what you say of his folly is true I have no part in it. But he was my companion and I wish him well. What do you propose to do with him?”

“I’m done with him,” I said. “If what you say about his foolishness is true, I want nothing to do with it. But he was my friend, and I wish him well. What do you plan to do with him?”

“We will keep him under our eye,” he said, with a wicked twist of the mouth. “I have a notion that there is more at the back of this than appears. We will investigate the antecedents of Herr Pienaar. And you, too, my friend. On you also we have our eye.”

“We’ll keep an eye on him,” he said, grinning slyly. “I suspect there’s more to this than meets the eye. We’ll look into Herr Pienaar’s background. And you, my friend, we’re watching you too.”

I did the best thing I could have done, for what with anxiety and disgust I lost my temper.

I did the best thing I could have done, because with anxiety and disgust I lost my temper.

“Look here, Sir,” I cried, “I’ve had about enough of this. I came to Germany abominating the English and burning to strike a blow for you. But you haven’t given me much cause to love you. For the last two days I’ve had nothing from you but suspicion and insult. The only decent man I’ve met is Herr Gaudian. It’s because I believe that there are many in Germany like him that I’m prepared to go on with this business and do the best I can. But, by God, I wouldn’t raise my little finger for your sake.”

“Listen, Sir,” I shouted, “I’ve had enough of this. I came to Germany hating the English and eager to fight for you. But you haven’t given me much reason to like you. For the past two days, all I’ve received from you is suspicion and insults. The only decent person I’ve met is Herr Gaudian. It’s because I believe there are many people in Germany like him that I’m willing to continue with this and do my best. But, seriously, I wouldn’t lift a finger for you.”

He looked at me very steadily for a minute. “That sounds like honesty,” he said at last in a civil voice. “You had better come down and get your coffee.”

He stared at me for a minute. “That sounds honest,” he finally said in a polite tone. “You should come down and get your coffee.”

I was safe for the moment but in very low spirits. What on earth would happen to poor old Peter? I could do nothing even if I wanted, and, besides, my first duty was to my mission. I had made this very clear to him at Lisbon and he had agreed, but all the same it was a beastly reflection. Here was that ancient worthy left to the tender mercies of the people he most detested on earth. My only comfort was that they couldn’t do very much with him. If they sent him to the front, which was the worst they could do, he would escape, for I would have backed him to get through any mortal lines. It wasn’t much fun for me either. Only when I was to be deprived of it did I realize how much his company had meant to me. I was absolutely alone now, and I didn’t like it. I seemed to have about as much chance of joining Blenkiron and Sandy as of flying to the moon.

I was safe for now, but I felt really down. What would happen to poor old Peter? I couldn’t do anything, even if I wanted to, and besides, my main responsibility was to my mission. I had made this clear to him in Lisbon, and he had agreed, but it still felt terrible to think about. Here was this old friend left to the mercy of the people he hated the most. My only comfort was that they couldn’t do much to him. If they sent him to the front, which was the worst they could do, he would escape; I was confident he could get through any enemy lines. It wasn’t much fun for me either. Only when I was about to lose it did I realize how much his company meant to me. I was completely alone now, and I didn’t like it. It felt like I had about as much chance of joining Blenkiron and Sandy as I did of flying to the moon.

After breakfast I was told to get ready. When I asked where I was going Stumm advised me to mind my own business, but I remembered that last night he had talked of taking me home with him and giving me my orders. I wondered where his home was.

After breakfast, I was told to get ready. When I asked where I was going, Stumm told me to mind my own business, but I remembered that last night he had mentioned taking me home with him and giving me my instructions. I wondered where his home was.

Gaudian patted me on the back when we started and wrung my hand. He was a capital good fellow, and it made me feel sick to think that I was humbugging him. We got into the same big grey car, with Stumm’s servant sitting beside the chauffeur. It was a morning of hard frost, the bare fields were white with rime, and the fir-trees powdered like a wedding-cake. We took a different road from the night before, and after a run of half a dozen miles came to a little town with a big railway station. It was a junction on some main line, and after five minutes’ waiting we found our train. Once again we were alone in the carriage. Stumm must have had some colossal graft, for the train was crowded.

Gaudian patted me on the back as we began and shook my hand. He was a really good guy, and it made me feel terrible to think I was deceiving him. We got into the same big gray car, with Stumm’s servant sitting next to the driver. It was a frosty morning, the bare fields were covered in frost, and the fir trees looked like they were dusted with powdered sugar. We took a different route from the night before, and after driving about six miles, we reached a small town with a large train station. It was a junction on a main line, and after waiting five minutes, we found our train. Once again, we were alone in the carriage. Stumm must have had some major connections because the train was packed.

I had another three hours of complete boredom. I dared not smoke, and could do nothing but stare out of the window. We soon got into hilly country, where a good deal of snow was lying. It was the 23rd day of December, and even in war time one had a sort of feel of Christmas. You could see girls carrying evergreens, and when we stopped at a station the soldiers on leave had all the air of holiday making. The middle of Germany was a cheerier place than Berlin or the western parts. I liked the look of the old peasants, and the women in their neat Sunday best, but I noticed, too, how pinched they were. Here in the country, where no neutral tourists came, there was not the same stage-management as in the capital.

I had another three hours of total boredom. I didn't dare smoke and could do nothing but stare out the window. We soon entered the hilly region, where there was a lot of snow. It was December 23rd, and even during the war, you could feel a hint of Christmas. You could see girls carrying evergreen branches, and when we stopped at a station, the soldiers on leave seemed like they were celebrating a holiday. The middle of Germany felt happier than Berlin or the western regions. I liked the look of the old peasant folks and the women in their nice Sunday outfits, but I also noticed how thin and worn they looked. Here in the countryside, where no neutral tourists came, there wasn't the same showmanship as in the capital.

Stumm made an attempt to talk to me on the journey. I could see his aim. Before this he had cross-examined me, but now he wanted to draw me into ordinary conversation. He had no notion how to do it. He was either peremptory and provocative, like a drill-sergeant, or so obviously diplomatic that any fool would have been put on his guard. That is the weakness of the German. He has no gift for laying himself alongside different types of men. He is such a hard-shell being that he cannot put out feelers to his kind. He may have plenty of brains, as Stumm had, but he has the poorest notion of psychology of any of God’s creatures. In Germany only the Jew can get outside himself, and that is why, if you look into the matter, you will find that the Jew is at the back of most German enterprises.

Stumm tried to talk to me during the trip. I could see what he was after. Previously, he had grilled me with questions, but now he wanted to engage me in casual conversation. He had no idea how to go about it. He was either bossy and confrontational, like a drill sergeant, or so obviously trying to be diplomatic that anyone would have noticed. That’s the flaw of the German. They struggle to connect with different types of people. They’re so rigid that they can't reach out to others. They might have a lot of intelligence, like Stumm did, but they have the least understanding of human psychology among all of God’s creatures. In Germany, only Jews can step outside of themselves, and that’s why, if you look closely, you’ll find that Jews are behind most German initiatives.

After midday we stopped at a station for luncheon. We had a very good meal in the restaurant, and when we were finishing two officers entered. Stumm got up and saluted and went aside to talk to them. Then he came back and made me follow him to a waiting-room, where he told me to stay till he fetched me. I noticed that he called a porter and had the door locked when he went out.

After noon, we stopped at a station for lunch. We had a really good meal at the restaurant, and just as we were finishing, two officers walked in. Stumm stood up, saluted, and went over to talk to them. Then he came back and asked me to follow him to a waiting room, where he told me to stay until he came back for me. I noticed he called a porter and had the door locked when he left.

It was a chilly place with no fire, and I kicked my heels there for twenty minutes. I was living by the hour now, and did not trouble to worry about this strange behaviour. There was a volume of time-tables on a shelf, and I turned the pages idly till I struck a big railway map. Then it occurred to me to find out where we were going. I had heard Stumm take my ticket for a place called Schwandorf, and after a lot of searching I found it. It was away south in Bavaria, and so far as I could make out less than fifty miles from the Danube. That cheered me enormously. If Stumm lived there he would most likely start me off on my travels by the railway which I saw running to Vienna and then on to the East. It looked as if I might get to Constantinople after all. But I feared it would be a useless achievement, for what could I do when I got there? I was being hustled out of Germany without picking up the slenderest clue.

It was a chilly place with no fire, and I kicked my heels there for twenty minutes. I was living hour by hour now and didn’t bother to worry about this strange behavior. There was a volume of time-tables on a shelf, and I flipped through the pages absently until I came across a big railway map. Then it occurred to me to find out where we were going. I had heard Stumm take my ticket for a place called Schwandorf, and after a lot of searching, I found it. It was way south in Bavaria, and as far as I could tell, it was less than fifty miles from the Danube. That cheered me up a lot. If Stumm lived there, he would probably start me off on my travels by the railway I saw running to Vienna and then on to the East. It looked like I might get to Constantinople after all. But I worried it would be a pointless achievement, because what could I do when I got there? I was being pushed out of Germany without picking up the slightest clue.

The door opened and Stumm entered. He seemed to have got bigger in the interval and to carry his head higher. There was a proud light, too, in his eye.

The door opened and Stumm walked in. He seemed to have grown bigger in the meantime and held his head higher. There was a proud glint in his eye as well.

“Brandt,” he said, “you are about to receive the greatest privilege that ever fell to one of your race. His Imperial Majesty is passing through here, and has halted for a few minutes. He has done me the honour to receive me, and when he heard my story he expressed a wish to see you. You will follow me to his presence. Do not be afraid. The All-Highest is merciful and gracious. Answer his questions like a man.”

“Brandt,” he said, “you’re about to receive the greatest honor anyone from your background has ever had. His Imperial Majesty is passing through here and has stopped for a few minutes. He’s honored me by seeing me, and when he heard my story, he asked to meet you. You need to come with me to see him. Don’t be scared. The All-Highest is kind and compassionate. Answer his questions confidently.”

I followed him with a quickened pulse. Here was a bit of luck I had never dreamed of. At the far side of the station a train had drawn up, a train consisting of three big coaches, chocolate-coloured and picked out with gold. On the platform beside it stood a small group of officers, tall men in long grey-blue cloaks. They seemed to be mostly elderly, and one or two of the faces I thought I remembered from photographs in the picture papers.

I followed him with my heart racing. This was a stroke of luck I had never imagined. At the end of the station, a train had arrived, made up of three large coaches, brown with gold accents. On the platform next to it stood a small group of officers, tall men wearing long gray-blue cloaks. They appeared to be mostly older, and I thought I recognized a couple of the faces from pictures in the tabloids.

As we approached they drew apart, and left us face to face with one man. He was a little below middle height, and all muffled in a thick coat with a fur collar. He wore a silver helmet with an eagle atop of it, and kept his left hand resting on his sword. Below the helmet was a face the colour of grey paper, from which shone curious sombre restless eyes with dark pouches beneath them. There was no fear of my mistaking him. These were the features which, since Napoleon, have been best known to the world.

As we got closer, they stepped aside and left us face to face with one man. He was a bit shorter than average, bundled up in a thick coat with a fur collar. He wore a silver helmet with an eagle on top and kept his left hand resting on his sword. Beneath the helmet was a face the color of gray paper, with strange, dark, restless eyes and dark bags under them. There was no chance I could mistake him. These were the features that have been most recognized around the world since Napoleon.

I stood as stiff as a ramrod and saluted. I was perfectly cool and most desperately interested. For such a moment I would have gone through fire and water.

I stood as straight as a rod and saluted. I was completely calm but extremely focused. For a moment like this, I would have gone through anything.

“Majesty, this is the Dutchman I spoke of,” I heard Stumm say.

“Your Majesty, this is the Dutchman I was talking about,” I heard Stumm say.

“What language does he speak?” the Emperor asked.

“What language does he speak?” the Emperor asked.

“Dutch,” was the reply; “but being a South African he also speaks English.”

“Dutch,” was the reply; “but since he’s South African, he also speaks English.”

A spasm of pain seemed to flit over the face before me. Then he addressed me in English.

A spasm of pain appeared on the face in front of me. Then he spoke to me in English.

“You have come from a land which will yet be our ally to offer your sword to our service? I accept the gift and hail it as a good omen. I would have given your race its freedom, but there were fools and traitors among you who misjudged me. But that freedom I shall yet give you in spite of yourselves. Are there many like you in your country?”

“You've come from a land that will eventually be our ally to offer your sword to our service? I accept the gift and see it as a good sign. I would have granted your people their freedom, but there were fools and traitors among you who misunderstood me. But I will still give you that freedom, regardless of your actions. Are there many like you in your country?”

“There are thousands, sire,” I said, lying cheerfully. “I am one of many who think that my race’s life lies in your victory. And I think that that victory must be won not in Europe alone. In South Africa for the moment there is no chance, so we look to other parts of the continent. You will win in Europe. You have won in the East, and it now remains to strike the English where they cannot fend the blow. If we take Uganda, Egypt will fall. By your permission I go there to make trouble for your enemies.”

“There are thousands, sir,” I said, smiling confidently. “I’m one of many who believe that my people's future depends on your victory. And I think that victory can’t be won in Europe alone. Right now, there’s no opportunity in South Africa, so we look to other parts of the continent. You will win in Europe. You’ve already won in the East, and now it’s time to hit the English where they’re vulnerable. If we take Uganda, Egypt will collapse. With your permission, I’m going there to create problems for your enemies.”

A flicker of a smile passed over the worn face. It was the face of one who slept little and whose thoughts rode him like a nightmare. “That is well,” he said. “Some Englishman once said that he would call in the New World to redress the balance of the Old. We Germans will summon the whole earth to suppress the infamies of England. Serve us well, and you will not be forgotten.”

A brief smile crossed the tired face. It belonged to someone who hardly slept and whose thoughts tormented him like a nightmare. “That’s good,” he said. “An Englishman once claimed he would call upon the New World to correct the Old World’s wrongs. We Germans will rally the entire world to put an end to England’s atrocities. Serve us well, and you won’t be forgotten.”

Then he suddenly asked: “Did you fight in the last South African War?”

Then he suddenly asked, “Did you fight in the last South African War?”

“Yes, Sir,” I said. “I was in the commando of that Smuts who has now been bought by England.”

“Yes, Sir,” I said. “I was in the commando of that Smuts who has now been bought by England.”

“What were your countrymen’s losses?” he asked eagerly.

“What did your countrymen lose?” he asked eagerly.

I did not know, but I hazarded a guess. “In the field some twenty thousand. But many more by sickness and in the accursed prison-camps of the English.”

I didn't know, but I took a guess. “In the field, about twenty thousand. But many more from illness and in the cursed prison camps of the English.”

Again a spasm of pain crossed his face.

Again, a wave of pain crossed his face.

“Twenty thousand,” he repeated huskily. “A mere handful. Today we lose as many in a skirmish in the Polish marshes.”

“Twenty thousand,” he said hoarsely. “Just a small number. Today we lose that many in a skirmish in the Polish marshes.”

Then he broke out fiercely.

Then he exploded with intensity.

“I did not seek the war ... It was forced on me ... I laboured for peace ... The blood of millions is on the heads of England and Russia, but England most of all. God will yet avenge it. He that takes the sword will perish by the sword. Mine was forced from the scabbard in self-defence, and I am guiltless. Do they know that among your people?”

“I didn’t want the war ... It was thrust upon me ... I worked for peace ... The blood of millions is on the hands of England and Russia, but England bears the greatest burden. God will still bring justice for it. Those who live by the sword will die by the sword. Mine was drawn in self-defense, and I am not guilty. Do they understand that among your people?”

“All the world knows it, sire,” I said.

“All the world knows it, sir,” I said.

He gave his hand to Stumm and turned away. The last I saw of him was a figure moving like a sleep-walker, with no spring in his step, amid his tall suite. I felt that I was looking on at a far bigger tragedy than any I had seen in action. Here was one that had loosed Hell, and the furies of Hell had got hold of him. He was no common man, for in his presence I felt an attraction which was not merely the mastery of one used to command. That would not have impressed me, for I had never owned a master. But here was a human being who, unlike Stumm and his kind, had the power of laying himself alongside other men. That was the irony of it. Stumm would not have cared a tinker’s curse for all the massacres in history. But this man, the chief of a nation of Stumms, paid the price in war for the gifts that had made him successful in peace. He had imagination and nerves, and the one was white hot and the others were quivering. I would not have been in his shoes for the throne of the Universe ...

He shook hands with Stumm and turned away. The last I saw of him was a figure moving like a sleepwalker, lacking any energy in his stride, surrounded by his tall entourage. I felt like I was witnessing a much larger tragedy than any I had seen unfold. Here was someone who had unleashed Hell, and the furies of Hell had taken hold of him. He was no ordinary man; in his presence, I felt a pull that was more than just the authority of someone used to commanding others. That wouldn’t have affected me, since I had never had a master. But this was a human being who, unlike Stumm and his type, had the ability to connect with other people. That was the irony of it. Stumm wouldn’t have cared less about all the massacres in history. But this man, the leader of a nation full of Stumms, bore the cost of war for the qualities that had brought him success in peacetime. He had creativity and sensitivity, and one was fiery while the other was trembling. I wouldn’t want to be in his position for all the power in the Universe...

All afternoon we sped southward, mostly in a country of hills and wooded valleys. Stumm, for him, was very pleasant. His imperial master must have been gracious to him, and he passed a bit of it on to me. But he was anxious to see that I had got the right impression.

All afternoon we rushed south, mostly through a land of hills and forested valleys. Stumm seemed to enjoy it a lot. His emperor must have treated him well, and he shared a bit of that with me. But he was eager to make sure I got the right impression.

“The All-Highest is merciful, as I told you,” he said.

“The All-Highest is merciful, as I mentioned before,” he said.

I agreed with him.

I agree with him.

“Mercy is the prerogative of kings,” he said sententiously, “but for us lesser folks it is a trimming we can well do without.”

“Mercy is a privilege of kings,” he said thoughtfully, “but for us ordinary people, it's something we can easily do without.”

I nodded my approval.

I gave a thumbs-up.

“I am not merciful,” he went on, as if I needed telling that. “If any man stands in my way I trample the life out of him. That is the German fashion. That is what has made us great. We do not make war with lavender gloves and fine phrases, but with hard steel and hard brains. We Germans will cure the green-sickness of the world. The nations rise against us. Pouf! They are soft flesh, and flesh cannot resist iron. The shining ploughshare will cut its way through acres of mud.”

“I’m not merciful,” he continued, as if I needed that explained. “If anyone stands in my way, I’ll crush them. That’s how Germans operate. That’s what has made us strong. We don’t go to war with kid gloves and polite words, but with tough steel and sharp minds. We Germans will heal the world’s sickness. Other nations rise up against us. Ha! They’re soft and weak, and flesh can’t stand up to iron. The gleaming plow will carve its way through fields of mud.”

I hastened to add that these were also my opinions.

I quickly added that these were also my views.

“What the hell do your opinions matter? You are a thick-headed boor of the veld ... Not but what,” he added, “there is metal in you slow Dutchmen once we Germans have had the forging of it!”

“What do your opinions even matter? You’re a thick-headed idiot from the veld ... Not that,” he added, “there isn’t some strength in you slow Dutchmen once we Germans have had a chance to shape it!”

The winter evening closed in, and I saw that we had come out of the hills and were in flat country. Sometimes a big sweep of river showed, and, looking out at one station I saw a funny church with a thing like an onion on top of its spire. It might almost have been a mosque, judging from the pictures I remembered of mosques. I wished to heaven I had given geography more attention in my time.

The winter evening came on, and I realized we had come down from the hills into flat land. Occasionally, a large stretch of river came into view, and at one stop, I spotted a quirky church with something that looked like an onion on top of its spire. It could almost be mistaken for a mosque, based on the pictures I remembered of mosques. I seriously wished I had paid more attention to geography back then.

Presently we stopped, and Stumm led the way out. The train must have been specially halted for him, for it was a one-horse little place whose name I could not make out. The station-master was waiting, bowing and saluting, and outside was a motor-car with big head-lights. Next minute we were sliding through dark woods where the snow lay far deeper than in the north. There was a mild frost in the air, and the tyres slipped and skidded at the corners.

Presently, we came to a stop, and Stumm took the lead to exit. The train must have been stopped just for him, as it was in a tiny place whose name I couldn’t decipher. The station master was waiting, bowing and saluting, and outside was a car with bright headlights. The next moment, we were gliding through dark woods where the snow was much deeper than in the north. There was a slight frost in the air, and the tires slipped and skidded around the corners.

We hadn’t far to go. We climbed a little hill and on the top of it stopped at the door of a big black castle. It looked enormous in the winter night, with not a light showing anywhere on its front. The door was opened by an old fellow who took a long time about it and got well cursed for his slowness. Inside the place was very noble and ancient. Stumm switched on the electric light, and there was a great hall with black tarnished portraits of men and women in old-fashioned clothes, and mighty horns of deer on the walls.

We didn't have far to go. We walked up a small hill and at the top, we stopped at the door of a large black castle. It looked huge in the winter night, with no lights visible on its front. An old man slowly opened the door, and he got shouted at for taking so long. Inside, the place was grand and old. Stumm turned on the electric light, revealing a large hall filled with dark, tarnished portraits of men and women dressed in outdated clothing, along with impressive deer horns on the walls.

There seemed to be no superfluity of servants. The old fellow said that food was ready, and without more ado we went into the dining-room—another vast chamber with rough stone walls above the panelling—and found some cold meats on the table beside a big fire. The servant presently brought in a ham omelette, and on that and the cold stuff we dined. I remember there was nothing to drink but water. It puzzled me how Stumm kept his great body going on the very moderate amount of food he ate. He was the type you expect to swill beer by the bucket and put away a pie in a sitting.

There didn't seem to be an excess of servants. The old guy mentioned that the food was ready, and without hesitation, we walked into the dining room—another huge room with rough stone walls above the paneling—and found some cold meats on the table next to a big fire. The servant soon brought in a ham omelette, and we had that along with the cold food for dinner. I remember there was nothing to drink except water. I found it strange how Stumm managed to keep his large body going on such a modest amount of food. He looked like the type who would down beer by the bucket and gobble up a pie in one sitting.

When we had finished, he rang for the old man and told him that we should be in the study for the rest of the evening. “You can lock up and go to bed when you like,” he said, “but see you have coffee ready at seven sharp in the morning.”

When we were done, he called for the old man and said that we would be in the study for the rest of the evening. “You can lock up and go to bed whenever you want,” he said, “but make sure you have coffee ready at seven sharp in the morning.”

Ever since I entered that house I had the uncomfortable feeling of being in a prison. Here was I alone in this great place with a fellow who could, and would, wring my neck if he wanted. Berlin and all the rest of it had seemed comparatively open country; I had felt that I could move freely and at the worst make a bolt for it. But here I was trapped, and I had to tell myself every minute that I was there as a friend and colleague. The fact is, I was afraid of Stumm, and I don’t mind admitting it. He was a new thing in my experience and I didn’t like it. If only he had drunk and guzzled a bit I should have been happier.

Ever since I walked into that house, I felt like I was in a prison. Here I was, alone in this big place with a guy who could easily snap my neck if he wanted to. Berlin and the surrounding area felt comparatively open; I thought I could move around freely and, at worst, make a run for it. But now I felt trapped, constantly reminding myself that I was there as a friend and colleague. The truth is, I was scared of Stumm, and I don’t mind admitting it. He was something new in my experience, and I didn’t like it. If only he had been drinking and partying a bit, I think I would have felt better.

We went up a staircase to a room at the end of a long corridor. Stumm locked the door behind him and laid the key on the table. That room took my breath away, it was so unexpected. In place of the grim bareness of downstairs here was a place all luxury and colour and light. It was very large, but low in the ceiling, and the walls were full of little recesses with statues in them. A thick grey carpet of velvet pile covered the floor, and the chairs were low and soft and upholstered like a lady’s boudoir. A pleasant fire burned on the hearth and there was a flavour of scent in the air, something like incense or burnt sandalwood. A French clock on the mantelpiece told me that it was ten minutes past eight. Everywhere on little tables and in cabinets was a profusion of knickknacks, and there was some beautiful embroidery framed on screens. At first sight you would have said it was a woman’s drawing-room.

We climbed a staircase to a room at the end of a long hallway. Stumm locked the door behind him and placed the key on the table. That room took my breath away; it was so unexpected. Instead of the bleak emptiness downstairs, here was a space filled with luxury, color, and light. It was very large but had a low ceiling, and the walls were lined with little niches holding statues. A thick gray velvet carpet covered the floor, and the chairs were low, soft, and upholstered like a lady’s lounge. A cozy fire crackled in the hearth, and there was a pleasant scent in the air, something like incense or burnt sandalwood. A French clock on the mantelpiece said it was ten minutes past eight. Scattered across little tables and in cabinets were numerous knickknacks, and there was some beautiful embroidery framed on screens. At first glance, you would have thought it was a woman’s drawing-room.

But it wasn’t. I soon saw the difference. There had never been a woman’s hand in that place. It was the room of a man who had a passion for frippery, who had a perverted taste for soft delicate things. It was the complement to his bluff brutality. I began to see the queer other side to my host, that evil side which gossip had spoken of as not unknown in the German army. The room seemed a horribly unwholesome place, and I was more than ever afraid of Stumm.

But it wasn’t. I soon noticed the difference. There had never been a woman’s touch in that place. It was the room of a man who had a passion for flashy things, who had a twisted taste for soft, delicate items. It was the counterpart to his rough brutality. I began to see the strange other side to my host, that dark side which rumors had mentioned as not uncommon in the German army. The room felt like a disturbingly unhealthy place, and I was more scared of Stumm than ever.

The hearthrug was a wonderful old Persian thing, all faint greens and pinks. As he stood on it he looked uncommonly like a bull in a china-shop. He seemed to bask in the comfort of it, and sniffed like a satisfied animal. Then he sat down at an escritoire, unlocked a drawer and took out some papers.

The hearthrug was a beautiful old Persian piece, with soft greens and pinks. Standing on it, he looked just like a bull in a china shop. He seemed to enjoy its comfort and sniffed contentedly like a happy animal. Then he sat down at a writing desk, unlocked a drawer, and pulled out some papers.

“We will now settle your business, friend Brandt,” he said. “You will go to Egypt and there take your orders from one whose name and address are in this envelope. This card,” and he lifted a square piece of grey pasteboard with a big stamp at the corner and some code words stencilled on it, “will be your passport. You will show it to the man you seek. Keep it jealously, and never use it save under orders or in the last necessity. It is your badge as an accredited agent of the German Crown.”

“We will now take care of your business, friend Brandt,” he said. “You will go to Egypt and there receive your instructions from someone whose name and address are in this envelope. This card,” and he held up a square piece of grey cardboard with a large stamp in the corner and some coded words on it, “will serve as your passport. You need to show it to the person you’re looking for. Keep it safe, and only use it when ordered or in case of absolute necessity. It is your identification as an official agent of the German Crown.”

I took the card and the envelope and put them in my pocket-book.

I took the card and the envelope and put them in my handbag.

“Where do I go after Egypt?” I asked.

“Where do I go after Egypt?” I asked.

“That remains to be seen. Probably you will go up the Blue Nile. Riza, the man you will meet, will direct you. Egypt is a nest of our agents who work peacefully under the nose of the English Secret Service.”

“That remains to be seen. You will probably travel up the Blue Nile. Riza, the man you will meet, will guide you. Egypt is full of our agents who operate quietly right under the nose of the English Secret Service.”

“I am willing,” I said. “But how do I reach Egypt?”

“I’m willing,” I said. “But how do I get to Egypt?”

“You will travel by Holland and London. Here is your route,” and he took a paper from his pocket. “Your passports are ready and will be given you at the frontier.”

“You will travel through Holland and London. Here’s your route,” and he pulled a paper from his pocket. “Your passports are ready and will be handed to you at the border.”

This was a pretty kettle of fish. I was to be packed off to Cairo by sea, which would take weeks, and God knows how I would get from Egypt to Constantinople. I saw all my plans falling to pieces about my ears, and just when I thought they were shaping nicely.

This was quite a situation. I was supposed to be sent off to Cairo by sea, which would take weeks, and who knows how I would get from Egypt to Constantinople. I watched all my plans crumble around me, just when I thought they were coming together.

Stumm must have interpreted the look on my face as fear.

Stumm must have seen the look on my face and thought I was scared.

“You have no cause to be afraid,” he said. “We have passed the word to the English police to look out for a suspicious South African named Brandt, one of Maritz’s rebels. It is not difficult to have that kind of a hint conveyed to the proper quarter. But the description will not be yours. Your name will be Van der Linden, a respectable Java merchant going home to his plantations after a visit to his native shores. You had better get your dossier by heart, but I guarantee you will be asked no questions. We manage these things well in Germany.”

“You don't need to be afraid,” he said. “We’ve informed the English police to watch for a suspicious South African named Brandt, one of Maritz’s rebels. It’s easy to pass that kind of tip along to the right people. But the description won’t be yours. Your name will be Van der Linden, a respectable Java merchant heading home to his plantations after a visit to his homeland. You should memorize your dossier, but I assure you, you won’t be asked any questions. We handle these things well in Germany.”

I kept my eyes on the fire, while I did some savage thinking. I knew they would not let me out of their sight till they saw me in Holland, and, once there, there would be no possibility of getting back. When I left this house I would have no chance of giving them the slip. And yet I was well on my way to the East, the Danube could not be fifty miles off, and that way ran the road to Constantinople. It was a fairly desperate position. If I tried to get away Stumm would prevent me, and the odds were that I would go to join Peter in some infernal prison-camp.

I kept my eyes on the fire while I did some intense thinking. I knew they wouldn’t take their eyes off me until they saw me in Holland, and once I was there, there would be no way to get back. When I left this house, I wouldn’t have a chance to slip away. Yet I was already on my way east; the Danube couldn’t be more than fifty miles away, and that route led to Constantinople. It was a pretty desperate situation. If I tried to escape, Stumm would stop me, and it was likely I’d end up joining Peter in some hellish prison camp.

Those moments were some of the worst I ever spent. I was absolutely and utterly baffled, like a rat in a trap. There seemed nothing for it but to go back to London and tell Sir Walter the game was up. And that was about as bitter as death.

Those moments were some of the worst I ever had. I was completely and totally confused, like a rat caught in a trap. There seemed to be no choice but to go back to London and tell Sir Walter that it was over. And that felt as bitter as death.

He saw my face and laughed. “Does your heart fail you, my little Dutchman? You funk the English? I will tell you one thing for your comfort. There is nothing in the world to be feared except me. Fail, and you have cause to shiver. Play me false and you had far better never have been born.”

He saw my face and laughed. “Is your heart racing, my little Dutchman? Are you scared of the English? Let me tell you something to ease your mind. The only thing in the world to be afraid of is me. If you mess up, you have reason to be afraid. Betray me, and you’d be better off never having been born.”

His ugly sneering face was close above mine. Then he put out his hands and gripped my shoulders as he had done the first afternoon.

His ugly, sneering face was hovering close to mine. Then he reached out his hands and grabbed my shoulders just like he did that first afternoon.

I forget if I mentioned that part of the damage I got at Loos was a shrapnel bullet low down at the back of my neck. The wound had healed well enough, but I had pains there on a cold day. His fingers found the place and it hurt like hell.

I can't remember if I mentioned that I got hurt at Loos when a shrapnel bullet hit me low at the back of my neck. The wound healed pretty well, but I still feel pain there on a cold day. His fingers found that spot, and it hurt like crazy.

There is a very narrow line between despair and black rage. I had about given up the game, but the sudden ache of my shoulders gave me purpose again. He must have seen the rage in my eyes, for his own became cruel.

There’s a thin line between despair and pure rage. I was almost ready to throw in the towel, but the sudden pain in my shoulders reignited my determination. He must have noticed the anger in my eyes because his turned cold.

“The weasel would like to bite,” he cried. “But the poor weasel has found its master. Stand still, vermin. Smile, look pleasant, or I will make pulp of you. Do you dare to frown at me?”

“The weasel wants to bite,” he shouted. “But the poor weasel has met its match. Stay still, pest. Smile, look nice, or I’ll crush you. Do you dare to scowl at me?”

I shut my teeth and said never a word. I was choking in my throat and could not have uttered a syllable if I had tried.

I clenched my teeth and didn’t say a word. I was so choked up that I couldn’t have spoken a single syllable if I had tried.

Then he let me go, grinning like an ape.

Then he released me, grinning like a monkey.

I stepped back a pace and gave him my left between the eyes.

I took a step back and punched him with my left fist right between the eyes.

For a second he did not realize what had happened, for I don’t suppose anyone had dared to lift a hand to him since he was a child. He blinked at me mildly. Then his face grew as red as fire.

For a moment, he didn't understand what had happened, since I doubt anyone had ever dared to lay a hand on him since he was a child. He looked at me, surprised. Then his face turned bright red.

“God in heaven,” he said quietly. “I am going to kill you,” and he flung himself on me like a mountain.

“God in heaven,” he said softly. “I’m going to kill you,” and he jumped on me like a massive boulder.

I was expecting him and dodged the attack. I was quite calm now, but pretty helpless. The man had a gorilla’s reach and could give me at least a couple of stone. He wasn’t soft either, but looked as hard as granite. I was only just from hospital and absurdly out of training. He would certainly kill me if he could, and I saw nothing to prevent him.

I was ready for him and avoided the attack. I was pretty calm now, but felt pretty helpless. The guy had a gorilla's reach and could easily outweigh me by a good amount. He wasn’t soft either; he looked as tough as granite. I had just come from the hospital and was ridiculously out of shape. He would definitely kill me if he had the chance, and I saw no way to stop him.

My only chance was to keep him from getting to grips, for he could have squeezed in my ribs in two seconds. I fancied I was lighter on my legs than him, and I had a good eye. Black Monty at Kimberley had taught me to fight a bit, but there is no art on earth which can prevent a big man in a narrow space from sooner or later cornering a lesser one. That was the danger.

My only chance was to keep him from getting hold of me, because he could have crushed my ribs in no time. I thought I was quicker on my feet than he was, and I had good aim. Black Monty at Kimberley had taught me some fighting techniques, but there's no skill that can stop a bigger guy in a small space from eventually trapping a smaller one. That was the risk.

Backwards and forwards we padded on the soft carpet. He had no notion of guarding himself, and I got in a good few blows.

Back and forth we walked on the soft carpet. He had no idea how to defend himself, and I landed a few solid hits.

Then I saw a queer thing. Every time I hit him he blinked and seemed to pause. I guessed the reason for that. He had gone through life keeping the crown of the causeway, and nobody had ever stood up to him. He wasn’t a coward by a long chalk, but he was a bully, and had never been struck in his life. He was getting struck now in real earnest, and he didn’t like it. He had lost his bearings and was growing as mad as a hatter.

Then I saw something strange. Every time I hit him, he blinked and seemed to hesitate. I figured out why. He had gone through life being in charge, and no one had ever confronted him. He wasn’t a coward at all, but he was a bully, and he had never been hit before. He was getting hit for real now, and he didn’t like it. He had lost his sense of control and was getting as crazy as a loon.

I kept half an eye on the clock. I was hopeful now, and was looking for the right kind of chance. The risk was that I might tire sooner than him and be at his mercy.

I kept one eye on the clock. I felt hopeful now and was waiting for the right opportunity. The risk was that I might get tired before him and end up at his mercy.

Then I learned a truth I have never forgotten. If you are fighting a man who means to kill you, he will be apt to down you unless you mean to kill him too. Stumm did not know any rules to this game, and I forgot to allow for that. Suddenly, when I was watching his eyes, he launched a mighty kick at my stomach. If he had got me, this yarn would have had an abrupt ending. But by the mercy of God I was moving sideways when he let out, and his heavy boot just grazed my left thigh.

Then I learned a truth I'll never forget. If you're up against someone who wants to kill you, they're likely to take you down unless you intend to kill them too. Stumm didn't know the rules of the game, and I forgot to account for that. Suddenly, as I was watching his eyes, he threw a powerful kick at my stomach. If he had connected, this story would have ended abruptly. But by the grace of God, I was moving sideways when he struck, and his heavy boot just grazed my left thigh.

It was the place where most of the shrapnel had lodged, and for a second I was sick with pain and stumbled. Then I was on my feet again but with a new feeling in my blood. I had to smash Stumm or never sleep in my bed again.

It was the spot where most of the shrapnel had embedded itself, and for a moment, I was overcome with pain and stumbled. Then I was back on my feet, but with a new sensation coursing through my veins. I had to take down Stumm or I’d never get a peaceful night's sleep again.

I got a wonderful power from this new cold rage of mine. I felt I couldn’t tire, and I danced round and dotted his face till it was streaming with blood. His bulky padded chest was no good to me, so I couldn’t try for the mark.

I gained an incredible strength from this new, chilling rage of mine. I felt like I couldn't get worn out, and I circled around him, hitting his face until it was covered in blood. His big, padded chest didn't help me, so I couldn't aim for the target.

He began to snort now and his breath came heavily. “You infernal cad,” I said in good round English, “I’m going to knock the stuffing out of you,” but he didn’t know what I was saying.

He started to snort now, and his breathing was labored. “You miserable jerk,” I said in clear English, “I’m going to knock you out,” but he didn’t understand what I was saying.

Then at last he gave me my chance. He half tripped over a little table and his face stuck forward. I got him on the point of the chin, and put every ounce of weight I possessed behind the blow. He crumpled up in a heap and rolled over, upsetting a lamp and knocking a big china jar in two. His head, I remember, lay under the escritoire from which he had taken my passport.

Then finally, he gave me my shot. He almost tripped over a small table, and his face leaned forward. I hit him right on the chin with all my strength. He collapsed and fell over, knocking over a lamp and breaking a large china jar in half. I remember his head ended up under the desk where he had taken my passport.

I picked up the key and unlocked the door. In one of the gilded mirrors I smoothed my hair and tidied up my clothes. My anger had completely gone and I had no particular ill-will left against Stumm. He was a man of remarkable qualities, which would have brought him to the highest distinction in the Stone Age. But for all that he and his kind were back numbers.

I grabbed the key and opened the door. In one of the fancy mirrors, I fixed my hair and straightened my clothes. My anger had completely faded, and I didn't really feel any resentment toward Stumm anymore. He had some impressive qualities that would have made him stand out in the Stone Age. But despite that, he and his type were outdated.

I stepped out of the room, locked the door behind me, and started out on the second stage of my travels.

I walked out of the room, locked the door behind me, and began the next part of my journey.

CHAPTER VII.
Christmastide

Everything depended on whether the servant was in the hall. I had put Stumm to sleep for a bit, but I couldn’t flatter myself he would long be quiet, and when he came to he would kick the locked door to matchwood. I must get out of the house without a minute’s delay, and if the door was shut and the old man gone to bed I was done.

Everything depended on whether the servant was in the hall. I had managed to get Stumm to sleep for a little while, but I couldn't convince myself he would stay quiet for long. When he woke up, he would probably kick the locked door to pieces. I needed to get out of the house immediately, and if the door was closed and the old man had gone to bed, I was finished.

I met him at the foot of the stairs, carrying a candle.

I met him at the bottom of the stairs, holding a candle.

“Your master wants me to send off an important telegram. Where is the nearest office? There’s one in the village, isn’t there?” I spoke in my best German, the first time I had used the tongue since I crossed the frontier.

“Your boss wants me to send an important telegram. Where’s the nearest office? There’s one in the village, right?” I spoke in my best German, the first time I had used the language since I crossed the border.

“The village is five minutes off at the foot of the avenue,” he said. “Will you be long, sir?”

“The village is just five minutes down the road,” he said. “Will you be long, sir?”

“I’ll be back in a quarter of an hour,” I said. “Don’t lock up till I get in.”

“I’ll be back in 15 minutes,” I said. “Don’t lock up until I get in.”

I put on my ulster and walked out into a clear starry night. My bag I left lying on a settle in the hall. There was nothing in it to compromise me, but I wished I could have got a toothbrush and some tobacco out of it.

I put on my coat and stepped out into a clear, starry night. I left my bag resting on a bench in the hallway. There was nothing in it to embarrass me, but I wished I could have grabbed a toothbrush and some tobacco from it.

So began one of the craziest escapades you can well imagine. I couldn’t stop to think of the future yet, but must take one step at a time. I ran down the avenue, my feet cracking on the hard snow, planning hard my programme for the next hour.

So started one of the wildest adventures you can imagine. I couldn't think about the future just yet, but had to take it one step at a time. I ran down the street, my feet crunching on the hard snow, intensely planning my schedule for the next hour.

I found the village—half a dozen houses with one biggish place that looked like an inn. The moon was rising, and as I approached I saw that there was some kind of a store. A funny little two-seated car was purring before the door, and I guessed this was also the telegraph office.

I found the village—about six houses with one larger building that looked like an inn. The moon was rising, and as I got closer, I noticed there was some sort of store. A quirky little two-seater car was idling in front of the door, and I figured this was also the telegraph office.

I marched in and told my story to a stout woman with spectacles on her nose who was talking to a young man.

I walked in and shared my story with a plump woman wearing glasses who was chatting with a young guy.

“It is too late,” she shook her head. “The Herr Burgrave knows that well. There is no connection from here after eight o’clock. If the matter is urgent you must go to Schwandorf.”

“It’s too late,” she shook her head. “The Herr Burgrave knows that well. There’s no connection from here after eight o’clock. If it’s urgent, you must go to Schwandorf.”

“How far is that?” I asked, looking for some excuse to get decently out of the shop.

“How far is that?” I asked, searching for a reason to leave the shop.

“Seven miles,” she said, “but here is Franz and the post-wagon. Franz, you will be glad to give the gentleman a seat beside you.”

“Seven miles,” she said, “but here comes Franz and the post-wagon. Franz, you’ll be happy to give the gentleman a seat next to you.”

The sheepish-looking youth muttered something which I took to be assent, and finished off a glass of beer. From his eyes and manner he looked as if he were half drunk.

The shy-looking young guy mumbled something that I took as agreement and downed a glass of beer. From his eyes and behavior, he seemed like he was half drunk.

I thanked the woman, and went out to the car, for I was in a fever to take advantage of this unexpected bit of luck. I could hear the post-mistress enjoining Franz not to keep the gentleman waiting, and presently he came out and flopped into the driver’s seat. We started in a series of voluptuous curves, till his eyes got accustomed to the darkness.

I thanked the woman and went out to the car because I was eager to take advantage of this unexpected stroke of luck. I could hear the post-mistress telling Franz not to keep the gentleman waiting, and soon he came out and flopped into the driver’s seat. We began driving in a series of smooth curves until his eyes adjusted to the darkness.

At first we made good going along the straight, broad highway lined with woods on one side and on the other snowy fields melting into haze. Then he began to talk, and, as he talked, he slowed down. This by no means suited my book, and I seriously wondered whether I should pitch him out and take charge of the thing. He was obviously a weakling, left behind in the conscription, and I could have done it with one hand. But by a fortunate chance I left him alone.

At first, we were making good progress down the straight, wide highway surrounded by woods on one side and snowy fields fading into mist on the other. Then he started talking, and as he talked, he slowed down. This did not work for my book at all, and I seriously considered throwing him out and taking control myself. He clearly seemed weak, someone who got left behind during the draft, and I could have done it easily with one hand. But luckily, I decided to leave him alone.

“That is a fine hat of yours, mein Herr,” he said. He took off his own blue peaked cap, the uniform, I suppose, of the driver of the post-wagon, and laid it on his knee. The night air ruffled a shock of tow-coloured hair.

“That’s a nice hat you have, sir,” he said. He took off his own blue peaked cap, which I guess was the uniform of the post-wagon driver, and placed it on his knee. The night air tousled a tuft of light-colored hair.

Then he calmly took my hat and clapped it on his head.

Then he calmly took my hat and put it on his head.

“With this thing I should be a gentleman,” he said.

“With this thing, I should be a gentleman,” he said.

I said nothing, but put on his cap and waited.

I didn't say anything, but I put on his hat and waited.

“That is a noble overcoat, mein Herr,” he went on. “It goes well with the hat. It is the kind of garment I have always desired to own. In two days it will be the holy Christmas, when gifts are given. Would that the good God sent me such a coat as yours!”

“That is a great overcoat, sir,” he continued. “It looks good with the hat. It's the type of clothing I've always wanted to have. In two days, it will be Christmas, a time for giving gifts. I wish that God would bless me with a coat like yours!”

“You can try it on to see how it looks,” I said good-humouredly.

“You can try it on to see how it looks,” I said with a smile.

He stopped the car with a jerk, and pulled off his blue coat. The exchange was soon effected. He was about my height, and my ulster fitted not so badly. I put on his overcoat, which had a big collar that buttoned round the neck.

He slammed the brakes on the car and took off his blue coat. The swap was quick. He was about my height, and my ulster fit him pretty well. I put on his overcoat, which had a large collar that buttoned around the neck.

The idiot preened himself like a girl. Drink and vanity had primed him for any folly. He drove so carelessly for a bit that he nearly put us into a ditch. We passed several cottages and at the last he slowed down.

The idiot showed off like a girl. Alcohol and vanity had set him up for any foolishness. He drove so recklessly for a while that he almost ran us into a ditch. We went past several cottages, and at the last one, he finally slowed down.

“A friend of mine lives here,” he announced. “Gertrud would like to see me in the fine clothes which the most amiable Herr has given me. Wait for me, I will not be long.” And he scrambled out of the car and lurched into the little garden.

“A friend of mine lives here,” he said. “Gertrud would like to see me in the nice clothes that the kind gentleman has given me. Wait for me; I won’t be long.” And he jumped out of the car and staggered into the little garden.

I took his place and moved very slowly forward. I heard the door open and the sound of laughing and loud voices. Then it shut, and looking back I saw that my idiot had been absorbed into the dwelling of his Gertrud. I waited no longer, but sent the car forward at its best speed.

I took his spot and moved forward slowly. I heard the door open, followed by laughter and loud voices. Then it shut, and when I looked back, I saw that my fool had disappeared into his Gertrud's place. I didn't wait any longer and drove the car forward as fast as it could go.

Five minutes later the infernal thing began to give trouble—a nut loose in the antiquated steering-gear. I unhooked a lamp, examined it, and put the mischief right, but I was a quarter of an hour doing it. The highway ran now in a thick forest and I noticed branches going off now and then to the right. I was just thinking of turning up one of them, for I had no anxiety to visit Schwandorf, when I heard behind me the sound of a great car driven furiously.

Five minutes later, the annoying thing started to have issues—a loose nut in the old steering mechanism. I unhooked a lamp, checked it, and fixed the problem, but it took me about half an hour. The road now ran through a thick forest, and I noticed branches branching off occasionally to the right. I was just considering turning onto one of them, as I had no desire to go to Schwandorf, when I heard a loud car speeding up behind me.

I drew in to the right side—thank goodness I remembered the rule of the road—and proceeded decorously, wondering what was going to happen. I could hear the brakes being clamped on and the car slowing down. Suddenly a big grey bonnet slipped past me and as I turned my head I heard a familiar voice.

I pulled to the right side—thank goodness I remembered the driving rules—and moved forward calmly, wondering what would happen next. I could hear the brakes being applied and the car slowing down. Suddenly, a big gray car zoomed past me, and as I turned my head, I heard a familiar voice.

It was Stumm, looking like something that has been run over. He had his jaw in a sling, so that I wondered if I had broken it, and his eyes were beautifully bunged up. It was that that saved me, that and his raging temper. The collar of the postman’s coat was round my chin, hiding my beard, and I had his cap pulled well down on my brow. I remembered what Blenkiron had said—that the only way to deal with the Germans was naked bluff. Mine was naked enough, for it was all that was left to me.

It was Stumm, looking like he had just been hit by a car. He had his jaw in a sling, making me wonder if I had broken it, and his eyes were completely swollen. That’s what saved me, along with his furious anger. The collar of the postman’s coat was wrapped around my chin, hiding my beard, and I had his cap pulled down low over my forehead. I remembered what Blenkiron had said—that the only way to handle the Germans was through sheer bluff. Mine was pretty bare, since it was all I had left.

“Where is the man you brought from Andersbach?” he roared, as well as his jaw would allow him.

“Where is the guy you brought from Andersbach?” he shouted, as much as his jaw would let him.

I pretended to be mortally scared, and spoke in the best imitation I could manage of the postman’s high cracked voice.

I acted like I was really scared and tried my best to imitate the postman’s high, shaky voice.

“He got out a mile back, Herr Burgrave,” I quavered. “He was a rude fellow who wanted to go to Schwandorf, and then changed his mind.”

“He got out a mile back, Herr Burgrave,” I said nervously. “He was a rude guy who wanted to go to Schwandorf, but then he changed his mind.”

“Where, you fool? Say exactly where he got down or I will wring your neck.”

“Where, you idiot? Tell me exactly where he got off, or I’ll strangle you.”

“In the wood this side of Gertrud’s cottage ... on the left hand. I left him running among the trees.” I put all the terror I knew into my pipe, and it wasn’t all acting.

“In the woods this side of Gertrud’s cottage ... on the left. I left him running through the trees.” I channeled all the fear I felt into my pipe, and it wasn’t just acting.

“He means the Henrichs’ cottage, Herr Colonel,” said the chauffeur. “This man is courting the daughter.”

“He's talking about the Henrichs' cottage, Colonel,” the chauffeur said. “This guy is dating the daughter.”

Stumm gave an order and the great car backed, and, as I looked round, I saw it turning. Then as it gathered speed it shot forward, and presently was lost in the shadows. I had got over the first hurdle.

Stumm gave an order, and the big car backed up. As I looked around, I saw it turning. Then, as it picked up speed, it surged forward and soon disappeared into the shadows. I had gotten past the first hurdle.

But there was no time to be lost. Stumm would meet the postman and would be tearing after me any minute. I took the first turning, and bucketed along a narrow woodland road. The hard ground would show very few tracks, I thought, and I hoped the pursuit would think I had gone on to Schwandorf. But it wouldn’t do to risk it, and I was determined very soon to get the car off the road, leave it, and take to the forest. I took out my watch and calculated I could give myself ten minutes.

But there was no time to waste. Stumm would meet the postman and would be chasing after me any minute. I took the first turn and sped down a narrow forest road. The hard ground wouldn’t leave many tracks, I thought, and I hoped the pursuers would assume I went on to Schwandorf. But I couldn’t take that chance, so I was set on getting the car off the road, leaving it behind, and heading into the forest. I took out my watch and figured I had ten minutes to spare.

I was very nearly caught. Presently I came on a bit of rough heath, with a slope away from the road and here and there a patch of black which I took to be a sandpit. Opposite one of these I slewed the car to the edge, got out, started it again and saw it pitch head-foremost into the darkness. There was a splash of water and then silence. Craning over I could see nothing but murk, and the marks at the lip where the wheels had passed. They would find my tracks in daylight but scarcely at this time of night.

I almost got caught. Right then, I came upon a rough patch of heath, with a slope away from the road and a few dark spots that I figured were sandpits. Opposite one of these, I veered the car to the edge, got out, restarted it, and watched it plunge headfirst into the darkness. There was a splash as it hit the water, and then it was silent. Peering over, I could see nothing but darkness, and the marks where the tires had rolled over the edge. They would find my tracks in the daylight, but not at this time of night.

Then I ran across the road to the forest. I was only just in time, for the echoes of the splash had hardly died away when I heard the sound of another car. I lay flat in a hollow below a tangle of snow-laden brambles and looked between the pine-trees at the moonlit road. It was Stumm’s car again and to my consternation it stopped just a little short of the sandpit.

Then I sprinted across the road to the forest. I barely made it, because the echoes of the splash had only just faded when I heard another car approaching. I flattened myself in a dip below a mess of snow-heavy brambles and peeked between the pine trees at the moonlit road. It was Stumm’s car again, and to my dismay, it stopped just short of the sandpit.

I saw an electric torch flashed, and Stumm himself got out and examined the tracks on the highway. Thank God, they would be still there for him to find, but had he tried half a dozen yards on he would have seen them turn towards the sandpit. If that had happened he would have beaten the adjacent woods and most certainly found me. There was a third man in the car, with my hat and coat on him. That poor devil of a postman had paid dear for his vanity.

I saw a flashlight beam, and Stumm got out to check the tracks on the road. Thank God they were still there for him to find, but if he had gone just a few more yards, he would have seen them veer toward the sandpit. If that had happened, he would have searched the nearby woods and most likely found me. There was a guy in the car wearing my hat and coat. That poor guy, the postman, had paid a heavy price for his vanity.

They took a long time before they started again, and I was jolly well relieved when they went scouring down the road. I ran deeper into the woods till I found a track which—as I judged from the sky which I saw in a clearing—took me nearly due west. That wasn’t the direction I wanted, so I bore off at right angles, and presently struck another road which I crossed in a hurry. After that I got entangled in some confounded kind of enclosure and had to climb paling after paling of rough stakes plaited with osiers. Then came a rise in the ground and I was on a low hill of pines which seemed to last for miles. All the time I was going at a good pace, and before I stopped to rest I calculated I had put six miles between me and the sandpit.

They took a while before they started moving again, and I was really relieved when they went racing down the road. I ran further into the woods until I found a path that—as I could tell from the sky I saw in a clearing—led me almost due west. That wasn’t the direction I wanted, so I veered off at a right angle and soon hit another road that I hurried across. After that, I got caught up in some annoying kind of enclosure and had to climb over one rough stake fence after another, woven with willows. Then I came to a rise in the ground and was on a low hill of pines that seemed to stretch on for miles. The whole time, I was moving at a good pace, and before I took a break, I figured I had put six miles between me and the sandpit.

My mind was getting a little more active now; for the first part of the journey I had simply staggered from impulse to impulse. These impulses had been uncommon lucky, but I couldn’t go on like that for ever. Ek sal “n plan maak, says the old Boer when he gets into trouble, and it was up to me now to make a plan.

My mind was becoming a bit more alert now; for the first part of the journey, I had just stumbled from one impulse to another. These impulses had been unusually lucky, but I couldn’t keep going like that forever. Ek sal “n plan maak, says the old Boer when he gets into trouble, and it was up to me now to come up with a plan.

As soon as I began to think I saw the desperate business I was in for. Here was I, with nothing except what I stood up in—including a coat and cap that weren’t mine—alone in mid-winter in the heart of South Germany. There was a man behind me looking for my blood, and soon there would be a hue-and-cry for me up and down the land. I had heard that the German police were pretty efficient, and I couldn’t see that I stood the slimmest chance. If they caught me they would shoot me beyond doubt. I asked myself on what charge, and answered, “For knocking about a German officer.” They couldn’t have me up for espionage, for as far as I knew they had no evidence. I was simply a Dutchman that had got riled and had run amok. But if they cut down a cobbler for laughing at a second lieutenant—which is what happened at Zabern—I calculated that hanging would be too good for a man that had broken a colonel’s jaw.

As soon as I started to think, I realized how desperate my situation was. Here I was, with nothing but the clothes on my back—including a coat and cap that weren’t mine—alone in the middle of winter in South Germany. There was a guy behind me out for my blood, and soon there would be a manhunt for me all over the place. I had heard that the German police were pretty efficient, and I couldn’t see that I had the slightest chance. If they caught me, they would definitely shoot me. I asked myself on what charges, and answered, “For messing with a German officer.” They couldn’t accuse me of espionage, as far as I knew they had no proof. I was just a Dutchman who got angry and went overboard. But if they executed a cobbler for laughing at a second lieutenant—which is what happened in Zabern—I figured that hanging would be too good for someone who had broken a colonel’s jaw.

To make things worse my job was not to escape—though that would have been hard enough—but to get to Constantinople, more than a thousand miles off, and I reckoned I couldn’t get there as a tramp. I had to be sent there, and now I had flung away my chance. If I had been a Catholic I would have said a prayer to St Teresa, for she would have understood my troubles.

To make things worse, my job wasn't to escape—though that would have been difficult enough—but to get to Constantinople, more than a thousand miles away, and I figured I couldn't make it there as a vagabond. I needed to be sent there, and now I had thrown away my chance. If I had been a Catholic, I would have said a prayer to St. Teresa, because she would have understood my struggles.

My mother used to say that when you felt down on your luck it was a good cure to count your mercies. So I set about counting mine. The first was that I was well started on my journey, for I couldn’t be above two score miles from the Danube. The second was that I had Stumm’s pass. I didn’t see how I could use it, but there it was. Lastly I had plenty of money—fifty-three English sovereigns and the equivalent of three pounds in German paper which I had changed at the hotel. Also I had squared accounts with old Stumm. That was the biggest mercy of all.

My mom used to say that when you were feeling down on your luck, a good way to feel better was to count your blessings. So I started counting mine. The first was that I was well on my way, since I couldn't be more than about forty miles from the Danube. The second was that I had Stumm’s pass. I wasn't sure how I could use it, but there it was. Finally, I had plenty of money—fifty-three English sovereigns and the equivalent of three pounds in German paper money that I had exchanged at the hotel. Plus, I had settled my accounts with old Stumm. That was the biggest blessing of all.

I thought I’d better get some sleep, so I found a dryish hole below an oak root and squeezed myself into it. The snow lay deep in these woods and I was sopping wet up to the knees. All the same I managed to sleep for some hours, and got up and shook myself just as the winter’s dawn was breaking through the tree tops. Breakfast was the next thing, and I must find some sort of dwelling.

I figured I should get some sleep, so I found a somewhat dry spot under an oak root and squeezed myself in. The snow was deep in these woods, and I was soaking wet up to my knees. Still, I managed to sleep for a few hours, and I got up and shook myself just as the dawn was breaking through the treetops. Next on the agenda was breakfast, and I needed to find some kind of shelter.

Almost at once I struck a road, a big highway running north and south. I trotted along in the bitter morning to get my circulation started, and presently I began to feel a little better. In a little I saw a church spire, which meant a village. Stumm wouldn’t be likely to have got on my tracks yet, I calculated, but there was always the chance that he had warned all the villages round by telephone and that they might be on the look-out for me. But that risk had to be taken, for I must have food.

Almost immediately, I hit a road, a major highway running north and south. I walked briskly in the chilly morning to get my blood flowing, and soon I started to feel a bit better. Before long, I spotted a church spire, which indicated there was a village. I figured Stumm probably hadn't picked up on my trail yet, but there was always the possibility that he had alerted all the nearby villages by phone and that they might be on the lookout for me. But I had to take that risk because I needed food.

It was the day before Christmas, I remembered, and people would be holidaying. The village was quite a big place, but at this hour—just after eight o’clock—there was nobody in the street except a wandering dog. I chose the most unassuming shop I could find, where a little boy was taking down the shutters—one of those general stores where they sell everything. The boy fetched a very old woman, who hobbled in from the back, fitting on her spectacles.

It was the day before Christmas, I remembered, and people were celebrating. The village was quite large, but at this hour—just after eight o’clock—there was no one on the street except for a stray dog. I picked the most unpretentious shop I could find, where a little boy was taking down the shutters—one of those general stores that sells everything. The boy went to get a very elderly woman, who hobbled in from the back, putting on her glasses.

“Gruss Gott,” she said in a friendly voice, and I took off my cap. I saw from my reflection in a saucepan that I looked moderately respectable in spite of my night in the woods.

“Hello,” she said in a friendly voice, and I took off my cap. I saw from my reflection in a saucepan that I looked fairly presentable despite my night in the woods.

I told her the story of how I was walking from Schwandorf to see my mother at an imaginary place called Judenfeld, banking on the ignorance of villagers about any place five miles from their homes. I said my luggage had gone astray, and I hadn’t time to wait for it, since my leave was short. The old lady was sympathetic and unsuspecting. She sold me a pound of chocolate, a box of biscuits, the better part of a ham, two tins of sardines and a rucksack to carry them. I also bought some soap, a comb and a cheap razor, and a small Tourists’ Guide, published by a Leipzig firm. As I was leaving I saw what seemed like garments hanging up in the back shop, and turned to have a look at them. They were the kind of thing that Germans wear on their summer walking tours—long shooting capes made of a green stuff they call loden. I bought one, and a green felt hat and an alpenstock to keep it company. Then wishing the old woman and her belongings a merry Christmas, I departed and took the shortest cut out of the village. There were one or two people about now, but they did not seem to notice me.

I told her the story of how I was walking from Schwandorf to visit my mother at an imaginary place called Judenfeld, hoping the villagers wouldn't know any place five miles away. I mentioned that my luggage had gotten lost, and I didn’t have time to wait for it because my leave was short. The old lady was kind and unsuspecting. She sold me a pound of chocolate, a box of biscuits, most of a ham, two tins of sardines, and a rucksack to carry them all. I also bought some soap, a comb, a cheap razor, and a small Tourist Guide published by a Leipzig company. As I was leaving, I noticed what looked like clothes hanging up in the back shop, so I turned to check them out. They were the type of garments that Germans wear on their summer hikes—long shooting capes made of a green fabric they call loden. I bought one, along with a green felt hat and a walking stick to match. After wishing the old woman and her shop a merry Christmas, I left and took the quickest route out of the village. There were a few people around now, but they didn’t seem to notice me.

I went into the woods again and walked for two miles till I halted for breakfast. I was not feeling quite so fit now, and I did not make much of my provisions, beyond eating a biscuit and some chocolate. I felt very thirsty and longed for hot tea. In an icy pool I washed and with infinite agony shaved my beard. That razor was the worst of its species, and my eyes were running all the time with the pain of the operation. Then I took off the postman’s coat and cap, and buried them below some bushes. I was now a clean-shaven German pedestrian with a green cape and hat, and an absurd walking-stick with an iron-shod end—the sort of person who roams in thousands over the Fatherland in summer, but is a rarish bird in mid-winter.

I went into the woods again and walked for two miles until I stopped for breakfast. I wasn't feeling so great now, and I didn't eat much from my supplies, just a biscuit and some chocolate. I felt really thirsty and craved hot tea. In an icy pool, I washed and painfully shaved my beard. That razor was the worst kind, and I was tearing up the whole time from the pain. Then I took off the postman's coat and cap and buried them under some bushes. Now I was a clean-shaven German hiker with a green cape and hat, and a ridiculous walking stick with an iron tip—the kind of person who roams all over the Fatherland in summer but is pretty rare in mid-winter.

The Tourists’ Guide was a fortunate purchase, for it contained a big map of Bavaria which gave me my bearings. I was certainly not forty miles from the Danube—more like thirty. The road through the village I had left would have taken me to it. I had only to walk due south and I would reach it before night. So far as I could make out there were long tongues of forest running down to the river, and I resolved to keep to the woodlands. At the worst I would meet a forester or two, and I had a good enough story for them. On the highroad there might be awkward questions.

The Tourists’ Guide was a lucky find because it had a big map of Bavaria that helped me figure out where I was. I was definitely not forty miles from the Danube—more like thirty. The road through the village I had just left would have taken me there. If I walked straight south, I would reach it before nightfall. As far as I could tell, there were long stretches of forest leading down to the river, and I decided to stick to the woods. At worst, I might run into a forester or two, and I had a good enough story for them. On the main road, there could be some tricky questions.

When I started out again I felt very stiff and the cold seemed to be growing intense. This puzzled me, for I had not minded it much up to now, and, being warm-blooded by nature, it never used to worry me. A sharp winter night on the high-veld was a long sight chillier than anything I had struck so far in Europe. But now my teeth were chattering and the marrow seemed to be freezing in my bones.

When I started again, I felt really stiff, and the cold seemed to be getting more intense. This confused me because it hadn’t bothered me much until now, and since I was warm-blooded, it usually didn’t affect me. A sharp winter night on the high veld was way colder than anything I had experienced so far in Europe. But now my teeth were chattering, and it felt like the marrow was freezing in my bones.

The day had started bright and clear, but a wrack of grey clouds soon covered the sky, and a wind from the east began to whistle. As I stumbled along through the snowy undergrowth I kept longing for bright warm places. I thought of those long days on the veld when the earth was like a great yellow bowl, with white roads running to the horizon and a tiny white farm basking in the heart of it, with its blue dam and patches of bright green lucerne. I thought of those baking days on the east coast, when the sea was like mother-of-pearl and the sky one burning turquoise. But most of all I thought of warm scented noons on trek, when one dozed in the shadow of the wagon and sniffed the wood-smoke from the fire where the boys were cooking dinner.

The day started off bright and clear, but soon a bunch of grey clouds covered the sky, and an east wind began to whistle. As I stumbled through the snowy underbrush, I kept wishing for warm, sunny places. I thought about those long days in the veld when the earth looked like a huge yellow bowl, with white roads stretching to the horizon and a little white farm enjoying the center of it, complete with its blue dam and patches of bright green lucerne. I remembered those scorching days on the east coast, when the sea shimmered like mother-of-pearl and the sky was a blazing turquoise. But most of all, I recalled warm, fragrant afternoons while trekking, when I dozed in the shade of the wagon and smelled the wood smoke from the fire where the guys were cooking dinner.

From these pleasant pictures I returned to the beastly present—the thick snowy woods, the lowering sky, wet clothes, a hunted present, and a dismal future. I felt miserably depressed, and I couldn’t think of any mercies to count. It struck me that I might be falling sick.

From these nice images, I returned to the grim reality—dense snowy woods, a gloomy sky, wet clothes, a hunted present, and a bleak future. I felt incredibly down, and I couldn’t think of anything good to hold onto. It occurred to me that I might be getting sick.

About midday I awoke with a start to the belief that I was being pursued. I cannot explain how or why the feeling came, except that it is a kind of instinct that men get who have lived much in wild countries. My senses, which had been numbed, suddenly grew keen, and my brain began to work double quick.

About noon, I woke up suddenly believing that someone was chasing me. I can't explain how or why I felt that way, except that it’s an instinct that people develop after spending a lot of time in the wilderness. My senses, which had been dull, suddenly became sharp, and my mind started racing.

I asked myself what I would do if I were Stumm, with hatred in my heart, a broken jaw to avenge, and pretty well limitless powers. He must have found the car in the sandpit and seen my tracks in the wood opposite. I didn’t know how good he and his men might be at following a spoor, but I knew that any ordinary Kaffir could have nosed it out easily. But he didn’t need to do that. This was a civilized country full of roads and railways. I must some time and somewhere come out of the woods. He could have all the roads watched, and the telephone would set everyone on my track within a radius of fifty miles. Besides, he would soon pick up my trail in the village I had visited that morning. From the map I learned that it was called Greif, and it was likely to live up to that name with me.

I asked myself what I would do if I were Stumm, filled with hatred, looking to avenge a broken jaw, and with almost unlimited power. He must have found the car in the sandpit and seen my tracks in the woods across the way. I wasn’t sure how skilled he and his men were at tracking, but I knew any regular guy could easily pick it out. But he didn’t need to do that. This was a modern country full of roads and railways. Eventually, I would have to come out of the woods. He could have all the roads watched, and the phone would alert everyone to my location within a fifty-mile radius. Plus, he would soon pick up my trail in the village I visited that morning. From the map, I learned it was called Greif, and it was likely to live up to that name with me.

Presently I came to a rocky knoll which rose out of the forest. Keeping well in shelter I climbed to the top and cautiously looked around me. Away to the east I saw the vale of a river with broad fields and church-spires. West and south the forest rolled unbroken in a wilderness of snowy tree-tops. There was no sign of life anywhere, not even a bird, but I knew very well that behind me in the woods were men moving swiftly on my track, and that it was pretty well impossible for me to get away.

Currently, I reached a rocky hill that jutted out from the forest. Staying hidden, I climbed to the top and carefully looked around. To the east, I saw a river valley filled with wide fields and church steeples. To the west and south, the forest stretched endlessly with a sea of snowy treetops. There was no sign of life anywhere, not even a bird, but I knew very well that behind me in the woods were men quickly closing in on me, and that getting away was nearly impossible.

There was nothing for it but to go on till I dropped or was taken. I shaped my course south with a shade of west in it, for the map showed me that in that direction I would soonest strike the Danube. What I was going to do when I got there I didn’t trouble to think. I had fixed the river as my immediate goal and the future must take care of itself.

There was nothing to do but keep going until I collapsed or was rescued. I aimed south with a slight westward angle, because the map indicated that heading that way, I would reach the Danube soonest. I didn't bother to think about what I would do when I got there. I had made the river my immediate goal, and I figured the future would sort itself out.

I was now certain that I had fever on me. It was still in my bones, as a legacy from Africa, and had come out once or twice when I was with the battalion in Hampshire. The bouts had been short for I had known of their coming and dosed myself. But now I had no quinine, and it looked as if I were in for a heavy go. It made me feel desperately wretched and stupid, and I all but blundered into capture.

I was now sure that I had a fever. It was still lingering in my bones, a reminder from Africa, and had flared up a couple of times when I was with the battalion in Hampshire. Those episodes had been brief because I could sense them coming and treated myself. But now I had no quinine, and it seemed like I was in for a serious struggle. It made me feel incredibly miserable and slow, and I nearly walked right into a trap.

For suddenly I came on a road and was going to cross it blindly, when a man rode slowly past on a bicycle. Luckily I was in the shade of a clump of hollies and he was not looking my way, though he was not three yards off. I crawled forward to reconnoitre. I saw about half a mile of road running straight through the forest and every two hundred yards was a bicyclist. They wore uniform and appeared to be acting as sentries.

For a moment, I found myself at a road and was about to cross it without looking, when a man rode by slowly on a bicycle. Fortunately, I was in the shade of a group of holly bushes, and he wasn't looking my way, even though he was only about three yards away. I inched forward to take a look. I saw about half a mile of road going straight through the woods, with a bicyclist every two hundred yards. They were in uniform and seemed to be acting as guards.

This could only have one meaning. Stumm had picketed all the roads and cut me off in an angle of the woods. There was no chance of getting across unobserved. As I lay there with my heart sinking, I had the horrible feeling that the pursuit might be following me from behind, and that at any moment I would be enclosed between two fires.

This could only mean one thing. Stumm had blocked all the roads and trapped me at a corner of the woods. There was no way to get across without being seen. As I lay there with my heart sinking, I had a terrible feeling that the chase might be coming after me from behind, and that at any moment I would be caught between two flames.

For more than an hour I stayed there with my chin in the snow. I didn’t see any way out, and I was feeling so ill that I didn’t seem to care. Then my chance came suddenly out of the skies.

For over an hour, I stayed there with my chin in the snow. I couldn't see a way out, and I felt so sick that I didn’t really care. Then my opportunity came suddenly from the skies.

The wind rose, and a great gust of snow blew from the east. In five minutes it was so thick that I couldn’t see across the road. At first I thought it a new addition to my troubles, and then very slowly I saw the opportunity. I slipped down the bank and made ready to cross.

The wind picked up, and a strong gust of snow came in from the east. In just five minutes, it was so dense that I couldn’t see across the road. At first, I thought it was just another problem to deal with, but then, slowly, I saw the chance. I slid down the bank and got ready to cross.

I almost blundered into one of the bicyclists. He cried out and fell off his machine, but I didn’t wait to investigate. A sudden access of strength came to me and I darted into the woods on the farther side. I knew I would be soon swallowed from sight in the drift, and I knew that the falling snow would hide my tracks. So I put my best foot forward.

I almost ran into one of the bikers. He yelled and fell off his bike, but I didn’t stick around to find out. I suddenly felt a rush of energy and dashed into the woods on the other side. I knew I would quickly disappear from view in the snow, and I knew that the falling snow would cover my tracks. So I pushed myself to run faster.

I must have run miles before the hot fit passed, and I stopped from sheer bodily weakness. There was no sound except the crush of falling snow, the wind seemed to have gone, and the place was very solemn and quiet. But Heavens! how the snow fell! It was partly screened by the branches, but all the same it was piling itself up deep everywhere. My legs seemed made of lead, my head burned, and there were fiery pains over all my body. I stumbled on blindly, without a notion of any direction, determined only to keep going to the last. For I knew that if I once lay down I would never rise again.

I must have run for miles before the heat of exertion passed, and I finally stopped from pure exhaustion. There was no sound except the crunch of falling snow; the wind seemed to have died down, and everything felt solemn and quiet. But wow! How the snow piled up! It was partly blocked by the branches, yet it was still accumulating deeply everywhere. My legs felt like lead, my head was on fire, and I had sharp pains all over my body. I stumbled on blindly, with no sense of direction, just determined to keep moving until the end. I knew that if I lay down even once, I would never get up again.

When I was a boy I was fond of fairy tales, and most of the stories I remembered had been about great German forests and snow and charcoal burners and woodmen’s huts. Once I had longed to see these things, and now I was fairly in the thick of them. There had been wolves, too, and I wondered idly if I should fall in with a pack. I felt myself getting light-headed. I fell repeatedly and laughed sillily every time. Once I dropped into a hole and lay for some time at the bottom giggling. If anyone had found me then he would have taken me for a madman.

When I was a kid, I loved fairy tales, and most of the stories I remembered were about vast German forests, snow, charcoal burners, and woodcutter's huts. I had once dreamed of seeing these things, and now I was right in the middle of them. There were wolves, too, and I wondered if I might run into a pack. I felt a little dizzy. I kept falling down and laughed every time. Once I tumbled into a hole and spent a while at the bottom giggling. If someone had found me then, they would have thought I was crazy.

The twilight of the forest grew dimmer, but I scarcely noticed it. Evening was falling, and soon it would be night, a night without morning for me. My body was going on without the direction of my brain, for my mind was filled with craziness. I was like a drunk man who keeps running, for he knows that if he stops he will fall, and I had a sort of bet with myself not to lie down—not at any rate just yet. If I lay down I should feel the pain in my head worse. Once I had ridden for five days down country with fever on me and the flat bush trees had seemed to melt into one big mirage and dance quadrilles before my eyes. But then I had more or less kept my wits. Now I was fairly daft, and every minute growing dafter.

The forest twilight was getting darker, but I barely noticed. Evening was settling in, and soon it would be night—a night with no morning for me. My body was moving on its own without my brain guiding it because my mind was filled with chaos. I felt like a drunk person who keeps running because they know that if they stop, they'll fall. I had a sort of bet with myself not to lie down—not just yet, anyway. If I lay down, the pain in my head would only get worse. Once, I had traveled five days through the countryside with a fever, and the flat bush trees had seemed to blend into a huge mirage, dancing quadrilles before my eyes. But back then, I had managed to keep my wits. Now, I was completely losing it, and every minute I felt more out of control.

Then the trees seemed to stop and I was walking on flat ground. It was a clearing, and before me twinkled a little light. The change restored me to consciousness, and suddenly I felt with horrid intensity the fire in my head and bones and the weakness of my limbs. I longed to sleep, and I had a notion that a place to sleep was before me. I moved towards the light and presently saw through a screen of snow the outline of a cottage.

Then the trees appeared to fade away, and I found myself on flat ground. It was a clearing, and in front of me sparkled a small light. This change brought me back to awareness, and I suddenly felt an intense pain in my head and bones, along with a weakness in my limbs. I desperately wanted to sleep, and I had a feeling that a place to rest was ahead of me. I headed toward the light and soon saw the outline of a cottage through a layer of snow.

I had no fear, only an intolerable longing to lie down. Very slowly I made my way to the door and knocked. My weakness was so great that I could hardly lift my hand.

I felt no fear, just an unbearable urge to lie down. I slowly made my way to the door and knocked. I was so weak that I could barely lift my hand.

There were voices within, and a corner of the curtain was lifted from the window. Then the door opened and a woman stood before me, a woman with a thin, kindly face.

There were voices inside, and a corner of the curtain was pulled back from the window. Then the door opened, and a woman stood in front of me, a woman with a thin, warm face.

“Gruss Gott,” she said, while children peeped from behind her skirts.

“God bless,” she said, while children peeked from behind her skirts.

“Gruss Gott,” I replied. I leaned against the door-post, and speech forsook me.

“God bless,” I replied. I leaned against the doorframe, and I lost my words.

She saw my condition. “Come in, sir,” she said. “You are sick and it is no weather for a sick man.”

She noticed how I was feeling. “Come in, sir,” she said. “You're unwell, and this weather isn't good for someone who's sick.”

I stumbled after her and stood dripping in the centre of the little kitchen, while three wondering children stared at me. It was a poor place, scantily furnished, but a good log-fire burned on the hearth. The shock of warmth gave me one of those minutes of self-possession which comes sometimes in the middle of a fever.

I followed her and stood there, dripping in the middle of the small kitchen, while three curious kids stared at me. It was a shabby place, barely furnished, but a nice log fire crackled in the fireplace. The cozy warmth gave me one of those moments of clarity that sometimes happen in the midst of a fever.

“I am sick, mother, and I have walked far in the storm and lost my way. I am from Africa, where the climate is hot, and your cold brings me fever. It will pass in a day or two if you can give me a bed.”

“I’m sick, Mom, and I’ve walked a long way in the storm and lost my way. I’m from Africa, where the weather is warm, and your cold makes me feel feverish. It should go away in a day or two if you can give me a place to sleep.”

“You are welcome,” she said; “but first I will make you coffee.”

“You’re welcome,” she said. “But first, let me make you some coffee.”

I took off my dripping cloak, and crouched close to the hearth. She gave me coffee—poor washy stuff, but blessedly hot. Poverty was spelled large in everything I saw. I felt the tides of fever beginning to overflow my brain again, and I made a great attempt to set my affairs straight before I was overtaken. With difficulty I took out Stumm’s pass from my pocket-book.

I took off my soaking wet cloak and crouched next to the fire. She handed me coffee—weak and watery, but thankfully hot. Poverty was evident in everything around me. I felt the fever starting to take over my mind again, and I made a strong effort to sort out my affairs before I was overwhelmed. With some struggle, I took out Stumm’s pass from my wallet.

“That is my warrant,” I said. “I am a member of the Imperial Secret Service and for the sake of my work I must move in the dark. If you will permit it, mother, I will sleep till I am better, but no one must know that I am here. If anyone comes, you must deny my presence.”

“That’s my authorization,” I said. “I work for the Imperial Secret Service, and for my job, I need to operate in secrecy. If you don’t mind, Mom, I’ll sleep until I feel better, but no one can know I’m here. If anyone shows up, you have to deny that I’m here.”

She looked at the big seal as if it were a talisman.

She looked at the huge seal like it was a lucky charm.

“Yes, yes,” she said, “you will have the bed in the garret and be left in peace till you are well. We have no neighbours near, and the storm will shut the roads. I will be silent, I and the little ones.”

“Yes, yes,” she said, “you’ll have the bed in the attic and be left alone until you’re better. We don’t have any neighbors close by, and the storm will block the roads. I’ll be quiet, along with the little ones.”

My head was beginning to swim, but I made one more effort.

My head was starting to spin, but I pushed myself to try one more time.

“There is food in my rucksack—biscuits and ham and chocolate. Pray take it for your use. And here is some money to buy Christmas fare for the little ones.” And I gave her some of the German notes.

“There’s food in my backpack—cookies and ham and chocolate. Please take it for yourself. And here’s some money to buy Christmas treats for the kids.” And I handed her some of the German notes.

After that my recollection becomes dim. She helped me up a ladder to the garret, undressed me, and gave me a thick coarse nightgown. I seem to remember that she kissed my hand, and that she was crying. “The good Lord has sent you,” she said. “Now the little ones will have their prayers answered and the Christkind will not pass by our door.”

After that, my memory gets fuzzy. She helped me up a ladder to the attic, took off my clothes, and gave me a thick, rough nightgown. I think I remember her kissing my hand and that she was crying. “The good Lord has sent you,” she said. “Now the little ones will have their prayers answered, and the Christkind won’t skip our house.”

CHAPTER VIII.
The Essen Barges

I lay for four days like a log in that garret bed. The storm died down, the thaw set in, and the snow melted. The children played about the doors and told stories at night round the fire. Stumm’s myrmidons no doubt beset every road and troubled the lives of innocent wayfarers. But no one came near the cottage, and the fever worked itself out while I lay in peace.

I lay for four days like a log in that attic bed. The storm calmed down, the thaw began, and the snow melted. The kids played outside and shared stories at night around the fire. Stumm’s henchmen were probably patrolling every road and making life difficult for innocent travelers. But no one came near the cottage, and the fever ran its course while I rested peacefully.

It was a bad bout, but on the fifth day it left me, and I lay, as weak as a kitten, staring at the rafters and the little skylight. It was a leaky, draughty old place, but the woman of the cottage had heaped deerskins and blankets on my bed and kept me warm. She came in now and then, and once she brought me a brew of some bitter herbs which greatly refreshed me. A little thin porridge was all the food I could eat, and some chocolate made from the slabs in my rucksack.

It was a rough time, but by the fifth day it passed, and I lay there, as weak as a kitten, staring at the rafters and the small skylight. It was a leaky, drafty old place, but the woman of the cottage had piled deerskins and blankets on my bed to keep me warm. She came in now and then, and once she brought me a brew of some bitter herbs that really refreshed me. A little thin porridge was all I could eat, along with some chocolate made from the slabs in my backpack.

I lay and dozed through the day, hearing the faint chatter of children below, and getting stronger hourly. Malaria passes as quickly as it comes and leaves a man little the worse, though this was one of the sharpest turns I ever had. As I lay I thought, and my thoughts followed curious lines. One queer thing was that Stumm and his doings seemed to have been shot back into a lumber-room of my brain and the door locked. He didn’t seem to be a creature of the living present, but a distant memory on which I could look calmly. I thought a good deal about my battalion and the comedy of my present position. You see I was getting better, for I called it comedy now, not tragedy.

I lay there, dozing through the day, hearing the soft chatter of children below, and getting stronger by the hour. Malaria comes and goes quickly, and it doesn't leave a person much worse off, though this was one of the roughest bouts I ever had. As I rested, my thoughts wandered down some unusual paths. One strange thing was that Stumm and his actions felt like they had been locked away in a corner of my mind, with the door shut tight. He didn’t seem real anymore, but more like a distant memory that I could observe calmly. I thought a lot about my battalion and the absurdity of my current situation. You see, I was improving, because I was calling it absurdity now, not tragedy.

But chiefly I thought of my mission. All that wild day in the snow it had seemed the merest farce. The three words Harry Bullivant had scribbled had danced through my head in a crazy fandango. They were present to me now, but coolly and sanely in all their meagreness.

But mainly I focused on my mission. Throughout that crazy day in the snow, it felt like a complete joke. The three words Harry Bullivant had written kept spinning in my mind in a wild dance. They were clear to me now, but calmly and rationally in all their simplicity.

I remember that I took each one separately and chewed on it for hours. Kasredin—there was nothing to be got out of that. Cancer—there were too many meanings, all blind. v. I.—that was the worst gibberish of all.

I remember taking each one on its own and chewing on it for hours. Kasredin—there was nothing to be gained from that. Cancer—there were too many meanings, all pointless. v. I.—that was the worst nonsense of all.

Before this I had always taken the I as the letter of the alphabet. I had thought the v. must stand for von, and I had considered the German names beginning with I—Ingolstadt, Ingeburg, Ingenohl, and all the rest of them. I had made a list of about seventy at the British Museum before I left London.

Before this, I had always viewed the letter I as just a letter of the alphabet. I thought the v. must stand for von, and I considered the German names that start with I—Ingolstadt, Ingeburg, Ingenohl, and all the others. I had made a list of about seventy at the British Museum before I left London.

Now I suddenly found myself taking the I as the numeral One. Idly, not thinking what I was doing, I put it into German.

Now I suddenly found myself using the I as the number One. Without thinking about what I was doing, I put it into German.

Then I nearly fell out of the bed. Von Einem—the name I had heard at Gaudian’s house, the name Stumm had spoken behind his hand, the name to which Hilda was probably the prefix. It was a tremendous discovery—the first real bit of light I had found. Harry Bullivant knew that some man or woman called von Einem was at the heart of the mystery. Stumm had spoken of the same personage with respect and in connection with the work I proposed to do in raising the Moslem Africans. If I found von Einem I would be getting very warm. What was the word that Stumm had whispered to Gaudian and scared that worthy? It had sounded like Ühnmantl. If I could only get that clear, I would solve the riddle.

Then I nearly fell out of bed. Von Einem—the name I had heard at Gaudian’s house, the name Stumm had mentioned in a whisper, the name that Hilda was probably linked to. It was an amazing discovery—the first real clue I had found. Harry Bullivant knew that someone named von Einem was at the center of the mystery. Stumm had talked about this same person with respect and in connection with the work I planned to do in uplifting the Moslem Africans. If I found von Einem, I would be getting really close. What was the word that Stumm had whispered to Gaudian that startled him? It had sounded like Ühnmantl. If only I could get that straight, I would crack the case.

I think that discovery completed my cure. At any rate on the evening of the fifth day—it was Wednesday, the 29th of December—I was well enough to get up. When the dark had fallen and it was too late to fear a visitor, I came downstairs and, wrapped in my green cape, took a seat by the fire.

I believe that discovery finished my healing. Anyway, on the evening of the fifth day—it was Wednesday, December 29th—I felt good enough to get up. Once the darkness had settled in and it was too late to worry about a visitor, I went downstairs and, wrapped in my green cape, took a seat by the fire.

As we sat there in the firelight, with the three white-headed children staring at me with saucer eyes, and smiling when I looked their way, the woman talked. Her man had gone to the wars on the Eastern front, and the last she had heard from him he was in a Polish bog and longing for his dry native woodlands. The struggle meant little to her. It was an act of God, a thunderbolt out of the sky, which had taken a husband from her, and might soon make her a widow and her children fatherless. She knew nothing of its causes and purposes, and thought of the Russians as a gigantic nation of savages, heathens who had never been converted, and who would eat up German homes if the good Lord and the brave German soldiers did not stop them. I tried hard to find out if she had any notion of affairs in the West, but she hadn’t, beyond the fact that there was trouble with the French. I doubt if she knew of England’s share in it. She was a decent soul, with no bitterness against anybody, not even the Russians if they would spare her man.

As we sat there in the firelight, with the three white-headed kids staring at me with wide eyes and smiling when I looked their way, the woman talked. Her husband had gone off to fight in the East, and the last she heard from him, he was stuck in a Polish swamp, missing his dry native woodlands. To her, the struggle didn’t mean much. It was just an act of God, a thunderbolt from the sky, that had taken her husband and might soon leave her a widow and her kids fatherless. She didn't know anything about its causes or purposes and thought of the Russians as a huge nation of savages, heathens who had never been converted, and who would destroy German homes if the good Lord and the brave German soldiers didn’t stop them. I tried hard to see if she had any idea about what was happening in the West, but she didn’t, except for knowing there was trouble with the French. I doubt she even knew about England’s involvement. She was a decent person, with no bitterness toward anyone, not even the Russians, if they would just spare her husband.

That night I realized the crazy folly of war. When I saw the splintered shell of Ypres and heard hideous tales of German doings, I used to want to see the whole land of the Boche given up to fire and sword. I thought we could never end the war properly without giving the Huns some of their own medicine. But that woodcutter’s cottage cured me of such nightmares. I was for punishing the guilty but letting the innocent go free. It was our business to thank God and keep our hands clean from the ugly blunders to which Germany’s madness had driven her. What good would it do Christian folk to burn poor little huts like this and leave children’s bodies by the wayside? To be able to laugh and to be merciful are the only things that make man better than the beasts.

That night I realized how crazy war is. When I saw the shattered remains of Ypres and heard horrible stories about what the Germans were doing, I used to want to see the entire land of the Germans devastated. I thought we could never truly end the war without giving them a taste of their own medicine. But that woodcutter’s cottage changed my mind. I wanted to punish the guilty while letting the innocent go free. It was our responsibility to thank God and keep our hands clean from the ugly mistakes that Germany’s madness had led her to make. What good would it do for good people to burn down small huts like this and leave children’s bodies by the roadside? Being able to laugh and show mercy are the only things that make us better than animals.

The place, as I have said, was desperately poor. The woman’s face had the skin stretched tight over the bones and that transparency which means under-feeding; I fancied she did not have the liberal allowance that soldiers’ wives get in England. The children looked better nourished, but it was by their mother’s sacrifice. I did my best to cheer them up. I told them long yarns about Africa and lions and tigers, and I got some pieces of wood and whittled them into toys. I am fairly good with a knife, and I carved very presentable likenesses of a monkey, a springbok, and a rhinoceros. The children went to bed hugging the first toys, I expect, they ever possessed.

The place, as I mentioned, was incredibly poor. The woman’s face had skin tightly stretched over her bones, showing signs of malnutrition; I guessed she didn’t get the decent support that soldiers’ wives receive in England. The kids seemed better fed, but that was due to their mother's sacrifices. I tried my best to lift their spirits. I shared long stories about Africa, lions, and tigers, and I found some wood to whittle into toys. I'm pretty skilled with a knife, and I carved decent versions of a monkey, a springbok, and a rhinoceros. The kids went to bed hugging, I imagine, the first toys they ever had.

It was clear to me that I must leave as soon as possible. I had to get on with my business, and besides, it was not fair to the woman. Any moment I might be found here, and she would get into trouble for harbouring me. I asked her if she knew where the Danube was, and her answer surprised me. “You will reach it in an hour’s walk,” she said. “The track through the wood runs straight to the ferry.”

It was obvious to me that I had to leave as soon as possible. I needed to take care of my business, and besides, it wasn't fair to the woman. Any moment I could be discovered here, and she would get in trouble for hiding me. I asked her if she knew where the Danube was, and her answer surprised me. “You can reach it in a one-hour walk,” she said. “The path through the woods goes straight to the ferry.”

Next morning after breakfast I took my departure. It was drizzling weather, and I was feeling very lean. Before going I presented my hostess and the children with two sovereigns apiece. “It is English gold,” I said, “for I have to travel among our enemies and use our enemies’ money. But the gold is good, and if you go to any town they will change it for you. But I advise you to put it in your stocking-foot and use it only if all else fails. You must keep your home going, for some day there will be peace and your man will come back from the wars.”

Next morning after breakfast, I said my goodbyes. It was drizzling, and I was feeling pretty frail. Before leaving, I gave my hostess and the kids two sovereigns each. “This is English gold,” I said, “because I need to travel among our enemies and use their money. But this gold is solid, and if you go to any town, they will exchange it for you. Just a suggestion—keep it in your sock and only use it if you really have to. You need to keep your home running because someday there will be peace, and your man will come back from the wars.”

I kissed the children, shook the woman’s hand, and went off down the clearing. They had cried “Auf wiedersehen,” but it wasn’t likely I would ever see them again.

I kissed the kids, shook the woman’s hand, and walked down the clearing. They had said “Goodbye,” but it was unlikely I would ever see them again.

The snow had all gone, except in patches in the deep hollows. The ground was like a full sponge, and a cold rain drifted in my eyes. After half an hour’s steady trudge the trees thinned, and presently I came out on a knuckle of open ground cloaked in dwarf junipers. And there before me lay the plain, and a mile off a broad brimming river.

The snow had melted away, except for some patches in the deep dips. The ground felt like a soaked sponge, and a cold rain was hitting my face. After trudging steadily for half an hour, the trees eased up, and soon I reached a stretch of open ground covered in low junipers. And there in front of me was the plain, with a wide, full river about a mile away.

I sat down and looked dismally at the prospect. The exhilaration of my discovery the day before had gone. I had stumbled on a worthless piece of knowledge, for I could not use it. Hilda von Einem, if such a person existed and possessed the great secret, was probably living in some big house in Berlin, and I was about as likely to get anything out of her as to be asked to dine with the Kaiser. Blenkiron might do something, but where on earth was Blenkiron? I dared say Sir Walter would value the information, but I could not get to Sir Walter. I was to go on to Constantinople, running away from the people who really pulled the ropes. But if I stayed I could do nothing, and I could not stay. I must go on and I didn’t see how I could go on. Every course seemed shut to me, and I was in as pretty a tangle as any man ever stumbled into.

I sat down and looked bleakly at the situation. The excitement from my discovery the day before had faded. I had found a useless piece of information that I couldn’t actually use. Hilda von Einem, if she even existed and really had the big secret, was probably living in some fancy house in Berlin, and my chances of getting anything from her were about as good as being invited to dinner with the Kaiser. Blenkiron might help, but where on earth was Blenkiron? I figured Sir Walter would value the information, but I couldn’t reach Sir Walter. I was supposed to go to Constantinople, running away from the people who really controlled everything. But if I stayed, I could do nothing, and I couldn’t stay. I had to move on, but I had no idea how to do that. Every option seemed closed off to me, and I was in as much of a mess as any guy could ever find himself in.

For I was morally certain that Stumm would not let the thing drop. I knew too much, and besides I had outraged his pride. He would beat the countryside till he got me, and he undoubtedly would get me if I waited much longer. But how was I to get over the border? My passport would be no good, for the number of that pass would long ere this have been wired to every police-station in Germany, and to produce it would be to ask for trouble. Without it I could not cross the borders by any railway. My studies of the Tourists’ Guide had suggested that once I was in Austria I might find things slacker and move about easier. I thought of having a try at the Tyrol and I also thought of Bohemia. But these places were a long way off, and there were several thousand chances each day that I would be caught on the road.

For I was pretty sure that Stumm wouldn’t just let this go. I knew too much, and on top of that, I had hurt his pride. He would search the countryside until he found me, and he definitely would if I waited any longer. But how was I supposed to get over the border? My passport wouldn’t help, as its number would have already been sent to every police station in Germany, and showing it would just get me in trouble. Without it, I couldn’t cross the borders by train. My research in the Tourists’ Guide suggested that once I got into Austria, things might be more relaxed and I could move around more freely. I considered trying my luck in the Tyrol and also thought about Bohemia. But those places were far away, and there were thousands of chances every day that I would get caught on the way.

This was Thursday, the 30th of December, the second last day of the year. I was due in Constantinople on the 17th of January. Constantinople! I had thought myself a long way from it in Berlin, but now it seemed as distant as the moon.

This was Thursday, December 30th, the second to last day of the year. I was scheduled to be in Istanbul on January 17th. Istanbul! I had felt far from it in Berlin, but now it seemed as far away as the moon.

But that big sullen river in front of me led to it. And as I looked my attention was caught by a curious sight. On the far eastern horizon, where the water slipped round a corner of hill, there was a long trail of smoke. The streamers thinned out, and seemed to come from some boat well round the corner, but I could see at least two boats in view. Therefore there must be a long train of barges, with a tug in tow.

But that big, gloomy river in front of me led to it. As I looked, something caught my attention. On the far eastern horizon, where the water curved around a hill, there was a long trail of smoke. The smoke thinned out and seemed to come from a boat that was just around the corner, but I could see at least two boats in view. So there had to be a long line of barges being pulled by a tug.

I looked to the west and saw another such procession coming into sight. First went a big river steamer—it can’t have been much less than 1,000 tons—and after came a string of barges. I counted no less than six besides the tug. They were heavily loaded and their draught must have been considerable, but there was plenty of depth in the flooded river.

I turned to the west and noticed another procession coming into view. First was a large river steamer—it must have been at least 1,000 tons—and then a line of barges followed. I counted at least six, not including the tug. They were loaded down, and their draft had to be significant, but there was plenty of depth in the flooded river.

A moment’s reflection told me what I was looking at. Once Sandy, in one of the discussions you have in hospital, had told us just how the Germans munitioned their Balkan campaign. They were pretty certain of dishing Serbia at the first go, and it was up to them to get through guns and shells to the old Turk, who was running pretty short in his first supply. Sandy said that they wanted the railway, but they wanted still more the river, and they could make certain of that in a week. He told us how endless strings of barges, loaded up at the big factories of Westphalia, were moving through the canals from the Rhine or the Elbe to the Danube. Once the first reached Turkey, there would be regular delivery, you see—as quick as the Turks could handle the stuff. And they didn’t return empty, Sandy said, but came back full of Turkish cotton and Bulgarian beef and Rumanian corn. I don’t know where Sandy got the knowledge, but there was the proof of it before my eyes.

A moment’s reflection made it clear what I was looking at. Once, Sandy, during one of those conversations you have in hospitals, had explained how the Germans supplied their campaign in the Balkans. They were quite confident they'd defeat Serbia right away, and it was on them to get guns and shells to the old Turk, who was running low on his initial supplies. Sandy mentioned that they wanted the railway, but even more, they needed the river, and they could secure that in a week. He described how endless lines of barges, filled up at the major factories of Westphalia, were moving through the canals from the Rhine or the Elbe to the Danube. Once the first reached Turkey, there would be consistent deliveries, you see—as fast as the Turks could manage it. And they didn't come back empty, Sandy said; they returned loaded with Turkish cotton, Bulgarian beef, and Romanian corn. I have no idea where Sandy got his information, but the evidence was right in front of me.

It was a wonderful sight, and I could have gnashed my teeth to see those loads of munitions going snugly off to the enemy. I calculated they would give our poor chaps hell in Gallipoli. And then, as I looked, an idea came into my head and with it an eighth part of a hope.

It was an amazing sight, and I could have ground my teeth seeing those loads of weapons heading off to the enemy. I figured they would really give our poor guys a tough time in Gallipoli. And then, as I watched, an idea popped into my head along with a glimmer of hope.

There was only one way for me to get out of Germany, and that was to leave in such good company that I would be asked no questions. That was plain enough. If I travelled to Turkey, for instance, in the Kaiser’s suite, I would be as safe as the mail; but if I went on my own I was done. I had, so to speak, to get my passport inside Germany, to join some caravan which had free marching powers. And there was the kind of caravan before me—the Essen barges.

There was only one way for me to get out of Germany, and that was to leave in such good company that I wouldn’t be asked any questions. That was pretty clear. If I traveled to Turkey, for example, in the Kaiser’s entourage, I would be as safe as the mail; but if I went on my own, I was finished. I had, so to speak, to get my passport inside Germany, to join some caravan that had free movement rights. And there was the kind of caravan in front of me—the Essen barges.

It sounded lunacy, for I guessed that munitions of war would be as jealously guarded as old Hindenburg’s health. All the safer, I replied to myself, once I get there. If you are looking for a deserter you don’t seek him at the favourite regimental public-house. If you’re after a thief, among the places you’d be apt to leave unsearched would be Scotland Yard.

It sounded crazy because I figured that weapons would be protected just as carefully as Hindenburg’s health. All the more reason to feel safe, I told myself, once I get there. If you’re trying to find a deserter, you wouldn’t look for him at the usual regimental pub. If you’re after a thief, one of the last places you’d search is Scotland Yard.

It was sound reasoning, but how was I to get on board? Probably the beastly things did not stop once in a hundred miles, and Stumm would get me long before I struck a halting-place. And even if I did get a chance like that, how was I to get permission to travel?

It made sense, but how was I supposed to get on board? Those horrible things probably didn't stop for a hundred miles, and Stumm would catch me long before I found a place to stop. And even if I did get an opportunity like that, how was I supposed to get permission to travel?

One step was clearly indicated—to get down to the river bank at once. So I set off at a sharp walk across squelchy fields, till I struck a road where the ditches had overflowed so as almost to meet in the middle. The place was so bad that I hoped travellers might be few. And as I trudged, my thoughts were busy with my prospects as a stowaway. If I bought food, I might get a chance to lie snug on one of the barges. They would not break bulk till they got to their journey’s end.

One thing was clear—I needed to get to the riverbank immediately. So, I quickly walked across muddy fields until I reached a road where the ditches had overflowed and were nearly touching in the center. The area was so messy that I hoped there wouldn’t be many travelers. As I walked, I was focused on my plans as a stowaway. If I bought some food, I might have a chance to settle in comfortably on one of the barges. They wouldn’t unload until they reached their final destination.

Suddenly I noticed that the steamer, which was now abreast me, began to move towards the shore, and as I came over a low rise, I saw on my left a straggling village with a church, and a small landing-stage. The houses stood about a quarter of a mile from the stream, and between them was a straight, poplar-fringed road.

Suddenly, I noticed that the steamer, which was now level with me, started moving toward the shore. As I crested a low rise, I saw to my left a scattered village with a church and a small landing area. The houses were about a quarter of a mile from the river, and between them was a straight road lined with poplar trees.

Soon there could be no doubt about it. The procession was coming to a standstill. The big tug nosed her way in and lay up alongside the pier, where in that season of flood there was enough depth of water. She signalled to the barges and they also started to drop anchors, which showed that there must be at least two men aboard each. Some of them dragged a bit and it was rather a cock-eyed train that lay in mid-stream. The tug got out a gangway, and from where I lay I saw half a dozen men leave it, carrying something on their shoulders.

Soon it became clear. The procession was coming to a stop. The big tugboat made its way in and docked at the pier, where the water was deep enough during this flood season. It signaled to the barges, which also started to drop their anchors, indicating that there were at least two men on each one. Some of them dragged a bit, resulting in a somewhat crooked line of boats in mid-stream. The tugboat set up a gangway, and from where I was lying, I saw half a dozen men leave it, carrying something on their shoulders.

It could be only one thing—a dead body. Someone of the crew must have died, and this halt was to bury him. I watched the procession move towards the village and I reckoned they would take some time there, though they might have wired ahead for a grave to be dug. Anyhow, they would be long enough to give me a chance.

It could only be one thing—a dead body. Someone from the crew must have died, and this stop was to bury him. I watched the procession head towards the village and figured they would take a while there, even though they might have alerted someone to dig a grave in advance. Either way, they would be gone long enough to give me a chance.

For I had decided upon the brazen course. Blenkiron had said you couldn’t cheat the Boche, but you could bluff him. I was going to put up the most monstrous bluff. If the whole countryside was hunting for Richard Hannay, Richard Hannay would walk through as a pal of the hunters. For I remembered the pass Stumm had given me. If that was worth a tinker’s curse it should be good enough to impress a ship’s captain.

For I had chosen a bold approach. Blenkiron had said you couldn’t outsmart the Germans, but you could fake them out. I was about to throw up the biggest bluff. If the entire area was searching for Richard Hannay, then Richard Hannay would stroll through as one of the searchers. I remembered the pass Stumm had given me. If that was worth anything at all, it should be enough to impress a ship’s captain.

Of course there were a thousand risks. They might have heard of me in the village and told the ship’s party the story. For that reason I resolved not to go there but to meet the sailors when they were returning to the boat. Or the captain might have been warned and got the number of my pass, in which case Stumm would have his hands on me pretty soon. Or the captain might be an ignorant fellow who had never seen a Secret Service pass and did not know what it meant, and would refuse me transport by the letter of his instructions. In that case I might wait on another convoy.

Of course, there were a thousand risks. They could have heard about me in the village and told the ship’s crew the story. Because of that, I decided not to go there but to meet the sailors when they were coming back to the boat. Or the captain could have been alerted and gotten my pass number, in which case Stumm would have me in his sights pretty quickly. Or the captain could be an ignorant guy who had never seen a Secret Service pass and didn’t know what it meant, and he would deny me transport according to his orders. In that case, I might have to wait for another convoy.

I had shaved and made myself a fairly respectable figure before I left the cottage. It was my cue to wait for the men when they left the church, wait on that quarter-mile of straight highway. I judged the captain must be in the party. The village, I was glad to observe, seemed very empty. I have my own notions about the Bavarians as fighting men, but I am bound to say that, judging by my observations, very few of them stayed at home.

I had shaved and made myself look pretty decent before I left the cottage. It was my cue to wait for the men when they came out of the church, waiting on that quarter-mile stretch of straight highway. I figured the captain must be in the group. I was glad to see that the village looked quite empty. I have my own opinions about the Bavarians as fighters, but I have to say that, based on what I've seen, very few of them stayed back.

That funeral took hours. They must have had to dig the grave, for I waited near the road in a clump of cherry-trees, with my feet in two inches of mud and water, till I felt chilled to the bone. I prayed to God it would not bring back my fever, for I was only one day out of bed. I had very little tobacco left in my pouch, but I stood myself one pipe, and I ate one of the three cakes of chocolate I still carried.

That funeral lasted for hours. They must have had to dig the grave because I waited by the road in a cluster of cherry trees, with my feet in a couple of inches of mud and water, until I felt chilled to the bone. I prayed to God that it wouldn't bring back my fever since I had just gotten out of bed one day ago. I had very little tobacco left in my pouch, but I rolled myself one pipe and ate one of the three chocolate bars I still had.

At last, well after midday, I could see the ship’s party returning. They marched two by two and I was thankful to see that they had no villagers with them. I walked to the road, turned up it, and met the vanguard, carrying my head as high as I knew how.

At last, well after noon, I could see the ship’s crew coming back. They marched in pairs, and I was relieved to see that they didn’t have any villagers with them. I walked to the road, turned up it, and met the front line, holding my head as high as I could.

“Where’s your captain?” I asked, and a man jerked his thumb over his shoulder. The others wore thick jerseys and knitted caps, but there was one man at the rear in uniform.

“Where’s your captain?” I asked, and a man pointed his thumb over his shoulder. The others wore heavy jerseys and knit caps, but there was one man at the back in uniform.

He was a short, broad man with a weather-beaten face and an anxious eye.

He was a short, stocky man with a weathered face and a nervous look in his eye.

“May I have a word with you, Herr Captain?” I said, with what I hoped was a judicious blend of authority and conciliation.

“Can I talk to you for a moment, Captain?” I said, with what I hoped was a careful mix of authority and friendliness.

He nodded to his companion, who walked on.

He nodded to his friend, who kept walking.

“Yes?” he asked rather impatiently.

"Yes?" he asked impatiently.

I proffered him my pass. Thank Heaven he had seen the kind of thing before, for his face at once took on that curious look which one person in authority always wears when he is confronted with another. He studied it closely and then raised his eyes.

I handed him my pass. Thank goodness he had seen this kind of thing before because his face immediately displayed that familiar expression people in authority get when they encounter someone else in charge. He examined it carefully and then looked up.

“Well, Sir?” he said. “I observe your credentials. What can I do for you?”

“Well, Sir?” he said. “I've looked over your credentials. How can I help you?”

“I take it you are bound for Constantinople?” I asked.

“I assume you're heading to Constantinople?” I asked.

“The boats go as far as Rustchuk,” he replied. “There the stuff is transferred to the railway.”

“The boats go as far as Rustchuk,” he said. “There, the cargo is transferred to the train.”

“And you reach Rustchuk when?”

“When do you reach Rustchuk?”

“In ten days, bar accidents. Let us say twelve to be safe.”

“In ten days, barring any accidents. Let’s say twelve to be safe.”

“I want to accompany you,” I said. “In my profession, Herr Captain, it is necessary sometimes to make journeys by other than the common route. That is now my desire. I have the right to call upon some other branch of our country’s service to help me. Hence my request.”

“I want to come with you,” I said. “In my line of work, Herr Captain, it's sometimes necessary to take alternative paths. That's what I want now. I have the right to ask for assistance from another branch of our country's service. That's why I'm making this request.”

Very plainly he did not like it.

He obviously didn't like it.

“I must telegraph about it. My instructions are to let no one aboard, not even a man like you. I am sorry, Sir, but I must get authority first before I can fall in with your desire. Besides, my boat is ill-found. You had better wait for the next batch and ask Dreyser to take you. I lost Walter today. He was ill when he came aboard—a disease of the heart—but he would not be persuaded. And last night he died.”

“I have to send a message about this. My orders are to not let anyone on board, not even someone like you. I’m sorry, sir, but I need to get permission first before I can meet your request. Besides, my boat isn’t in good condition. You should wait for the next group and ask Dreyser to take you. I lost Walter today. He was sick when he came on board—a heart condition—but wouldn’t listen to reason. And last night he passed away.”

“Was that him you have been burying?” I asked.

“Was that him you were burying?” I asked.

“Even so. He was a good man and my wife’s cousin, and now I have no engineer. Only a fool of a boy from Hamburg. I have just come from wiring to my owners for a fresh man, but even if he comes by the quickest train he will scarcely overtake us before Vienna or even Buda.”

“Even so. He was a good guy and my wife’s cousin, and now I have no engineer. Just a foolish boy from Hamburg. I’ve just contacted my owners for a new person, but even if he takes the fastest train, he’ll barely catch up with us before Vienna or even Buda.”

I saw light at last.

I finally saw the light.

“We will go together,” I said, “and cancel that wire. For behold, Herr Captain, I am an engineer, and will gladly keep an eye on your boilers till we get to Rustchuk.”

“We'll go together,” I said, “and cancel that wire. Because, look, Herr Captain, I'm an engineer, and I'll happily keep an eye on your boilers until we get to Rustchuk.”

He looked at me doubtfully.

He looked at me skeptically.

“I am speaking truth,” I said. “Before the war I was an engineer in Damaraland. Mining was my branch, but I had a good general training, and I know enough to run a river-boat. Have no fear. I promise you I will earn my passage.”

“I’m telling the truth,” I said. “Before the war, I was an engineer in Damaraland. Mining was my area of expertise, but I had solid general training, and I know enough to operate a riverboat. Don't worry. I promise I’ll earn my passage.”

His face cleared, and he looked what he was, an honest, good-humoured North German seaman.

His face brightened, and he looked like what he was, an honest, good-natured North German sailor.

“Come then in God’s name,” he cried, “and we will make a bargain. I will let the telegraph sleep. I require authority from the Government to take a passenger, but I need none to engage a new engineer.”

“Come then in God’s name,” he shouted, “and we’ll make a deal. I’ll put the telegraph on hold. I need permission from the Government to take on a passenger, but I don’t need any to hire a new engineer.”

He sent one of the hands back to the village to cancel his wire. In ten minutes I found myself on board, and ten minutes later we were out in mid-stream and our tows were lumbering into line. Coffee was being made ready in the cabin, and while I waited for it I picked up the captain’s binoculars and scanned the place I had left.

He sent one of the crew back to the village to cancel his message. In ten minutes, I was on board, and ten minutes later we were in the middle of the river, and our tows were lining up. Coffee was being prepared in the cabin, and while I waited for it, I grabbed the captain’s binoculars and scanned the area I had just left.

I saw some curious things. On the first road I had struck on leaving the cottage there were men on bicycles moving rapidly. They seemed to wear uniform. On the next parallel road, the one that ran through the village, I could see others. I noticed, too, that several figures appeared to be beating the intervening fields.

I saw some interesting things. On the first road I came across when I left the cottage, there were men on bicycles riding quickly. They looked like they were in uniform. On the next parallel road, which went through the village, I could see more of them. I also noticed that several figures seemed to be working in the fields in between.

Stumm’s cordon had got busy at last, and I thanked my stars that not one of the villagers had seen me. I had not got away much too soon, for in another half-hour he would have had me.

Stumm's cordon had finally gotten active, and I was grateful that none of the villagers had spotted me. I barely escaped in time; if I'd waited another half-hour, he would have caught me.

CHAPTER IX.
The Return of the Straggler

Before I turned in that evening I had done some good hours’ work in the engine-room. The boat was oil-fired, and in very fair order, so my duties did not look as if they would be heavy. There was nobody who could be properly called an engineer; only, besides the furnace-men, a couple of lads from Hamburg who had been a year ago apprentices in a ship-building yard. They were civil fellows, both of them consumptive, who did what I told them and said little. By bedtime, if you had seen me in my blue jumper, a pair of carpet slippers, and a flat cap—all the property of the deceased Walter—you would have sworn I had been bred to the firing of river-boats, whereas I had acquired most of my knowledge on one run down the Zambesi, when the proper engineer got drunk and fell overboard among the crocodiles.

Before I went to bed that evening, I had put in a good few hours of work in the engine room. The boat ran on oil and was in pretty good shape, so my responsibilities didn’t seem too heavy. There wasn't anyone who could really be called an engineer; besides the furnace workers, there were a couple of guys from Hamburg who had been apprentices at a shipyard a year ago. They were nice enough, both of them sickly, who did what I asked and said little. By bedtime, if you had seen me in my blue sweatshirt, a pair of slippers, and a flat cap—all belongings of the late Walter—you would have thought I was raised to run river boats, even though I had learned most of what I knew on one trip down the Zambezi, when the real engineer got drunk and fell overboard into the crocodile-infested waters.

The captain—they called him Schenk—was out of his bearings in the job. He was a Frisian and a first-class deep-water seaman, but, since he knew the Rhine delta, and because the German mercantile marine was laid on the ice till the end of war, they had turned him on to this show. He was bored by the business, and didn’t understand it very well. The river charts puzzled him, and though it was pretty plain going for hundreds of miles, yet he was in a perpetual fidget about the pilotage. You could see that he would have been far more in his element smelling his way through the shoals of the Ems mouth, or beating against a northeaster in the shallow Baltic. He had six barges in tow, but the heavy flood of the Danube made it an easy job except when it came to going slow. There were two men on each barge, who came aboard every morning to draw rations. That was a funny business, for we never lay to if we could help it. There was a dinghy belonging to each barge, and the men used to row to the next and get a lift in that barge’s dinghy, and so forth. Six men would appear in the dinghy of the barge nearest us and carry off supplies for the rest. The men were mostly Frisians, slow-spoken, sandy-haired lads, very like the breed you strike on the Essex coast.

The captain—called Schenk—was really out of his depth in this job. He was a Frisian and a skilled deep-sea sailor, but since he knew the Rhine delta and because the German merchant fleet was grounded until the end of the war, they put him in charge of this operation. He found the work boring and didn’t understand it very well. The river charts confused him, and even though the waters were pretty straightforward for hundreds of miles, he was constantly anxious about navigating. You could tell he would have been much more comfortable navigating through the shallow areas of the Ems river or battling against a northeast wind in the shallow Baltic Sea. He had six barges in tow, but the strong current of the Danube made the job easy, except when they needed to slow down. There were two men on each barge, who came aboard every morning to collect rations. It was a strange setup because we never stopped if we could avoid it. Each barge had a dinghy, and the men would row to the next barge to hitch a ride in that one’s dinghy, and so on. Six men would show up in the dinghy of the closest barge and take supplies for the rest. The men were mostly Frisians, slow-talking, sandy-haired guys, very similar to the type you find on the Essex coast.

It was the fact that Schenk was really a deep-water sailor, and so a novice to the job, that made me get on with him. He was a good fellow and quite willing to take a hint, so before I had been twenty-four hours on board he was telling me all his difficulties, and I was doing my best to cheer him. And difficulties came thick, because the next night was New Year’s Eve.

It was the fact that Schenk was actually a deep-water sailor, making him new to the job, that helped me connect with him. He was a decent guy and quite open to suggestions, so within twenty-four hours of being on board, he was sharing all his challenges with me, and I was doing my best to lift his spirits. And challenges came fast and furious because the next night was New Year’s Eve.

I knew that that night was a season of gaiety in Scotland, but Scotland wasn’t in it with the Fatherland. Even Schenk, though he was in charge of valuable stores and was voyaging against time, was quite clear that the men must have permission for some kind of beano. Just before darkness we came abreast a fair-sized town, whose name I never discovered, and decided to lie to for the night. The arrangement was that one man should be left on guard in each barge, and the other get four hours’ leave ashore. Then he would return and relieve his friend, who should proceed to do the same thing. I foresaw that there would be some fun when the first batch returned, but I did not dare to protest. I was desperately anxious to get past the Austrian frontier, for I had a half-notion we might be searched there, but Schenk took his Sylvesterabend business so seriously that I would have risked a row if I had tried to argue.

I knew that night was a time of celebration in Scotland, but Scotland couldn’t compete with the Fatherland. Even Schenk, who was in charge of valuable supplies and racing against the clock, understood that the men needed permission for some kind of party. Just before dark, we reached a decent-sized town, whose name I never found out, and decided to dock for the night. The plan was for one person to stay on guard in each barge while the other had four hours’ leave on land. Then he would return and swap places with his friend, who would do the same. I anticipated there would be some fun when the first group came back, but I didn’t dare to object. I was really eager to get past the Austrian border because I had a nagging feeling we might be searched there, but Schenk took his Sylvesterabend plans so seriously that I would have risked a fight if I had tried to argue.

The upshot was what I expected. We got the first batch aboard about midnight, blind to the world, and the others straggled in at all hours next morning. I stuck to the boat for obvious reasons, but next day it became too serious, and I had to go ashore with the captain to try and round up the stragglers. We got them all in but two, and I am inclined to think these two had never meant to come back. If I had a soft job like a river-boat I shouldn’t be inclined to run away in the middle of Germany with the certainty that my best fate would be to be scooped up for the trenches, but your Frisian has no more imagination than a haddock. The absentees were both watchmen from the barges, and I fancy the monotony of the life had got on their nerves.

The result was exactly what I expected. We got the first group on board around midnight, completely unaware of everything around us, and the others trickled in at all hours the next morning. I stayed on the boat for obvious reasons, but the next day things got too serious, and I had to go ashore with the captain to try to round up the stragglers. We managed to get everyone in except for two, and I suspect those two never intended to come back. If I had an easy job like being on a riverboat, I wouldn’t feel like running away in the middle of Germany knowing my best fate would be to get sent to the front lines, but your Frisian has as much imagination as a haddock. The two missing were both watchmen from the barges, and I think the monotony of their lives had driven them a bit crazy.

The captain was in a raging temper, for he was short-handed to begin with. He would have started a press-gang, but there was no superfluity of men in that township: nothing but boys and grandfathers. As I was helping to run the trip I was pretty annoyed also, and I sluiced down the drunkards with icy Danube water, using all the worst language I knew in Dutch and German. It was a raw morning, and as we raged through the river-side streets I remember I heard the dry crackle of wild geese going overhead, and wished I could get a shot at them. I told one fellow—he was the most troublesome—that he was a disgrace to a great Empire, and was only fit to fight with the filthy English.

The captain was furious because he was already short-staffed. He would have rounded up a press gang, but there weren't enough able-bodied men in that town—just boys and old men. Since I was helping to manage the trip, I was pretty annoyed too, so I drenched the drunks with icy Danube water, using the worst insults I knew in Dutch and German. It was a chilly morning, and as we charged through the riverside streets, I remember hearing the dry crackle of wild geese flying overhead and wishing I could take a shot at them. I told one guy—he was the most obnoxious—that he was a disgrace to a great Empire and only good enough to fight the filthy English.

“God in Heaven!” said the captain, “we can delay no longer. We must make shift the best we can. I can spare one man from the deck hands, and you must give up one from the engine-room.”

“God in Heaven!” said the captain, “we can’t wait any longer. We have to manage the best we can. I can let one person go from the deck crew, and you need to send one from the engine room.”

That was arranged, and we were tearing back rather short in the wind when I espied a figure sitting on a bench beside the booking-office on the pier. It was a slim figure, in an old suit of khaki: some cast-off duds which had long lost the semblance of a uniform. It had a gentle face, and was smoking peacefully, looking out upon the river and the boats and us noisy fellows with meek philosophical eyes. If I had seen General French sitting there and looking like nothing on earth I couldn’t have been more surprised.

That was arranged, and we were racing back rather quickly in the wind when I spotted a figure sitting on a bench next to the ticket office on the pier. It was a slender figure, in an old khaki suit: some worn-out clothes that had long lost the appearance of a uniform. It had a kind face and was peacefully smoking, gazing out at the river, the boats, and us loud guys with calm, thoughtful eyes. If I had seen General French sitting there looking so unremarkable, I couldn’t have been more surprised.

The man stared at me without recognition. He was waiting for his cue.

The man looked at me with no sign of recognition. He was waiting for his moment to act.

I spoke rapidly in Sesutu, for I was afraid the captain might know Dutch.

I spoke quickly in Sesutu because I was worried the captain might understand Dutch.

“Where have you come from?” I asked.

“Where did you come from?” I asked.

“They shut me up in tronk,” said Peter, “and I ran away. I am tired, Cornelis, and want to continue the journey by boat.”

“They locked me up in tronk,” Peter said, “and I escaped. I'm exhausted, Cornelis, and I want to keep going by boat.”

“Remember you have worked for me in Africa,” I said. “You are just home from Damaraland. You are a German who has lived thirty years away from home. You can tend a furnace and have worked in mines.”

“Remember, you worked for me in Africa,” I said. “You just got back from Damaraland. You’re German and have lived thirty years away from home. You know how to tend a furnace and have worked in mines.”

Then I spoke to the captain.

Then I talked to the captain.

“Here is a fellow who used to be in my employ, Captain Schenk. It’s almighty luck we’ve struck him. He’s old, and not very strong in the head, but I’ll go bail he’s a good worker. He says he’ll come with us and I can use him in the engine-room.”

“Here’s a guy who used to work for me, Captain Schenk. It’s an incredible stroke of luck that we found him. He’s older and not the sharpest, but I can guarantee he’s a solid worker. He says he’ll join us, and I can put him to work in the engine room.”

“Stand up,” said the Captain.

“Get up,” said the Captain.

Peter stood up, light and slim and wiry as a leopard. A sailor does not judge men by girth and weight.

Peter stood up, light and slender and wiry like a leopard. A sailor doesn’t judge people by their size and weight.

“He’ll do,” said Schenk, and the next minute he was readjusting his crews and giving the strayed revellers the rough side of his tongue. As it chanced, I couldn’t keep Peter with me, but had to send him to one of the barges, and I had time for no more than five words with him, when I told him to hold his tongue and live up to his reputation as a half-wit. That accursed Sylvesterabend had played havoc with the whole outfit, and the captain and I were weary men before we got things straight.

“He’ll do,” said Schenk, and the next minute he was readjusting his crew and giving the wandering partygoers a piece of his mind. As it happened, I couldn’t keep Peter with me and had to send him to one of the barges. I had time for only five words with him when I told him to be quiet and stick to his reputation as a half-wit. That cursed Sylvesterabend had thrown the whole operation into chaos, and the captain and I were exhausted by the time we got everything sorted out.

In one way it turned out well. That afternoon we passed the frontier and I never knew it till I saw a man in a strange uniform come aboard, who copied some figures on a schedule, and brought us a mail. With my dirty face and general air of absorption in duty, I must have been an unsuspicious figure. He took down the names of the men in the barges, and Peter’s name was given as it appeared on the ship’s roll—Anton Blum.

In a way, it worked out well. That afternoon, we crossed the border, and I didn’t even realize it until I saw a guy in a weird uniform come onboard. He wrote down some numbers from a schedule and delivered the mail. With my dirty face and serious focus on my work, I must have looked pretty innocent. He jotted down the names of the guys in the barges, and Peter’s name was listed as it was on the ship’s roster—Anton Blum.

“You must feel it strange, Herr Brandt,” said the captain, “to be scrutinized by a policeman, you who give orders, I doubt not, to many policemen.”

“You must find it odd, Mr. Brandt,” said the captain, “to be examined by a police officer, you who undoubtedly give orders to many officers.”

I shrugged my shoulders. “It is my profession. It is my business to go unrecognized often by my own servants.” I could see that I was becoming rather a figure in the captain’s eyes. He liked the way I kept the men up to their work, for I hadn’t been a nigger-driver for nothing.

I shrugged. “It’s my job. It’s part of my work to often go unrecognized by my own staff.” I could tell I was becoming somewhat of a figure in the captain’s eyes. He appreciated how I kept the men on task, because I hadn’t been a taskmaster for nothing.

Late on that Sunday night we passed through a great city which the captain told me was Vienna. It seemed to last for miles and miles, and to be as brightly lit as a circus. After that, we were in big plains and the air grew perishing cold. Peter had come aboard once for his rations, but usually he left it to his partner, for he was lying very low. But one morning—I think it was the 5th of January, when we had passed Buda and were moving through great sodden flats just sprinkled with snow—the captain took it into his head to get me to overhaul the barge loads. Armed with a mighty type-written list, I made a tour of the barges, beginning with the hindmost. There was a fine old stock of deadly weapons—mostly machine-guns and some field-pieces, and enough shells to blow up the Gallipoli peninsula. All kinds of shell were there, from the big 14-inch crumps to rifle grenades and trench-mortars. It made me fairly sick to see all these good things preparing for our own fellows, and I wondered whether I would not be doing my best service if I engineered a big explosion. Happily I had the common sense to remember my job and my duty and to stick to it.

Late that Sunday night, we passed through a big city that the captain told me was Vienna. It seemed to stretch on for miles and was as brightly lit as a circus. After that, we entered wide plains and the air became freezing cold. Peter had come on board once for his supplies, but usually, he left it to his partner since he was keeping a low profile. But one morning—I think it was January 5th, after we'd passed Buda and were moving through vast, soggy areas lightly dusted with snow—the captain decided I should check the barge loads. With a detailed typewritten list in hand, I toured the barges, starting with the last one. There was a significant stash of deadly weapons—mostly machine guns, some field artillery, and enough shells to blow up the Gallipoli peninsula. There was all sorts of ammunition, from large 14-inch shells to rifle grenades and trench mortars. It made me feel quite sick to see all these supplies meant for our own people, and I wondered if I would be doing a greater service by orchestrating a big explosion. Luckily, I had the good sense to remember my job and my duty and to stick to it.

Peter was in the middle of the convoy, and I found him pretty unhappy, principally through not being allowed to smoke. His companion was an ox-eyed lad, whom I ordered to the look-out while Peter and I went over the lists.

Peter was in the middle of the convoy, and I found him quite unhappy, mainly because he wasn’t allowed to smoke. His buddy was a guy with big eyes, whom I told to keep watch while Peter and I went over the lists.

“Cornelis, my old friend,” he said, “there are some pretty toys here. With a spanner and a couple of clear hours I could make these maxims about as deadly as bicycles. What do you say to a try?”

“Cornelis, my old friend,” he said, “there are some nice toys here. With a wrench and a couple of free hours, I could make these maxims just as dangerous as bicycles. What do you think about giving it a shot?”

“I’ve considered that,” I said, “but it won’t do. We’re on a bigger business than wrecking munition convoys. I want to know how you got here.”

“I’ve thought about that,” I said, “but it’s not going to work. We’ve got a bigger mission than just taking out munitions shipments. I want to know how you got here.”

He smiled with that extraordinary Sunday-school docility of his.

He smiled with that remarkable Sunday-school innocence of his.

“It was very simple, Cornelis. I was foolish in the cafe—but they have told you of that. You see I was angry and did not reflect. They had separated us, and I could see would treat me as dirt. Therefore, my bad temper came out, for, as I have told you, I do not like Germans.”

“It was really simple, Cornelis. I acted foolishly in the café—but they’ve filled you in on that. You see, I was angry and didn’t really think. They had separated us, and I could see they would treat me like trash. So, my bad temper showed, because, as I’ve told you, I don’t like Germans.”

Peter gazed lovingly at the little bleak farms which dotted the Hungarian plain.

Peter looked affectionately at the small, sad farms scattered across the Hungarian plains.

“All night I lay in tronk with no food. In the morning they fed me, and took me hundreds of miles in a train to a place which I think is called Neuburg. It was a great prison, full of English officers ... I asked myself many times on the journey what was the reason of this treatment, for I could see no sense in it. If they wanted to punish me for insulting them they had the chance to send me off to the trenches. No one could have objected. If they thought me useless they could have turned me back to Holland. I could not have stopped them. But they treated me as if I were a dangerous man, whereas all their conduct hitherto had shown that they thought me a fool. I could not understand it.

“All night I lay in tronk without any food. In the morning, they fed me and took me hundreds of miles on a train to a place I think is called Neuburg. It was a huge prison filled with English officers... I kept asking myself during the journey what the reason for this treatment was, because it made no sense to me. If they wanted to punish me for insulting them, they could have sent me off to the trenches. No one would have complained. If they thought I was useless, they could have sent me back to Holland. I couldn't have stopped them. But instead, they treated me like I was a dangerous man, even though all their actions up to that point suggested they thought I was a fool. I just couldn't understand it.

“But I had not been one night in that Neuburg place before I thought of the reason. They wanted to keep me under observation as a check upon you, Cornelis. I figured it out this way. They had given you some very important work which required them to let you into some big secret. So far, good. They evidently thought much of you, even yon Stumm man, though he was as rude as a buffalo. But they did not know you fully, and they wanted to check on you. That check they found in Peter Pienaar. Peter was a fool, and if there was anything to blab, sooner or later Peter would blab it. Then they would stretch out a long arm and nip you short, wherever you were. Therefore they must keep old Peter under their eye.”

“But I hadn’t even spent one night in that Neuburg place before I figured out the reason. They wanted to keep an eye on me to monitor you, Cornelis. Here’s how I saw it. They had given you some really important work that required sharing a significant secret with you. So far, so good. They clearly thought highly of you, even that Stumm guy, even though he was as rude as could be. But they didn’t know you completely, and they wanted to keep tabs on you. The way they did that was through Peter Pienaar. Peter was a fool, and if there was anything to spill, sooner or later Peter would spill it. Then they’d reach out and cut you off, wherever you were. So, they had to keep a close watch on old Peter.”

“That sounds likely enough,” I said.

"That sounds pretty likely," I said.

“It was God’s truth,” said Peter. “And when it was all clear to me I settled that I must escape. Partly because I am a free man and do not like to be in prison, but mostly because I was not sure of myself. Some day my temper would go again, and I might say foolish things for which Cornelis would suffer. So it was very certain that I must escape.

“It was the truth,” Peter said. “And when everything became clear to me, I decided I had to get out. Partly because I’m a free man and don’t want to be stuck in prison, but mostly because I wasn’t sure about myself. One day I might lose my temper again and say something stupid that would hurt Cornelis. So it was pretty clear that I had to escape.”

“Now, Cornelis, I noticed pretty soon that there were two kinds among the prisoners. There were the real prisoners, mostly English and French, and there were humbugs. The humbugs were treated, apparently, like the others, but not really, as I soon perceived. There was one man who passed as an English officer, another as a French Canadian, and the others called themselves Russians. None of the honest men suspected them, but they were there as spies to hatch plots for escape and get the poor devils caught in the act, and to worm out confidences which might be of value. That is the German notion of good business. I am not a British soldier to think all men are gentlemen. I know that amongst men there are desperate skellums, so I soon picked up this game. It made me very angry, but it was a good thing for my plan. I made my resolution to escape the day I arrived at Neuburg, and on Christmas Day I had a plan made.”

“Now, Cornelis, I quickly realized that there were two types of prisoners. There were the genuine prisoners, mostly English and French, and then there were the fakes. The fakes appeared to be treated like everyone else, but in reality, they weren't, as I soon figured out. There was one guy who claimed to be an English officer, another who said he was a French Canadian, and the rest called themselves Russians. None of the honest men suspected them, but they were actually spies plotting escapes and trying to catch the poor guys in the act, as well as digging for useful information. That’s the German idea of good business. I’m not a British soldier naïve enough to think all men are gentlemen. I know there are some real skellums out there, so I quickly caught on to their game. It made me really angry, but it turned out to be beneficial for my plan. I decided to escape the day I got to Neuburg, and by Christmas Day, I had a plan ready.”

“Peter, you’re an old marvel. Do you mean to say you were quite certain of getting away whenever you wanted?”

“Peter, you’re amazing. Are you saying you were completely sure you could escape anytime you wanted?”

“Quite certain, Cornelis. You see, I have been wicked in my time and know something about the inside of prisons. You may build them like great castles, or they may be like a backveld tronk, only mud and corrugated iron, but there is always a key and a man who keeps it, and that man can be bested. I knew I could get away, but I did not think it would be so easy. That was due to the bogus prisoners, my friends, the spies.

“Absolutely, Cornelis. You see, I've been bad in my time and know a thing or two about what it's like inside prisons. They can be built like grand castles, or they can just be a simple dirt and tin shack, but there's always a key and a guy who has it, and that guy can be outsmarted. I knew I could escape, but I didn't expect it to be so easy. That was thanks to the fake prisoners, my pals, the spies.”

“I made great pals with them. On Christmas night we were very jolly together. I think I spotted every one of them the first day. I bragged about my past and all I had done, and I told them I was going to escape. They backed me up and promised to help. Next morning I had a plan. In the afternoon, just after dinner, I had to go to the commandant’s room. They treated me a little differently from the others, for I was not a prisoner of war, and I went there to be asked questions and to be cursed as a stupid Dutchman. There was no strict guard kept there, for the place was on the second floor, and distant by many yards from any staircase. In the corridor outside the commandant’s room there was a window which had no bars, and four feet from the window the limb of a great tree. A man might reach that limb, and if he were active as a monkey might descend to the ground. Beyond that I knew nothing, but I am a good climber, Cornelis.

“I became good friends with them. On Christmas night, we had a great time together. I think I recognized each of them on the first day. I talked about my past and everything I had done, and I told them I was planning to escape. They supported me and promised to help. The next morning, I came up with a plan. In the afternoon, just after dinner, I had to go to the commandant's room. They treated me a bit differently from the others since I wasn't a prisoner of war, and I went there to be questioned and to be called a stupid Dutchman. There wasn't a strict guard there because the room was on the second floor and far away from any staircase. In the hallway outside the commandant's room, there was a window with no bars, and just four feet from the window was a big tree limb. A person could reach that limb, and if they were agile like a monkey, they could climb down to the ground. Beyond that, I didn’t know much, but I'm a good climber, Cornelis.”

“I told the others of my plan. They said it was good, but no one offered to come with me. They were very noble; they declared that the scheme was mine and I should have the fruit of it, for if more than one tried, detection was certain. I agreed and thanked them—thanked them with tears in my eyes. Then one of them very secretly produced a map. We planned out my road, for I was going straight to Holland. It was a long road, and I had no money, for they had taken all my sovereigns when I was arrested, but they promised to get a subscription up among themselves to start me. Again I wept tears of gratitude. This was on Sunday, the day after Christmas, and I settled to make the attempt on the Wednesday afternoon.

“I shared my plan with the others. They said it was a good idea, but nobody offered to join me. They were really honorable; they insisted that the plan was mine and I should reap the rewards, because if more than one of us tried, we'd definitely get caught. I agreed and thanked them—tears in my eyes. Then one of them quietly pulled out a map. We mapped out my route, as I was heading straight to Holland. It was a long journey, and I had no money, since they had taken all my coins when I was arrested, but they promised to gather some funds among themselves to help me get started. Once again, I cried tears of gratitude. This was on Sunday, the day after Christmas, and I decided to make my attempt on Wednesday afternoon.”

“Now, Cornelis, when the lieutenant took us to see the British prisoners, you remember, he told us many things about the ways of prisons. He told us how they loved to catch a man in the act of escape, so that they could use him harshly with a clear conscience. I thought of that, and calculated that now my friends would have told everything to the commandant, and that they would be waiting to bottle me on the Wednesday. Till then I reckoned I would be slackly guarded, for they would look on me as safe in the net ...

“Now, Cornelis, when the lieutenant took us to see the British prisoners, you remember, he told us a lot about how prisons operate. He mentioned how much they enjoy catching someone in the act of trying to escape, so they could treat him harshly without feeling guilty. I thought about that and figured my friends would have shared everything with the commandant and that they’d be ready to trap me by Wednesday. Until then, I assumed I’d be loosely guarded because they would think I was secure in their grasp...”

“So I went out of the window next day. It was the Monday afternoon ...”

“So I climbed out of the window the next day. It was Monday afternoon…”

“That was a bold stroke,” I said admiringly.

"That was a brave move," I said with admiration.

“The plan was bold, but it was not skilful,” said Peter modestly. “I had no money beyond seven marks, and I had but one stick of chocolate. I had no overcoat, and it was snowing hard. Further, I could not get down the tree, which had a trunk as smooth and branchless as a blue gum. For a little I thought I should be compelled to give in, and I was not happy.

“The plan was ambitious, but it wasn’t well thought out,” Peter said modestly. “I had no money except seven marks, and I only had one piece of chocolate. I didn’t have an overcoat, and it was snowing heavily. Also, I couldn’t get down the tree, which had a trunk as smooth and bare as a blue gum. For a moment, I thought I might have to give up, and I wasn’t feeling great about it.”

“But I had leisure, for I did not think I would be missed before nightfall, and given time a man can do most things. By and by I found a branch which led beyond the outer wall of the yard and hung above the river. This I followed, and then dropped from it into the stream. It was a drop of some yards, and the water was very swift, so that I nearly drowned. I would rather swim the Limpopo, Cornelis, among all the crocodiles than that icy river. Yet I managed to reach the shore and get my breath lying in the bushes ...

“But I had time to spare, since I didn’t think anyone would notice I was gone until nightfall, and given enough time, a person can accomplish a lot. Eventually, I found a branch that stretched over the outer wall of the yard and hung above the river. I followed it and then dropped down into the water. It was quite a fall, and the current was really strong, so I almost drowned. I’d prefer to swim across the Limpopo, Cornelis, with all the crocodiles, than that freezing river. Still, I managed to reach the shore and catch my breath while lying in the bushes ...”

“After that it was plain going, though I was very cold. I knew that I would be sought on the northern roads, as I had told my friends, for no one could dream of an ignorant Dutchman going south away from his kinsfolk. But I had learned enough from the map to know that our road lay south-east, and I had marked this big river.”

“After that, it was smooth sailing, even though I was really cold. I knew people would be looking for me on the northern roads, as I had told my friends, because no one would believe an ignorant Dutchman would head south away from his family. But I had learned enough from the map to know that our route went southeast, and I had marked this big river.”

“Did you hope to pick me up?” I asked.

“Did you think you were going to pick me up?” I asked.

“No, Cornelis. I thought you would be travelling in first-class carriages while I should be plodding on foot. But I was set on getting to the place you spoke of (how do you call it? Constant Nople?), where our big business lay. I thought I might be in time for that.”

“No, Cornelis. I thought you would be traveling in first-class carriages while I would be trudging on foot. But I was determined to reach the place you mentioned (what do you call it? Constantinople?), where our big business is. I thought I might get there in time for that.”

“You’re an old Trojan, Peter,” I said; “but go on. How did you get to that landing-stage where I found you?”

“You're an old Trojan, Peter,” I said. “But go ahead. How did you end up at that landing stage where I found you?”

“It was a hard journey,” he said meditatively. “It was not easy to get beyond the barbed-wire entanglements which surrounded Neuburg—yes, even across the river. But in time I reached the woods and was safe, for I did not think any German could equal me in wild country. The best of them, even their foresters, are but babes in veldcraft compared with such as me ... My troubles came only from hunger and cold. Then I met a Peruvian smouse[1], and sold him my clothes and bought from him these. I did not want to part with my own, which were better, but he gave me ten marks on the deal. After that I went into a village and ate heavily.”

“It was a tough journey,” he said thoughtfully. “It wasn’t easy to get past the barbed-wire fences that surrounded Neuburg—yeah, even across the river. But eventually, I made it to the woods and was safe, because I figured no German could match me in rough terrain. The best of them, even their forest rangers, are just beginners in outdoor skills compared to someone like me... My only problems were hunger and cold. Then I ran into a Peruvian trader, and I sold him my clothes and bought these from him. I didn’t want to give up my own, which were better, but he offered me ten marks for the trade. After that, I went into a village and ate a lot.”

[1] Peter meant a Polish-Jew pedlar.

Peter meant a Polish-Jewish vendor.

“Were you pursued?” I asked.

"Were you chased?" I asked.

“I do not think so. They had gone north, as I expected, and were looking for me at the railway stations which my friends had marked for me. I walked happily and put a bold face on it. If I saw a man or woman look at me suspiciously I went up to them at once and talked. I told a sad tale, and all believed it. I was a poor Dutchman travelling home on foot to see a dying mother, and I had been told that by the Danube I should find the main railway to take me to Holland. There were kind people who gave me food, and one woman gave me half a mark, and wished me God speed ... Then on the last day of the year I came to the river and found many drunkards.”

“I don’t think so. They went north, just like I expected, and were looking for me at the train stations my friends had pointed out. I walked happily and put on a brave face. If I saw someone looking at me suspiciously, I approached them right away and started talking. I shared a sad story, and everyone believed it. I was a poor Dutchman traveling home on foot to see my dying mother, and I had been told that by the Danube I would find the main railway to take me to Holland. There were kind people who offered me food, and one woman even gave me half a mark and wished me good luck... Then, on the last day of the year, I reached the river and encountered many drunk people.”

“Was that when you resolved to get on one of the river-boats?”

“Was that when you decided to take one of the river boats?”

Ja, Cornelis. As soon as I heard of the boats I saw where my chance lay. But you might have knocked me over with a straw when I saw you come on shore. That was good fortune, my friend... I have been thinking much about the Germans, and I will tell you the truth. It is only boldness that can baffle them. They are a most diligent people. They will think of all likely difficulties, but not of all possible ones. They have not much imagination. They are like steam engines which must keep to prepared tracks. There they will hunt any man down, but let him trek for open country and they will be at a loss. Therefore boldness, my friend; for ever boldness. Remember as a nation they wear spectacles, which means that they are always peering.”

Yeah, Cornelis. As soon as I heard about the boats, I realized where my opportunity was. But you could have knocked me over with a feather when I saw you come ashore. That was lucky, my friend... I've been thinking a lot about the Germans, and I'll be honest with you. Only boldness can throw them off. They're very hardworking people. They'll consider all the likely challenges, but not every possible one. They don't have much imagination. They're like steam engines that have to stick to set tracks. There, they'll chase anyone down, but if someone tries to move into the open, they won't know what to do. So, boldness, my friend; always boldness. Remember, as a nation, they wear glasses, which means they're always looking closely.”

Peter broke off to gloat over the wedges of geese and the strings of wild swans that were always winging across those plains. His tale had bucked me up wonderfully. Our luck had held beyond all belief, and I had a kind of hope in the business now which had been wanting before. That afternoon, too, I got another fillip. I came on deck for a breath of air and found it pretty cold after the heat of the engine-room. So I called to one of the deck hands to fetch me up my cloak from the cabin—the same I had bought that first morning in the Greif village.

Peter stopped to brag about the flocks of geese and the groups of wild swans that were always flying over those plains. His story had really lifted my spirits. Our luck had turned out to be better than I could have imagined, and I felt a sense of hope about the situation that I hadn't felt before. That afternoon, I got another boost. I went up on deck for some fresh air and found it pretty chilly after the heat of the engine room. So, I called to one of the deckhands to get my cloak from the cabin—the same one I had bought that first morning in the Greif village.

Der grune Mantel?” the man shouted up, and I cried, “Yes”. But the words seemed to echo in my ears, and long after he had given me the garment I stood staring abstractedly over the bulwarks.

The green coat?” the man shouted up, and I replied, “Yes.” But the words seemed to echo in my ears, and long after he had handed me the garment, I stood staring blankly over the railings.

His tone had awakened a chord of memory, or, to be accurate, they had given emphasis to what before had been only blurred and vague. For he had spoken the words which Stumm had uttered behind his hand to Gaudian. I had heard something like “Ühnmantl,” and could make nothing of it. Now I was as certain of those words as of my own existence. They had been “Grune Mantel”. Grune Mantel, whatever it might be, was the name which Stumm had not meant me to hear, which was some talisman for the task I had proposed, and which was connected in some way with the mysterious von Einem.

His tone triggered a memory, or more accurately, it brought clarity to something that had previously been blurry and vague. He had spoken the words that Stumm had whispered to Gaudian. I had caught something like “Ühnmantl,” but couldn't make sense of it. Now I was as certain of those words as I was of my own existence. They had been “Grune Mantel.” Grune Mantel, whatever it was, was the name Stumm hadn’t intended for me to hear; it was some kind of key for the task I had in mind, and it had a connection to the mysterious von Einem.

This discovery put me in high fettle. I told myself that, considering the difficulties, I had managed to find out a wonderful amount in a very few days. It only shows what a man can do with the slenderest evidence if he keeps chewing and chewing on it ...

This discovery made me feel great. I told myself that, given the challenges, I had managed to uncover a lot in just a few days. It just goes to show what someone can achieve with the slightest evidence if they keep digging into it...

Two mornings later we lay alongside the quays at Belgrade, and I took the opportunity of stretching my legs. Peter had come ashore for a smoke, and we wandered among the battered riverside streets, and looked at the broken arches of the great railway bridge which the Germans were working at like beavers. There was a big temporary pontoon affair to take the railway across, but I calculated that the main bridge would be ready inside a month. It was a clear, cold, blue day, and as one looked south one saw ridge after ridge of snowy hills. The upper streets of the city were still fairly whole, and there were shops open where food could be got. I remember hearing English spoken, and seeing some Red Cross nurses in the custody of Austrian soldiers coming from the railway station.

Two mornings later, we were parked by the docks in Belgrade, and I decided to stretch my legs. Peter had gotten off for a smoke, and we strolled through the worn riverside streets, taking in the damaged arches of the massive railway bridge that the Germans were working on like busy beavers. There was a large temporary pontoon set up to carry the railway across, but I figured the main bridge would be ready in about a month. It was a clear, cold, blue day, and when you looked south, you could see ridge after ridge of snowy hills. The upper streets of the city were still mostly intact, and there were shops open where you could buy food. I remember hearing English being spoken and seeing some Red Cross nurses being escorted by Austrian soldiers coming from the train station.

It would have done me a lot of good to have had a word with them. I thought of the gallant people whose capital this had been, how three times they had flung the Austrians back over the Danube, and then had only been beaten by the black treachery of their so-called allies. Somehow that morning in Belgrade gave both Peter and me a new purpose in our task. It was our business to put a spoke in the wheel of this monstrous bloody Juggernaut that was crushing the life out of the little heroic nations.

It would have really helped me if I could have talked to them. I thought about the brave people whose capital this had been, how they had pushed the Austrians back across the Danube three times, only to be defeated by the betrayal of their so-called allies. Somehow that morning in Belgrade gave both Peter and me a fresh sense of purpose in our mission. It was our duty to throw a wrench into the gears of this monstrous, bloody Juggernaut that was destroying the lives of the small, heroic nations.

We were just getting ready to cast off when a distinguished party arrived at the quay. There were all kinds of uniforms—German, Austrian, and Bulgarian, and amid them one stout gentleman in a fur coat and a black felt hat. They watched the barges up-anchor, and before we began to jerk into line I could hear their conversation. The fur coat was talking English.

We were about to set sail when an important group showed up at the dock. There were all sorts of uniforms—German, Austrian, and Bulgarian—and among them was a heavyset man wearing a fur coat and a black felt hat. They observed the barges pulling up their anchors, and before we started lining up, I could overhear their conversation. The man in the fur coat was speaking English.

“I reckon that’s pretty good noos, General,” it said; “if the English have run away from Gally-poly we can use these noo consignments for the bigger game. I guess it won’t be long before we see the British lion moving out of Egypt with sore paws.”

“I think that’s pretty good news, General,” it said; “if the English have run away from Gally-poly we can use these new shipments for the bigger targets. I guess it won’t be long before we see the British lion leaving Egypt with sore paws.”

They all laughed. “The privilege of that spectacle may soon be ours,” was the reply.

They all laughed. “We might soon get the chance to see that,” was the response.

I did not pay much attention to the talk; indeed I did not realize till weeks later that that was the first tidings of the great evacuation of Cape Helles. What rejoiced me was the sight of Blenkiron, as bland as a barber among those swells. Here were two of the missionaries within reasonable distance of their goal.

I didn’t pay much attention to the conversation; in fact, I didn’t even realize until weeks later that this was the first news of the major evacuation at Cape Helles. What made me happy was seeing Blenkiron, looking as calm as a barber among those high-ranking guys. Here were two of the missionaries within a decent distance of their destination.

CHAPTER X.
The Garden-House of Suliman the Red

We reached Rustchuk on January 10th, but by no means landed on that day. Something had gone wrong with the unloading arrangements, or more likely with the railway behind them, and we were kept swinging all day well out in the turbid river. On the top of this Captain Schenk got an ague, and by that evening was a blue and shivering wreck. He had done me well, and I reckoned I would stand by him. So I got his ship’s papers, and the manifests of cargo, and undertook to see to the trans-shipment. It wasn’t the first time I had tackled that kind of business, and I hadn’t much to learn about steam cranes. I told him I was going on to Constantinople and would take Peter with me, and he was agreeable. He would have to wait at Rustchuk to get his return cargo, and could easily inspan a fresh engineer.

We arrived in Rustchuk on January 10th, but we definitely didn’t disembark that day. Something had gone wrong with the unloading arrangements, or more likely with the train service, and we spent the whole day idling in the muddy river. On top of that, Captain Schenk came down with a fever and by that evening was blue and shivering. He had helped me out, so I decided to support him. I got his ship’s paperwork and the cargo manifests, and took charge of the transfer. It wasn’t my first time dealing with this type of situation, and I was pretty familiar with steam cranes. I told him I was heading to Constantinople and would take Peter with me, which he agreed to. He would have to wait in Rustchuk for his return cargo and could easily find a new engineer.

I worked about the hardest twenty-four hours of my life getting the stuff ashore. The landing officer was a Bulgarian, quite a competent man if he could have made the railways give him the trucks he needed. There was a collection of hungry German transport officers always putting in their oars, and being infernally insolent to everybody. I took the high and mighty line with them; and, as I had the Bulgarian commandant on my side, after about two hours’ blasphemy got them quieted.

I worked the hardest twenty-four hours of my life getting the stuff ashore. The landing officer was a Bulgarian, a pretty competent guy if he could get the railways to provide him with the trucks he needed. There was a group of greedy German transport officers always sticking their noses in, being incredibly rude to everyone. I decided to take the high and mighty approach with them; and since I had the Bulgarian commander on my side, after about two hours of swearing, I managed to calm them down.

But the big trouble came the next morning when I had got nearly all the stuff aboard the trucks.

But the real trouble started the next morning when I had loaded almost all the stuff onto the trucks.

A young officer in what I took to be a Turkish uniform rode up with an aide-de-camp. I noticed the German guards saluting him, so I judged he was rather a swell. He came up to me and asked me very civilly in German for the way-bills. I gave him them and he looked carefully through them, marking certain items with a blue pencil. Then he coolly handed them to his aide-de-camp and spoke to him in Turkish.

A young officer in what I figured was a Turkish uniform rode up with an aide-de-camp. I noticed the German guards saluting him, so I assumed he was someone important. He approached me and politely asked for the way-bills in German. I handed them to him, and he examined them closely, marking certain items with a blue pencil. Then he casually handed them to his aide-de-camp and spoke to him in Turkish.

“Look here, I want these back,” I said. “I can’t do without them, and we’ve no time to waste.”

“Listen, I need these back,” I said. “I can’t manage without them, and we don’t have time to lose.”

“Presently,” he said, smiling, and went off.

“Right now,” he said, smiling, and walked away.

I said nothing, reflecting that the stuff was for the Turks and they naturally had to have some say in its handling. The loading was practically finished when my gentleman returned. He handed me a neatly typed new set of way-bills. One glance at them showed that some of the big items had been left out.

I didn't say anything, thinking that the stuff was for the Turks and they obviously needed to have a say in how it was managed. The loading was nearly complete when my guy came back. He gave me a neatly typed new set of waybills. A quick look at them revealed that some of the major items were missing.

“Here, this won’t do,” I cried. “Give me back the right set. This thing’s no good to me.”

“Here, this isn’t going to work,” I exclaimed. “Give me back the right one. This isn’t useful to me.”

For answer he winked gently, smiled like a dusky seraph, and held out his hand. In it I saw a roll of money.

For an answer, he winked gently, smiled like a dark angel, and extended his hand. In it, I saw a bundle of cash.

“For yourself,” he said. “It is the usual custom.”

“For you,” he said. “That’s the usual thing.”

It was the first time anyone had ever tried to bribe me, and it made me boil up like a geyser. I saw his game clearly enough. Turkey would pay for the lot to Germany: probably had already paid the bill: but she would pay double for the things not on the way-bills, and pay to this fellow and his friends. This struck me as rather steep even for Oriental methods of doing business.

It was the first time anyone had ever tried to bribe me, and it made me boil over like a geyser. I could see his game clearly. Turkey would pay for everything to Germany; they probably had already settled the bill. But she would pay double for the items not listed on the waybills and pay this guy and his friends. This seemed pretty steep, even for the way business is done in the East.

“Now look here, Sir,” I said, “I don’t stir from this place till I get the correct way-bills. If you won’t give me them, I will have every item out of the trucks and make a new list. But a correct list I have, or the stuff stays here till Doomsday.”

“Now listen up, sir,” I said, “I’m not leaving this spot until I get the correct way-bills. If you won’t give them to me, I’ll unload everything from the trucks and make a new list. But I’m getting a correct list, or the stuff stays here forever.”

He was a slim, foppish fellow, and he looked more puzzled than angry.

He was a slender, stylish guy, and he seemed more confused than angry.

“I offer you enough,” he said, again stretching out his hand.

“I’m giving you enough,” he said, reaching out his hand once more.

At that I fairly roared. “If you try to bribe me, you infernal little haberdasher, I’ll have you off that horse and chuck you in the river.”

At that, I burst out laughing. “If you try to bribe me, you annoying little tailor, I'll drag you off that horse and throw you in the river.”

He no longer misunderstood me. He began to curse and threaten, but I cut him short.

He didn't misunderstand me anymore. He started cursing and threatening, but I interrupted him.

“Come along to the commandant, my boy,” I said, and I marched away, tearing up his typewritten sheets as I went and strewing them behind me like a paper chase.

“Come on to the commandant, kid,” I said, and I walked away, ripping up his typewritten pages as I went and scattering them behind me like a paper trail.

We had a fine old racket in the commandant’s office. I said it was my business, as representing the German Government, to see the stuff delivered to the consignee at Constantinople ship-shape and Bristol-fashion. I told him it wasn’t my habit to proceed with cooked documents. He couldn’t but agree with me, but there was that wrathful Oriental with his face as fixed as a Buddha.

We had quite a scene in the commandant’s office. I told him that it was my responsibility, as a representative of the German Government, to ensure the goods were delivered to the consignee in Constantinople properly and in good condition. I mentioned that I didn't usually work with forged documents. He had to agree with me, but then there was that angry Oriental, his expression as unchanging as a Buddha.

“I am sorry, Rasta Bey,” he said; “but this man is in the right.”

“I’m sorry, Rasta Bey,” he said, “but this guy is right.”

“I have authority from the Committee to receive the stores,” he said sullenly.

“I have permission from the Committee to receive the supplies,” he said glumly.

“Those are not my instructions,” was the answer. “They are consigned to the Artillery commandant at Chataldja, General von Oesterzee.”

“Those aren’t my instructions,” was the response. “They’re assigned to the Artillery commandant at Chataldja, General von Oesterzee.”

The man shrugged his shoulders. “Very well. I will have a word to say to General von Oesterzee, and many to this fellow who flouts the Committee.” And he strode away like an impudent boy.

The man shrugged his shoulders. “Alright. I’ll have a word with General von Oesterzee and plenty to say to this guy who disrespects the Committee.” And he walked away like a cocky kid.

The harassed commandant grinned. “You’ve offended his Lordship, and he is a bad enemy. All those damned Comitadjis are. You would be well advised not to go on to Constantinople.”

The stressed commandant smiled. “You’ve angered his Lordship, and he’s a fierce enemy. All those cursed Comitadjis are. It would be smart for you not to head to Constantinople.”

“And have that blighter in the red hat loot the trucks on the road? No, thank you. I am going to see them safe at Chataldja, or whatever they call the artillery depot.”

“And let that guy in the red hat rob the trucks on the road? No, thanks. I'm going to make sure they get to Chataldja, or whatever they call the artillery depot.”

I said a good deal more, but that is an abbreviated translation of my remarks. My word for “blighter” was trottel, but I used some other expressions which would have ravished my young Turk friend to hear. Looking back, it seems pretty ridiculous to have made all this fuss about guns which were going to be used against my own people. But I didn’t see that at the time. My professional pride was up in arms, and I couldn’t bear to have a hand in a crooked deal.

I said a lot more, but that's a shortened version of what I said. My word for “blighter” was trottel, but I used some other expressions that would have thrilled my young Turk friend to hear. Looking back, it seems pretty silly to have made such a big deal about guns that were going to be used against my own people. But I didn’t realize that at the time. My professional pride was on high alert, and I couldn’t stand the thought of being part of a dishonest deal.

“Well, I advise you to go armed,” said the commandant. “You will have a guard for the trucks, of course, and I will pick you good men. They may hold you up all the same. I can’t help you once you are past the frontier, but I’ll send a wire to Oesterzee and he’ll make trouble if anything goes wrong. I still think you would have been wiser to humour Rasta Bey.”

“Well, I suggest you go prepared,” said the commandant. “You’ll have a guard for the trucks, of course, and I’ll choose some good men for you. They may still hold you up. I can't assist you once you cross the border, but I’ll send a message to Oesterzee, and he’ll cause some trouble if anything goes wrong. I still think it would have been smarter to go along with Rasta Bey.”

As I was leaving he gave me a telegram. “Here’s a wire for your Captain Schenk.” I slipped the envelope in my pocket and went out.

As I was leaving, he handed me a telegram. “Here’s a message for your Captain Schenk.” I tucked the envelope into my pocket and walked out.

Schenk was pretty sick, so I left a note for him. At one o’clock I got the train started, with a couple of German Landwehr in each truck and Peter and I in a horse-box. Presently I remembered Schenk’s telegram, which still reposed in my pocket. I took it out and opened it, meaning to wire it from the first station we stopped at. But I changed my mind when I read it. It was from some official at Regensburg, asking him to put under arrest and send back by the first boat a man called Brandt, who was believed to have come aboard at Absthafen on the 30th of December.

Schenk was pretty sick, so I left him a note. At one o’clock, I got the train moving, with a couple of German Landwehr in each car and Peter and me in a horse box. Soon, I remembered Schenk’s telegram, which was still in my pocket. I took it out and opened it, intending to wire it from the first station we stopped at. But I changed my mind when I read it. It was from some official in Regensburg, asking him to arrest and send back a man named Brandt by the first boat, who was believed to have boarded at Absthafen on December 30th.

I whistled and showed it to Peter. The sooner we were at Constantinople the better, and I prayed we would get there before the fellow who sent this wire repeated it and got the commandant to send on the message and have us held up at Chataldja. For my back had fairly got stiffened about these munitions, and I was going to take any risk to see them safely delivered to their proper owner. Peter couldn’t understand me at all. He still hankered after a grand destruction of the lot somewhere down the railway. But then, this wasn’t the line of Peter’s profession, and his pride was not at stake. We had a mortally slow journey. It was bad enough in Bulgaria, but when we crossed the frontier at a place called Mustafa Pasha we struck the real supineness of the East. Happily I found a German officer there who had some notion of hustling, and, after all, it was his interest to get the stuff moved. It was the morning of the 16th, after Peter and I had been living like pigs on black bread and condemned tin stuff, that we came in sight of a blue sea on our right hand and knew we couldn’t be very far from the end.

I whistled and showed it to Peter. The sooner we got to Constantinople, the better, and I hoped we would arrive before the guy who sent this wire repeated it and got the commandant to forward the message and have us stopped at Chataldja. My back had really stiffened up about these munitions, and I was willing to take any risk to ensure they were safely delivered to their rightful owner. Peter couldn’t understand me at all. He still longed for a grand destruction of the whole load somewhere down the railway. But then, this wasn't really Peter’s area of expertise, and his pride wasn't on the line. We had an agonizingly slow journey. It was bad enough in Bulgaria, but when we crossed the border at a place called Mustafa Pasha, we hit the real lethargy of the East. Fortunately, I found a German officer there who had some sense of urgency, and, after all, it was in his interest to get the stuff moved. It was the morning of the 16th, after Peter and I had been living like animals on black bread and bad canned food, that we caught sight of a blue sea on our right and knew we couldn’t be far from the end.

It was jolly near the end in another sense. We stopped at a station and were stretching our legs on the platform when I saw a familiar figure approaching. It was Rasta, with half a dozen Turkish gendarmes.

It was pretty close to the end in another way. We stopped at a station and were stretching our legs on the platform when I spotted a familiar figure coming toward us. It was Rasta, with about six Turkish police officers.

I called Peter, and we clambered into the truck next our horse-box. I had been half expecting some move like this and had made a plan.

I called Peter, and we climbed into the truck next to our horse trailer. I had kind of expected something like this and had come up with a plan.

The Turk swaggered up and addressed us. “You can get back to Rustchuk,” he said. “I take over from you here. Hand me the papers.”

The Turk walked up confidently and said to us, “You can go back to Rustchuk now. I’ll take over from here. Give me the papers.”

“Is this Chataldja?” I asked innocently.

“Is this Chataldja?” I asked naively.

“It is the end of your affair,” he said haughtily. “Quick, or it will be the worse for you.”

“It’s the end of your relationship,” he said arrogantly. “Hurry up, or it’ll be worse for you.”

“Now, look here, my son,” I said; “you’re a kid and know nothing. I hand over to General von Oesterzee and to no one else.”

“Now, listen up, my son,” I said; “you’re just a kid and don’t know anything. I’m giving this to General von Oesterzee and no one else.”

“You are in Turkey,” he cried, “and will obey the Turkish Government.”

“You're in Turkey,” he shouted, “and you will follow the Turkish Government.”

“I’ll obey the Government right enough,” I said; “but if you’re the Government I could make a better one with a bib and a rattle.”

“I’ll definitely follow the Government,” I said; “but if you’re the Government, I could create a better one with a bib and a rattle.”

He said something to his men, who unslung their rifles.

He said something to his guys, who took their rifles off their shoulders.

“Please don’t begin shooting,” I said. “There are twelve armed guards in this train who will take their orders from me. Besides, I and my friend can shoot a bit.”

“Please don’t start shooting,” I said. “There are twelve armed guards on this train who will follow my orders. Plus, my friend and I can handle a gun too.”

“Fool!” he cried, getting very angry. “I can order up a regiment in five minutes.”

“Idiot!” he yelled, getting really angry. “I can call up a battalion in five minutes.”

“Maybe you can,” I said; “but observe the situation. I am sitting on enough toluol to blow up this countryside. If you dare to come aboard I will shoot you. If you call in your regiment I will tell you what I’ll do. I’ll fire this stuff, and I reckon they’ll be picking up the bits of you and your regiment off the Gallipoli Peninsula.”

“Maybe you can,” I said; “but take a look at the situation. I’m sitting on enough toluene to blow up this entire area. If you dare to step aboard, I’ll shoot you. If you bring in your regiment, I’ll let you know what I’ll do. I’ll set this stuff on fire, and I guess they’ll be collecting what’s left of you and your regiment off the Gallipoli Peninsula.”

He had put up a bluff—a poor one—and I had called it. He saw I meant what I said, and became silken.

He had pretended—poorly—and I called him out on it. He realized I was serious, and he became smooth.

“Good-bye, sir,” he said. “You have had a fair chance and rejected it. We shall meet again soon, and you will be sorry for your insolence.”

“Goodbye, sir,” he said. “You had a good opportunity and turned it down. We'll see each other again soon, and you'll regret your rudeness.”

He strutted away and it was all I could do to keep from running after him. I wanted to lay him over my knee and spank him.

He walked away confidently, and I could barely stop myself from chasing after him. I wanted to put him over my knee and give him a spanking.

We got safely to Chataldja, and were received by von Oesterzee like long-lost brothers. He was the regular gunner-officer, not thinking about anything except his guns and shells. I had to wait about three hours while he was checking the stuff with the invoices, and then he gave me a receipt which I still possess. I told him about Rasta, and he agreed that I had done right. It didn’t make him as mad as I expected, because, you see, he got his stuff safe in any case. It was only that the wretched Turks had to pay twice for the lot of it.

We made it to Chataldja safely, and von Oesterzee welcomed us like we were long-lost brothers. He was your typical artillery officer, focused only on his guns and ammunition. I had to wait around for about three hours while he went through everything with the paperwork, and then he handed me a receipt that I still have. I told him about Rasta, and he agreed that I made the right choice. He wasn’t as angry as I thought he would be because, you see, he got his stuff without any issues. It was just the poor Turks who ended up having to pay for everything twice.

He gave Peter and me luncheon, and was altogether very civil and inclined to talk about the war. I would have liked to hear what he had to say, for it would have been something to get the inside view of Germany’s Eastern campaign, but I did not dare to wait. Any moment there might arrive an incriminating wire from Rustchuk. Finally he lent us a car to take us the few miles to the city.

He gave Peter and me lunch and was really polite and eager to talk about the war. I would have liked to hear what he had to say because it would have been interesting to get the inside scoop on Germany's Eastern campaign, but I didn’t want to risk waiting. At any moment, we might get an incriminating message from Rustchuk. In the end, he lent us a car to take us the few miles to the city.

So it came about that at five past three on the 16th day of January, with only the clothes we stood up in, Peter and I entered Constantinople.

So it happened that at 3:05 PM on January 16th, wearing just the clothes on our backs, Peter and I entered Constantinople.

I was in considerable spirits, for I had got the final lap successfully over, and I was looking forward madly to meeting my friends; but, all the same, the first sight was a mighty disappointment. I don’t quite know what I had expected—a sort of fairyland Eastern city, all white marble and blue water, and stately Turks in surplices, and veiled houris, and roses and nightingales, and some sort of string band discoursing sweet music. I had forgotten that winter is pretty much the same everywhere. It was a drizzling day, with a south-east wind blowing, and the streets were long troughs of mud. The first part I struck looked like a dingy colonial suburb—wooden houses and corrugated iron roofs, and endless dirty, sallow children. There was a cemetery, I remember, with Turks’ caps stuck at the head of each grave. Then we got into narrow steep streets which descended to a kind of big canal. I saw what I took to be mosques and minarets, and they were about as impressive as factory chimneys. By and by we crossed a bridge, and paid a penny for the privilege. If I had known it was the famous Golden Horn I would have looked at it with more interest, but I saw nothing save a lot of moth-eaten barges and some queer little boats like gondolas. Then we came into busier streets, where ramshackle cabs drawn by lean horses spluttered through the mud. I saw one old fellow who looked like my notion of a Turk, but most of the population had the appearance of London old-clothes men. All but the soldiers, Turk and German, who seemed well-set-up fellows.

I was in great spirits because I had successfully completed the final stretch, and I was really looking forward to seeing my friends. However, the first sight was a huge letdown. I'm not sure what I had expected—a sort of magical Eastern city, with white marble, blue waters, dignified Turks in robes, veiled women, roses, nightingales, and a string band playing sweet music. I had forgotten that winter feels pretty much the same everywhere. It was a drizzly day with a southeast wind blowing, and the streets were long channels of mud. The first area I came across looked like a shabby colonial suburb—wooden houses with corrugated iron roofs and endless dirty, pale children. I remember there was a cemetery with Turkish caps placed at the head of each grave. Then we entered narrow, steep streets that led down to a big canal. I saw what I thought were mosques and minarets, but they were as impressive as factory chimneys. Eventually, we crossed a bridge and paid a penny to do so. If I had known it was the famous Golden Horn, I would have looked at it with more interest, but all I saw were a bunch of tattered barges and some strange little boats like gondolas. Then we hit busier streets, where rickety cabs pulled by skinny horses splashed through the mud. I spotted one old guy who fit my idea of a Turk, but most of the people looked like rag-and-bone men from London. The soldiers, both Turkish and German, seemed like well-built guys.

Peter had paddled along at my side like a faithful dog, not saying a word, but clearly not approving of this wet and dirty metropolis.

Peter had paddled alongside me like a loyal dog, not saying a word, but clearly not approving of this wet and dirty city.

“Do you know that we are being followed, Cornelis?” he said suddenly, “ever since we came into this evil-smelling dorp.”

“Do you know we’re being followed, Cornelis?” he said suddenly, “ever since we got into this stinky town.”

Peter was infallible in a thing like that. The news scared me badly, for I feared that the telegram had come to Chataldja. Then I thought it couldn’t be that, for if von Oesterzee had wanted me he wouldn’t have taken the trouble to stalk me. It was more likely my friend Rasta.

Peter was always right about things like that. The news really freaked me out because I worried that the telegram had reached Chataldja. But then I figured it couldn’t be that, because if von Oesterzee had wanted to get in touch with me, he wouldn’t have bothered to follow me. It was probably my friend Rasta.

I found the ferry of Ratchik by asking a soldier and a German sailor there told me where the Kurdish Bazaar was. He pointed up a steep street which ran past a high block of warehouses with every window broken. Sandy had said the left-hand side coming down, so it must be the right-hand side going up. We plunged into it, and it was the filthiest place of all. The wind whistled up it and stirred the garbage. It seemed densely inhabited, for at all the doors there were groups of people squatting, with their heads covered, though scarcely a window showed in the blank walls.

I found the Ratchik ferry by asking a soldier, and a German sailor there told me where the Kurdish Bazaar was. He pointed up a steep street that ran past a high block of warehouses, all with broken windows. Sandy had said to look on the left side coming down, so it must be on the right side going up. We walked into it, and it was the dirtiest place of all. The wind whistled through and stirred the trash. It seemed heavily populated, as there were groups of people sitting by all the doors, with their heads covered, even though hardly any windows were visible in the blank walls.

The street corkscrewed endlessly. Sometimes it seemed to stop; then it found a hole in the opposing masonry and edged its way in. Often it was almost pitch dark; then would come a greyish twilight where it opened out to the width of a decent lane. To find a house in that murk was no easy job, and by the time we had gone a quarter of a mile I began to fear we had missed it. It was no good asking any of the crowd we met. They didn’t look as if they understood any civilized tongue.

The street twisted endlessly. Sometimes it felt like it stopped; then it would find a gap in the nearby buildings and squeeze through. Often it was almost completely dark; then there would be a dull twilight when it widened into a decent lane. Finding a house in that gloom was no easy task, and by the time we had walked a quarter of a mile, I started to worry we had passed it. It was pointless to ask any of the crowd we encountered. They didn’t seem like they understood any civilized language.

At last we stumbled on it—a tumble-down coffee house, with A. Kuprasso above the door in queer amateur lettering. There was a lamp burning inside, and two or three men smoking at small wooden tables.

At last, we found it—a run-down coffee house, with A. Kuprasso above the door in strange amateur lettering. There was a lamp lit inside, and two or three men smoking at small wooden tables.

We ordered coffee, thick black stuff like treacle, which Peter anathematized. A negro brought it, and I told him in German I wanted to speak to Mr Kuprasso. He paid no attention, so I shouted louder at him, and the noise brought a man out of the back parts.

We ordered coffee, thick and black like molasses, which Peter cursed. A Black man brought it, and I told him in German that I wanted to speak to Mr. Kuprasso. He ignored me, so I shouted louder, and the noise brought a man out from the back.

He was a fat, oldish fellow with a long nose, very like the Greek traders you see on the Zanzibar coast. I beckoned to him and he waddled forward, smiling oilily. Then I asked him what he would take, and he replied, in very halting German, that he would have a sirop.

He was a portly, older guy with a long nose, just like the Greek traders you see on the Zanzibar coast. I signaled for him to come over, and he waddled over, smiling slickly. Then I asked him what he wanted, and he answered, in very broken German, that he would like a syrup.

“You are Mr Kuprasso,” I said. “I wanted to show this place to my friend. He has heard of your garden-house and the fun there.”

“You're Mr. Kuprasso,” I said. “I wanted to show this place to my friend. He's heard about your garden house and the fun you have there.”

“The Signor is mistaken. I have no garden-house.”

“The gentleman is mistaken. I don’t have a garden house.”

“Rot,” I said; “I’ve been here before, my boy. I recall your shanty at the back and many merry nights there. What was it you called it? Oh, I remember—the Garden-House of Suliman the Red.”

“Rot,” I said; “I’ve been here before, kid. I remember your little place in the back and all the fun nights we had there. What did you call it? Oh, I remember—the Garden-House of Suliman the Red.”

He put his finger to his lip and looked incredibly sly. “The Signor remembers that. But that was in the old happy days before war came. The place is long since shut. The people here are too poor to dance and sing.”

He put his finger to his lips and looked really sneaky. “The Signor remembers that. But that was in the good old days before the war started. The place has been closed for a long time. The people here are too broke to dance and sing.”

“All the same I would like to have another look at it,” I said, and I slipped an English sovereign into his hand.

“All the same, I’d like to take another look at it,” I said, and I put an English sovereign into his hand.

He glanced at it in surprise and his manner changed. “The Signor is a Prince, and I will do his will.” He clapped his hands and the negro appeared, and at his nod took his place behind a little side-counter.

He looked at it in surprise, and his attitude changed. “The Signor is a Prince, and I will follow his wishes.” He clapped his hands, and the servant appeared. At his gesture, the servant took his place behind a small side counter.

“Follow me,” he said, and led us through a long, noisome passage, which was pitch dark and very unevenly paved. Then he unlocked a door and with a swirl the wind caught it and blew it back on us.

“Follow me,” he said, leading us through a long, smelly hallway that was completely dark and had a really bumpy floor. Then he unlocked a door, and the wind suddenly caught it, swinging it back into us.

We were looking into a mean little yard, with on one side a high curving wall, evidently of great age, with bushes growing in the cracks of it. Some scraggy myrtles stood in broken pots, and nettles flourished in a corner. At one end was a wooden building like a dissenting chapel, but painted a dingy scarlet. Its windows and skylights were black with dirt, and its door, tied up with rope, flapped in the wind.

We were staring at a small, unpleasant yard, featuring a high, curved wall on one side that looked very old, with bushes growing in the cracks. Some scraggly myrtles were in broken pots, and nettles thrived in one corner. At one end, there was a wooden structure resembling a nonconformist chapel, but it was painted a dull red. Its windows and skylights were coated in grime, and its door, secured with a rope, flapped in the wind.

“Behold the Pavilion,” Kuprasso said proudly.

“Check out the Pavilion,” Kuprasso said proudly.

“That is the old place,” I observed with feeling. “What times I’ve seen there! Tell me, Mr Kuprasso, do you ever open it now?”

“That’s the old place,” I said with emotion. “What times I’ve had there! Tell me, Mr. Kuprasso, do you ever open it up now?”

He put his thick lips to my ear.

He pressed his thick lips to my ear.

“If the Signor will be silent I will tell him. It is sometimes open—not often. Men must amuse themselves even in war. Some of the German officers come here for their pleasure, and but last week we had the ballet of Mademoiselle Cici. The police approve—but not often, for this is no time for too much gaiety. I will tell you a secret. Tomorrow afternoon there will be dancing—wonderful dancing! Only a few of my patrons know. Who, think you, will be here?”

“If the Signor will be quiet, I will tell him. It’s sometimes open—not often. Men need to have fun even in war. Some of the German officers come here for leisure, and just last week we had the ballet of Mademoiselle Cici. The police are okay with it—but not too often, since this isn’t a time for too much joy. I’ll let you in on a secret. Tomorrow afternoon, there will be dancing—amazing dancing! Only a few of my regulars know about it. Who do you think will be here?”

He bent his head closer and said in a whisper—

He leaned in closer and said in a whisper—

“The Compagnie des Heures Roses.”

“The Company of Pink Hours.”

“Oh, indeed,” I said with a proper tone of respect, though I hadn’t a notion what he meant.

“Oh, definitely,” I said with a respectful tone, even though I had no idea what he meant.

“Will the Signor wish to come?”

“Would the Signor like to come?”

“Sure,” I said. “Both of us. We’re all for the rosy hours.”

“Sure,” I said. “Both of us. We're all in for the good times.”

“Then the fourth hour after midday. Walk straight through the cafe and one will be there to unlock the door. You are new-comers here? Take the advice of Angelo Kuprasso and avoid the streets after nightfall. Stamboul is no safe place nowadays for quiet men.” I asked him to name a hotel, and he rattled off a list from which I chose one that sounded modest and in keeping with our get-up. It was not far off, only a hundred yards to the right at the top of the hill.

“Then it was four o'clock in the afternoon. Just walk straight through the café and someone will be there to unlock the door. You’re new here, right? Take Angelo Kuprasso's advice and stay away from the streets after dark. Stamboul isn’t a safe place these days for peaceful folks.” I asked him to recommend a hotel, and he quickly listed a few options. I picked one that seemed simple and suited our style. It was nearby, just a hundred yards to the right at the top of the hill.

When we left his door the night had begun to drop. We hadn’t gone twenty yards before Peter drew very near to me and kept turning his head like a hunted stag.

When we walked away from his door, night had started to fall. We hadn’t gone twenty yards before Peter got really close to me and kept turning his head like a hunted deer.

“We are being followed close, Cornelis,” he said calmly.

“We're being followed closely, Cornelis,” he said calmly.

Another ten yards and we were at a cross-roads, where a little place faced a biggish mosque. I could see in the waning light a crowd of people who seemed to be moving towards us. I heard a high-pitched voice cry out a jabber of excited words, and it seemed to me that I had heard the voice before.

Another ten yards and we were at a crossroads, where a small place faced a fairly big mosque. I could see in the fading light a crowd of people who seemed to be moving towards us. I heard a high-pitched voice calling out a stream of excited words, and it felt like I had heard that voice before.

CHAPTER XI.
The Companions of the Rosy Hours

We battled to a corner, where a jut of building stood out into the street. It was our only chance to protect our backs, to stand up with the rib of stone between us. It was only the work of seconds. One instant we were groping our solitary way in the darkness, the next we were pinned against a wall with a throaty mob surging round us.

We fought our way to a corner where a piece of the building stuck out into the street. It was our only chance to cover our backs, to stand with the wall of stone between us. It took just seconds. One moment we were feeling our way through the darkness alone, and the next we were pressed against a wall with a loud crowd pushing around us.

It took me a moment or two to realize that we were attacked. Every man has one special funk in the back of his head, and mine was to be the quarry of an angry crowd. I hated the thought of it—the mess, the blind struggle, the sense of unleashed passions different from those of any single blackguard. It was a dark world to me, and I don’t like darkness. But in my nightmares I had never imagined anything just like this. The narrow, fetid street, with the icy winds fanning the filth, the unknown tongue, the hoarse savage murmur, and my utter ignorance as to what it might all be about, made me cold in the pit of my stomach.

It took me a moment to realize we were under attack. Everyone has that one deep-seated fear, and mine was being the target of an angry mob. I hated the idea of it—the chaos, the senseless struggle, the raw emotions that felt unlike anything from a single wrongdoer. It seemed like a dark world to me, and I don’t like darkness. But even in my nightmares, I never envisioned anything like this. The narrow, disgusting street, with icy winds blowing through the filth, the unfamiliar language, the harsh, wild murmurs, and my complete cluelessness about what was happening made me feel sick to my stomach.

“We’ve got it in the neck this time, old man,” I said to Peter, who had out the pistol the commandant at Rustchuk had given him. These pistols were our only weapons. The crowd saw them and hung back, but if they chose to rush us it wasn’t much of a barrier two pistols would make.

“We're in trouble this time, old man,” I said to Peter, who had out the pistol that the commandant at Rustchuk had given him. These pistols were our only weapons. The crowd saw them and held back, but if they decided to charge us, two pistols wouldn’t be much of a barrier.

Rasta’s voice had stopped. He had done his work, and had retired to the background. There were shouts from the crowd—“Alleman” and a word “Khafiyeh” constantly repeated. I didn’t know what it meant at the time, but now I know that they were after us because we were Boches and spies. There was no love lost between the Constantinople scum and their new masters. It seemed an ironical end for Peter and me to be done in because we were Boches. And done in we should be. I had heard of the East as a good place for people to disappear in; there were no inquisitive newspapers or incorruptible police.

Rasta’s voice had faded away. He had finished his part and stepped back into the shadows. The crowd was shouting—“Alleman” and the word “Khafiyeh” being repeated over and over. At the time, I didn’t know what it meant, but now I realize they were after us because we were Germans and spies. There wasn’t any love lost between the scum of Constantinople and their new rulers. It seemed like an ironic end for Peter and me to be taken out simply for being Germans. And taken out we were likely to be. I had heard that the East was a good place for people to vanish; there were no nosy newspapers or honest police.

I wished to Heaven I had a word of Turkish. But I made my voice heard for a second in a pause of the din, and shouted that we were German sailors who had brought down big guns for Turkey, and were going home next day. I asked them what the devil they thought we had done? I don’t know if any fellow there understood German; anyhow, it only brought a pandemonium of cries in which that ominous word Khafiyeh was predominant.

I wished to God I knew a word of Turkish. But I raised my voice for a moment in the middle of the noise and shouted that we were German sailors who had brought heavy artillery for Turkey and were heading home the next day. I asked them what the hell they thought we had done? I’m not sure if anyone there understood German; anyway, it only resulted in a chaotic uproar where that ominous word Khafiyeh was everywhere.

Then Peter fired over their heads. He had to, for a chap was pawing at his throat. The answer was a clatter of bullets on the wall above us. It looked as if they meant to take us alive, and that I was very clear should not happen. Better a bloody end in a street scrap than the tender mercies of that bandbox bravo.

Then Peter shot over their heads. He had to, because a guy was grabbing at his throat. The response was a shower of bullets hitting the wall above us. It seemed like they intended to capture us alive, and I was very sure that couldn’t happen. Better a violent end in a street fight than the soft touch of that over-the-top tough guy.

I don’t quite know what happened next. A press drove down at me and I fired. Someone squealed, and I looked the next moment to be strangled. And then, suddenly, the scrimmage ceased, and there was a wavering splash of light in that pit of darkness.

I’m not really sure what happened next. A press came at me and I shot. Someone screamed, and in the next moment, I felt like I was being choked. Then, all of a sudden, the chaos stopped, and I saw a flickering light in that dark pit.

I never went through many worse minutes than these. When I had been hunted in the past weeks there had been mystery enough, but no immediate peril to face. When I had been up against a real, urgent, physical risk, like Loos, the danger at any rate had been clear. One knew what one was in for. But here was a threat I couldn’t put a name to, and it wasn’t in the future, but pressing hard at our throats.

I’ve never experienced many worse moments than these. In the past weeks, while I was being hunted, there was enough mystery, but no immediate danger to confront. When I faced a real, urgent physical risk, like at Loos, the threat was clear. You knew what to expect. But this was a danger I couldn’t identify, and it wasn’t something in the future; it was pressing hard against our throats.

And yet I couldn’t feel it was quite real. The patter of the pistol bullets against the wall, like so many crackers, the faces felt rather than seen in the dark, the clamour which to me was pure gibberish, had all the madness of a nightmare. Only Peter, cursing steadily in Dutch by my side, was real. And then the light came, and made the scene more eerie!

And yet I couldn’t shake the feeling that it wasn’t really happening. The sound of the bullets hitting the wall, like a bunch of firecrackers, the faces that I sensed more than saw in the dark, the noise that sounded like complete nonsense to me, all carried the insanity of a nightmare. Only Peter, cursing nonstop in Dutch next to me, felt real. And then the light came on, making the scene even creepier!

It came from one or two torches carried by wild fellows with long staves who drove their way into the heart of the mob. The flickering glare ran up the steep walls and made monstrous shadows. The wind swung the flame into long streamers, dying away in a fan of sparks.

It came from a couple of torches held by rowdy guys with long sticks who pushed their way into the crowd. The flickering light danced up the steep walls, creating huge shadows. The wind tossed the flame into long strands, fading into a burst of sparks.

And now a new word was heard in the crowd. It was Chinganeh, shouted not in anger but in fear.

And now a new word was heard in the crowd. It was Chinganeh, shouted not in anger but in fear.

At first I could not see the newcomers. They were hidden in the deep darkness under their canopy of light, for they were holding their torches high at the full stretch of their arms. They were shouting, too, wild shrill cries ending sometimes in a gush of rapid speech. Their words did not seem to be directed against us, but against the crowd. A sudden hope came to me that for some unknown reason they were on our side.

At first, I couldn’t see the newcomers. They were hidden in the deep darkness under their light canopy because they were holding their torches high above their heads. They were also shouting, letting out wild, shrill cries that sometimes turned into a rush of rapid speech. Their words didn’t seem aimed at us but at the crowd. A sudden hope filled me that, for some unknown reason, they were on our side.

The press was no longer heavy against us. It was thinning rapidly and I could hear the scuffle as men made off down the side streets. My first notion was that these were the Turkish police. But I changed my mind when the leader came out into a patch of light. He carried no torch, but a long stave with which he belaboured the heads of those who were too tightly packed to flee.

The crowd was no longer pressing against us. It was quickly thinning out, and I could hear the scuffling as people rushed down the side streets. At first, I thought they were the Turkish police. But I changed my mind when the leader stepped into a pool of light. He didn’t have a flashlight, but he had a long stick that he used to hit the heads of those who were too crowded to escape.

It was the most eldritch apparition you can conceive. A tall man dressed in skins, with bare legs and sandal-shod feet. A wisp of scarlet cloth clung to his shoulders, and, drawn over his head down close to his eyes, was a skull-cap of some kind of pelt with the tail waving behind it. He capered like a wild animal, keeping up a strange high monotone that fairly gave me the creeps.

It was the weirdest sight you could imagine. A tall man dressed in animal skins, with bare legs and feet in sandals. A thin piece of red cloth hung from his shoulders, and pulled over his head close to his eyes was a skullcap made of some kind of fur, with the tail trailing behind it. He danced around like a wild animal, making a bizarre high-pitched sound that honestly sent chills down my spine.

I was suddenly aware that the crowd had gone. Before us was only this figure and his half-dozen companions, some carrying torches and all wearing clothes of skin. But only the one who seemed to be their leader wore the skull-cap; the rest had bare heads and long tangled hair.

I suddenly realized that the crowd was gone. In front of us stood just this figure and his half-dozen companions, some holding torches, all dressed in animal skins. But only the one who appeared to be their leader wore a skull-cap; the others had bare heads and long, tangled hair.

The fellow was shouting gibberish at me. His eyes were glassy, like a man who smokes hemp, and his legs were never still for a second. You would think such a figure no better than a mountebank, and yet there was nothing comic in it. Fearful and sinister and uncanny it was; and I wanted to do anything but laugh.

The guy was shouting nonsense at me. His eyes were glassy, like someone who smokes weed, and his legs wouldn’t stay still for a moment. You'd think someone like that was just a joke, but there was nothing funny about it. It was frightening, eerie, and unsettling; I felt like doing anything but laughing.

As he shouted he kept pointing with his stave up the street which climbed the hillside.

As he shouted, he kept pointing with his stick up the street that climbed the hillside.

“He means us to move,” said Peter. “For God’s sake let us get away from this witch-doctor.”

“He wants us to leave,” said Peter. “For God’s sake, let’s get away from this witch-doctor.”

I couldn’t make sense of it, but one thing was clear. These maniacs had delivered us for the moment from Rasta and his friends.

I couldn’t understand it, but one thing was obvious. These crazies had temporarily rescued us from Rasta and his buddies.

Then I did a dashed silly thing. I pulled out a sovereign and offered it to the leader. I had some kind of notion of showing gratitude, and as I had no words I had to show it by deed.

Then I did a really silly thing. I took out a sovereign and offered it to the leader. I had some idea of showing gratitude, and since I didn’t have the words, I had to express it through action.

He brought his stick down on my wrist and sent the coin spinning in the gutter. His eyes blazed, and he made his weapon sing round my head. He cursed me—oh, I could tell cursing well enough, though I didn’t follow a word; and he cried to his followers and they cursed me too. I had offered him a mortal insult and stirred up a worse hornet’s nest than Rasta’s push.

He brought his stick down on my wrist and sent the coin spinning into the gutter. His eyes were fiery, and he swung his weapon around my head. He shouted curses at me—oh, I could recognize cursing well enough, even though I didn’t understand the words; and he called out to his followers, and they cursed me too. I had given him a serious insult and stirred up an even worse mess than Rasta’s crew.

Peter and I, with a common impulse, took to our heels. We were not looking for any trouble with demoniacs. Up the steep, narrow lane we ran with that bedlamite crowd at our heels. The torches seemed to have gone out, for the place was black as pitch, and we tumbled over heaps of offal and splashed through running drains. The men were close behind us, and more than once I felt a stick on my shoulder. But fear lent us wings, and suddenly before us was a blaze of light and we saw the debouchment of our street in a main thoroughfare. The others saw it, too, for they slackened off. Just before we reached the light we stopped and looked round. There was no sound or sight behind us in the dark lane which dipped to the harbour.

Peter and I, driven by a shared instinct, took off running. We had no intention of getting into any trouble with the crazies. We sprinted up the steep, narrow lane, with that wild crowd chasing after us. The torches seemed to have gone out; it was as dark as night, and we stumbled over piles of garbage and splashed through running sewage. The men were right behind us, and more than once, I felt a stick hit my shoulder. But fear gave us speed, and suddenly we saw a burst of light ahead, where our street opened up into a main road. The others noticed it too and started to slow down. Just before we reached the light, we paused and glanced back. There was no sound or sight behind us in the dark lane that led down to the harbor.

“This is a queer country, Cornelis,” said Peter, feeling his limbs for bruises. “Too many things happen in too short a time. I am breathless.”

“This is a strange country, Cornelis,” said Peter, checking for bruises on his limbs. “So much happens in such a short time. I'm out of breath.”

The big street we had struck seemed to run along the crest of the hill. There were lamps in it, and crawling cabs, and quite civilized-looking shops. We soon found the hotel to which Kuprasso had directed us, a big place in a courtyard with a very tumble-down-looking portico, and green sun-shutters which rattled drearily in the winter’s wind. It proved, as I had feared, to be packed to the door, mostly with German officers. With some trouble I got an interview with the proprietor, the usual Greek, and told him that we had been sent there by Mr Kuprasso. That didn’t affect him in the least, and we would have been shot into the street if I hadn’t remembered about Stumm’s pass.

The main street we found seemed to stretch along the top of the hill. There were streetlights, slow-moving cabs, and shops that looked quite upscale. We quickly located the hotel that Kuprasso had sent us to, a large place in a courtyard with a rundown-looking entrance and green shutters that creaked persistently in the winter wind. It turned out, as I had feared, to be fully booked, mostly with German officers. After some effort, I managed to speak with the owner, the typical Greek, and informed him that we were sent there by Mr. Kuprasso. This didn’t seem to impress him at all, and we would have been kicked out onto the street if I hadn’t recalled Stumm’s pass.

So I explained that we had come from Germany with munitions and only wanted rooms for one night. I showed him the pass and blustered a good deal, till he became civil and said he would do the best he could for us.

So I explained that we had come from Germany with weapons and just wanted rooms for one night. I showed him the pass and talked a lot until he became polite and said he would do his best for us.

That best was pretty poor. Peter and I were doubled up in a small room which contained two camp-beds and little else, and had broken windows through which the wind whistled. We had a wretched dinner of stringy mutton, boiled with vegetables, and a white cheese strong enough to raise the dead. But I got a bottle of whisky, for which I paid a sovereign, and we managed to light the stove in our room, fasten the shutters, and warm our hearts with a brew of toddy. After that we went to bed and slept like logs for twelve hours. On the road from Rustchuk we had had uneasy slumbers.

That place was pretty bad. Peter and I were crammed into a small room that had two camp beds and not much else, with broken windows that whistled in the wind. We had a terrible dinner of tough mutton boiled with vegetables, and a strong white cheese that could wake the dead. But I got a bottle of whisky that I paid a sovereign for, and we managed to light the stove in our room, secure the shutters, and warm ourselves with a hot drink. After that, we went to bed and slept soundly for twelve hours. On the road from Rustchuk, we had restless nights.

I woke next morning and, looking out from the broken window, saw that it was snowing. With a lot of trouble I got hold of a servant and made him bring us some of the treacly Turkish coffee. We were both in pretty low spirits. “Europe is a poor cold place,” said Peter, “not worth fighting for. There is only one white man’s land, and that is South Africa.” At the time I heartily agreed with him.

I woke up the next morning and, looking out from the broken window, saw that it was snowing. After some effort, I managed to get a servant to bring us some of that sweet Turkish coffee. We were both feeling pretty down. “Europe is a cold, miserable place,” said Peter, “not worth fighting for. There’s only one white man’s land, and that’s South Africa.” At the time, I completely agreed with him.

I remember that, sitting on the edge of my bed, I took stock of our position. It was not very cheering. We seemed to have been amassing enemies at a furious pace. First of all, there was Rasta, whom I had insulted and who wouldn’t forget it in a hurry. He had his crowd of Turkish riff-raff and was bound to get us sooner or later. Then there was the maniac in the skin hat. He didn’t like Rasta, and I made a guess that he and his weird friends were of some party hostile to the Young Turks. But, on the other hand, he didn’t like us, and there would be bad trouble the next time we met him. Finally, there was Stumm and the German Government. It could only be a matter of hours at the best before he got the Rustchuk authorities on our trail. It would be easy to trace us from Chataldja, and once they had us we were absolutely done. There was a big black dossier against us, which by no conceivable piece of luck could be upset.

I remember sitting on the edge of my bed, taking stock of our situation. It wasn’t very promising. We seemed to be gathering enemies at an alarming rate. First, there was Rasta, whom I insulted, and he definitely wouldn’t forget that anytime soon. He had his group of Turkish lowlifes and was bound to come after us eventually. Then there was the guy in the skin hat. He didn’t like Rasta, and I guessed that he and his strange friends were part of some group opposing the Young Turks. But on the flip side, he didn’t like us either, and we were going to run into serious trouble the next time we crossed paths. Finally, there was Stumm and the German government. It was only a matter of hours at best before he got the Rustchuk authorities on our trail. It would be easy for them to track us from Chataldja, and once they caught us, we were completely done for. There was a big black dossier against us that no amount of luck could change.

It was very clear to me that, unless we could find sanctuary and shed all our various pursuers during this day, we should be done in for good and all. But where on earth were we to find sanctuary? We had neither of us a word of the language, and there was no way I could see of taking on new characters. For that we wanted friends and help, and I could think of none anywhere. Somewhere, to be sure, there was Blenkiron, but how could we get in touch with him? As for Sandy, I had pretty well given him up. I always thought his enterprise the craziest of the lot and bound to fail. He was probably somewhere in Asia Minor, and a month or two later would get to Constantinople and hear in some pot-house the yarn of the two wretched Dutchmen who had disappeared so soon from men’s sight.

It was obvious to me that unless we could find a safe place and lose all our various pursuers today, we were done for good. But where on earth could we find that safe place? Neither of us spoke the language, and I couldn't see any way to assume new identities. For that, we needed friends and support, and I couldn't think of anyone who could help. Somewhere out there was Blenkiron, but how could we contact him? As for Sandy, I had pretty much given up on him. I always thought his plan was the craziest of them all and bound to fail. He was probably somewhere in Asia Minor, and a month or two later, he'd make it to Constantinople and hear in some bar the tale of the two unfortunate Dutchmen who had disappeared so quickly from everyone's sight.

That rendezvous at Kuprasso’s was no good. It would have been all right if we had got here unsuspected, and could have gone on quietly frequenting the place till Blenkiron picked us up. But to do that we wanted leisure and secrecy, and here we were with a pack of hounds at our heels. The place was horribly dangerous already. If we showed ourselves there we should be gathered in by Rasta, or by the German military police, or by the madman in the skin cap. It was a stark impossibility to hang about on the off-chance of meeting Blenkiron.

That meeting at Kuprasso’s was a disaster. It could have been fine if we had arrived without being noticed and could have quietly visited the place until Blenkiron found us. But to do that, we needed time and privacy, and instead, we had a group of hounds chasing us. The situation was extremely risky already. If we showed up there, we would be caught by Rasta, the German military police, or the crazy guy in the skin cap. It was completely unrealistic to stick around just hoping to run into Blenkiron.

I reflected with some bitterness that this was the 17th day of January, the day of our assignation. I had had high hopes all the way down the Danube of meeting with Blenkiron—for I knew he would be in time—of giving him the information I had had the good fortune to collect, of piecing it together with what he had found out, and of getting the whole story which Sir Walter hungered for. After that, I thought it wouldn’t be hard to get away by Rumania, and to get home through Russia. I had hoped to be back with my battalion in February, having done as good a bit of work as anybody in the war. As it was, it looked as if my information would die with me, unless I could find Blenkiron before the evening.

I reflected with some bitterness that it was January 17th, the day we were supposed to meet. I had high hopes all the way down the Danube of connecting with Blenkiron—knowing he’d make it on time—of sharing the valuable information I had managed to gather, combining it with what he had discovered, and telling the entire story that Sir Walter was eager for. After that, I figured it wouldn’t be difficult to get out through Romania and make my way home via Russia. I hoped to be back with my battalion in February, having accomplished as much as anyone in the war. As it stood, it seemed my information would perish with me unless I could find Blenkiron before evening.

I talked the thing over with Peter, and he agreed that we were fairly up against it. We decided to go to Kuprasso’s that afternoon, and to trust to luck for the rest. It wouldn’t do to wander about the streets, so we sat tight in our room all morning, and swopped old hunting yarns to keep our minds from the beastly present. We got some food at midday—cold mutton and the same cheese, and finished our whisky. Then I paid the bill, for I didn’t dare to stay there another night. About half-past three we went into the street, without the foggiest notion where we would find our next quarters.

I discussed the situation with Peter, and he agreed that we were in a tough spot. We decided to head to Kuprasso's that afternoon and just hope for the best afterward. It wouldn’t make sense to roam around the streets, so we stayed put in our room all morning, swapping old hunting stories to take our minds off the awful present. We got some food around noon—cold mutton and the same cheese, and finished off our whisky. Then I paid the bill because I couldn’t risk staying there another night. Around three-thirty, we stepped outside, with no idea where we would find our next place to stay.

It was snowing heavily, which was a piece of luck for us. Poor old Peter had no greatcoat, so we went into a Jew’s shop and bought a ready-made abomination, which looked as if it might have been meant for a dissenting parson. It was no good saving my money when the future was so black. The snow made the streets deserted, and we turned down the long lane which led to Ratchik ferry, and found it perfectly quiet. I do not think we met a soul till we got to Kuprasso’s shop.

It was snowing heavily, which was lucky for us. Poor Peter didn't have a greatcoat, so we went into aJew's shop and bought a ready-made disaster that looked like it was meant for a dissenting pastor. There’s no point in saving my money when the future looked so grim. The snow cleared the streets, and we walked down the long lane that led to Ratchik ferry, finding it completely quiet. I don’t think we saw a single person until we reached Kuprasso’s shop.

We walked straight through the cafe, which was empty, and down the dark passage, till we were stopped by the garden door. I knocked and it swung open. There was the bleak yard, now puddled with snow, and a blaze of light from the pavilion at the other end. There was a scraping of fiddles, too, and the sound of human talk. We paid the negro at the door, and passed from the bitter afternoon into a garish saloon.

We walked right through the empty cafe and down the dark hallway until we reached the garden door. I knocked, and it opened. There was the dreary yard, now covered in puddles of snow, and a bright light coming from the pavilion at the other end. I could also hear fiddles scraping and people talking. We paid the man at the door and stepped from the chilly afternoon into a flashy bar.

There were forty or fifty people there, drinking coffee and sirops and filling the air with the fumes of latakia. Most of them were Turks in European clothes and the fez, but there were some German officers and what looked like German civilians—Army Service Corps clerks, probably, and mechanics from the Arsenal. A woman in cheap finery was tinkling at the piano, and there were several shrill females with the officers. Peter and I sat down modestly in the nearest corner, where old Kuprasso saw us and sent us coffee. A girl who looked like a Jewess came over to us and talked French, but I shook my head and she went off again.

There were about forty or fifty people there, drinking coffee and flavored syrups, filling the air with the smell of latakia. Most of them were Turks in European clothes and fezzes, but there were also some German officers and what seemed like German civilians—probably clerks from the Army Service Corps and mechanics from the Arsenal. A woman in cheap fancy clothes was playing the piano, and there were several loud women with the officers. Peter and I modestly sat down in the nearest corner, where old Kuprasso spotted us and sent us coffee. A girl who looked like a Jewish woman came over and spoke French, but I shook my head, and she walked away.

Presently a girl came on the stage and danced, a silly affair, all a clashing of tambourines and wriggling. I have seen native women do the same thing better in a Mozambique kraal. Another sang a German song, a simple, sentimental thing about golden hair and rainbows, and the Germans present applauded. The place was so tinselly and common that, coming to it from weeks of rough travelling, it made me impatient. I forgot that, while for the others it might be a vulgar little dancing-hall, for us it was as perilous as a brigands’ den.

Right then, a girl came out on stage and danced, a silly act with a bunch of tambourines and a lot of wriggling. I’ve seen local women do it way better back in a Mozambique village. Another girl sang a German song, a simple, sentimental one about golden hair and rainbows, and the Germans there applauded. The place was so flashy and tacky that, after weeks of tough traveling, it got on my nerves. I forgot that, while for the others it might just be a cheesy little dance hall, for us it felt as dangerous as a bandit’s hideout.

Peter did not share my mood. He was quite interested in it, as he was interested in everything new. He had a genius for living in the moment.

Peter wasn’t in the same mood as I was. He was definitely intrigued by it, just like he was curious about everything new. He had a knack for enjoying the present.

I remember there was a drop-scene on which was daubed a blue lake with very green hills in the distance. As the tobacco smoke grew thicker and the fiddles went on squealing, this tawdry picture began to mesmerize me. I seemed to be looking out of a window at a lovely summer landscape where there were no wars or danger. I seemed to feel the warm sun and to smell the fragrance of blossom from the islands. And then I became aware that a queer scent had stolen into the atmosphere.

I remember there was a backdrop painted with a blue lake and very green hills in the distance. As the tobacco smoke got thicker and the fiddles kept squeaking, this cheap picture started to mesmerize me. I felt like I was looking out of a window at a beautiful summer landscape where there were no wars or threats. I could almost feel the warm sun and smell the sweet fragrance of blossoms from the islands. Then I noticed that a strange scent had crept into the air.

There were braziers burning at both ends to warm the room, and the thin smoke from these smelt like incense. Somebody had been putting a powder in the flames, for suddenly the place became very quiet. The fiddles still sounded, but far away like an echo. The lights went down, all but a circle on the stage, and into that circle stepped my enemy of the skin cap.

There were braziers burning at both ends to warm the room, and the thin smoke from these smelled like incense. Someone had been adding a powder to the flames, because suddenly the place went very quiet. The fiddles still played, but far away like an echo. The lights dimmed, leaving only a circle on the stage, and into that circle stepped my enemy wearing the skin cap.

He had three others with him. I heard a whisper behind me, and the words were those which Kuprasso had used the day before. These bedlamites were called the Companions of the Rosy Hours, and Kuprasso had promised great dancing.

He had three others with him. I heard a whisper behind me, and the words were the same ones Kuprasso had used the day before. These wild ones were called the Companions of the Rosy Hours, and Kuprasso had promised amazing dancing.

I hoped to goodness they would not see us, for they had fairly given me the horrors. Peter felt the same, and we both made ourselves very small in that dark corner. But the newcomers had no eyes for us.

I really hoped they wouldn't see us, because they completely freaked me out. Peter felt the same way, and we both tried to make ourselves as small as possible in that dark corner. But the new arrivals didn’t notice us at all.

In a twinkling the pavilion changed from a common saloon, which might have been in Chicago or Paris, to a place of mystery—yes, and of beauty. It became the Garden-House of Suliman the Red, whoever that sportsman may have been. Sandy had said that the ends of the earth converged there, and he had been right. I lost all consciousness of my neighbours—stout German, frock-coated Turk, frowsy Jewess—and saw only strange figures leaping in a circle of light, figures that came out of the deepest darkness to make a big magic.

In an instant, the pavilion transformed from an ordinary lounge, like something you’d find in Chicago or Paris, into a place of mystery—and beauty. It turned into the Garden-House of Suliman the Red, whoever that adventurer was. Sandy had mentioned that the ends of the earth met there, and he was spot on. I lost all awareness of those around me—a plump German, a man in a frock coat, a disheveled Jewish woman—and saw only strange figures dancing in a circle of light, figures that emerged from the deepest darkness to create something magical.

The leader flung some stuff into the brazier, and a great fan of blue light flared up. He was weaving circles, and he was singing something shrill and high, whilst his companions made a chorus with their deep monotone. I can’t tell you what the dance was. I had seen the Russian ballet just before the war, and one of the men in it reminded me of this man. But the dancing was the least part of it. It was neither sound nor movement nor scent that wrought the spell, but something far more potent. In an instant I found myself reft away from the present with its dull dangers, and looking at a world all young and fresh and beautiful. The gaudy drop-scene had vanished. It was a window I was looking from, and I was gazing at the finest landscape on earth, lit by the pure clean light of morning.

The leader tossed some items into the fire, and a burst of blue light flared up. He was making circles and singing something high-pitched and shrill, while his companions provided a deep, steady background chorus. I can't describe the dance. I had seen a Russian ballet right before the war, and one of the dancers reminded me of this guy. But the dancing was the least important part. It wasn't the sound, movement, or smell that created the magic, but something much stronger. In an instant, I felt myself pulled away from the present with its boring dangers, and I was looking at a world that was young, fresh, and beautiful. The bright backdrop had disappeared. It was like I was looking through a window at the most stunning landscape on earth, illuminated by the pure, clean light of morning.

It seemed to be part of the veld, but like no veld I had ever seen. It was wider and wilder and more gracious. Indeed, I was looking at my first youth. I was feeling the kind of immortal light-heartedness which only a boy knows in the dawning of his days. I had no longer any fear of these magic-makers. They were kindly wizards, who had brought me into fairyland.

It felt like part of the grassy plains, but unlike any plains I had ever seen. It was broader, wilder, and more beautiful. In fact, I was looking at my youth. I was experiencing that carefree, invincible joy that only a boy feels in the beginning of his life. I no longer feared these creators of magic. They were friendly wizards who had brought me into a world of wonder.

Then slowly from the silence there distilled drops of music. They came like water falling a long way into a cup, each the essential quality of pure sound. We, with our elaborate harmonies, have forgotten the charm of single notes. The African natives know it, and I remember a learned man once telling me that the Greeks had the same art. Those silver bells broke out of infinite space, so exquisite and perfect that no mortal words could have been fitted to them. That was the music, I expect, that the morning stars made when they sang together.

Then slowly, from the silence, drops of music began to flow. They fell like water dropping into a cup from high above, each one capturing the essence of pure sound. We, with our complex harmonies, have forgotten the beauty of single notes. The African natives understand this, and I recall a knowledgeable person once telling me that the Greeks possessed the same skill. Those silver bells emerged from the vastness of space, so beautiful and perfect that no human words could do them justice. That was the music, I imagine, that the morning stars created when they sang in unison.

Slowly, very slowly, it changed. The glow passed from blue to purple, and then to an angry red. Bit by bit the notes spun together till they had made a harmony—a fierce, restless harmony. And I was conscious again of the skin-clad dancers beckoning out of their circle.

Slowly, very slowly, it changed. The glow shifted from blue to purple, and then to a furious red. Piece by piece, the notes intertwined until they created a harmony—a fierce, restless harmony. And I became aware again of the dancers in their skin-tight outfits beckoning from their circle.

There was no mistake about the meaning now. All the daintiness and youth had fled, and passion was beating the air—terrible, savage passion, which belonged neither to day nor night, life nor death, but to the half-world between them. I suddenly felt the dancers as monstrous, inhuman, devilish. The thick scents that floated from the brazier seemed to have a tang of new-shed blood. Cries broke from the hearers—cries of anger and lust and terror. I heard a woman sob, and Peter, who is as tough as any mortal, took tight hold of my arm.

There was no doubt about the meaning now. All the delicateness and youth had vanished, and passion filled the air—an overwhelming, wild passion that belonged to neither day nor night, life nor death, but to the space in between. I suddenly perceived the dancers as monstrous, inhuman, demonic. The heavy scents wafting from the brazier had a hint of fresh blood. Cries erupted from the audience—cries of anger, desire, and fear. I heard a woman sob, and Peter, who is as tough as anyone, gripped my arm tightly.

I now realized that these Companions of the Rosy Hours were the only thing in the world to fear. Rasta and Stumm seemed feeble simpletons by contrast. The window I had been looking out of was changed to a prison wall—I could see the mortar between the massive blocks. In a second these devils would be smelling out their enemies like some foul witch-doctors. I felt the burning eyes of their leader looking for me in the gloom. Peter was praying audibly beside me, and I could have choked him. His infernal chatter would reveal us, for it seemed to me that there was no one in the place except us and the magic-workers.

I now realized that these Companions of the Rosy Hours were the only thing in the world to fear. Rasta and Stumm seemed like weak simpletons by comparison. The window I had been looking out of had turned into a prison wall—I could see the mortar between the heavy blocks. In a moment, these creatures would be sniffing out their enemies like some disgusting witch-doctors. I felt the burning gaze of their leader searching for me in the shadows. Peter was praying loudly beside me, and I could have strangled him. His incessant chatter would give us away, as it felt like there was no one in the place except for us and the magic-workers.

Then suddenly the spell was broken. The door was flung open and a great gust of icy wind swirled through the hall, driving clouds of ashes from the braziers. I heard loud voices without, and a hubbub began inside. For a moment it was quite dark, and then someone lit one of the flare lamps by the stage. It revealed nothing but the common squalor of a low saloon—white faces, sleepy eyes, and frowsy heads. The drop-piece was there in all its tawdriness.

Then suddenly the spell was broken. The door swung open and a cold gust of wind whipped through the hall, sending clouds of ashes flying from the braziers. I heard loud voices outside, and a commotion started inside. For a moment, it was completely dark, and then someone lit one of the flare lamps by the stage. It showed nothing but the usual mess of a rundown bar—pale faces, tired eyes, and unkempt hair. The backdrop was there in all its cheapness.

The Companions of the Rosy Hours had gone. But at the door stood men in uniform, I heard a German a long way off murmur, “Enver’s bodyguards,” and I heard him distinctly; for, though I could not see clearly, my hearing was desperately acute. That is often the way when you suddenly come out of a swoon.

The Companions of the Rosy Hours were gone. But at the door stood men in uniform. I heard a German from afar murmur, “Enver’s bodyguards,” and I heard him clearly; because, even though I couldn't see well, my hearing was incredibly sharp. That’s often how it is when you suddenly come out of a faint.

The place emptied like magic. Turk and German tumbled over each other, while Kuprasso wailed and wept. No one seemed to stop them, and then I saw the reason. Those Guards had come for us. This must be Stumm at last. The authorities had tracked us down, and it was all up with Peter and me.

The place cleared out like it was bewitched. Turk and German stumbled over one another, while Kuprasso cried and sobbed. No one appeared to stop them, and then I realized why. Those Guards had shown up for us. This had to be Stumm at last. The authorities had found us, and it was all over for Peter and me.

A sudden revulsion leaves a man with a low vitality. I didn’t seem to care greatly. We were done, and there was an end of it. It was Kismet, the act of God, and there was nothing for it but to submit. I hadn’t a flicker of a thought of escape or resistance. The game was utterly and absolutely over.

A sudden feeling of disgust leaves a man feeling drained. I didn't really care much. We were finished, and that was that. It was fate, a higher power, and there was nothing to do but accept it. I didn't have a single thought of escape or resistance. The game was completely and totally over.

A man who seemed to be a sergeant pointed to us and said something to Kuprasso, who nodded. We got heavily to our feet and stumbled towards them. With one on each side of us we crossed the yard, walked through the dark passage and the empty shop, and out into the snowy street. There was a closed carriage waiting which they motioned us to get into. It looked exactly like the Black Maria.

A man who looked like a sergeant pointed at us and said something to Kuprasso, who nodded. We awkwardly got up and stumbled toward them. With one of them on each side, we crossed the yard, walked through the dark passage and the empty shop, and stepped out into the snowy street. There was a closed carriage waiting that they signaled for us to get into. It looked just like the Black Maria.

Both of us sat still, like truant schoolboys, with our hands on our knees. I didn’t know where I was going and I didn’t care. We seemed to be rumbling up the hill, and then I caught the glare of lighted streets.

Both of us sat quietly, like kids skipping school, with our hands on our knees. I didn’t know where I was headed and I didn’t care. We seemed to be driving up the hill, and then I saw the bright lights of the streets.

“This is the end of it, Peter,” I said.

“This is the end of it, Peter,” I said.

Ja, Cornelis,” he replied, and that was all our talk.

Yeah, Cornelis,” he replied, and that was the end of our conversation.

By and by—hours later it seemed—we stopped. Someone opened the door and we got out, to find ourselves in a courtyard with a huge dark building around. The prison, I guessed, and I wondered if they would give us blankets, for it was perishing cold.

By and by—hours later, it felt—we stopped. Someone opened the door and we got out, finding ourselves in a courtyard surrounded by a huge dark building. The prison, I thought, and I wondered if they would give us blankets, because it was freezing cold.

We entered a door, and found ourselves in a big stone hall. It was quite warm, which made me more hopeful about our cells. A man in some kind of uniform pointed to the staircase, up which we plodded wearily. My mind was too blank to take clear impressions, or in any way to forecast the future. Another warder met us and took us down a passage till we halted at a door. He stood aside and motioned us to enter.

We walked through a door and found ourselves in a large stone hall. It was pretty warm, which made me feel more optimistic about our cells. A man in a uniform pointed to the staircase, and we trudged up it tiredly. My mind felt too blank to form clear thoughts or to predict what would happen next. Another guard met us and led us down a hallway until we stopped at a door. He stepped aside and signaled for us to go in.

I guessed that this was the governor’s room, and we should be put through our first examination. My head was too stupid to think, and I made up my mind to keep perfectly mum. Yes, even if they tried thumbscrews. I had no kind of story, but I resolved not to give anything away. As I turned the handle I wondered idly what kind of sallow Turk or bulging-necked German we should find inside.

I figured this was the governor’s office, and we were about to go through our first interrogation. My mind was too foggy to think clearly, so I decided to stay completely silent. Yes, even if they tried torture. I didn’t have any story to tell, but I was determined not to reveal anything. As I turned the handle, I idly wondered what kind of pale Turk or thick-necked German we’d find inside.

It was a pleasant room, with a polished wood floor and a big fire burning on the hearth. Beside the fire a man lay on a couch, with a little table drawn up beside him. On that table was a small glass of milk and a number of Patience cards spread in rows.

It was a nice room, with a shiny wood floor and a big fire crackling in the fireplace. Next to the fire, a man was lying on a couch, with a small table pulled up beside him. On that table was a small glass of milk and several Patience cards laid out in rows.

I stared blankly at the spectacle, till I saw a second figure. It was the man in the skin-cap, the leader of the dancing maniacs. Both Peter and I backed sharply at the sight and then stood stock still.

I stared blankly at the scene until I noticed a second figure. It was the man in the skin cap, the leader of the dancing maniacs. Both Peter and I jumped back at the sight and then froze.

For the dancer crossed the room in two strides and gripped both of my hands.

For the dancer crossed the room in two strides and held both of my hands.

“Dick, old man,” he cried, “I’m most awfully glad to see you again!”

“Dick, my friend,” he exclaimed, “I’m really glad to see you again!”

CHAPTER XII.
Four Missionaries See Light in their Mission

A spasm of incredulity, a vast relief, and that sharp joy which comes of reaction chased each other across my mind. I had come suddenly out of very black waters into an unbelievable calm. I dropped into the nearest chair and tried to grapple with something far beyond words.

A wave of disbelief, immense relief, and that intense happiness that comes from responding surged through my mind. I had suddenly emerged from dark waters into an unbelievable calm. I sank into the nearest chair and struggled to make sense of something that was beyond words.

“Sandy,” I said, as soon as I got my breath, “you’re an incarnate devil. You’ve given Peter and me the fright of our lives.”

“Sandy,” I said, as soon as I caught my breath, “you’re a total devil. You’ve scared Peter and me out of our minds.”

“It was the only way, Dick. If I hadn’t come mewing like a tom-cat at your heels yesterday, Rasta would have had you long before you got to your hotel. You two have given me a pretty anxious time, and it took some doing to get you safe here. However, that is all over now. Make yourselves at home, my children.”

“It was the only way, Dick. If I hadn’t been following you around like a lost kitten yesterday, Rasta would have gotten you long before you reached your hotel. You both have made me pretty worried, and it took a lot of effort to get you here safely. But that's all in the past now. Make yourselves at home, my kids.”

“Over!” I cried incredulously, for my wits were still wool-gathering. “What place is this?”

“Over!” I exclaimed in disbelief, as my thoughts were still wandering. “What place is this?”

“You may call it my humble home”—it was Blenkiron’s sleek voice that spoke. “We’ve been preparing for you, Major, but it was only yesterday I heard of your friend.”

“You can call it my humble home”—it was Blenkiron’s smooth voice that spoke. “We’ve been getting ready for you, Major, but I only heard about your friend yesterday.”

I introduced Peter.

I introduced Peter.

“Mr Pienaar,” said Blenkiron, “pleased to meet you. Well, as I was observing, you’re safe enough here, but you’ve cut it mighty fine. Officially, a Dutchman called Brandt was to be arrested this afternoon and handed over to the German authorities. When Germany begins to trouble about that Dutchman she will find difficulty in getting the body; but such are the languid ways of an Oriental despotism. Meantime the Dutchman will be no more. He will have ceased upon the midnight without pain, as your poet sings.”

“Mr. Pienaar,” said Blenkiron, “nice to meet you. As I was saying, you’re safe here, but you’ve come pretty close to trouble. Officially, a Dutchman named Brandt was supposed to be arrested this afternoon and handed over to the German authorities. When Germany starts worrying about that Dutchman, they’ll have a hard time getting him; but that’s just how things go in an Eastern dictatorship. In the meantime, the Dutchman will be gone. He’ll pass away at midnight without any pain, just like your poet says.”

“But I don’t understand,” I stammered. “Who arrested us?”

“But I don’t get it,” I stammered. “Who arrested us?”

“My men,” said Sandy. “We have a bit of a graft here, and it wasn’t difficult to manage it. Old Moellendorff will be nosing after the business tomorrow, but he will find the mystery too deep for him. That is the advantage of a Government run by a pack of adventurers. But, by Jove, Dick, we hadn’t any time to spare. If Rasta had got you, or the Germans had had the job of lifting you, your goose would have been jolly well cooked. I had some unquiet hours this morning.”

“My guys,” said Sandy. “We’ve got a little scheme going here, and it wasn't hard to pull off. Old Moellendorff will be sniffing around tomorrow, but he’ll find it all too complicated to figure out. That’s the perk of having a government run by a bunch of opportunists. But, man, Dick, we didn’t have any time to waste. If Rasta had caught you, or if the Germans had been responsible for taking you, you’d be in serious trouble. I had a few anxious hours this morning.”

The thing was too deep for me. I looked at Blenkiron, shuffling his Patience cards with his old sleepy smile, and Sandy, dressed like some bandit in melodrama, his lean face as brown as a nut, his bare arms all tattooed with crimson rings, and the fox pelt drawn tight over brow and ears. It was still a nightmare world, but the dream was getting pleasanter. Peter said not a word, but I could see his eyes heavy with his own thoughts.

The situation was way over my head. I glanced at Blenkiron, shuffling his Patience cards with his usual sleepy smile, and Sandy, dressed like some bandit from a melodrama, his lean face as brown as a nut, his bare arms covered in crimson tattoos, and a fox pelt pulled tight over his forehead and ears. It was still a nightmare world, but the dream was becoming more enjoyable. Peter didn't say a word, but I could see that his eyes were weighed down by his own thoughts.

Blenkiron hove himself from the sofa and waddled to a cupboard.

Blenkiron got up from the sofa and waddled over to a cupboard.

“You boys must be hungry,” he said. “My duo-denum has been giving me hell as usual, and I don’t eat no more than a squirrel. But I laid in some stores, for I guessed you would want to stoke up some after your travels.”

“You guys must be hungry,” he said. “My duodenum has been giving me trouble as usual, and I don’t eat any more than a squirrel. But I stocked up some supplies because I figured you’d want to fill up after your trip.”

He brought out a couple of Strassburg pies, a cheese, a cold chicken, a loaf, and three bottles of champagne.

He brought out a couple of Strasbourg pies, some cheese, a cold chicken, a loaf of bread, and three bottles of champagne.

“Fizz,” said Sandy rapturously. “And a dry Heidsieck too! We’re in luck, Dick, old man.”

“Fizz,” Sandy exclaimed excitedly. “And a dry Heidsieck too! We’re lucky, Dick, my friend.”

I never ate a more welcome meal, for we had starved in that dirty hotel. But I had still the old feeling of the hunted, and before I began I asked about the door.

I had never eaten a more welcome meal, because we had starved in that dirty hotel. But I still felt like the hunted, and before I started, I asked about the door.

“That’s all right,” said Sandy. “My fellows are on the stair and at the gate. If the Metreb are in possession, you may bet that other people will keep off. Your past is blotted out, clean vanished away, and you begin tomorrow morning with a new sheet. Blenkiron’s the man you’ve got to thank for that. He was pretty certain you’d get here, but he was also certain that you’d arrive in a hurry with a good many inquirers behind you. So he arranged that you should leak away and start fresh.”

"That's fine," Sandy said. "My guys are at the stairs and the gate. If the Metreb have control, you can bet that others will stay away. Your past is wiped clean, completely gone, and you start tomorrow morning with a clean slate. Blenkiron is the one you should thank for that. He was pretty sure you'd make it here, but he also knew you'd come in a rush with a lot of questions following you. So he set it up for you to slip away and begin anew."

“Your name is Richard Hanau,” Blenkiron said, “born in Cleveland, Ohio, of German parentage on both sides. One of our brightest mining-engineers, and the apple of Guggenheim’s eye. You arrived this afternoon from Constanza, and I met you at the packet. The clothes for the part are in your bedroom next door. But I guess all that can wait, for I’m anxious to get to business. We’re not here on a joy-ride, Major, so I reckon we’ll leave out the dime-novel adventures. I’m just dying to hear them, but they’ll keep. I want to know how our mutual inquiries have prospered.”

“Your name is Richard Hanau,” Blenkiron said, “born in Cleveland, Ohio, to German parents on both sides. You’re one of our top mining engineers and Guggenheim’s favorite. You got here this afternoon from Constanza, and I met you at the dock. The clothes for the role are in your bedroom next door. But I guess that can wait, because I’m eager to get down to business. We’re not here for a joyride, Major, so let’s skip the dime-novel adventures. I really want to hear them, but they can wait. I want to know how our mutual inquiries have been going.”

He gave Peter and me cigars, and we sat ourselves in armchairs in front of the blaze. Sandy squatted cross-legged on the hearthrug and lit a foul old briar pipe, which he extricated from some pouch among his skins. And so began that conversation which had never been out of my thoughts for four hectic weeks.

He gave Peter and me cigars, and we settled into armchairs in front of the fire. Sandy squatted cross-legged on the rug and lit a disgusting old briar pipe, which he pulled from some pouch among his gear. And so began that conversation that had been on my mind for four intense weeks.

“If I presume to begin,” said Blenkiron, “it’s because I reckon my story is the shortest. I have to confess to you, gentlemen, that I have failed.”

“If I may go first,” said Blenkiron, “it’s because I think my story is the shortest. I have to admit to you, gentlemen, that I have failed.”

He drew down the corners of his mouth till he looked a cross between a music-hall comedian and a sick child.

He pulled down the corners of his mouth until he looked like a mix between a stand-up comedian and a sick kid.

“If you were looking for something in the root of the hedge, you wouldn’t want to scour the road in a high-speed automobile. And still less would you want to get a bird’s-eye view in an aeroplane. That parable about fits my case. I have been in the clouds and I’ve been scorching on the pikes, but what I was wanting was in the ditch all the time, and I naturally missed it ... I had the wrong stunt, Major. I was too high up and refined. I’ve been processing through Europe like Barnum’s Circus, and living with generals and transparencies. Not that I haven’t picked up a lot of noos, and got some very interesting sidelights on high politics. But the thing I was after wasn’t to be found on my beat, for those that knew it weren’t going to tell. In that kind of society they don’t get drunk and blab after their tenth cocktail. So I guess I’ve no contribution to make to quieting Sir Walter Bullivant’s mind, except that he’s dead right. Yes, Sir, he has hit the spot and rung the bell. There is a mighty miracle-working proposition being floated in these parts, but the promoters are keeping it to themselves. They aren’t taking in more than they can help on the ground-floor.”

“If you were looking for something at the base of the hedge, you wouldn’t want to search the road in a fast car. And you definitely wouldn’t want to get a bird’s-eye view from an airplane. That parable fits my situation perfectly. I’ve been up in the clouds and speeding along the highways, but what I really needed was down in the ditch the whole time, and I completely missed it... I was going about it all wrong, Major. I was too focused on lofty and refined things. I’ve been traveling through Europe like Barnum’s Circus, hanging out with generals and flashy people. Not that I haven’t picked up a lot of news and gained some really interesting insights into high politics. But what I was actually looking for wasn’t in my usual circles, because those who knew about it weren’t going to share. In that kind of society, they don’t get drunk and spill their secrets after their tenth cocktail. So I guess I don’t have anything to offer to ease Sir Walter Bullivant’s mind, except to say he’s spot on. Yes, Sir, he’s absolutely right. There’s a significant, miraculous opportunity being talked about around here, but the people promoting it are keeping it under wraps. They’re not letting in more people than they have to on the ground floor.”

Blenkiron stopped to light a fresh cigar. He was leaner than when he left London and there were pouches below his eyes. I fancy his journey had not been as fur-lined as he made out. “I’ve found out one thing, and that is, that the last dream Germany will part with is the control of the Near East. That is what your statesmen don’t figure enough on. She’ll give up Belgium and Alsace-Lorraine and Poland, but by God! she’ll never give up the road to Mesopotamia till you have her by the throat and make her drop it. Sir Walter is a pretty bright-eyed citizen, and he sees it right enough. If the worst happens, Kaiser will fling overboard a lot of ballast in Europe, and it will look like a big victory for the Allies, but he won’t be beaten if he has the road to the East safe. Germany’s like a scorpion: her sting’s in her tail, and that tail stretches way down into Asia.

Blenkiron stopped to light a new cigar. He was leaner than when he left London, and there were bags under his eyes. I suspect his journey wasn't as luxurious as he claimed. “I’ve figured out one thing, and that is, the last dream Germany will let go of is control of the Near East. That's what your politicians don't think about enough. She’ll give up Belgium and Alsace-Lorraine and Poland, but I swear! she’ll never give up the route to Mesopotamia until you have her by the throat and force her to drop it. Sir Walter is a pretty sharp guy, and he understands this well enough. If the worst happens, the Kaiser will jettison a lot of weight in Europe, and it will appear to be a big victory for the Allies, but he won’t be defeated if he has the route to the East secured. Germany’s like a scorpion: her sting is in her tail, and that tail stretches all the way down into Asia.

“I got that clear, and I also made out that it wasn’t going to be dead easy for her to keep that tail healthy. Turkey’s a bit of an anxiety, as you’ll soon discover. But Germany thinks she can manage it, and I won’t say she can’t. It depends on the hand she holds, and she reckons it a good one. I tried to find out, but they gave me nothing but eyewash. I had to pretend to be satisfied, for the position of John S. wasn’t so strong as to allow him to take liberties. If I asked one of the highbrows he looked wise and spoke of the might of German arms and German organization and German staff-work. I used to nod my head and get enthusiastic about these stunts, but it was all soft soap. She has a trick in hand—that much I know, but I’m darned if I can put a name to it. I pray to God you boys have been cleverer.”

“I understood that it wasn’t going to be easy for her to keep that situation stable. Turkey’s a bit of a concern, as you’ll soon find out. But Germany thinks she can handle it, and I won't say she can't. It depends on the cards she's holding, and she believes they’re good ones. I tried to get more information, but all I got was nonsense. I had to act like I was satisfied, since John S.'s position wasn’t strong enough to take risks. If I asked one of the experts, he’d look wise and talk about the strength of German troops, German organization, and German planning. I used to nod and act excited about these ideas, but it was all just talk. She definitely has a strategy in play—that much I know, but I’m honestly at a loss to name it. I hope you guys have been smarter.”

His tone was quite melancholy, and I was mean enough to feel rather glad. He had been the professional with the best chance. It would be a good joke if the amateur succeeded where the expert failed.

His tone was pretty sad, and I was selfish enough to feel a bit happy about it. He had been the pro with the best shot. It would be a good laugh if the amateur managed to succeed where the expert couldn't.

I looked at Sandy. He filled his pipe again, and pushed back his skin cap from his brows. What with his long dishevelled hair, his high-boned face, and stained eyebrows he had the appearance of some mad mullah.

I looked at Sandy. He filled his pipe again and pushed his cap back from his forehead. With his long, messy hair, high cheekbones, and stained eyebrows, he looked like a crazy mullah.

“I went straight to Smyrna,” he said. “It wasn’t difficult, for you see I had laid down a good many lines in former travels. I reached the town as a Greek money-lender from the Fayum, but I had friends there I could count on, and the same evening I was a Turkish gipsy, a member of the most famous fraternity in Western Asia. I had long been a member, and I’m blood-brother of the chief boss, so I stepped into the part ready made. But I found out that the Company of the Rosy Hours was not what I had known it in 1910. Then it had been all for the Young Turks and reform; now it hankered after the old regime and was the last hope of the Orthodox. It had no use for Enver and his friends, and it did not regard with pleasure the beaux yeux of the Teuton. It stood for Islam and the old ways, and might be described as a Conservative-Nationalist caucus. But it was uncommon powerful in the provinces, and Enver and Talaat daren’t meddle with it. The dangerous thing about it was that it said nothing and apparently did nothing. It just bided its time and took notes.

“I went straight to Smyrna,” he said. “It wasn’t hard, because I had established quite a few connections during my previous travels. I arrived in town as a Greek money-lender from the Fayum, but I had friends I could rely on, and by the same evening, I was posing as a Turkish gypsy, a member of the most famous brotherhood in Western Asia. I had been a member for a long time, and I was blood-brother to the chief, so I stepped into the role effortlessly. But I discovered that the Company of the Rosy Hours was not what I remembered from 1910. Back then, it was all about the Young Turks and reform; now it was longing for the old regime and had become the last hope of the Orthodox. It had no use for Enver and his allies, and it didn’t like the looks of the Germans. It stood for Islam and traditional values, and could be described as a Conservative-Nationalist group. But it was extremely powerful in the provinces, and Enver and Talaat didn’t dare interfere with it. The dangerous part was that it said nothing and seemingly did nothing. It just waited patiently and took notes.

“You can imagine that this was the very kind of crowd for my purpose. I knew of old its little ways, for with all its orthodoxy it dabbled a good deal in magic, and owed half its power to its atmosphere of the uncanny. The Companions could dance the heart out of the ordinary Turk. You saw a bit of one of our dances this afternoon, Dick—pretty good, wasn’t it? They could go anywhere, and no questions asked. They knew what the ordinary man was thinking, for they were the best intelligence department in the Ottoman Empire—far better than Enver’s Khafiyeh. And they were popular, too, for they had never bowed the knee to the Nemseh—the Germans who are squeezing out the life-blood of the Osmanli for their own ends. It would have been as much as the life of the Committee or its German masters was worth to lay a hand on us, for we clung together like leeches and we were not in the habit of sticking at trifles.

“You can imagine that this was exactly the type of crowd I needed. I was familiar with their little quirks, because despite their strictness, they dabbled quite a bit in magic and owed much of their power to an eerie atmosphere. The Companions could outdance any average Turk. You caught a glimpse of one of our dances this afternoon, Dick—pretty good, right? They could go anywhere without anyone questioning them. They understood what the average person was thinking, as they were the best intelligence network in the Ottoman Empire—much better than Enver’s Khafiyeh. And they were popular too, because they had never submitted to the Nemseh—the Germans who were draining the life out of the Osmanli for their own gain. It would have been as risky as their lives to touch us, because we stuck together like leeches and didn’t shy away from the small stuff.”

“Well, you may imagine it wasn’t difficult for me to move where I wanted. My dress and the pass-word franked me anywhere. I travelled from Smyrna by the new railway to Panderma on the Marmora, and got there just before Christmas. That was after Anzac and Suvla had been evacuated, but I could hear the guns going hard at Cape Helles. From Panderma I started to cross to Thrace in a coasting steamer. And there an uncommon funny thing happened—I got torpedoed.

“Well, you can imagine it wasn’t hard for me to go wherever I wanted. My dress and the password got me in anywhere. I traveled from Smyrna on the new railway to Panderma on the Marmora, arriving just before Christmas. That was after Anzac and Suvla had been evacuated, but I could still hear the guns firing fiercely at Cape Helles. From Panderma, I started to cross to Thrace on a coastal steamer. And then something quite funny happened—I got torpedoed.”

“It must have been about the last effort of a British submarine in those waters. But she got us all right. She gave us ten minutes to take to the boats, and then sent the blighted old packet and a fine cargo of 6-inch shells to the bottom. There weren’t many passengers, so it was easy enough to get ashore in the ship’s boats. The submarine sat on the surface watching us, as we wailed and howled in the true Oriental way, and I saw the captain quite close in the conning-tower. Who do you think it was? Tommy Elliot, who lives on the other side of the hill from me at home.

“It must have been the last attempt of a British submarine in those waters. But she got us for sure. She gave us ten minutes to get to the lifeboats, and then sent the unfortunate old ship and a great load of 6-inch shells to the bottom. There weren’t many passengers, so it was pretty easy to make it ashore in the ship’s boats. The submarine stayed on the surface, watching us, as we cried and howled in the true Oriental way, and I saw the captain up close in the conning tower. Guess who it was? Tommy Elliot, who lives on the other side of the hill from me back home.

“I gave Tommy the surprise of his life. As we bumped past him, I started the ‘Flowers of the Forest’—the old version—on the antique stringed instrument I carried, and I sang the words very plain. Tommy’s eyes bulged out of his head, and he shouted at me in English to know who the devil I was. I replied in the broadest Scots, which no man in the submarine or in our boat could have understood a word of. ‘Maister Tammy,’ I cried, ‘what for wad ye skail a dacent tinkler lad intil a cauld sea? I’ll gie ye your kail through the reek for this ploy the next time I forgaither wi’ ye on the tap o’ Caerdon.’

“I gave Tommy the surprise of his life. As we bumped past him, I started playing ‘Flowers of the Forest’—the old version—on the antique stringed instrument I had, and I sang the words clearly. Tommy’s eyes nearly popped out of his head, and he shouted at me in English, demanding to know who the heck I was. I replied in the broadest Scots, which no one in the submarine or in our boat could have understood. ‘Master Tommy,’ I shouted, ‘why would you throw a decent tinkler lad into a cold sea? I’ll get you back for this the next time I run into you at the top of Caerdon.’”

“Tommy spotted me in a second. He laughed till he cried, and as we moved off shouted to me in the same language to ‘pit a stoot hert tae a stey brae’. I hope to Heaven he had the sense not to tell my father, or the old man will have had a fit. He never much approved of my wanderings, and thought I was safely anchored in the battalion.

“Tommy saw me right away. He laughed so hard he cried, and as we walked away, he shouted to me to ‘put a strong heart to a steep hill’ in the same way. I hope to God he was smart enough not to tell my dad, or the old man would have freaked out. He never really liked my adventures and thought I was safely settled in the battalion.”

“Well, to make a long story short, I got to Constantinople, and pretty soon found touch with Blenkiron. The rest you know. And now for business. I have been fairly lucky—but no more, for I haven’t got to the bottom of the thing nor anything like it. But I’ve solved the first of Harry Bullivant’s riddles. I know the meaning of Kasredin.

“Well, to make a long story short, I got to Constantinople, and pretty soon made contact with Blenkiron. The rest you know. And now for business. I've had some luck—but not enough, because I still haven't uncovered the whole truth. But I’ve figured out the first of Harry Bullivant’s riddles. I know the meaning of Kasredin.

“Sir Walter was right, as Blenkiron has told us. There’s a great stirring in Islam, something moving on the face of the waters. They make no secret of it. Those religious revivals come in cycles, and one was due about now. And they are quite clear about the details. A seer has arisen of the blood of the Prophet, who will restore the Khalifate to its old glories and Islam to its old purity. His sayings are everywhere in the Moslem world. All the orthodox believers have them by heart. That is why they are enduring grinding poverty and preposterous taxation, and that is why their young men are rolling up to the armies and dying without complaint in Gallipoli and Transcaucasia. They believe they are on the eve of a great deliverance.

“Sir Walter was right, as Blenkiron has told us. There’s a huge movement happening in Islam, something stirring beneath the surface. They’re not hiding it at all. These religious revivals come in cycles, and one is expected right about now. They’re very clear about the specifics. A prophet has emerged from the lineage of the Prophet, who will restore the Khalifate to its former glory and Islam to its original purity. His teachings are everywhere in the Muslim world. All the faithful know them by heart. That’s why they’re enduring extreme poverty and ridiculous taxes, and that’s why their young men are joining the armies and dying without complaint in Gallipoli and Transcaucasia. They believe they’re on the verge of a major liberation.

“Now the first thing I found out was that the Young Turks had nothing to do with this. They are unpopular and unorthodox, and no true Turks. But Germany has. How, I don’t know, but I could see quite plainly that in some subtle way Germany was regarded as a collaborator in the movement. It is that belief that is keeping the present regime going. The ordinary Turk loathes the Committee, but he has some queer perverted expectation from Germany. It is not a case of Enver and the rest carrying on their shoulders the unpopular Teuton; it is a case of the Teuton carrying the unpopular Committee. And Germany’s graft is just this and nothing more—that she has some hand in the coming of the new deliverer.

“First, I realized that the Young Turks had nothing to do with this. They’re unpopular and unconventional, and not really true Turks. But Germany does have a role. I’m not sure how, but it was clear to me that Germany was seen as a collaborator in the movement in some subtle way. This belief is what’s keeping the current regime afloat. The average Turk despises the Committee, yet they have some strange, twisted hope from Germany. It’s not that Enver and the others are shouldering the unpopular Germans; it’s more like the Germans are propping up the unpopular Committee. And Germany’s stake in this is simply that it has some involvement in the arrival of a new savior.”

“They talk about the thing quite openly. It is called the Kaába-i-hurriyeh, the Palladium of Liberty. The prophet himself is known as Zimrud—‘the Emerald’—and his four ministers are called also after jewels—Sapphire, Ruby, Pearl, and Topaz. You will hear their names as often in the talk of the towns and villages as you will hear the names of generals in England. But no one knew where Zimrud was or when he would reveal himself, though every week came his messages to the faithful. All that I could learn was that he and his followers were coming from the West.

“They talk about the thing quite openly. It’s called the Kaába-i-hurriyeh, the Palladium of Liberty. The prophet himself is known as Zimrud—‘the Emerald’—and his four ministers are named after jewels—Sapphire, Ruby, Pearl, and Topaz. You'll hear their names in the conversations of towns and villages just as often as you’d hear the names of generals in England. But no one knew where Zimrud was or when he would reveal himself, though every week came his messages to the faithful. All I could find out was that he and his followers were coming from the West.

“You will say, what about Kasredin? That puzzled me dreadfully, for no one used the phrase. The Home of the Spirit! It is an obvious cliche, just as in England some new sect might call itself the Church of Christ. Only no one seemed to use it.

“You will say, what about Kasredin? That confused me a lot, because no one used the phrase. The Home of the Spirit! It's a clear cliche, just like how in England some new group might name itself the Church of Christ. But no one seemed to use it.

“But by and by I discovered that there was an inner and an outer circle in this mystery. Every creed has an esoteric side which is kept from the common herd. I struck this side in Constantinople. Now there is a very famous Turkish shaka called Kasredin, one of those old half-comic miracle plays with an allegorical meaning which they call orta oyun, and which take a week to read. That tale tells of the coming of a prophet, and I found that the select of the faith spoke of the new revelation in terms of it. The curious thing is that in that tale the prophet is aided by one of the few women who play much part in the hagiology of Islam. That is the point of the tale, and it is partly a jest, but mainly a religious mystery. The prophet, too, is not called Emerald.”

“But eventually, I realized that there was an inner and an outer circle to this mystery. Every belief system has a hidden side that’s kept from the general public. I encountered this side in Constantinople. There’s a well-known Turkish shaka called Kasredin, one of those old, half-comic miracle plays with an allegorical meaning, which they call orta oyun, and that takes a week to read. The story is about the arrival of a prophet, and I found that the elite of the faith talked about the new revelation in relation to it. What's interesting is that in the story, the prophet is supported by one of the few women who have a significant role in Islamic hagiography. That’s the main point of the tale; it’s partly a joke, but mostly a religious mystery. Also, the prophet isn't named Emerald.”

“I know,” I said; “he is called Greenmantle.”

“I know,” I said. “His name is Greenmantle.”

Sandy scrambled to his feet, letting his pipe drop in the fireplace.

Sandy jumped to his feet, letting his pipe fall in the fireplace.

“Now how on earth did you find out that?” he cried.

“Seriously, how did you find that out?” he exclaimed.

Then I told them of Stumm and Gaudian and the whispered words I had not been meant to hear. Blenkiron was giving me the benefit of a steady stare, unusual from one who seemed always to have his eyes abstracted, and Sandy had taken to ranging up and down the room.

Then I told them about Stumm and Gaudian and the secret words I wasn't supposed to hear. Blenkiron was looking at me with a focused gaze, which was unusual for someone who always seemed lost in thought, and Sandy was pacing up and down the room.

“Germany’s in the heart of the plan. That is what I always thought. If we’re to find the Kaába-i-hurriyeh it is no good fossicking among the Committee or in the Turkish provinces. The secret’s in Germany. Dick, you should not have crossed the Danube.”

“Germany's at the center of the plan. That’s what I've always believed. If we want to find the Kaába-i-hurriyeh, it won't help to search through the Committee or in the Turkish provinces. The secret lies in Germany. Dick, you shouldn’t have crossed the Danube.”

“That’s what I half feared,” I said. “But on the other hand it is obvious that the thing must come east, and sooner rather than later. I take it they can’t afford to delay too long before they deliver the goods. If we can stick it out here we must hit the trail ... I’ve got another bit of evidence. I have solved Harry Bullivant’s third puzzle.”

“That’s what I kind of feared,” I said. “But on the flip side, it’s clear that it has to come east, and sooner rather than later. I assume they can’t afford to wait too long before they deliver. If we can hang in here, we need to hit the road ... I’ve got another piece of evidence. I’ve solved Harry Bullivant’s third puzzle.”

Sandy’s eyes were very bright and I had an audience on wires.

Sandy’s eyes were really bright and I had an audience on wires.

“Did you say that in the tale of Kasredin a woman is the ally of the prophet?”

“Did you say that in the story of Kasredin a woman supports the prophet?”

“Yes,” said Sandy; “what of that?”

“Yes,” said Sandy. “What about that?”

“Only that the same thing is true of Greenmantle. I can give you her name.”

“It's the same with Greenmantle. I can tell you her name.”

I fetched a piece of paper and a pencil from Blenkiron’s desk and handed it to Sandy.

I grabbed a piece of paper and a pencil from Blenkiron’s desk and gave it to Sandy.

“Write down Harry Bullivant’s third word.”

“Write down Harry Bullivant’s third word.”

He promptly wrote down “v. I.

He quickly wrote down “v. I.

Then I told them of the other name Stumm and Gaudian had spoken. I told of my discovery as I lay in the woodman’s cottage.

Then I told them about the other name Stumm and Gaudian had mentioned. I shared my discovery while I was lying in the woodman’s cottage.

“The ‘I’ is not the letter of the alphabet, but the numeral. The name is Von Einem—Hilda von Einem.”

“The ‘I’ is not a letter of the alphabet, but a number. The name is Von Einem—Hilda von Einem.”

“Good old Harry,” said Sandy softly. “He was a dashed clever chap. Hilda von Einem? Who and where is she? for if we find her we have done the trick.”

“Good old Harry,” Sandy said softly. “He was a really clever guy. Hilda von Einem? Who is she and where is she? Because if we find her, we’ve got it made.”

Then Blenkiron spoke. “I reckon I can put you wise on that, gentlemen,” he said. “I saw her no later than yesterday. She is a lovely lady. She happens also to be the owner of this house.”

Then Blenkiron spoke. “I think I can fill you in on that, guys,” he said. “I saw her just yesterday. She’s a beautiful woman. She also happens to own this house.”

Both Sandy and I began to laugh. It was too comic to have stumbled across Europe and lighted on the very headquarters of the puzzle we had set out to unriddle.

Both Sandy and I started laughing. It was too funny to have traveled across Europe and ended up right at the heart of the mystery we had set out to solve.

But Blenkiron did not laugh. At the mention of Hilda von Einem he had suddenly become very solemn, and the sight of his face pulled me up short.

But Blenkiron didn’t laugh. When Hilda von Einem was mentioned, he suddenly turned serious, and the look on his face caught me off guard.

“I don’t like it, gentlemen,” he said. “I would rather you had mentioned any other name on God’s earth. I haven’t been long in this city, but I have been long enough to size up the various political bosses. They haven’t much to them. I reckon they wouldn’t stand up against what we could show them in the U-nited States. But I have met the Frau von Einem, and that lady’s a very different proposition. The man that will understand her has got to take a biggish size in hats.”

“I don’t like it, gentlemen,” he said. “I wish you had mentioned any other name in the world. I haven’t been in this city for very long, but I've been here long enough to figure out the different political leaders. They’re not much to worry about. I doubt they could handle what we could show them in the United States. However, I have met Frau von Einem, and she’s a very different challenge. The man who understands her needs to wear a pretty big hat.”

“Who is she?” I asked.

“Who is she?” I asked.

“Why, that is just what I can’t tell you. She was a great excavator of Babylonish and Hittite ruins, and she married a diplomat who went to glory three years back. It isn’t what she has been, but what she is, and that’s a mighty clever woman.”

“Honestly, I can't explain it. She was an amazing archaeologist, digging up Babylonian and Hittite ruins, and she married a diplomat who passed away three years ago. It's not about her past, but who she is today, and she’s a really smart woman.”

Blenkiron’s respect did not depress me. I felt as if at last we had got our job narrowed to a decent compass, for I had hated casting about in the dark. I asked where she lived.

Blenkiron’s respect didn’t bring me down. I felt like we finally got our task focused in a clear direction, because I had disliked searching in the dark. I asked where she lived.

“That I don’t know,” said Blenkiron. “You won’t find people unduly anxious to gratify your natural curiosity about Frau von Einem.”

“That I don’t know,” said Blenkiron. “You won't find anyone too eager to satisfy your natural curiosity about Frau von Einem.”

“I can find that out,” said Sandy. “That’s the advantage of having a push like mine. Meantime, I’ve got to clear, for my day’s work isn’t finished. Dick, you and Peter must go to bed at once.”

“I can figure that out,” said Sandy. “That’s the perk of having a push like mine. In the meantime, I need to leave, because my day’s work isn’t done. Dick, you and Peter need to go to bed right now.”

“Why?” I asked in amazement. Sandy spoke like a medical adviser.

“Why?” I asked, amazed. Sandy spoke like a healthcare advisor.

“Because I want your clothes—the things you’ve got on now. I’ll take them off with me and you’ll never see them again.”

“Because I want your clothes—the ones you’re wearing right now. I’ll take them with me and you’ll never see them again.”

“You’ve a queer taste in souvenirs,” I said.

“You have a strange taste in souvenirs,” I said.

“Say rather the Turkish police. The current in the Bosporus is pretty strong, and these sad relics of two misguided Dutchmen will be washed up tomorrow about Seraglio Point. In this game you must drop the curtain neat and pat at the end of each Scene, if you don’t want trouble later with the missing heir and the family lawyer.”

“Say rather the Turkish police. The current in the Bosporus is pretty strong, and these sad remnants of two misguided Dutchmen will be washed up tomorrow near Seraglio Point. In this game, you have to close the curtain smoothly at the end of each scene if you don’t want to deal with trouble later from the missing heir and the family lawyer.”

CHAPTER XIII.
I Move in Good Society

I walked out of that house next morning with Blenkiron’s arm in mine, a different being from the friendless creature who had looked vainly the day before for sanctuary. To begin with, I was splendidly dressed. I had a navy-blue suit with square padded shoulders, a neat black bow-tie, shoes with a hump at the toe, and a brown bowler. Over that I wore a greatcoat lined with wolf fur. I had a smart malacca cane, and one of Blenkiron’s cigars in my mouth. Peter had been made to trim his beard, and, dressed in unassuming pepper-and-salt, looked with his docile eyes and quiet voice a very respectable servant. Old Blenkiron had done the job in style, for, if you’ll believe it, he had brought the clothes all the way from London. I realized now why he and Sandy had been fossicking in my wardrobe. Peter’s suit had been of Sandy’s procuring, and it was not the fit of mine. I had no difficulty about the accent. Any man brought up in the colonies can get his tongue round American, and I flattered myself I made a very fair shape at the lingo of the Middle West.

I walked out of that house the next morning with Blenkiron’s arm around mine, a completely different person from the lonely individual who had searched in vain the day before for refuge. To start with, I was dressed to impress. I had a navy-blue suit with square padded shoulders, a neat black bow tie, shoes with a pointed toe, and a brown bowler hat. Over that, I wore a great coat lined with wolf fur. I carried a stylish malacca cane and had one of Blenkiron’s cigars in my mouth. Peter had trimmed his beard, and dressed in a simple pepper-and-salt outfit, he looked like a very respectable servant with his docile eyes and quiet voice. Old Blenkiron had really nailed it, because believe it or not, he had brought the clothes all the way from London. I now understood why he and Sandy had been rummaging through my wardrobe. Peter's suit had been provided by Sandy, and it didn't fit me. I had no trouble with the accent. Any guy raised in the colonies can pick up American, and I was confident I spoke a pretty decent version of Midwestern slang.

The wind had gone to the south and the snow was melting fast. There was a blue sky above Asia, and away to the north masses of white cloud drifting over the Black Sea. What had seemed the day before the dingiest of cities now took on a strange beauty, the beauty of unexpected horizons and tongues of grey water winding below cypress-studded shores. A man’s temper has a lot to do with his appreciation of scenery. I felt a free man once more, and could use my eyes.

The wind had shifted to the south, and the snow was melting quickly. There was a blue sky above Asia, and to the north, large white clouds were drifting over the Black Sea. What had seemed like the dreariest city just a day before now appeared strangely beautiful, with unexpected horizons and ribbons of gray water winding beneath shores dotted with cypress trees. A person’s mood greatly affects how they see the scenery. I felt free again and could finally see clearly.

That street was a jumble of every nationality on earth. There were Turkish regulars in their queer conical khaki helmets, and wild-looking levies who had no kin with Europe. There were squads of Germans in flat forage-caps, staring vacantly at novel sights, and quick to salute any officer on the side-walk. Turks in closed carriages passed, and Turks on good Arab horses, and Turks who looked as if they had come out of the Ark. But it was the rabble that caught the eye—very wild, pinched, miserable rabble. I never in my life saw such swarms of beggars, and you walked down that street to the accompaniment of entreaties for alms in all the tongues of the Tower of Babel. Blenkiron and I behaved as if we were interested tourists. We would stop and laugh at one fellow and give a penny to a second, passing comments in high-pitched Western voices.

That street was a mix of every nationality on Earth. There were Turkish regulars wearing their strange conical khaki helmets, and wild-looking recruits who had no ties to Europe. Groups of Germans in flat forage caps stared blankly at the new sights and were quick to salute any officer on the sidewalk. Turks in closed carriages passed by, along with Turks on fine Arab horses, and some who looked like they had just stepped out of the Ark. But it was the crowd that really grabbed your attention—very wild, thin, miserable people. I had never seen so many beggars in my life, and as you walked down that street, you were surrounded by pleas for help in every language imaginable. Blenkiron and I acted like interested tourists. We would stop and laugh at one guy and give a penny to another, making comments in high-pitched Western voices.

We went into a cafe and had a cup of coffee. A beggar came in and asked alms. Hitherto Blenkiron’s purse had been closed, but now he took out some small nickels and planked five down on the table. The man cried down blessings and picked up three. Blenkiron very swiftly swept the other two into his pocket.

We walked into a cafe and had a cup of coffee. A beggar came in and asked for help. Until that moment, Blenkiron had kept his wallet closed, but now he pulled out some small change and placed five coins on the table. The man exclaimed his thanks and picked up three. Blenkiron quickly slid the other two into his pocket.

That seemed to me queer, and I remarked that I had never before seen a beggar who gave change. Blenkiron said nothing, and presently we moved on and came to the harbour-side.

That seemed strange to me, and I noted that I had never before seen a beggar who gave change. Blenkiron didn't say anything, and soon we moved on and reached the harbor side.

There were a number of small tugs moored alongside, and one or two bigger craft—fruit boats, I judged, which used to ply in the Aegean. They looked pretty well moth-eaten from disuse. We stopped at one of them and watched a fellow in a blue nightcap splicing ropes. He raised his eyes once and looked at us, and then kept on with his business.

There were several small tugboats tied up alongside, and a couple of bigger vessels—fruit boats, I guessed, that used to operate in the Aegean. They looked pretty worn out from being unused. We paused at one of them and observed a guy in a blue nightcap tying ropes. He glanced at us once and then continued with his work.

Blenkiron asked him where he came from, but he shook his head, not understanding the tongue. A Turkish policeman came up and stared at us suspiciously, till Blenkiron opened his coat, as if by accident, and displayed a tiny square of ribbon, at which he saluted. Failing to make conversation with the sailor, Blenkiron flung him three of his black cigars.

Blenkiron asked him where he was from, but he shook his head, not understanding the language. A Turkish policeman approached and stared at us suspiciously until Blenkiron accidentally opened his coat, revealing a small square of ribbon, which he saluted. Unable to chat with the sailor, Blenkiron tossed him three of his black cigars.

“I guess you can smoke, friend, if you can’t talk,” he said.

“I guess you can smoke, buddy, if you can’t talk,” he said.

The man grinned and caught the three neatly in the air. Then to my amazement he tossed one of them back.

The man smiled and caught all three perfectly in the air. Then, to my surprise, he threw one of them back.

The donor regarded it quizzically as it lay on the pavement. “That boy’s a connoisseur of tobacco,” he said. As we moved away I saw the Turkish policeman pick it up and put it inside his cap.

The donor looked at it curiously as it lay on the pavement. “That boy knows his tobacco,” he said. As we walked away, I saw the Turkish policeman pick it up and tuck it into his cap.

We returned by the long street on the crest of the hill. There was a man selling oranges on a tray, and Blenkiron stopped to look at them. I noticed that the man shuffled fifteen into a cluster. Blenkiron felt the oranges, as if to see that they were sound, and pushed two aside. The man instantly restored them to the group, never raising his eyes.

We walked back down the long street along the top of the hill. There was a guy selling oranges on a tray, and Blenkiron paused to check them out. I saw that the guy grouped fifteen together. Blenkiron felt the oranges, as if to make sure they were good, and set two aside. The guy immediately put them back with the others, without even looking up.

“This ain’t the time of year to buy fruit,” said Blenkiron as we passed on. “Those oranges are rotten as medlars.”

“This isn’t the time of year to buy fruit,” said Blenkiron as we moved on. “Those oranges are as rotten as medlars.”

We were almost on our own doorstep before I guessed the meaning of the business.

We were almost at our front door before I figured out what was going on.

“Is your morning’s work finished?” I said.

"Is your work from this morning done?" I asked.

“Our morning’s walk?” he asked innocently.

“Is it time for our morning walk?” he asked innocently.

“I said ‘work’.”

"I said 'work'."

He smiled blandly. “I reckoned you’d tumble to it. Why, yes, except that I’ve some figuring still to do. Give me half an hour and I’ll be at your service, Major.”

He smiled casually. “I figured you’d catch on. Yeah, sure, just that I’ve some calculations to finish. Give me half an hour and I’ll be ready to help you, Major.”

That afternoon, after Peter had cooked a wonderfully good luncheon, I had a heart-to-heart talk with Blenkiron.

That afternoon, after Peter made a really delicious lunch, I had a heart-to-heart talk with Blenkiron.

“My business is to get noos,” he said; “and before I start on a stunt I make considerable preparations. All the time in London when I was yelping at the British Government, I was busy with Sir Walter arranging things ahead. We used to meet in queer places and at all hours of the night. I fixed up a lot of connections in this city before I arrived, and especially a noos service with your Foreign Office by way of Rumania and Russia. In a day or two I guess our friends will know all about our discoveries.”

“My job is to get information,” he said, “and before I begin any project, I make a lot of preparations. During my time in London, while I was making noise at the British Government, I was busy with Sir Walter planning things out. We used to meet in unusual places at all hours of the night. I set up a lot of connections in this city before I got here, especially an information service with your Foreign Office through Romania and Russia. In a day or two, I think our friends will know all about what we've discovered.”

At that I opened my eyes very wide.

At that, I opened my eyes really wide.

“Why, yes. You Britishers haven’t any notion how wide-awake your Intelligence Service is. I reckon it’s easy the best of all the belligerents. You never talked about it in peace time, and you shunned the theatrical ways of the Teuton. But you had the wires laid good and sure. I calculate there isn’t much that happens in any corner of the earth that you don’t know within twenty-four hours. I don’t say your highbrows use the noos well. I don’t take much stock in your political push. They’re a lot of silver-tongues, no doubt, but it ain’t oratory that is wanted in this racket. The William Jennings Bryan stunt languishes in war-time. Politics is like a chicken-coop, and those inside get to behave as if their little run were all the world. But if the politicians make mistakes it isn’t from lack of good instruction to guide their steps. If I had a big proposition to handle and could have my pick of helpers I’d plump for the Intelligence Department of the British Admiralty. Yes, Sir, I take off my hat to your Government sleuths.”

“Absolutely. You Brits have no idea how alert your Intelligence Service is. I’d say it’s by far the best of all the countries involved. You never mentioned it during peacetime, and you avoided the flashy methods of the Germans. But you had all the connections set up solidly. I bet there’s hardly anything that happens anywhere on the planet that you don’t learn about within twenty-four hours. I’m not saying your experts use the information well. I don’t have much faith in your political influence. They’re smooth talkers, that’s for sure, but this situation doesn’t call for speeches. The William Jennings Bryan approach doesn't work during wartime. Politics is like a chicken coop, and those on the inside act like their little space is the entire world. But if politicians make mistakes, it’s not for lack of good guidance. If I had a big project to manage and could choose my team, I’d definitely choose the Intelligence Department of the British Admiralty. Yes, Sir, I tip my hat to your government’s sleuths.”

“Did they provide you with ready-made spies here?” I asked in astonishment.

“Did they give you ready-made spies here?” I asked in surprise.

“Why, no,” he said. “But they gave me the key, and I could make my own arrangements. In Germany I buried myself deep in the local atmosphere and never peeped out. That was my game, for I was looking for something in Germany itself, and didn’t want any foreign cross-bearings. As you know, I failed where you succeeded. But so soon as I crossed the Danube I set about opening up my lines of communication, and I hadn’t been two days in this metropolis before I had got my telephone exchange buzzing. Sometime I’ll explain the thing to you, for it’s a pretty little business. I’ve got the cutest cypher ... No, it ain’t my invention. It’s your Government’s. Any one, babe, imbecile, or dotard, can carry my messages—you saw some of them today—but it takes some mind to set the piece, and it takes a lot of figuring at my end to work out the results. Some day you shall hear it all, for I guess it would please you.”

“Why, no,” he said. “But they gave me the key, and I could make my own arrangements. In Germany, I immersed myself in the local culture and didn’t peek out. That was my strategy because I was searching for something in Germany itself and didn’t want any foreign influences. As you know, I failed where you succeeded. But as soon as I crossed the Danube, I started opening my lines of communication, and I hadn’t been in this city for two days before my telephone exchange was buzzing. I’ll explain it to you sometime because it’s a neat little operation. I’ve got the coolest cipher... No, it’s not my invention. It’s your government’s. Anyone—babe, fool, or old-timer—can carry my messages—you saw some of them today—but it takes cleverness to set it up, and it requires a lot of figuring on my end to work out the results. One day you’ll hear all about it because I think it would make you happy.”

“How do you use it?” I asked.

“How do you use this?” I asked.

“Well, I get early noos of what is going on in this cabbage-patch. Likewise I get authentic noos of the rest of Europe, and I can send a message to Mr X. in Petrograd and Mr Y. in London, or, if I wish, to Mr Z. in Noo York. What’s the matter with that for a post-office? I’m the best informed man in Constantinople, for old General Liman only hears one side, and mostly lies at that, and Enver prefers not to listen at all. Also, I could give them points on what is happening at their very door, for our friend Sandy is a big boss in the best-run crowd of mountebanks that ever fiddled secrets out of men’s hearts. Without their help I wouldn’t have cut much ice in this city.”

“Well, I get early news of what's going on in this cabbage patch. I also get reliable news from the rest of Europe, and I can send a message to Mr. X in Petrograd and Mr. Y in London, or, if I want, to Mr. Z in New York. How's that for a post office? I'm the best-informed person in Constantinople, since old General Liman only hears one side, and mostly it’s lies anyway, while Enver prefers not to listen at all. Plus, I could give them insights on what's happening right at their doorstep, because our friend Sandy is a big shot in the best-run group of con artists that ever pried secrets out of people's hearts. Without their help, I wouldn't have made much of an impact in this city.”

“I want you to tell me one thing, Blenkiron,” I said. “I’ve been playing a part for the past month, and it wears my nerves to tatters. Is this job very tiring, for if it is, I doubt I may buckle up.”

“I want you to tell me one thing, Blenkiron,” I said. “I’ve been pretending for the past month, and it’s wearing me out. Is this job really exhausting? Because if it is, I don’t think I can handle it.”

He looked thoughtful. “I can’t call our business an absolute rest-cure any time. You’ve got to keep your eyes skinned, and there’s always the risk of the little packet of dynamite going off unexpected. But as these things go, I rate this stunt as easy. We’ve only got to be natural. We wear our natural clothes, and talk English, and sport a Teddy Roosevelt smile, and there isn’t any call for theatrical talent. Where I’ve found the job tight was when I had got to be natural, and my naturalness was the same brand as that of everybody round about, and all the time I had to do unnatural things. It isn’t easy to be going down town to business and taking cocktails with Mr Carl Rosenheim, and next hour being engaged trying to blow Mr Rosenheim’s friends sky-high. And it isn’t easy to keep up a part which is clean outside your ordinary life. I’ve never tried that. My line has always been to keep my normal personality. But you have, Major, and I guess you found it wearing.”

He looked thoughtful. “I can’t call our business a complete break from stress at any time. You have to stay alert, and there’s always the chance that little packet of dynamite could go off unexpectedly. But considering everything, I think this job is pretty straightforward. We just have to be ourselves. We wear our usual clothes, speak English, and throw on a Teddy Roosevelt smile; there’s no need for any acting skills. The tough part for me was when I had to be natural, but my natural self was just like everyone else's around me, and I still had to do unnatural things. It’s not easy to head downtown for business and have cocktails with Mr. Carl Rosenheim, and then an hour later, try to blow Mr. Rosenheim’s friends to pieces. And it’s tough to keep up a role that’s completely different from your everyday life. I’ve never done that. I’ve always stuck to being my true self. But you have, Major, and I guess you found it exhausting.”

“Wearing’s a mild word,” I said. “But I want to know another thing. It seems to me that the line you’ve picked is as good as could be. But it’s a cast-iron line. It commits us pretty deep and it won’t be a simple job to drop it.”

“Wearing’s a mild word,” I said. “But I want to know another thing. It seems to me that the line you’ve chosen is as good as it gets. But it’s a tough line. It locks us in pretty deep and it won’t be easy to let it go.”

“Why, that’s just the point I was coming to,” he said. “I was going to put you wise about that very thing. When I started out I figured on some situation like this. I argued that unless I had a very clear part with a big bluff in it I wouldn’t get the confidences which I needed. We’ve got to be at the heart of the show, taking a real hand and not just looking on. So I settled I would be a big engineer—there was a time when there weren’t many bigger in the United States than John S. Blenkiron. I talked large about what might be done in Mesopotamia in the way of washing the British down the river. Well, that talk caught on. They knew of my reputation as an hydraulic expert, and they were tickled to death to rope me in. I told them I wanted a helper, and I told them about my friend Richard Hanau, as good a German as ever supped sauerkraut, who was coming through Russia and Rumania as a benevolent neutral; but when he got to Constantinople would drop his neutrality and double his benevolence. They got reports on you by wire from the States—I arranged that before I left London. So you’re going to be welcomed and taken to their bosoms just like John S. was. We’ve both got jobs we can hold down, and now you’re in these pretty clothes you’re the dead ringer of the brightest kind of American engineer ... But we can’t go back on our tracks. If we wanted to leave for Constanza next week they’d be very polite, but they’d never let us. We’ve got to go on with this adventure and nose our way down into Mesopotamia, hoping that our luck will hold ... God knows how we will get out of it; but it’s no good going out to meet trouble. As I observed before, I believe in an all-wise and beneficent Providence, but you’ve got to give him a chance.”

“That's exactly the point I was getting to,” he said. “I was going to fill you in on that very thing. When I started out, I figured on some situation like this. I argued that unless I had a clear role with a big bluff in it, I wouldn’t get the trust I needed. We’ve got to be in the thick of things, taking real action and not just watching from the sidelines. So I decided I would be a leading engineer—there was a time when not many were bigger in the United States than John S. Blenkiron. I talked boldly about what could be done in Mesopotamia in terms of washing the British down the river. Well, that talk resonated. They knew about my reputation as a hydraulic expert, and they were thrilled to bring me on board. I told them I wanted a helper and mentioned my friend Richard Hanau, as good a German as ever ate sauerkraut, who was coming through Russia and Romania as a benevolent neutral; but once he got to Constantinople, he would drop his neutrality and double his benevolence. They got reports about you by wire from the States—I arranged that before I left London. So you’re going to be welcomed and embraced just like John S. was. We’ve both got jobs we can handle, and now that you’re in these nice clothes, you look just like the brightest kind of American engineer... But we can’t go back on our tracks. If we wanted to leave for Constanza next week, they’d be very polite, but they wouldn’t let us. We’ve got to continue with this adventure and work our way down into Mesopotamia, hoping that our luck holds... God knows how we will get out of it, but it’s no use going out to meet trouble. As I mentioned before, I believe in an all-wise and benevolent Providence, but you’ve got to give him a chance.”

I am bound to confess the prospect staggered me. We might be let in for fighting—and worse than fighting—against our own side. I wondered if it wouldn’t be better to make a bolt for it, and said so.

I have to admit, the thought shook me. We might end up fighting—and worse—against our own team. I thought maybe it would be better to just run away, and I said so.

He shook his head. “I reckon not. In the first place we haven’t finished our inquiries. We’ve got Greenmantle located right enough, thanks to you, but we still know mighty little about that holy man. In the second place it won’t be as bad as you think. This show lacks cohesion, Sir. It is not going to last for ever. I calculate that before you and I strike the site of the garden that Adam and Eve frequented there will be a queer turn of affairs. Anyhow, it’s good enough to gamble on.”

He shook his head. “I don’t think so. First of all, we haven’t finished our inquiries. We’ve got Greenmantle located, thanks to you, but we still don’t know much about that holy man. Secondly, it won’t be as bad as you think. This situation lacks cohesion, Sir. It’s not going to last forever. I estimate that before you and I reach the garden that Adam and Eve visited, there will be a strange turn of events. Anyway, it’s good enough to take a chance on.”

Then he got some sheets of paper and drew me a plan of the dispositions of the Turkish forces. I had no notion he was such a close student of war, for his exposition was as good as a staff lecture. He made out that the situation was none too bright anywhere. The troops released from Gallipoli wanted a lot of refitment, and would be slow in reaching the Transcaucasian frontier, where the Russians were threatening. The Army of Syria was pretty nearly a rabble under the lunatic Djemal. There wasn’t the foggiest chance of a serious invasion of Egypt being undertaken. Only in Mesopotamia did things look fairly cheerful, owing to the blunders of British strategy. “And you may take it from me,” he said, “that if the old Turk mobilized a total of a million men, he has lost 40 per cent of them already. And if I’m anything of a prophet he’s going pretty soon to lose more.”

Then he grabbed some sheets of paper and sketched out a plan showing the positions of the Turkish forces. I had no idea he was such a keen student of military tactics, as his explanation was as clear as a staff briefing. He pointed out that the situation wasn't looking great anywhere. The troops pulled from Gallipoli needed a lot of repairs and would be slow to reach the Transcaucasian border, where the Russians were making threats. The Army of Syria was basically a disorganized mess under the crazy Djemal. There was absolutely no chance of a serious invasion of Egypt happening. Only in Mesopotamia did things look somewhat promising, thanks to the mistakes in British strategy. "And trust me on this," he said, "if the old Turk mobilized a million men, he’s already lost 40 percent of them. And if I'm any kind of prophet, he's about to lose even more."

He tore up the papers and enlarged on politics. “I reckon I’ve got the measure of the Young Turks and their precious Committee. Those boys aren’t any good. Enver’s bright enough, and for sure he’s got sand. He’ll stick out a fight like a Vermont game-chicken, but he lacks the larger vision, Sir. He doesn’t understand the intricacies of the job no more than a sucking-child, so the Germans play with him, till his temper goes and he bucks like a mule. Talaat is a sulky dog who wants to batter mankind with a club. Both these boys would have made good cow-punchers in the old days, and they might have got a living out West as the gun-men of a Labour Union. They’re about the class of Jesse James or Billy the Kid, excepting that they’re college-reared and can patter languages. But they haven’t the organizing power to manage the Irish vote in a ward election. Their one notion is to get busy with their firearms, and people are getting tired of the Black Hand stunt. Their hold on the country is just the hold that a man with a Browning has over a crowd with walking-sticks. The cooler heads in the Committee are growing shy of them, and an old fox like David is lying low till his time comes. Now it doesn’t want arguing that a gang of that kind has got to hang close together or they may hang separately. They’ve got no grip on the ordinary Turk, barring the fact that they are active and he is sleepy, and that they’ve got their guns loaded.”

He ripped up the papers and went on about politics. “I think I’ve figured out the Young Turks and their precious Committee. Those guys aren’t any good. Enver is smart and definitely has guts. He’ll fight hard like a Vermont game chicken, but he doesn’t have the bigger picture, Sir. He doesn’t get the complexities of the job any more than a baby does, so the Germans manipulate him until his temper flares and he kicks like a mule. Talaat is a grumpy guy who wants to hit humanity with a club. Both of these guys would have made good cowhands back in the day, and they might have made a living out West as enforcers for a labor union. They’re about the same caliber as Jesse James or Billy the Kid, except they’ve been to college and can speak multiple languages. But they lack the organizing skills to manage the Irish vote in a local election. Their only idea is to get busy with their guns, and people are getting tired of the Black Hand tactics. Their control over the country is just like that of a guy with a Browning over a crowd with walking sticks. The more sensible members of the Committee are starting to distance themselves from them, and a clever old fox like David is keeping a low profile until his moment comes. It’s clear that a gang like that has to stick together or they might end up hanging individually. They have no grasp on the average Turk, other than the fact that they’re active and he’s lethargic, and that they have their guns cocked.”

“What about the Germans here?” I asked.

“What about the Germans here?” I asked.

Blenkiron laughed. “It is no sort of a happy family. But the Young Turks know that without the German boost they’ll be strung up like Haman, and the Germans can’t afford to neglect an ally. Consider what would happen if Turkey got sick of the game and made a separate peace. The road would be open for Russia to the Aegean. Ferdy of Bulgaria would take his depreciated goods to the other market, and not waste a day thinking about it. You’d have Rumania coming in on the Allies’ side. Things would look pretty black for that control of the Near East on which Germany has banked her winnings. Kaiser says that’s got to be prevented at all costs, but how is it going to be done?”

Blenkiron laughed. “It’s not a happy family at all. But the Young Turks understand that without Germany's support, they’ll be hanged like Haman, and the Germans can’t afford to ignore an ally. Just think about what would happen if Turkey got tired of this situation and made a separate peace. It would open the way for Russia to the Aegean. Ferdy from Bulgaria would take his devalued goods to another market and wouldn’t think twice about it. You’d see Rumania joining the Allies. Things would look pretty grim for Germany’s control of the Near East, which is where they’ve staked their bets. The Kaiser says that needs to be avoided at all costs, but how is that going to happen?”

Blenkiron’s face had become very solemn again. “It won’t be done unless Germany’s got a trump card to play. Her game’s mighty near bust, but it’s still got a chance. And that chance is a woman and an old man. I reckon our landlady has a bigger brain than Enver and Liman. She’s the real boss of the show. When I came here, I reported to her, and presently you’ve got to do the same. I am curious as to how she’ll strike you, for I’m free to admit that she impressed me considerable.”

Blenkiron’s expression turned serious again. “Nothing will happen unless Germany has a secret weapon. Their situation is almost desperate, but there’s still a possibility. That possibility relies on a woman and an old man. I think our landlady is smarter than Enver and Liman combined. She’s the real one in charge. When I arrived here, I reported to her, and soon you'll need to do the same. I'm interested to see how she’ll affect you because I have to say, she made quite an impression on me.”

“It looks as if our job were a long way from the end,” I said.

“It seems like our work is far from finished,” I said.

“It’s scarcely begun,” said Blenkiron.

“It’s barely started,” said Blenkiron.

That talk did a lot to cheer my spirits, for I realized that it was the biggest of big game we were hunting this time. I’m an economical soul, and if I’m going to be hanged I want a good stake for my neck.

That conversation really lifted my spirits because I realized we were after the biggest prize this time. I'm a practical person, and if I'm going to face the hangman, I want it to be worth my while.

Then began some varied experiences. I used to wake up in the morning, wondering where I should be at night, and yet quite pleased at the uncertainty. Greenmantle became a sort of myth with me. Somehow I couldn’t fix any idea in my head of what he was like. The nearest I got was a picture of an old man in a turban coming out of a bottle in a cloud of smoke, which I remembered from a child’s edition of the Arabian Nights. But if he was dim, the lady was dimmer. Sometimes I thought of her as a fat old German crone, sometimes as a harsh-featured woman like a schoolmistress with thin lips and eyeglasses. But I had to fit the East into the picture, so I made her young and gave her a touch of the languid houri in a veil. I was always wanting to pump Blenkiron on the subject, but he shut up like a rat-trap. He was looking for bad trouble in that direction, and was disinclined to speak about it beforehand.

Then the varied experiences began. I would wake up in the morning, wondering where I should be at night, yet feeling quite good about the uncertainty. Greenmantle turned into a kind of myth for me. I just couldn’t get a clear image of what he was like. The closest I came was imagining an old man in a turban emerging from a bottle in a cloud of smoke, which I remembered from a children's version of the Arabian Nights. But if he was vague, the lady was even more so. Sometimes I pictured her as a plump old German hag, other times as a stern-looking woman like a schoolteacher with thin lips and eyeglasses. But I had to make the East fit into the picture, so I imagined her as young, giving her a hint of the languid houri in a veil. I always wanted to ask Blenkiron about it, but he clammed up like a rat-trap. He was wary of trouble in that direction and wasn’t keen on discussing it beforehand.

We led a peaceful existence. Our servants were two of Sandy’s lot, for Blenkiron had very rightly cleared out the Turkish caretakers, and they worked like beavers under Peter’s eye, till I reflected I had never been so well looked after in my life. I walked about the city with Blenkiron, keeping my eyes open, and speaking very civil. The third night we were bidden to dinner at Moellendorff’s, so we put on our best clothes and set out in an ancient cab. Blenkiron had fetched a dress suit of mine, from which my own tailor’s label had been cut and a New York one substituted.

We lived a pretty chill life. Our helpers were two of Sandy’s crew, as Blenkiron had wisely sent away the Turkish caretakers, and they worked tirelessly under Peter’s watchful eye. I realized I had never been taken care of so well in my life. I roamed around the city with Blenkiron, staying alert and friendly. On the third night, we were invited to dinner at Moellendorff’s, so we put on our nicest clothes and headed out in an old cab. Blenkiron brought over a tuxedo of mine, from which my tailor’s label had been removed and replaced with a New York one.

General Liman and Metternich the Ambassador had gone up the line to Nish to meet the Kaiser, who was touring in those parts, so Moellendorff was the biggest German in the city. He was a thin, foxy-faced fellow, cleverish but monstrously vain, and he was not very popular either with the Germans or the Turks. He was polite to both of us, but I am bound to say that I got a bad fright when I entered the room, for the first man I saw was Gaudian. I doubt if he would have recognized me even in the clothes I had worn in Stumm’s company, for his eyesight was wretched. As it was, I ran no risk in dress-clothes, with my hair brushed back and a fine American accent. I paid him high compliments as a fellow engineer, and translated part of a very technical conversation between him and Blenkiron. Gaudian was in uniform, and I liked the look of his honest face better than ever.

General Liman and Ambassador Metternich had gone to Nish to meet the Kaiser, who was touring the area, so Moellendorff was the highest-ranking German in the city. He was a thin guy with a sly face, somewhat clever but extremely vain, and he wasn’t very popular with either the Germans or the Turks. He was polite to both of us, but I have to admit I got quite a shock when I walked into the room because the first person I saw was Gaudian. I doubt he would have recognized me even in the clothes I had worn with Stumm’s group, since his eyesight was terrible. Thankfully, there was no risk with my formal wear, hair slicked back, and my strong American accent. I paid him compliments as a fellow engineer and translated some of the technical discussion between him and Blenkiron. Gaudian was in uniform, and I liked the look of his honest face more than ever.

But the great event was the sight of Enver. He was a slim fellow of Rasta’s build, very foppish and precise in his dress, with a smooth oval face like a girl’s, and rather fine straight black eyebrows. He spoke perfect German, and had the best kind of manners, neither pert nor overbearing. He had a pleasant trick, too, of appealing all round the table for confirmation, and so bringing everybody into the talk. Not that he spoke a great deal, but all he said was good sense, and he had a smiling way of saying it. Once or twice he ran counter to Moellendorff, and I could see there was no love lost between these two. I didn’t think I wanted him as a friend—he was too cold-blooded and artificial; and I was pretty certain that I didn’t want those steady black eyes as an enemy. But it was no good denying his quality. The little fellow was all cold courage, like the fine polished blue steel of a sword.

But the big moment was seeing Enver. He was a slim guy, built like Rasta, very stylish and meticulous about his clothes, with a smooth oval face like a girl’s and pretty straight black eyebrows. He spoke perfect German and had excellent manners—neither overly familiar nor arrogant. He had a nice habit of looking around the table for agreement, bringing everyone into the conversation. He didn’t talk much, but everything he said made sense, and he had a cheerful way of saying it. A couple of times, he went against Moellendorff, and I could tell there was some tension between them. I didn’t think I wanted him as a friend—he seemed too cold and artificial; and I was pretty sure I didn’t want those steady black eyes as an enemy. But I couldn’t deny his qualities. The little guy was all cold courage, like a finely polished blue steel sword.

I fancy I was rather a success at that dinner. For one thing I could speak German, and so had a pull on Blenkiron. For another I was in a good temper, and really enjoyed putting my back into my part. They talked very high-flown stuff about what they had done and were going to do, and Enver was great on Gallipoli. I remember he said that he could have destroyed the whole British Army if it hadn’t been for somebody’s cold feet—at which Moellendorff looked daggers. They were so bitter about Britain and all her works that I gathered they were getting pretty panicky, and that made me as jolly as a sandboy. I’m afraid I was not free from bitterness myself on that subject. I said things about my own country that I sometimes wake in the night and sweat to think of.

I think I did pretty well at that dinner. For one, I could speak German, so I had an advantage with Blenkiron. Also, I was in a good mood and really enjoyed contributing. They talked a lot about their accomplishments and future plans, and Enver bragged about Gallipoli. I remember he said he could have wiped out the entire British Army if it hadn’t been for someone getting cold feet—at which point Moellendorff shot him a glare. They were so bitter about Britain and everything she did that I got the sense they were pretty anxious, which made me feel quite cheerful. I’m afraid I wasn’t completely free from bitterness myself regarding that topic. I said things about my own country that sometimes wake me up at night in a cold sweat when I think about them.

Gaudian got on to the use of water power in war, and that gave me a chance.

Gaudian started talking about using water power in warfare, and that gave me an opportunity.

“In my country,” I said, “when we want to get rid of a mountain we wash it away. There’s nothing on earth that will stand against water. Now, speaking with all respect, gentlemen, and as an absolute novice in the military art, I sometimes ask why this God-given weapon isn’t more used in the present war. I haven’t been to any of the fronts, but I’ve studied them some from maps and the newspapers. Take your German position in Flanders, where you’ve got the high ground. If I were a British general I reckon I would very soon make it no sort of position.”

“In my country,” I said, “when we want to get rid of a mountain, we wash it away. There’s nothing on earth that can stand against water. Now, with all due respect, gentlemen, and as a complete newcomer to military strategy, I sometimes wonder why this God-given weapon isn’t used more in the current war. I haven’t been to any of the frontlines, but I’ve looked at them a bit through maps and newspapers. Take your German position in Flanders, where you hold the high ground. If I were a British general, I think I would quickly make that position irrelevant.”

Moellendorff asked, “How?”

Moellendorff asked, “How?”

“Why, I’d wash it away. Wash away the fourteen feet of soil down to the stone. There’s a heap of coalpits behind the British front where they could generate power, and I judge there’s ample water supply from the rivers and canals. I’d guarantee to wash you away in twenty-four hours—yes, in spite of all your big guns. It beats me why the British haven’t got on to this notion. They used to have some bright engineers.”

“Why, I’d wash it all away. Wash away the fourteen feet of soil down to the stone. There’s a lot of coal pits behind the British front where they could generate power, and I bet there’s enough water supply from the rivers and canals. I’d guarantee to wash you away in twenty-four hours—yes, even with all your big guns. I don’t understand why the British haven’t figured this out. They used to have some smart engineers.”

Enver was on the point like a knife, far quicker than Gaudian. He cross-examined me in a way that showed he knew how to approach a technical subject, though he mightn’t have much technical knowledge. He was just giving me a sketch of the flooding in Mesopotamia when an aide-de-camp brought in a chit which fetched him to his feet.

Enver was sharp and quick, way quicker than Gaudian. He questioned me in a way that showed he knew how to tackle a technical subject, even if he didn’t have much technical knowledge himself. He was just outlining the flooding in Mesopotamia when an aide-de-camp walked in with a note that got him on his feet.

“I have gossiped long enough,” he said. “My kind host, I must leave you. Gentlemen all, my apologies and farewells.”

“I’ve chatted long enough,” he said. “My gracious host, I need to take my leave. Gentlemen, I apologize and bid you farewell.”

Before he left he asked my name and wrote it down. “This is an unhealthy city for strangers, Mr Hanau,” he said in very good English. “I have some small power of protecting a friend, and what I have is at your disposal.” This with the condescension of a king promising his favour to a subject.

Before he left, he asked for my name and wrote it down. “This is an unsafe city for newcomers, Mr. Hanau,” he said in excellent English. “I have a bit of power to protect a friend, and what I have is yours to use.” This was said with the condescension of a king offering his favor to a subject.

The little fellow amused me tremendously, and rather impressed me too. I said so to Gaudian after he had left, but that decent soul didn’t agree.

The little guy really entertained me, and he actually impressed me too. I mentioned this to Gaudian after he left, but that good man didn't see it the same way.

“I do not love him,” he said. “We are allies—yes; but friends—no. He is no true son of Islam, which is a noble faith and despises liars and boasters and betrayers of their salt.”

“I don’t love him,” he said. “We’re allies—sure; but friends—no. He’s not a true son of Islam, which is a noble faith and looks down on liars, boastful people, and those who betray their own.”

That was the verdict of one honest man on this ruler in Israel. The next night I got another from Blenkiron on a greater than Enver. He had been out alone and had come back pretty late, with his face grey and drawn with pain. The food we ate—not at all bad of its kind—and the cold east wind played havoc with his dyspepsia. I can see him yet, boiling milk on a spirit-lamp, while Peter worked at a Primus stove to get him a hot-water bottle. He was using horrid language about his inside.

That was the opinion of one honest man about this leader in Israel. The next night, I got another update from Blenkiron about someone even more significant than Enver. He had been out alone and returned pretty late, looking pale and strained from pain. The food we ate—not bad for what it was—and the cold east wind really upset his stomach. I can still picture him boiling milk on a spirit lamp while Peter tried to use a Primus stove to make him a hot-water bottle. He was cursing about his stomach.

“My God, Major, if I were you with a sound stomach I’d fairly conquer the world. As it is, I’ve got to do my work with half my mind, while the other half is dwelling in my intestines. I’m like the child in the Bible that had a fox gnawing at its vitals.”

“My God, Major, if I were you and feeling fine, I’d take on the world. But as it is, I have to do my job with half my focus, while the other half is consumed by my stomach issues. I feel like the child in the Bible who had a fox eating at its insides.”

He got his milk boiling and began to sip it.

He heated up his milk and started to sip it.

“I’ve been to see our pretty landlady,” he said. “She sent for me and I hobbled off with a grip full of plans, for she’s mighty set on Mesopotamy.”

“I just went to see our nice landlady,” he said. “She called for me, and I limped over with a bag full of plans because she’s really keen on Mesopotamia.”

“Anything about Greenmantle?” I asked eagerly.

“Is there any news about Greenmantle?” I asked excitedly.

“Why, no, but I have reached one conclusion. I opine that the hapless prophet has no sort of time with that lady. I opine that he will soon wish himself in Paradise. For if Almighty God ever created a female devil it’s Madame von Einem.”

“Why, no, but I've come to one conclusion. I think the poor prophet has no chance with that lady. I believe he will soon wish he were in Paradise. Because if God ever created a female devil, it’s Madame von Einem.”

He sipped a little more milk with a grave face.

He took another sip of milk with a serious expression.

“That isn’t my duodenal dyspepsia, Major. It’s the verdict of a ripe experience, for I have a cool and penetrating judgement, even if I’ve a deranged stomach. And I give it as my considered conclusion that that woman’s mad and bad—but principally bad.”

“That's not my duodenal dyspepsia, Major. It’s the conclusion of a well-earned experience, because I have a clear and sharp judgment, even if my stomach's acting up. And I state as my thoughtful conclusion that that woman is crazy and evil—but mostly evil.”

CHAPTER XIV.
The Lady of the Mantilla

Since that first night I had never clapped eyes on Sandy. He had gone clean out of the world, and Blenkiron and I waited anxiously for a word of news. Our own business was in good trim, for we were presently going east towards Mesopotamia, but unless we learned more about Greenmantle our journey would be a grotesque failure. And learn about Greenmantle we could not, for nobody by word or deed suggested his existence, and it was impossible of course for us to ask questions. Our only hope was Sandy, for what we wanted to know was the prophet’s whereabouts and his plans. I suggested to Blenkiron that we might do more to cultivate Frau von Einem, but he shut his jaw like a rat-trap.

Since that first night, I hadn’t seen Sandy at all. He completely disappeared, and Blenkiron and I were anxiously waiting for any news. Our own situation was good since we were headed east towards Mesopotamia, but unless we found out more about Greenmantle, our journey would be a complete failure. And we couldn’t learn anything about Greenmantle because no one gave any hint of his existence, and of course, we couldn’t ask questions. Our only hope was Sandy, as we needed to know the prophet's location and plans. I suggested to Blenkiron that we might try to get closer to Frau von Einem, but he snapped his jaw shut like a rat trap.

“There’s nothing doing for us in that quarter,” he said. “That’s the most dangerous woman on earth; and if she got any kind of notion that we were wise about her pet schemes I reckon you and I would very soon be in the Bosporus.”

“There’s nothing happening for us in that area,” he said. “That’s the most dangerous woman on earth, and if she even has an inkling that we know about her secret plans, I bet you and I would be in deep trouble fast.”

This was all very well; but what was going to happen if the two of us were bundled off to Baghdad with instructions to wash away the British? Our time was getting pretty short, and I doubted if we could spin out more than three days more in Constantinople. I felt just as I had felt with Stumm that last night when I was about to be packed off to Cairo and saw no way of avoiding it. Even Blenkiron was getting anxious. He played Patience incessantly, and was disinclined to talk. I tried to find out something from the servants, but they either knew nothing or wouldn’t speak—the former, I think. I kept my eyes lifting, too, as I walked about the streets, but there was no sign anywhere of the skin coats or the weird stringed instruments. The whole Company of the Rosy Hours seemed to have melted into the air, and I began to wonder if they had ever existed.

This was all fine; but what was going to happen if the two of us were sent off to Baghdad with orders to get rid of the British? Our time was running out, and I doubted we could stretch out more than three more days in Constantinople. I felt just as I had felt with Stumm that last night before I was supposed to be sent to Cairo, with no way to avoid it. Even Blenkiron was getting anxious. He played solitaire non-stop and wasn’t in the mood to talk. I tried to get some information from the servants, but they either knew nothing or wouldn’t say anything—the former, I think. I kept looking around as I walked through the streets, but there was no sign anywhere of the skin coats or the strange stringed instruments. The whole Company of the Rosy Hours seemed to have vanished into thin air, and I started to question if they had ever really existed.

Anxiety made me restless, and restlessness made me want exercise. It was no good walking about the city. The weather had become foul again, and I was sick of the smells and the squalor and the flea-bitten crowds. So Blenkiron and I got horses, Turkish cavalry mounts with heads like trees, and went out through the suburbs into the open country.

Anxiety made me feel restless, and that restlessness made me want to exercise. Walking around the city wasn’t helping. The weather had turned nasty again, and I was fed up with the smells, the filth, and the flea-ridden crowds. So, Blenkiron and I got some horses, Turkish cavalry mounts with huge heads, and rode out through the suburbs into the countryside.

It was a grey drizzling afternoon, with the beginnings of a sea fog which hid the Asiatic shores of the straits. It wasn’t easy to find open ground for a gallop, for there were endless small patches of cultivation and the gardens of country houses. We kept on the high land above the sea, and when we reached a bit of downland came on squads of Turkish soldiers digging trenches. Whenever we let the horses go we had to pull up sharp for a digging party or a stretch of barbed wire. Coils of the beastly thing were lying loose everywhere, and Blenkiron nearly took a nasty toss over one. Then we were always being stopped by sentries and having to show our passes. Still the ride did us good and shook up our livers, and by the time we turned for home I was feeling more like a white man.

It was a gray, drizzly afternoon, with the start of a sea fog that obscured the Asian shores of the straits. Finding a clear area for a gallop wasn’t easy, as there were countless small patches of farmland and the gardens of country houses. We stayed on the high ground above the sea, and when we hit a stretch of downs, we came across groups of Turkish soldiers digging trenches. Whenever we let the horses run, we had to brake suddenly for a digging crew or a stretch of barbed wire. Coils of that awful stuff were lying around everywhere, and Blenkiron almost took a nasty fall over one. We kept getting stopped by sentries and had to show our passes. Still, the ride was good for us and did shake off the cobwebs, and by the time we headed home, I was feeling more like myself again.

We jogged back in the short winter twilight, past the wooded grounds of white villas, held up every few minutes by transport-wagons and companies of soldiers. The rain had come on in real earnest, and it was two very bedraggled horsemen that crawled along the muddy lanes. As we passed one villa, shut in by a high white wall, a pleasant smell of wood smoke was wafted towards us, which made me sick for the burning veld. My ear, too, caught the twanging of a zither, which somehow reminded me of the afternoon in Kuprasso’s garden-house.

We jogged back in the brief winter twilight, passing the wooded grounds of white villas, getting held up every few minutes by transport wagons and groups of soldiers. The rain had really picked up, and two very soaked horsemen crawled along the muddy paths. As we passed one villa, enclosed by a tall white wall, a nice smell of wood smoke wafted towards us, which made me long for the burning veld. My ear also caught the sound of a zither, which somehow reminded me of the afternoon in Kuprasso’s garden house.

I pulled up and proposed to investigate, but Blenkiron very testily declined.

I arrived and suggested that we look into it, but Blenkiron sharply refused.

“Zithers are as common here as fleas,” he said. “You don’t want to be fossicking around somebody’s stables and find a horse-boy entertaining his friends. They don’t like visitors in this country; and you’ll be asking for trouble if you go inside those walls. I guess it’s some old Buzzard’s harem.” Buzzard was his own private peculiar name for the Turk, for he said he had had as a boy a natural history book with a picture of a bird called the turkey-buzzard, and couldn’t get out of the habit of applying it to the Ottoman people.

“Zithers are as common here as fleas,” he said. “You don’t want to be rummaging around someone’s stables and find a stable boy entertaining his friends. They don’t like visitors in this country, and you’ll be asking for trouble if you go inside those walls. I guess it’s some old Buzzard’s harem.” Buzzard was his own quirky name for the Turk, because he said he had a natural history book as a boy that had a picture of a bird called the turkey-buzzard, and he couldn’t shake off the habit of using it for the Ottoman people.

I wasn’t convinced, so I tried to mark down the place. It seemed to be about three miles out from the city, at the end of a steep lane on the inland side of the hill coming from the Bosporus. I fancied somebody of distinction lived there, for a little farther on we met a big empty motor-car snorting its way up, and I had a notion that the car belonged to the walled villa.

I wasn’t convinced, so I tried to note the location. It seemed to be about three miles outside the city, at the end of a steep lane on the inland side of the hill coming from the Bosporus. I had a feeling that someone important lived there, because a bit further on, we saw a big, empty car making its way up, and I thought that the car belonged to the walled villa.

Next day Blenkiron was in grievous trouble with his dyspepsia. About midday he was compelled to lie down, and having nothing better to do I had out the horses again and took Peter with me. It was funny to see Peter in a Turkish army-saddle, riding with the long Boer stirrup and the slouch of the backveld.

Next day, Blenkiron was in serious trouble with his upset stomach. Around noon, he had to lie down, and with nothing better to do, I got the horses out again and took Peter with me. It was amusing to see Peter in a Turkish army saddle, riding with the long Boer stirrup and the laid-back style of the backveld.

That afternoon was unfortunate from the start. It was not the mist and drizzle of the day before, but a stiff northern gale which blew sheets of rain in our faces and numbed our bridle hands. We took the same road, but pushed west of the trench-digging parties and got to a shallow valley with a white village among the cypresses. Beyond that there was a very respectable road which brought us to the top of a crest that in clear weather must have given a fine prospect. Then we turned our horses, and I shaped our course so as to strike the top of the long lane that abutted on the down. I wanted to investigate the white villa.

That afternoon got off to a bad start. Instead of the mist and drizzle from the day before, a strong northern wind blew sheets of rain in our faces and made our hands numb on the reins. We took the same path, but veered west of the trench-digging crews and reached a shallow valley with a white village nestled among the cypress trees. Beyond that, there was a decent road that led us to the top of a hill that, on a clear day, must have had a great view. Then we turned our horses, and I set our direction to hit the top of the long lane that ended at the hillside. I wanted to check out the white villa.

But we hadn’t gone far on our road back before we got into trouble. It arose out of a sheep-dog, a yellow mongrel brute that came at us like a thunderbolt. It took a special fancy to Peter, and bit savagely at his horse’s heels and sent it capering off the road. I should have warned him, but I did not realize what was happening, till too late. For Peter, being accustomed to mongrels in Kaffir kraals, took a summary way with the pest. Since it despised his whip, he out with his pistol and put a bullet through its head.

But we hadn't gotten far on our way back before we ran into trouble. It started with a sheepdog, a yellow mutt that came at us like a bolt of lightning. It took a liking to Peter and viciously nipped at his horse's heels, sending it off the road in a panic. I should have warned him, but I didn’t realize what was happening until it was too late. Peter, used to dealing with mutts in Kaffir settlements, took decisive action against the nuisance. Since the dog didn't care about his whip, he pulled out his pistol and shot it through the head.

The echoes of the shot had scarcely died away when the row began. A big fellow appeared running towards us, shouting wildly. I guessed he was the dog’s owner, and proposed to pay no attention. But his cries summoned two other fellows—soldiers by the look of them—who closed in on us, unslinging their rifles as they ran. My first idea was to show them our heels, but I had no desire to be shot in the back, and they looked like men who wouldn’t stop short of shooting. So we slowed down and faced them.

The sound of the gunshot had barely faded when the commotion started. A big guy came running toward us, yelling like crazy. I figured he was the dog's owner and decided to ignore him. But his shouts brought over two other guys—soldiers, from the looks of it—who approached us, swinging their rifles as they ran. My first thought was to take off running, but I didn’t want to get shot in the back, and they seemed like the type who would actually pull the trigger. So we slowed down and confronted them.

They made as savage-looking a trio as you would want to avoid. The shepherd looked as if he had been dug up, a dirty ruffian with matted hair and a beard like a bird’s nest. The two soldiers stood staring with sullen faces, fingering their guns, while the other chap raved and stormed and kept pointing at Peter, whose mild eyes stared unwinkingly at his assailant.

They formed a fierce-looking trio that you'd definitely want to steer clear of. The shepherd looked like he had just been dug up, a filthy thug with tangled hair and a beard that resembled a bird’s nest. The two soldiers stood there with gloomy expressions, fiddling with their guns, while the other guy ranted and raved, continuously pointing at Peter, whose gentle eyes stared unblinking at his attacker.

The mischief was that neither of us had a word of Turkish. I tried German, but it had no effect. We sat looking at them and they stood storming at us, and it was fast getting dark. Once I turned my horse round as if to proceed, and the two soldiers jumped in front of me.

The problem was that neither of us spoke a word of Turkish. I tried speaking in German, but it didn’t help. We sat there staring at them while they stood there yelling at us, and it was getting dark quickly. At one point, I turned my horse around as if I was going to leave, and the two soldiers jumped in front of me.

They jabbered among themselves, and then one said very slowly: “He ... want ... pounds,” and he held up five fingers. They evidently saw by the cut of our jib that we weren’t Germans.

They talked among themselves, and then one said very slowly: “He ... want ... pounds,” and he held up five fingers. They clearly noticed from our appearance that we weren’t Germans.

“I’ll be hanged if he gets a penny,” I said angrily, and the conversation languished.

“I'll be damned if he gets a penny,” I said angrily, and the conversation died down.

The situation was getting serious, so I spoke a word to Peter. The soldiers had their rifles loose in their hands, and before they could lift them we had the pair covered with our pistols.

The situation was getting serious, so I said something to Peter. The soldiers had their rifles casually in their hands, and before they could raise them, we had the two of them covered with our pistols.

“If you move,” I said, “you are dead.” They understood that all right and stood stock still, while the shepherd stopped his raving and took to muttering like a gramophone when the record is finished.

“If you move,” I said, “you're dead.” They got that loud and clear and stood completely still, while the shepherd stopped his shouting and started muttering like a record player when the song is over.

“Drop your guns,” I said sharply. “Quick, or we shoot.”

“Drop your guns,” I said sharply. “Hurry, or we’ll shoot.”

The tone, if not the words, conveyed my meaning. Still staring at us, they let the rifles slide to the ground. The next second we had forced our horses on the top of them, and the three were off like rabbits. I sent a shot over their heads to encourage them. Peter dismounted and tossed the guns into a bit of scrub where they would take some finding.

The tone, if not the words, conveyed my meaning. Still staring at us, they let the rifles drop to the ground. The next second we had pushed our horses over them, and the three took off like rabbits. I fired a shot over their heads to motivate them. Peter got off his horse and tossed the guns into some brush where they would be hard to find.

This hold-up had wasted time. By now it was getting very dark, and we hadn’t ridden a mile before it was black night. It was an annoying predicament, for I had completely lost my bearings and at the best I had only a foggy notion of the lie of the land. The best plan seemed to be to try and get to the top of a rise in the hope of seeing the lights of the city, but all the countryside was so pockety that it was hard to strike the right kind of rise.

This delay had wasted time. By now it was getting really dark, and we hadn’t traveled a mile before it was pitch black. It was a frustrating situation because I had completely lost my sense of direction and, at best, I only had a vague idea of the layout of the land. The best plan seemed to be to try to get to the top of a hill in the hopes of seeing the city lights, but the landscape was so uneven that it was hard to find the right spot.

We had to trust to Peter’s instinct. I asked him where our line lay, and he sat very still for a minute sniffing the air. Then he pointed the direction. It wasn’t what I would have taken myself, but on a point like that he was pretty near infallible.

We had to rely on Peter's instincts. I asked him where our path was, and he sat quietly for a minute, sniffing the air. Then he pointed in the direction. It wasn't the route I would have chosen, but when it came to something like that, he was almost always right.

Presently we came to a long slope which cheered me. But at the top there was no light visible anywhere—only a black void like the inside of a shell. As I stared into the gloom it seemed to me that there were patches of deeper darkness that might be woods.

Presently, we arrived at a long slope that lifted my spirits. But at the top, there was no light anywhere—only a dark emptiness like the inside of a shell. As I looked into the darkness, it appeared to me that there were areas of even deeper darkness that could be woods.

“There is a house half-left in front of us,” said Peter.

“There’s a house partially built in front of us,” said Peter.

I peered till my eyes ached and saw nothing.

I strained my eyes until they hurt and saw nothing.

“Well, for heaven’s sake, guide me to it,” I said, and with Peter in front we set off down the hill.

“Well, for heaven’s sake, show me the way,” I said, and with Peter leading the way, we headed down the hill.

It was a wild journey, for darkness clung as close to us as a vest. Twice we stepped into patches of bog, and once my horse saved himself by a hair from going head forward into a gravel pit. We got tangled up in strands of wire, and often found ourselves rubbing our noses against tree trunks. Several times I had to get down and make a gap in barricades of loose stones. But after a ridiculous amount of slipping and stumbling we finally struck what seemed the level of a road, and a piece of special darkness in front which turned out to be a high wall.

It was a wild journey, as darkness clung to us like a vest. Twice we stepped into patches of marsh, and once my horse barely avoided going headfirst into a gravel pit. We got caught up in strands of wire and often found ourselves bumping our noses against tree trunks. Several times, I had to get down and clear paths through piles of loose stones. But after a ridiculous amount of slipping and tripping, we finally found what felt like a level road, and a particular stretch of darkness ahead that turned out to be a high wall.

I argued that all mortal walls had doors, so we set to groping along it, and presently found a gap. There was an old iron gate on broken hinges, which we easily pushed open, and found ourselves on a back path to some house. It was clearly disused, for masses of rotting leaves covered it, and by the feel of it underfoot it was grass-grown.

I argued that every mortal barrier has an entrance, so we started feeling our way along it and soon found an opening. There was an old iron gate on rusted hinges that we easily pushed open, revealing a pathway leading to a house. It was obviously neglected, with piles of decaying leaves covering it, and it felt overgrown with grass beneath our feet.

We dismounted now, leading our horses, and after about fifty yards the path ceased and came out on a well-made carriage drive. So, at least, we guessed, for the place was as black as pitch. Evidently the house couldn’t be far off, but in which direction I hadn’t a notion.

We got off our horses now, leading them, and after about fifty yards the path ended and opened up to a well-paved carriage driveway. At least, that’s what we figured, because the place was as dark as coal. Clearly, the house couldn’t be too far away, but I had no idea which way to go.

Now, I didn’t want to be paying calls on any Turk at that time of day. Our job was to find where the road opened into the lane, for after that our way to Constantinople was clear. One side the lane lay, and the other the house, and it didn’t seem wise to take the risk of tramping up with horses to the front door. So I told Peter to wait for me at the end of the back-road, while I would prospect a bit. I turned to the right, my intention being if I saw the light of a house to return, and with Peter take the other direction.

Now, I didn’t want to be making a social visit to any Turk at that time of day. Our task was to find where the road opened into the lane because after that, our route to Constantinople would be clear. On one side was the lane, and on the other was the house, and it didn’t seem smart to risk riding up to the front door with the horses. So, I told Peter to wait for me at the end of the back road while I went to check things out a bit. I turned to the right, planning that if I saw the light of a house, I would come back and take the other direction with Peter.

I walked like a blind man in that nether-pit of darkness. The road seemed well kept, and the soft wet gravel muffled the sounds of my feet. Great trees overhung it, and several times I wandered into dripping bushes. And then I stopped short in my tracks, for I heard the sound of whistling.

I walked like a blind person in that dark abyss. The road seemed well maintained, and the soft, wet gravel muffled the sound of my footsteps. Large trees towered above me, and several times I brushed against dripping bushes. Suddenly, I halted in my tracks, as I heard the sound of whistling.

It was quite close, about ten yards away. And the strange thing was that it was a tune I knew, about the last tune you would expect to hear in this part of the world. It was the Scots air: “Ca’ the yowes to the knowes,” which was a favourite of my father’s.

It was pretty close, about ten yards away. And the weird part was that it was a tune I recognized, probably the last one you'd expect to hear in this part of the world. It was the Scottish tune: “Ca’ the yowes to the knowes,” which was one of my dad’s favorites.

The whistler must have felt my presence, for the air suddenly stopped in the middle of a bar. An unbounded curiosity seized me to know who the fellow could be. So I started in and finished it myself.

The whistler must have sensed I was there, because the air suddenly paused in the middle of a tune. An overwhelming curiosity took hold of me to find out who this person was. So, I jumped in and finished it myself.

There was silence for a second, and then the unknown began again and stopped. Once more I chipped in and finished it. Then it seemed to me that he was coming nearer. The air in that dank tunnel was very still, and I thought I heard a light foot. I think I took a step backward. Suddenly there was a flash of an electric torch from a yard off, so quick that I could see nothing of the man who held it.

There was a brief silence, and then the unknown resumed and stopped again. I chimed in and completed it. Then it felt like he was getting closer. The air in that damp tunnel was completely still, and I thought I heard a soft footstep. I think I took a step back. Suddenly, a flashlight beam flickered from about a yard away, so fast that I couldn’t see the person holding it.

Then a low voice spoke out of the darkness—a voice I knew well—and, following it, a hand was laid on my arm. “What the devil are you doing here, Dick?” it said, and there was something like consternation in the tone.

Then a low voice came from the darkness—a voice I recognized—and, after that, a hand was placed on my arm. “What the hell are you doing here, Dick?” it said, and there was a hint of panic in its tone.

I told him in a hectic sentence, for I was beginning to feel badly rattled myself.

I told him in a rushed sentence because I was starting to feel really shook up myself.

“You’ve never been in greater danger in your life,” said the voice. “Great God, man, what brought you wandering here today of all days?”

“You’ve never been in more danger in your life,” said the voice. “My God, man, what made you come wandering here today of all days?”

You can imagine that I was pretty scared, for Sandy was the last man to put a case too high. And the next second I felt worse, for he clutched my arm and dragged me in a bound to the side of the road. I could see nothing, but I felt that his head was screwed round, and mine followed suit. And there, a dozen yards off, were the acetylene lights of a big motor-car.

You can imagine that I was pretty scared, because Sandy was the last person to make a big deal out of something. And the next moment I felt even worse, as he grabbed my arm and pulled me quickly to the side of the road. I couldn't see anything, but I sensed that he had turned his head, and I did the same. And there, about ten yards away, were the bright lights of a large car.

It came along very slowly, purring like a great cat, while we pressed into the bushes. The headlights seemed to spread a fan far to either side, showing the full width of the drive and its borders, and about half the height of the over-arching trees. There was a figure in uniform sitting beside the chauffeur, whom I saw dimly in the reflex glow, but the body of the car was dark.

It rolled up slowly, purring like a big cat, while we squeezed into the bushes. The headlights fanned out to either side, illuminating the entire width of the driveway and its edges, and about half the height of the towering trees. I could make out a figure in uniform sitting next to the driver, seen faintly in the reflected light, but the rest of the car was in shadow.

It crept towards us, passed, and my mind was just getting easy again when it stopped. A switch was snapped within, and the limousine was brightly lit up. Inside I saw a woman’s figure.

It crept toward us, passed by, and my mind was finally starting to relax when it stopped. A switch flipped inside, and the limousine was suddenly lit up. Inside, I saw the silhouette of a woman.

The servant had got out and opened the door and a voice came from within—a clear soft voice speaking in some tongue I didn’t understand. Sandy had started forward at the sound of it, and I followed him. It would never do for me to be caught skulking in the bushes.

The servant got out and opened the door, and a voice came from inside—a clear, soft voice speaking in a language I didn’t understand. Sandy had stepped forward at the sound of it, and I followed him. I could never let myself be caught hiding in the bushes.

I was so dazzled by the suddenness of the glare that at first I blinked and saw nothing. Then my eyes cleared and I found myself looking at the inside of a car upholstered in some soft dove-coloured fabric, and beautifully finished off in ivory and silver. The woman who sat in it had a mantilla of black lace over her head and shoulders, and with one slender jewelled hand she kept its fold over the greater part of her face. I saw only a pair of pale grey-blue eyes—these and the slim fingers.

I was so blinded by the sudden brightness that at first I blinked and saw nothing. Then my eyes adjusted, and I found myself looking at the interior of a car covered in soft dove-colored fabric, elegantly finished in ivory and silver. The woman inside had a black lace mantilla draped over her head and shoulders, and with one delicate jeweled hand, she held the fabric over most of her face. All I could see were a pair of pale grey-blue eyes—those and her slender fingers.

I remember that Sandy was standing very upright with his hands on his hips, by no means like a servant in the presence of his mistress. He was a fine figure of a man at all times, but in those wild clothes, with his head thrown back and his dark brows drawn below his skull-cap, he looked like some savage king out of an older world. He was speaking Turkish, and glancing at me now and then as if angry and perplexed. I took the hint that he was not supposed to know any other tongue, and that he was asking who the devil I might be.

I remember that Sandy was standing tall with his hands on his hips, definitely not acting like a servant in front of his boss. He always had a great appearance, but in those wild clothes, with his head thrown back and his dark brows lowered over his skull-cap, he looked like some savage king from a bygone era. He was speaking Turkish and glancing at me occasionally, as if he was both angry and confused. I got the message that he wasn’t supposed to know any other language and that he was trying to figure out who the hell I was.

Then they both looked at me, Sandy with the slow unwinking stare of the gipsy, the lady with those curious, beautiful pale eyes. They ran over my clothes, my brand-new riding-breeches, my splashed boots, my wide-brimmed hat. I took off the last and made my best bow.

Then they both looked at me, Sandy with the slow, unblinking stare of a gypsy, the lady with those intriguing, beautiful light-colored eyes. They scanned my clothes, my new riding breeches, my splattered boots, my wide-brimmed hat. I took off the hat and made my best bow.

“Madam,” I said, “I have to ask pardon for trespassing in your garden. The fact is, I and my servant—he’s down the road with the horses and I guess you noticed him—the two of us went for a ride this afternoon, and got good and well lost. We came in by your back gate, and I was prospecting for your front door to find someone to direct us, when I bumped into this brigand-chief who didn’t understand my talk. I’m American, and I’m here on a big Government proposition. I hate to trouble you, but if you’d send a man to show us how to strike the city I’d be very much in your debt.”

“Ma'am,” I said, “I need to apologize for coming into your garden. The thing is, my servant—he's down the road with the horses, and I’m sure you saw him—and I went for a ride this afternoon and got completely lost. We came in through your back gate, and I was looking for your front door to ask someone for directions when I ran into this bandit leader who didn’t understand what I was saying. I’m American, and I’m here for an important government project. I hate to bother you, but if you could send someone to show us how to get to the city, I’d really appreciate it.”

Her eyes never left my face. “Will you come into the car?” she said in English. “At the house I will give you a servant to direct you.”

Her eyes stayed fixed on my face. “Will you get into the car?” she asked in English. “When we get to the house, I’ll give you a servant to guide you.”

She drew in the skirts of her fur cloak to make room for me, and in my muddy boots and sopping clothes I took the seat she pointed out. She said a word in Turkish to Sandy, switched off the light, and the car moved on.

She pulled in the edges of her fur cloak to make space for me, and in my muddy boots and wet clothes, I sat in the spot she indicated. She said something in Turkish to Sandy, turned off the light, and the car drove on.

Women had never come much my way, and I knew about as much of their ways as I knew about the Chinese language. All my life I had lived with men only, and rather a rough crowd at that. When I made my pile and came home I looked to see a little society, but I had first the business of the Black Stone on my hands, and then the war, so my education languished. I had never been in a motor-car with a lady before, and I felt like a fish on a dry sandbank. The soft cushions and the subtle scents filled me with acute uneasiness. I wasn’t thinking now about Sandy’s grave words, or about Blenkiron’s warning, or about my job and the part this woman must play in it. I was thinking only that I felt mortally shy. The darkness made it worse. I was sure that my companion was looking at me all the time and laughing at me for a clown.

Women had never really been a part of my life, and I knew just as little about them as I did about the Chinese language. I had spent my whole life around men, and not exactly the gentlest ones. When I finally made some money and got back home, I expected to find a bit of society, but first, I had to deal with the Black Stone situation and then the war, so I didn't get the chance to learn much. I had never been in a car with a woman before, and I felt completely out of my element. The plush seats and delicate scents made me really uneasy. I wasn’t thinking about Sandy’s serious words, or Blenkiron’s warning, or my job and the role this woman had in it. All I could think about was how incredibly shy I felt. The darkness made it even worse. I was convinced my companion was watching me the whole time and laughing at me like I was a fool.

The car stopped and a tall servant opened the door. The lady was over the threshold before I was at the step. I followed her heavily, the wet squelching from my field-boots. At that moment I noticed that she was very tall.

The car stopped and a tall servant opened the door. The lady was already across the threshold before I could reach the step. I followed her slowly, the wet squelching of my field boots echoing with each step. At that moment, I realized she was very tall.

She led me through a long corridor to a room where two pillars held lamps in the shape of torches. The place was dark but for their glow, and it was as warm as a hothouse from invisible stoves. I felt soft carpets underfoot, and on the walls hung some tapestry or rug of an amazingly intricate geometrical pattern, but with every strand as rich as jewels. There, between the pillars, she turned and faced me. Her furs were thrown back, and the black mantilla had slipped down to her shoulders.

She guided me down a long hallway to a room where two pillars supported lamps shaped like torches. The room was dim except for their light, and it felt as warm as a greenhouse from hidden heaters. I felt soft carpets beneath my feet, and on the walls hung some tapestry or rug with an incredibly intricate geometric pattern, with every thread as rich as jewels. There, between the pillars, she turned to face me. Her furs were draped back, and the black mantilla had slipped down to her shoulders.

“I have heard of you,” she said. “You are called Richard Hanau, the American. Why have you come to this land?”

"I've heard of you," she said. "You're Richard Hanau, the American. Why did you come to this place?"

“To have a share in the campaign,” I said. “I’m an engineer, and I thought I could help out with some business like Mesopotamia.”

“To take part in the campaign,” I said. “I’m an engineer, and I thought I could contribute to something like Mesopotamia.”

“You are on Germany’s side?” she asked.

“You're on Germany's side?” she asked.

“Why, yes,” I replied. “We Americans are supposed to be nootrals, and that means we’re free to choose any side we fancy. I’m for the Kaiser.”

“Of course,” I said. “We Americans are supposed to be neutral, and that means we can choose any side we want. I’m for the Kaiser.”

Her cool eyes searched me, but not in suspicion. I could see she wasn’t troubling with the question whether I was speaking the truth. She was sizing me up as a man. I cannot describe that calm appraising look. There was no sex in it, nothing even of that implicit sympathy with which one human being explores the existence of another. I was a chattel, a thing infinitely removed from intimacy. Even so I have myself looked at a horse which I thought of buying, scanning his shoulders and hocks and paces. Even so must the old lords of Constantinople have looked at the slaves which the chances of war brought to their markets, assessing their usefulness for some task or other with no thought of a humanity common to purchased and purchaser. And yet—not quite. This woman’s eyes were weighing me, not for any special duty, but for my essential qualities. I felt that I was under the scrutiny of one who was a connoisseur in human nature.

Her cool eyes examined me, but not out of suspicion. I could tell she wasn’t worried about whether I was telling the truth. She was sizing me up as a man. I can't describe that calm, assessing look. There was no hint of attraction in it, nothing even resembling the sympathy with which one person tries to understand another. I was like property, something far removed from intimacy. Yet, it reminded me of how I have looked at a horse I considered buying, checking its shoulders, legs, and movements. It must have been how the old lords of Constantinople viewed the slaves brought to their markets by chance, evaluating their usefulness for some task without thinking of a shared humanity between buyer and bought. And yet—not quite. This woman’s eyes were weighing me, not for a specific role, but for my fundamental qualities. I felt like I was being scrutinized by someone who truly understood human nature.

I see I have written that I knew nothing about women. But every man has in his bones a consciousness of sex. I was shy and perturbed, but horribly fascinated. This slim woman, poised exquisitely like some statue between the pillared lights, with her fair cloud of hair, her long delicate face, and her pale bright eyes, had the glamour of a wild dream. I hated her instinctively, hated her intensely, but I longed to arouse her interest. To be valued coldly by those eyes was an offence to my manhood, and I felt antagonism rising within me. I am a strong fellow, well set up, and rather above the average height, and my irritation stiffened me from heel to crown. I flung my head back and gave her cool glance for cool glance, pride against pride.

I see I wrote that I didn’t know anything about women. But every guy has a deep awareness of sex. I was shy and anxious, but also incredibly intrigued. This slender woman, perfectly poised like a statue between the lit columns, with her fair, flowing hair, her long, delicate face, and her pale, bright eyes, had the allure of a wild dream. I instinctively hated her, intensely, but I also wanted to catch her interest. Being regarded coldly by those eyes felt like an insult to my manhood, and I felt anger rising within me. I’m a strong guy, well-built and taller than average, and my irritation made me tense from head to toe. I tossed my head back and met her cool stare with my own, pride against pride.

Once, I remember, a doctor on board ship who dabbled in hypnotism told me that I was the most unsympathetic person he had ever struck. He said I was about as good a mesmeric subject as Table Mountain. Suddenly I began to realize that this woman was trying to cast some spell over me. The eyes grew large and luminous, and I was conscious for just an instant of some will battling to subject mine. I was aware, too, in the same moment of a strange scent which recalled that wild hour in Kuprasso’s garden-house. It passed quickly, and for a second her eyes drooped. I seemed to read in them failure, and yet a kind of satisfaction, too, as if they had found more in me than they expected.

Once, I remember, a doctor on the ship who dabbled in hypnotism told me that I was the most unsympathetic person he had ever come across. He said I was about as good a subject for hypnosis as Table Mountain. Suddenly, I started to realize that this woman was trying to cast some spell over me. Her eyes became large and bright, and for just a moment, I felt a willpower trying to overpower mine. I also noticed, at that same moment, a strange scent that reminded me of that wild hour in Kuprasso’s garden-house. It faded quickly, and for a second, her eyes drooped. I seemed to see in them a sense of failure, yet also a kind of satisfaction, as if they had found more in me than they were expecting.

“What life have you led?” the soft voice was saying.

“What life have you lived?” the gentle voice was saying.

I was able to answer quite naturally, rather to my surprise. “I have been a mining engineer up and down the world.”

I was able to respond pretty naturally, to my surprise. “I've worked as a mining engineer all over the world.”

“You have faced danger many times?”

"You've faced danger a lot?"

“I have faced danger.”

"I've faced danger."

“You have fought with men in battles?”

“You’ve fought with men in battles?”

“I have fought in battles.”

"I've fought in battles."

Her bosom rose and fell in a kind of sigh. A smile—a very beautiful thing—flitted over her face. She gave me her hand. “The horses are at the door now,” she said, “and your servant is with them. One of my people will guide you to the city.”

Her chest rose and fell with a sigh. A smile—a truly beautiful thing—crossed her face. She offered me her hand. “The horses are at the door now,” she said, “and your driver is with them. One of my people will show you the way to the city.”

She turned away and passed out of the circle of light into the darkness beyond ...

She turned away and stepped out of the circle of light into the darkness beyond.

Peter and I jogged home in the rain with one of Sandy’s skin-clad Companions loping at our side. We did not speak a word, for my thoughts were running like hounds on the track of the past hours. I had seen the mysterious Hilda von Einem, I had spoken to her, I had held her hand. She had insulted me with the subtlest of insults and yet I was not angry. Suddenly the game I was playing became invested with a tremendous solemnity. My old antagonists, Stumm and Rasta and the whole German Empire, seemed to shrink into the background, leaving only the slim woman with her inscrutable smile and devouring eyes. “Mad and bad,” Blenkiron had called her, “but principally bad.” I did not think they were the proper terms, for they belonged to the narrow world of our common experience. This was something beyond and above it, as a cyclone or an earthquake is outside the decent routine of nature. Mad and bad she might be, but she was also great.

Peter and I jogged home in the rain with one of Sandy’s skin-clad friends loping alongside us. We didn’t say a word, because my thoughts were racing like hounds chasing after the last few hours. I had seen the mysterious Hilda von Einem, I had talked to her, I had held her hand. She had insulted me with the subtlest of jabs, and yet I wasn’t angry. Suddenly, the game I was playing took on a deep seriousness. My old enemies, Stumm and Rasta and the entire German Empire, seemed to fade into the background, leaving only the slim woman with her unreadable smile and piercing eyes. “Mad and bad,” Blenkiron had called her, “but mainly bad.” I didn’t think those were the right words, as they belonged to the limited world of our shared experiences. This was something beyond and above it, like a cyclone or an earthquake is beyond the ordinary flow of nature. She might be mad and bad, but she was also remarkable.

Before we arrived our guide had plucked my knee and spoken some words which he had obviously got by heart. “The Master says,” ran the message, “expect him at midnight.”

Before we arrived, our guide had touched my knee and recited some words he clearly knew by heart. “The Master says,” the message went, “expect him at midnight.”

CHAPTER XV.
An Embarrassed Toilet

I was soaked to the bone, and while Peter set off to look for dinner I went to my room to change. I had a rubdown and then got into pyjamas for some dumb-bell exercises with two chairs, for that long wet ride had stiffened my arm and shoulder muscles. They were a vulgar suit of primitive blue, which Blenkiron had looted from my London wardrobe. As Cornelis Brandt I had sported a flannel nightgown.

I was completely soaked, and while Peter went off to find dinner, I headed to my room to change. I took a rubdown and then put on pajamas for some dumbbell exercises with two chairs since that long, wet ride had made my arm and shoulder muscles stiff. They were a tacky set in a basic blue, which Blenkiron had taken from my London wardrobe. As Cornelis Brandt, I had worn a flannel nightgown.

My bedroom opened off the sitting-room, and while I was busy with my gymnastics I heard the door open. I thought at first it was Blenkiron, but the briskness of the tread was unlike his measured gait. I had left the light burning there, and the visitor, whoever he was, had made himself at home. I slipped on a green dressing-gown Blenkiron had lent me, and sallied forth to investigate.

My bedroom was connected to the living room, and while I was occupied with my workouts, I heard the door open. Initially, I thought it was Blenkiron, but the quick footsteps didn’t match his usual pace. I had left the light on, and the visitor, whoever they were, was getting comfortable. I put on a green dressing gown that Blenkiron had lent me and went out to check it out.

My friend Rasta was standing by the table, on which he had laid an envelope. He looked round at my entrance and saluted.

My friend Rasta was standing by the table, where he had laid out an envelope. He turned to me as I walked in and nodded.

“I come from the Minister of War, sir,” he said, “and bring you your passports for tomorrow. You will travel by ...” And then his voice tailed away and his black eyes narrowed to slits. He had seen something which switched him off the metals.

“I come from the Minister of War, sir,” he said, “and I’m here to give you your passports for tomorrow. You will travel by ...” And then his voice faded, and his dark eyes turned into slits. He had noticed something that distracted him from the metals.

At that moment I saw it too. There was a mirror on the wall behind him, and as I faced him I could not help seeing my reflection. It was the exact image of the engineer on the Danube boat—blue jeans, loden cloak, and all. The accursed mischance of my costume had given him the clue to an identity which was otherwise buried deep in the Bosporus.

At that moment, I saw it too. There was a mirror on the wall behind him, and as I faced him, I couldn’t help but see my reflection. It was the exact image of the engineer on the Danube boat—blue jeans, a loden cloak, and everything. The cursed luck of my outfit had given him a clue to an identity that was otherwise buried deep in the Bosporus.

I am bound to say for Rasta that he was a man of quick action. In a trice he had whipped round to the other side of the table between me and the door, where he stood regarding me wickedly.

I have to say for Rasta that he was a man of quick action. In an instant, he had turned to the other side of the table between me and the door, where he stood looking at me mischievously.

By this time I was at the table and stretched out a hand for the envelope. My one hope was nonchalance.

By this point, I was at the table and reached out for the envelope. My only hope was to act casual.

“Sit down, sir,” I said, “and have a drink. It’s a filthy night to move about in.”

“Sit down, sir,” I said, “and have a drink. It’s a nasty night to be out and about.”

“Thank you, no, Herr Brandt,” he said. “You may burn these passports for they will not be used.”

“Thank you, no, Mr. Brandt,” he said. “You can burn these passports because they won’t be used.”

“Whatever’s the matter with you?” I cried. “You’ve mistaken the house, my lad. I’m called Hanau—Richard Hanau—and my partner’s Mr John S. Blenkiron. He’ll be here presently. Never knew anyone of the name of Brandt, barring a tobacconist in Denver City.”

“What's bothering you?” I shouted. “You’ve got the wrong house, kid. I’m Hanau—Richard Hanau—and my partner is Mr. John S. Blenkiron. He’ll be here soon. I’ve never heard of anyone named Brandt, except for a tobacconist in Denver City.”

“You have never been to Rustchuk?” he said with a sneer.

“You've never been to Rustchuk?” he said with a sneer.

“Not that I know of. But, pardon me, Sir, if I ask your name and your business here. I’m darned if I’m accustomed to be called by Dutch names or have my word doubted. In my country we consider that impolite as between gentlemen.”

“Not that I know of. But, excuse me, Sir, may I ask your name and what you're doing here? I’m really not used to being called by Dutch names or having my word questioned. In my country, we find that rude among gentlemen.”

I could see that my bluff was having its effect. His stare began to waver, and when he next spoke it was in a more civil tone.

I could see that my bluff was working. His gaze started to falter, and when he spoke again, his tone was more polite.

“I will ask pardon if I’m mistaken, Sir, but you’re the image of a man who a week ago was at Rustchuk, a man much wanted by the Imperial Government.”

“I apologize if I'm wrong, sir, but you look just like a man who was in Rustchuk a week ago, a man who is highly sought after by the Imperial Government.”

“A week ago I was tossing in a dirty little hooker coming from Constanza. Unless Rustchuk’s in the middle of the Black Sea I’ve never visited the township. I guess you’re barking up the wrong tree. Come to think of it, I was expecting passports. Say, do you come from Enver Damad?”

“A week ago I was struggling with a pretty rough situation coming from Constanza. Unless Rustchuk is in the middle of the Black Sea, I’ve never been to that town. I guess you’re going in the wrong direction. Now that I think about it, I was expecting passports. By the way, do you come from Enver Damad?”

“I have that honour,” he said.

“I have that honor,” he said.

“Well, Enver is a very good friend of mine. He’s the brightest citizen I’ve struck this side of the Atlantic.”

“Well, Enver is a really good friend of mine. He’s the smartest person I’ve come across on this side of the Atlantic.”

The man was calming down, and in another minute his suspicions would have gone. But at that moment, by the crookedest kind of luck, Peter entered with a tray of dishes. He did not notice Rasta, and walked straight to the table and plumped down his burden on it. The Turk had stepped aside at his entrance, and I saw by the look in his eyes that his suspicions had become a certainty. For Peter, stripped to shirt and breeches, was the identical shabby little companion of the Rustchuk meeting.

The man was starting to relax, and in another minute, his doubts would have disappeared. But at that moment, by the worst kind of luck, Peter walked in with a tray of dishes. He didn’t see Rasta and went straight to the table, setting down his load with a thud. The Turk had moved aside when he came in, and I could tell by the look in his eyes that his suspicions had turned into certainty. Peter, dressed only in a shirt and pants, was the exact same shabby little guy from the Rustchuk meeting.

I had never doubted Rasta’s pluck. He jumped for the door and had a pistol out in a trice pointing at my head.

I had never doubted Rasta’s bravery. He lunged for the door and had a gun out in an instant, aiming it at my head.

Bonne fortune,” he cried. “Both the birds at one shot.” His hand was on the latch, and his mouth was open to cry. I guessed there was an orderly waiting on the stairs.

Good luck,” he shouted. “I got both birds with one shot.” His hand was on the latch, and he was about to call out. I figured there was someone waiting on the stairs.

He had what you call the strategic advantage, for he was at the door while I was at the other end of the table and Peter at the side of it at least two yards from him. The road was clear before him, and neither of us was armed. I made a despairing step forward, not knowing what I meant to do, for I saw no light. But Peter was before me.

He had the upper hand because he was standing by the door while I was at the far end of the table and Peter was next to it, at least two yards away from him. The way was clear for him, and neither of us was armed. I took a desperate step forward, unsure of my intentions, as I saw no way out. But Peter was in front of me.

He had never let go of the tray, and now, as a boy skims a stone on a pond, he skimmed it with its contents at Rasta’s head. The man was opening the door with one hand while he kept me covered with the other, and he got the contrivance fairly in the face. A pistol shot cracked out, and the bullet went through the tray, but the noise was drowned in the crash of glasses and crockery. The next second Peter had wrenched the pistol from Rasta’s hand and had gripped his throat.

He never dropped the tray, and now, like a boy skipping a stone across a pond, he sent its contents flying at Rasta’s head. The man was trying to open the door with one hand while keeping me covered with the other, and he got hit in the face with the tray. A gunshot rang out, and the bullet pierced through the tray, but the sound was drowned out by the crash of glasses and dishes. In the next moment, Peter had yanked the pistol from Rasta’s hand and had a tight grip on his throat.

A dandified Young Turk, brought up in Paris and finished in Berlin, may be as brave as a lion, but he cannot stand in a rough-and-tumble against a backveld hunter, though more than double his age. There was no need for me to help him. Peter had his own way, learned in a wild school, of knocking the sense out of a foe. He gagged him scientifically, and trussed him up with his own belt and two straps from a trunk in my bedroom.

A stylish young Turk, raised in Paris and completed in Berlin, may be as brave as a lion, but he can’t hold his own in a rough fight against a backcountry hunter, even if the hunter is over twice his age. I didn’t need to help him. Peter had his own methods, learned in a wild environment, for taking the fight out of an enemy. He expertly gagged him and tied him up with his own belt and two straps from a trunk in my bedroom.

“This man is too dangerous to let go,” he said, as if his procedure were the most ordinary thing in the world. “He will be quiet now till we have time to make a plan.”

“This guy is too dangerous to let go,” he said, as if what he was doing were the most normal thing in the world. “He'll stay quiet now until we have time to come up with a plan.”

At that moment there came a knocking at the door. That is the sort of thing that happens in melodrama, just when the villain has finished off his job neatly. The correct thing to do is to pale to the teeth, and with a rolling, conscience-stricken eye glare round the horizon. But that was not Peter’s way.

At that moment, there was a knock at the door. That’s the kind of thing that happens in a melodrama, right when the villain has wrapped up his task perfectly. The proper response would be to go pale and, with a guilt-ridden look, scan the surroundings anxiously. But that wasn’t Peter’s style.

“We’d better tidy up if we’re to have visitors,” he said calmly.

“We should clean up if we're expecting guests,” he said calmly.

Now there was one of those big oak German cupboards against the wall which must have been brought in in sections, for complete it would never have got through the door. It was empty now, but for Blenkiron’s hatbox. In it he deposited the unconscious Rasta, and turned the key. “There’s enough ventilation through the top,” he observed, “to keep the air good.” Then he opened the door. A magnificent kavass in blue and silver stood outside. He saluted and proffered a card on which was written in pencil, “Hilda von Einem”.

Now there was a large oak German cupboard against the wall that must have been brought in in pieces, because it could never have fit through the door as a whole. It was empty now, except for Blenkiron’s hatbox. He placed the unconscious Rasta inside it and locked the lid. “There’s enough ventilation through the top,” he noted, “to keep the air fresh.” Then he opened the door. A magnificent kavass in blue and silver stood outside. He saluted and handed over a card that said, “Hilda von Einem” in pencil.

I would have begged for time to change my clothes, but the lady was behind him. I saw the black mantilla and the rich sable furs. Peter vanished through my bedroom and I was left to receive my guest in a room littered with broken glass and a senseless man in the cupboard.

I would have asked for time to change my clothes, but the lady was right behind him. I saw the black lace shawl and the luxurious sable furs. Peter disappeared through my bedroom, leaving me to welcome my guest in a room filled with broken glass and a clueless man in the closet.

There are some situations so crazily extravagant that they key up the spirit to meet them. I was almost laughing when that stately lady stepped over my threshold.

There are some situations so wildly extravagant that they excite the spirit to confront them. I was almost laughing when that elegant lady crossed my doorway.

“Madam,” I said, with a bow that shamed my old dressing-gown and strident pyjamas. “You find me at a disadvantage. I came home soaking from my ride, and was in the act of changing. My servant has just upset a tray of crockery, and I fear this room’s no fit place for a lady. Allow me three minutes to make myself presentable.”

“Ma’am,” I said, awkwardly bowing in my old robe and loud pajamas. “You catch me off guard. I just got back drenched from my ride and was in the middle of getting changed. My servant just spilled a tray of dishes, and I’m worried this room isn’t suitable for a lady. Please give me three minutes to freshen up.”

She inclined her head gravely and took a seat by the fire. I went into my bedroom, and as I expected found Peter lurking by the other door. In a hectic sentence I bade him get Rasta’s orderly out of the place on any pretext, and tell him his master would return later. Then I hurried into decent garments, and came out to find my visitor in a brown study.

She lowered her head seriously and sat down by the fire. I went into my bedroom and, as I expected, found Peter hanging around by the other door. In a rushed sentence, I told him to get Rasta’s orderly out of the place for any reason and let him know his boss would be back later. Then I quickly changed into decent clothes and came out to find my guest lost in thought.

At the sound of my entrance she started from her dream and stood up on the hearthrug, slipping the long robe of fur from her slim body.

At the sound of my arrival, she jolted awake from her dream and stood up on the hearth rug, sliding the long fur robe off her slender body.

“We are alone?” she said. “We will not be disturbed?”

“We're alone?” she said. “We won’t be interrupted?”

Then an inspiration came to me. I remembered that Frau von Einem, according to Blenkiron, did not see eye to eye with the Young Turks; and I had a queer instinct that Rasta could not be to her liking. So I spoke the truth.

Then an idea struck me. I remembered that Frau von Einem, according to Blenkiron, didn't get along with the Young Turks; and I had a strange feeling that Rasta wouldn’t be her favorite. So I told the truth.

“I must tell you that there’s another guest here tonight. I reckon he’s feeling pretty uncomfortable. At present he’s trussed up on a shelf in that cupboard.”

“I have to let you know that there’s another guest here tonight. I think he’s feeling really uncomfortable. Right now, he’s tied up on a shelf in that cupboard.”

She did not trouble to look round.

She didn’t bother to look around.

“Is he dead?” she asked calmly.

“Is he dead?” she asked calmly.

“By no means,” I said, “but he’s fixed so he can’t speak, and I guess he can’t hear much.”

“Not at all,” I said, “but he’s set up so he can’t talk, and I don’t think he can hear very well either.”

“He was the man who brought you this?” she asked, pointing to the envelope on the table which bore the big blue stamp of the Ministry of War.

“Is he the one who gave you this?” she asked, pointing to the envelope on the table that had the big blue stamp of the Ministry of War.

“The same,” I said. “I’m not perfectly sure of his name, but I think they call him Rasta.”

“The same,” I said. “I’m not exactly sure of his name, but I think they call him Rasta.”

Not a flicker of a smile crossed her face, but I had a feeling that the news pleased her.

Not a smile appeared on her face, but I had a sense that the news made her happy.

“Did he thwart you?” she asked.

“Did he stop you?” she asked.

“Why, yes. He thwarted me some. His head is a bit swelled, and an hour or two on the shelf will do him good.”

“Sure, he got in my way a little. His ego's a bit inflated, and some time on the sidelines will do him good.”

“He is a powerful man,” she said, “a jackal of Enver’s. You have made a dangerous enemy.”

“He’s a powerful man,” she said, “one of Enver’s jackals. You’ve made a dangerous enemy.”

“I don’t value him at two cents,” said I, though I thought grimly that as far as I could see the value of him was likely to be about the price of my neck.

“I don’t think he’s worth a dime,” I said, though I grimly considered that, from what I could see, his value was probably about the price of my neck.

“Perhaps you are right,” she said with serious eyes. “In these days no enemy is dangerous to a bold man. I have come tonight, Mr Hanau, to talk business with you, as they say in your country. I have heard well of you, and today I have seen you. I may have need of you, and you assuredly will have need of me....”

“Maybe you’re right,” she said, looking serious. “These days, no enemy is a threat to a brave man. I’ve come tonight, Mr. Hanau, to discuss business with you, as they say in your country. I’ve heard good things about you, and today I’ve seen you in action. I might need your help, and you’ll definitely need mine....”

She broke off, and again her strange potent eyes fell on my face. They were like a burning searchlight which showed up every cranny and crack of the soul. I felt it was going to be horribly difficult to act a part under that compelling gaze. She could not mesmerize me, but she could strip me of my fancy dress and set me naked in the masquerade.

She paused, and once again her intense, powerful eyes were fixed on my face. They were like a blazing spotlight that revealed every hidden corner of my soul. I realized it would be incredibly tough to play a role under that piercing gaze. She couldn't hypnotize me, but she could strip away my facade and leave me exposed in the masquerade.

“What came you forth to seek?” she asked. “You are not like the stout American Blenkiron, a lover of shoddy power and a devotee of a feeble science. There is something more than that in your face. You are on our side, but you are not of the Germans with their hankerings for a rococo Empire. You come from America, the land of pious follies, where men worship gold and words. I ask, what came you forth to seek?”

“What did you come out here to find?” she asked. “You’re not like the tough American Blenkiron, who loves flashy power and is a fan of weak science. There’s something more in your expression. You’re on our side, but you’re not one of the Germans with their desires for an extravagant Empire. You come from America, the land of misguided beliefs, where people worship gold and words. I ask you again, what did you come out here to find?”

As she spoke I seemed to get a vision of a figure, like one of the old gods looking down on human nature from a great height, a figure disdainful and passionless, but with its own magnificence. It kindled my imagination, and I answered with the stuff I had often cogitated when I had tried to explain to myself just how a case could be made out against the Allied cause.

As she spoke, I got the impression of a figure, like one of the ancient gods, looking down on humanity from a great height—a figure that was disdainful and emotionless, yet still had its own grandeur. It ignited my imagination, and I responded with the thoughts I had often pondered when I tried to rationalize how a case could be made against the Allied cause.

“I will tell you, Madam,” I said. “I am a man who has followed a science, but I have followed it in wild places, and I have gone through it and come out at the other side. The world, as I see it, had become too easy and cushioned. Men had forgotten their manhood in soft speech, and imagined that the rules of their smug civilization were the laws of the universe. But that is not the teaching of science, and it is not the teaching of life. We have forgotten the greater virtues, and we were becoming emasculated humbugs whose gods were our own weaknesses. Then came war, and the air was cleared. Germany, in spite of her blunders and her grossness, stood forth as the scourge of cant. She had the courage to cut through the bonds of humbug and to laugh at the fetishes of the herd. Therefore I am on Germany’s side. But I came here for another reason. I know nothing of the East, but as I read history it is from the desert that the purification comes. When mankind is smothered with shams and phrases and painted idols a wind blows out of the wild to cleanse and simplify life. The world needs space and fresh air. The civilization we have boasted of is a toy-shop and a blind alley, and I hanker for the open country.”

“I'll tell you, Madam,” I said. “I’m a man who's pursued a science, but I’ve done it in untamed places, and I’ve gone through it and come out changed. The world, as I see it, has become too easy and comfortable. People have forgotten their true strength in soft talk and think that the rules of their complacent civilization are the laws of the universe. But that’s not what science teaches, and it’s not what life teaches. We’ve forgotten the greater virtues and we’re turning into weak hypocrites whose gods are our own flaws. Then came war, and everything became clearer. Germany, despite its mistakes and shortcomings, stood out as the challenge to pretense. It had the bravery to break through the ties of hypocrisy and to laugh at the absurdities of the masses. So, I’m on Germany’s side. But I came here for another reason. I know nothing about the East, but as I read history, it’s from the desert that real purification comes. When humanity is overwhelmed by pretenses, empty phrases, and false idols, a wind blows in from the wild to clear the air and simplify life. The world needs space and fresh air. The civilization we’ve been proud of is just a playroom and a dead end, and I long for the open countryside.”

This confounded nonsense was well received. Her pale eyes had the cold light of the fanatic. With her bright hair and the long exquisite oval of her face she looked like some destroying fury of a Norse legend. At that moment I think I first really feared her; before I had half-hated and half-admired. Thank Heaven, in her absorption she did not notice that I had forgotten the speech of Cleveland, Ohio.

This ridiculous nonsense was surprisingly well received. Her pale eyes had the icy gleam of a fanatic. With her bright hair and the long, elegant shape of her face, she resembled some fierce goddess from a Norse myth. At that moment, I think I truly began to fear her; before that, I had mostly hated and admired her. Thank goodness, in her concentration, she didn’t realize that I had forgotten the speech from Cleveland, Ohio.

“You are of the Household of Faith,” she said. “You will presently learn many things, for the Faith marches to victory. Meantime I have one word for you. You and your companion travel eastward.”

“You are part of the Household of Faith,” she said. “You will soon learn many things, for the Faith is moving towards victory. In the meantime, I have one thing to tell you. You and your companion should travel eastward.”

“We go to Mesopotamia,” I said. “I reckon these are our passports,” and I pointed to the envelope.

“We're going to Mesopotamia,” I said. “I think these are our passports,” and I pointed to the envelope.

She picked it up, opened it, and then tore it in pieces and tossed it in the fire.

She picked it up, opened it, then ripped it into pieces and threw it in the fire.

“The orders are countermanded,” she said. “I have need of you and you go with me. Not to the flats of the Tigris, but to the great hills. Tomorrow you will receive new passports.”

“The orders are canceled,” she said. “I need you, and you’re coming with me. Not to the Tigris plains, but to the great hills. Tomorrow, you’ll get new passports.”

She gave me her hand and turned to go. At the threshold she paused, and looked towards the oak cupboard. “Tomorrow I will relieve you of your prisoner. He will be safer in my hands.”

She offered me her hand and started to leave. At the door, she stopped and glanced at the oak cupboard. “Tomorrow, I’ll take care of your prisoner. He’ll be better off with me.”

She left me in a condition of pretty blank bewilderment. We were to be tied to the chariot-wheels of this fury, and started on an enterprise compared to which fighting against our friends at Kut seemed tame and reasonable. On the other hand, I had been spotted by Rasta, and had got the envoy of the most powerful man in Constantinople locked in a cupboard. At all costs we had to keep Rasta safe, but I was very determined that he should not be handed over to the lady. I was going to be no party to cold-blooded murder, which I judged to be her expedient. It was a pretty kettle of fish, but in the meantime I must have food, for I had eaten nothing for nine hours. So I went in search of Peter.

She left me feeling pretty confused. We were about to get dragged into this crazy situation, and starting a mission that made fighting against our friends at Kut seem easy and reasonable. On the other hand, Rasta had recognized me, and I had the envoy of the most powerful man in Constantinople locked in a cupboard. We had to keep Rasta safe at all costs, but I was very determined that he wouldn’t be handed over to the lady. I wasn’t going to be involved in cold-blooded murder, which I believed was her plan. It was a real mess, but I needed to eat because I hadn't eaten anything for nine hours. So I went looking for Peter.

I had scarcely begun my long deferred meal when Sandy entered. He was before his time, and he looked as solemn as a sick owl. I seized on him as a drowning man clutches a spar.

I had barely started my long-overdue meal when Sandy walked in. He was early, and he looked as serious as a sick owl. I grabbed onto him like a drowning man clings to a piece of driftwood.

He heard my story of Rasta with a lengthening face.

He listened to my story about Rasta with a growing expression of disbelief.

“That’s bad,” he said. “You say he spotted you, and your subsequent doings of course would not disillusion him. It’s an infernal nuisance, but there’s only one way out of it. I must put him in charge of my own people. They will keep him safe and sound till he’s wanted. Only he mustn’t see me.” And he went out in a hurry.

"That's not good," he said. "You mention he saw you, and what you did afterward definitely wouldn't change his mind. It's a real hassle, but there's only one solution. I'll have to put him in charge of my own team. They’ll keep him safe and sound until he's needed. But he can't see me." And he rushed out.

I fetched Rasta from his prison. He had come to his senses by this time, and lay regarding me with stony, malevolent eyes.

I brought Rasta out of his prison. By this time, he had regained his senses and was looking at me with hard, angry eyes.

“I’m very sorry, Sir,” I said, “for what has happened. But you left me no alternative. I’ve got a big job on hand and I can’t have it interfered with by you or anyone. You’re paying the price of a suspicious nature. When you know a little more you’ll want to apologize to me. I’m going to see that you are kept quiet and comfortable for a day or two. You’ve no cause to worry, for you’ll suffer no harm. I give you my word of honour as an American citizen.”

“I’m really sorry, Sir,” I said, “for what’s happened. But you left me no choice. I have a big task ahead and I can’t let you or anyone else interfere. You’re paying the price for being so suspicious. When you understand more, you’ll probably want to apologize to me. I’m going to make sure you’re kept quiet and comfortable for a day or two. You have nothing to worry about; you won’t come to any harm. I give you my word of honor as an American citizen.”

Two of Sandy’s miscreants came in and bore him off, and presently Sandy himself returned. When I asked him where he was being taken, Sandy said he didn’t know. “They’ve got their orders, and they’ll carry them out to the letter. There’s a big unknown area in Constantinople to hide a man, into which the Khafiyeh never enter.”

Two of Sandy’s troublemakers came in and took him away, and soon Sandy came back himself. When I asked him where he was being taken, Sandy said he had no idea. “They’ve got their orders, and they’ll follow them exactly. There’s a large unknown area in Istanbul where someone can hide, which the Khafiyeh never enter.”

Then he flung himself in a chair and lit his old pipe.

Then he threw himself into a chair and lit his old pipe.

“Dick,” he said, “this job is getting very difficult and very dark. But my knowledge has grown in the last few days. I’ve found out the meaning of the second word that Harry Bullivant scribbled.”

“Dick,” he said, “this job is becoming really tough and pretty grim. But my understanding has deepened over the last few days. I’ve figured out what the second word that Harry Bullivant wrote down means.”

Cancer?” I asked.

Cancer?” I asked.

“Yes. It means just what it reads and no more. Greenmantle is dying—has been dying for months. This afternoon they brought a German doctor to see him, and the man gave him a few hours of life. By now he may be dead.”

“Yes. It means exactly what it says and nothing more. Greenmantle is dying—has been dying for months. This afternoon, they brought a German doctor to see him, and the guy gave him a few more hours of life. By now, he might be dead.”

The news was a staggerer. For a moment I thought it cleared up things. “Then that busts the show,” I said. “You can’t have a crusade without a prophet.”

The news was shocking. For a moment, I thought it made everything clear. “Then that ruins the whole thing,” I said. “You can’t have a crusade without a prophet.”

“I wish I thought it did. It’s the end of one stage, but the start of a new and blacker one. Do you think that woman will be beaten by such a small thing as the death of her prophet? She’ll find a substitute—one of the four Ministers, or someone else. She’s a devil incarnate, but she has the soul of a Napoleon. The big danger is only beginning.”

“I wish I thought it did. It’s the end of one stage, but the start of a new and darker one. Do you think that woman will be brought down by something as minor as the death of her prophet? She’ll find a substitute—one of the four Ministers, or someone else. She’s pure evil, but she has the spirit of a Napoleon. The real danger is just beginning.”

Then he told me the story of his recent doings. He had found out the house of Frau von Einem without much trouble, and had performed with his ragamuffins in the servants’ quarters. The prophet had a large retinue, and the fame of his minstrels—for the Companions were known far and wide in the land of Islam—came speedily to the ears of the Holy Ones. Sandy, a leader in this most orthodox coterie, was taken into favour and brought to the notice of the four Ministers. He and his half-dozen retainers became inmates of the villa, and Sandy, from his knowledge of Islamic lore and his ostentatious piety, was admitted to the confidence of the household. Frau von Einem welcomed him as an ally, for the Companions had been the most devoted propagandists of the new revelation.

Then he shared the story of what he had been up to lately. He had easily tracked down Frau von Einem's house and performed with his group in the servants’ quarters. The prophet had a large following, and the reputation of his minstrels—for the Companions were well-known throughout the land of Islam—quickly reached the ears of the Holy Ones. Sandy, a leader in this very orthodox group, gained favor and caught the attention of the four Ministers. He and his handful of followers became residents of the villa, and Sandy, with his knowledge of Islamic teachings and his showy piety, was trusted by the household. Frau von Einem welcomed him as an ally, as the Companions had been the most dedicated supporters of the new revelation.

As he described it, it was a strange business. Greenmantle was dying and often in great pain, but he struggled to meet the demands of his protectress. The four Ministers, as Sandy saw them, were unworldly ascetics; the prophet himself was a saint, though a practical saint with some notions of policy; but the controlling brain and will were those of the lady. Sandy seemed to have won his favour, even his affection. He spoke of him with a kind of desperate pity.

As he put it, it was a bizarre situation. Greenmantle was dying and often in a lot of pain, but he fought to satisfy the demands of his protector. The four Ministers, from Sandy’s perspective, were out-of-touch ascetics; the prophet himself was a saint, though a practical one with some ideas about policy; but the guiding mind and will belonged to the lady. Sandy appeared to have earned his favor, even his affection. He talked about him with a sort of frantic pity.

“I never saw such a man. He is the greatest gentleman you can picture, with a dignity like a high mountain. He is a dreamer and a poet, too—a genius if I can judge these things. I think I can assess him rightly, for I know something of the soul of the East, but it would be too long a story to tell now. The West knows nothing of the true Oriental. It pictures him as lapped in colour and idleness and luxury and gorgeous dreams. But it is all wrong. The Kaf he yearns for is an austere thing. It is the austerity of the East that is its beauty and its terror ... It always wants the same things at the back of its head. The Turk and the Arab came out of big spaces, and they have the desire of them in their bones. They settle down and stagnate, and by the by they degenerate into that appalling subtlety which is their ruling passion gone crooked. And then comes a new revelation and a great simplifying. They want to live face to face with God without a screen of ritual and images and priestcraft. They want to prune life of its foolish fringes and get back to the noble bareness of the desert. Remember, it is always the empty desert and the empty sky that cast their spell over them—these, and the hot, strong, antiseptic sunlight which burns up all rot and decay. It isn’t inhuman. It’s the humanity of one part of the human race. It isn’t ours, it isn’t as good as ours, but it’s jolly good all the same. There are times when it grips me so hard that I’m inclined to forswear the gods of my fathers!

“I’ve never met a man like him. He’s the greatest gentleman you can imagine, with a dignity like a towering mountain. He’s also a dreamer and a poet—a genius, if I can judge such things. I believe I can assess him accurately, as I understand a bit about the soul of the East, though it would take too long to explain now. The West has no clue about the true Oriental. It portrays him as wrapped in color, laziness, luxury, and grand dreams. But that’s all wrong. The Kaf he longs for is something austere. It’s the austerity of the East that holds both beauty and terror... There are always the same desires lingering in the back of their minds. The Turk and the Arab come from vast spaces, and they carry that longing in their bones. They settle down and stagnate, and eventually, they degenerate into a maddening subtlety that twists their deep passions. Then a new insight arrives with a great simplification. They want to live directly with God without the barriers of rituals, images, and priesthood. They want to strip life of its unnecessary embellishments and return to the noble simplicity of the desert. Keep in mind, it’s always the empty desert and the vast sky that enchant them—these, along with the hot, strong, antiseptic sunlight that eliminates all decay and corruption. It’s not inhumane. It represents a part of humanity. It isn’t ours, it isn’t better than ours, but it’s still pretty amazing. There are moments when it grips me so strongly that I feel like I could abandon the gods of my ancestors!”

“Well, Greenmantle is the prophet of this great simplicity. He speaks straight to the heart of Islam, and it’s an honourable message. But for our sins it’s been twisted into part of that damned German propaganda. His unworldliness has been used for a cunning political move, and his creed of space and simplicity for the furtherance of the last word in human degeneracy. My God, Dick, it’s like seeing St Francis run by Messalina.”

“Well, Greenmantle is the prophet of this great simplicity. He speaks directly to the heart of Islam, and it’s an honorable message. But, unfortunately, it’s been twisted into part of that damned German propaganda. His unworldliness has been exploited for a clever political move, and his belief in space and simplicity has been used to promote the worst aspects of human degeneration. My God, Dick, it’s like seeing St. Francis being run by Messalina.”

“The woman has been here tonight,” I said. “She asked me what I stood for, and I invented some infernal nonsense which she approved of. But I can see one thing. She and her prophet may run for different stakes, but it’s the same course.”

“The woman has been here tonight,” I said. “She asked me what I believed in, and I made up some ridiculous nonsense that she liked. But I can see one thing. She and her prophet may aim for different goals, but it's the same journey.”

Sandy started. “She has been here!” he cried. “Tell me, Dick, what do you think of her?”

Sandy jumped in. “She’s been here!” he shouted. “Tell me, Dick, what do you think of her?”

“I thought she was about two parts mad, but the third part was uncommon like inspiration.”

“I thought she was maybe two-thirds crazy, but the other third was really something special, like inspiration.”

“That’s about right,” he said. “I was wrong in comparing her to Messalina. She’s something a dashed sight more complicated. She runs the prophet just because she shares his belief. Only what in him is sane and fine, in her is mad and horrible. You see, Germany also wants to simplify life.”

“That’s about right,” he said. “I was wrong to compare her to Messalina. She’s a lot more complicated. She supports the prophet simply because she shares his beliefs. But what's sane and good in him is mad and terrible in her. You see, Germany also wants to make life simpler.”

“I know,” I said. “I told her that an hour ago, when I talked more rot to the second than any normal man ever achieved. It will come between me and my sleep for the rest of my days.”

“I know,” I said. “I told her that an hour ago, when I talked more nonsense to the second than any normal guy ever has. It’s going to haunt me and mess with my sleep for the rest of my days.”

“Germany’s simplicity is that of the neurotic, not the primitive. It is megalomania and egotism and the pride of the man in the Bible that waxed fat and kicked. But the results are the same. She wants to destroy and simplify; but it isn’t the simplicity of the ascetic, which is of the spirit, but the simplicity of the madman that grinds down all the contrivances of civilization to a featureless monotony. The prophet wants to save the souls of his people; Germany wants to rule the inanimate corpse of the world. But you can get the same language to cover both. And so you have the partnership of St Francis and Messalina. Dick, did you ever hear of a thing called the Superman?”

“Germany’s simplicity is more about neurosis than primitiveness. It’s a mix of megalomania, egotism, and the pride of the man in the Bible who grew fat and rebelled. But the outcomes are similar. She wants to destroy and simplify; however, it’s not the simplicity of the ascetic, which comes from the spirit, but the madness that reduces all the complexities of civilization to a dull uniformity. The prophet aims to save his people's souls; Germany seeks to dominate the lifeless body of the world. Yet, you can use the same language for both. And so you find the alliance of St. Francis and Messalina. Dick, have you ever heard of something called the Superman?”

“There was a time when the papers were full of nothing else,” I answered. “I gather it was invented by a sportsman called Nietzsche.”

“There was a time when the news was all about that,” I replied. “I understand it was created by a sportsman named Nietzsche.”

“Maybe,” said Sandy. “Old Nietzsche has been blamed for a great deal of rubbish he would have died rather than acknowledge. But it’s a craze of the new, fatted Germany. It’s a fancy type which could never really exist, any more than the Economic Man of the politicians. Mankind has a sense of humour which stops short of the final absurdity. There never has been, and there never could be a real Superman ... But there might be a Superwoman.”

“Maybe,” said Sandy. “Old Nietzsche has been blamed for a lot of nonsense that he would have rather died than admit. But it’s a trend of the new, pampered Germany. It’s an imaginary figure that could never truly exist, just like the Economic Man that politicians talk about. Humanity has a sense of humor that prevents us from reaching the ultimate absurdity. There has never been, and there can never be, a real Superman ... But there might be a Superwoman.”

“You’ll get into trouble, my lad, if you talk like that,” I said.

“You'll get into trouble, kid, if you talk like that,” I said.

“It’s true all the same. Women have got a perilous logic which we never have, and some of the best of them don’t see the joke of life like the ordinary man. They can be far greater than men, for they can go straight to the heart of things. There never was a man so near the divine as Joan of Arc. But I think, too, they can be more entirely damnable than anything that ever was breeched, for they don’t stop still now and then and laugh at themselves ... There is no Superman. The poor old donkeys that fancy themselves in the part are either crackbrained professors who couldn’t rule a Sunday-school class, or bristling soldiers with pint-pot heads who imagine that the shooting of a Duc d’Enghien made a Napoleon. But there is a Superwoman, and her name’s Hilda von Einem.”

“It’s true, nonetheless. Women have a dangerous way of thinking that we don’t, and some of the best among them don’t see the humor in life like an average man does. They can be far superior to men because they get straight to the heart of matters. There has never been a man as close to the divine as Joan of Arc. But I also think they can be more completely wicked than anything that’s ever existed, since they don’t take a moment to laugh at themselves... There’s no Superman. The poor fools who believe they fit the role are either crazy professors who couldn’t manage a Sunday school class, or tough soldiers with small-minded views who think that shooting a Duc d’Enghien made a Napoleon. But there is a Superwoman, and her name is Hilda von Einem.”

“I thought our job was nearly over,” I groaned, “and now it looks as if it hadn’t well started. Bullivant said that all we had to do was to find out the truth.”

“I thought our job was almost done,” I groaned, “and now it looks like it hasn’t even begun. Bullivant said that all we had to do was figure out the truth.”

“Bullivant didn’t know. No man knows except you and me. I tell you, the woman has immense power. The Germans have trusted her with their trump card, and she’s going to play it for all she is worth. There’s no crime that will stand in her way. She has set the ball rolling, and if need be she’ll cut all her prophets’ throats and run the show herself ... I don’t know about your job, for honestly I can’t quite see what you and Blenkiron are going to do. But I’m very clear about my own duty. She’s let me into the business, and I’m going to stick to it in the hope that I’ll find a chance of wrecking it ... We’re moving eastward tomorrow—with a new prophet if the old one is dead.”

“Bullivant didn’t know. No one knows except you and me. I'm telling you, the woman has a lot of power. The Germans have trusted her with their secret weapon, and she’s going to use it to her full advantage. There’s no crime that will stop her. She’s set things in motion, and if needed, she’ll eliminate all her advisors and take charge herself... I’m not sure about your role, honestly, I can’t quite figure out what you and Blenkiron will do. But I’m really clear about my own responsibilities. She’s involved me in her plans, and I’m going to stay in it, hoping to find a way to sabotage it... We’re heading east tomorrow—with a new leader if the old one is dead.”

“Where are you going?” I asked.

“Where are you headed?” I asked.

“I don’t know. But I gather it’s a long journey, judging by the preparations. And it must be to a cold country, judging by the clothes provided.”

“I don’t know. But it seems like a long trip, based on the preparations. And it must be to a cold place, considering the clothes we have.”

“Well, wherever it is, we’re going with you. You haven’t heard the end of our yarn. Blenkiron and I have been moving in the best circles as skilled American engineers who are going to play Old Harry with the British on the Tigris. I’m a pal of Enver’s now, and he has offered me his protection. The lamented Rasta brought our passports for the journey to Mesopotamia tomorrow, but an hour ago your lady tore them up and put them in the fire. We are going with her, and she vouchsafed the information that it was towards the great hills.”

"Well, wherever it is, we’re going with you. You haven’t heard the end of our story. Blenkiron and I have been hanging out with the best crowd as skilled American engineers who are going to stir things up with the British on the Tigris. I’m now friends with Enver, and he has offered me his protection. The late Rasta brought our passports for the trip to Mesopotamia tomorrow, but an hour ago your lady tore them up and tossed them in the fire. We’re going with her, and she told us it’s towards the great hills."

Sandy whistled long and low. “I wonder what the deuce she wants with you? This thing is getting dashed complicated, Dick ... Where, more by token, is Blenkiron? He’s the fellow to know about high politics.”

Sandy whistled softly. “I wonder what the heck she wants with you? This is getting really complicated, Dick... By the way, where is Blenkiron? He’s the guy who knows about high politics.”

The missing Blenkiron, as Sandy spoke, entered the room with his slow, quiet step. I could see by his carriage that for once he had no dyspepsia, and by his eyes that he was excited.

The missing Blenkiron, as Sandy talked, walked into the room with his slow, quiet steps. I could tell by his posture that for once he didn't have any indigestion, and by his eyes that he was excited.

“Say, boys,” he said, “I’ve got something pretty considerable in the way of noos. There’s been big fighting on the Eastern border, and the Buzzards have taken a bad knock.”

“Hey, guys,” he said, “I’ve got some pretty big news. There’s been serious fighting on the Eastern border, and the Buzzards took a major hit.”

His hands were full of papers, from which he selected a map and spread it on the table.

His hands were full of papers, and he picked a map out and laid it on the table.

“They keep mum about this thing in the capital, but I’ve been piecing the story together these last days and I think I’ve got it straight. A fortnight ago old man Nicholas descended from his mountains and scuppered his enemies there—at Kuprikeui, where the main road eastwards crosses the Araxes. That was only the beginning of the stunt, for he pressed on on a broad front, and the gentleman called Kiamil, who commands in those parts, was not up to the job of holding him. The Buzzards were shepherded in from north and east and south, and now the Muscovite is sitting down outside the forts of Erzerum. I can tell you they’re pretty miserable about the situation in the highest quarters ... Enver is sweating blood to get fresh divisions to Erzerum from Gally-poly, but it’s a long road and it looks as if they would be too late for the fair ... You and I, Major, start for Mesopotamy tomorrow, and that’s about the meanest bit of bad luck that ever happened to John S. We’re missing the chance of seeing the goriest fight of this campaign.”

“They're keeping quiet about this in the capital, but I've been piecing the story together over the last few days, and I think I have it figured out. Two weeks ago, old man Nicholas came down from his mountains and took care of his enemies at Kuprikeui, where the main road east crosses the Araxes. That was just the start, as he continued advancing across a wide front, and the guy named Kiamil, who’s in charge in that area, wasn’t able to handle him. The Buzzards were brought in from the north, east, and south, and now the Russians are camped outside the forts of Erzerum. I can tell you they’re really worried about the situation up high... Enver is sweating to get fresh troops to Erzerum from Gallipoli, but it’s a long journey, and it seems like they’ll be too late for the action... You and I, Major, are heading for Mesopotamia tomorrow, and that’s about the worst luck that ever happened to John S. We’re missing the chance to witness the bloodiest battle of this campaign.”

I picked up the map and pocketed it. Maps were my business, and I had been looking for one.

I grabbed the map and put it in my pocket. Maps were my trade, and I had been searching for one.

“We’re not going to Mesopotamia,” I said. “Our orders have been cancelled.”

“We're not going to Mesopotamia,” I said. “Our orders have been canceled.”

“But I’ve just seen Enver, and he said he had sent round our passports.”

“But I just saw Enver, and he said he sent our passports around.”

“They’re in the fire,” I said. “The right ones will come along tomorrow morning.”

“They're in the fire,” I said. “The right ones will show up tomorrow morning.”

Sandy broke in, his eyes bright with excitement.

Sandy interrupted, his eyes shining with excitement.

“The great hills! ... We’re going to Erzerum ... Don’t you see that the Germans are playing their big card? They’re sending Greenmantle to the point of danger in the hope that his coming will rally the Turkish defence. Things are beginning to move, Dick, old man. No more kicking the heels for us. We’re going to be in it up to the neck, and Heaven help the best man ... I must be off now, for I’ve a lot to do. Au revoir. We meet some time in the hills.”

“The great hills! ... We’re heading to Erzerum ... Can’t you see that the Germans are making their big move? They’re sending Greenmantle right into danger, hoping that his arrival will inspire the Turkish defense. Things are starting to happen, Dick, my friend. No more sitting around for us. We’re going to be fully involved, and may the best man win ... I have to go now because I have a lot to take care of. See you later. We’ll meet up sometime in the hills.”

Blenkiron still looked puzzled, till I told him the story of that night’s doings. As he listened, all the satisfaction went out of his face, and that funny, childish air of bewilderment crept in.

Blenkiron still looked confused until I told him the story of that night’s events. As he listened, all the satisfaction disappeared from his face, and that odd, childlike expression of confusion returned.

“It’s not for me to complain, for it’s in the straight line of our dooty, but I reckon there’s going to be big trouble ahead of this caravan. It’s Kismet, and we’ve got to bow. But I won’t pretend that I’m not considerable scared at the prospect.”

“It’s not my place to complain since it’s part of our duty, but I think there’s going to be a lot of trouble ahead for this caravan. It’s fate, and we have to accept it. But I won’t pretend that I’m not pretty scared about what’s coming.”

“Oh, so am I,” I said. “The woman frightens me into fits. We’re up against it this time all right. All the same I’m glad we’re to be let into the real star metropolitan performance. I didn’t relish the idea of touring the provinces.”

“Oh, me too,” I said. “That woman scares me to death. We’re in real trouble this time, no doubt about it. Still, I’m glad we’re getting to experience the actual star performance in the city. I wasn’t looking forward to touring the smaller towns.”

“I guess that’s correct. But I could wish that the good God would see fit to take that lovely lady to Himself. She’s too much for a quiet man at my time of life. When she invites us to go in on the ground-floor I feel like taking the elevator to the roof-garden.”

“I guess that’s right. But I wish that the good Lord would decide to take that lovely lady to Himself. She’s too much for a calm guy at my age. When she asks us to join her on the ground floor, I feel like taking the elevator to the rooftop garden.”

CHAPTER XVI.
The Battered Caravanserai

Two days later, in the evening, we came to Angora, the first stage in our journey.

Two days later, in the evening, we arrived in Angora, the first stop on our journey.

The passports had arrived next morning, as Frau von Einem had promised, and with them a plan of our journey. More, one of the Companions, who spoke a little English, was detailed to accompany us—a wise precaution, for no one of us had a word of Turkish. These were the sum of our instructions. I heard nothing more of Sandy or Greenmantle or the lady. We were meant to travel in our own party.

The passports arrived the next morning, just as Frau von Einem had promised, along with a travel plan. Additionally, one of the Companions, who spoke a bit of English, was assigned to come with us—a smart move, since none of us spoke Turkish. This was all the information we received. I didn't hear anything more about Sandy, Greenmantle, or the lady. We were supposed to travel as our own group.

We had the railway to Angora, a very comfortable German Schlafwagen, tacked to the end of a troop-train. There wasn’t much to be seen of the country, for after we left the Bosporus we ran into scuds of snow, and except that we seemed to be climbing on to a big plateau I had no notion of the landscape. It was a marvel that we made such good time, for that line was congested beyond anything I have ever seen. The place was crawling with the Gallipoli troops, and every siding was packed with supply trucks. When we stopped—which we did on an average about once an hour—you could see vast camps on both sides of the line, and often we struck regiments on the march along the railway track. They looked a fine, hardy lot of ruffians, but many were deplorably ragged, and I didn’t think much of their boots. I wondered how they would do the five hundred miles of road to Erzerum.

We had a comfortable German sleeper train attached to the end of a troop train to Angora. There wasn't much to see of the countryside because after we left the Bosporus, we hit patches of snow. Besides the fact that it felt like we were climbing to a large plateau, I had no idea what the landscape looked like. It was impressive that we made such good time, considering that route was more congested than anything I've ever experienced. The place was packed with Gallipoli troops, and every siding was filled with supply trucks. When we stopped—which was roughly once an hour—you could see huge camps on both sides of the tracks, and often we passed regiments marching alongside the railway. They looked like a strong, tough group, but many were in pretty bad shape, and I didn't think much of their boots. I wondered how they would manage the five hundred miles of road to Erzerum.

Blenkiron played Patience, and Peter and I took a hand at picquet, but mostly we smoked and yarned. Getting away from that infernal city had cheered us up wonderfully. Now we were out on the open road, moving to the sound of the guns. At the worst, we should not perish like rats in a sewer. We would be all together, too, and that was a comfort. I think we felt the relief which a man who has been on a lonely outpost feels when he is brought back to his battalion. Besides, the thing had gone clean beyond our power to direct. It was no good planning and scheming, for none of us had a notion what the next step might be. We were fatalists now, believing in Kismet, and that is a comfortable faith.

Blenkiron played Patience, and Peter and I tried our hand at picquet, but mostly we just smoked and chatted. Getting away from that damned city had really lifted our spirits. Now we were on the open road, moving to the sound of the guns. At the very least, we wouldn't die like rats in a sewer. We would all be together, and that was reassuring. I think we felt the relief that a guy who's been stuck on a lonely outpost feels when he's brought back to his battalion. Besides, things had completely gone beyond our control. There was no point in planning and scheming since none of us had any idea what the next move would be. We had become fatalists, believing in fate, and that’s a comforting belief.

All but Blenkiron. The coming of Hilda von Einem into the business had put a very ugly complexion on it for him. It was curious to see how she affected the different members of our gang. Peter did not care a rush: man, woman, and hippogriff were the same to him; he met it all as calmly as if he were making plans to round up an old lion in a patch of bush, taking the facts as they came and working at them as if they were a sum in arithmetic. Sandy and I were impressed—it’s no good denying it: horribly impressed—but we were too interested to be scared, and we weren’t a bit fascinated. We hated her too much for that. But she fairly struck Blenkiron dumb. He said himself it was just like a rattlesnake and a bird.

All except Blenkiron. The arrival of Hilda von Einem into the business had made things really uncomfortable for him. It was interesting to see how she influenced the different members of our group. Peter didn’t care at all: man, woman, or even a mythical creature, it was all the same to him; he faced it all as calmly as if he were planning to trap an old lion in a thicket, taking the facts as they came and working with them like they were an arithmetic problem. Sandy and I were definitely impressed—there’s no denying it: seriously impressed—but we were too curious to be scared, and we weren’t the least bit captivated. We disliked her too much for that. But she absolutely left Blenkiron speechless. He said it was like a rattlesnake and a bird.

I made him talk about her, for if he sat and brooded he would get worse. It was a strange thing that this man, the most imperturbable and, I think, about the most courageous I have ever met, should be paralysed by a slim woman. There was no doubt about it. The thought of her made the future to him as black as a thunder cloud. It took the power out of his joints, and if she was going to be much around, it looked as if Blenkiron might be counted out.

I made him talk about her, because if he just sat there sulking, it would only get worse. It was odd that this guy, the calmest and, I believe, one of the bravest people I've ever known, could be so completely paralyzed by a slender woman. There was no denying it. Just thinking about her made his future look as bleak as a storm cloud. It drained the strength from his limbs, and if she was going to be around a lot, it seemed like Blenkiron might be out of the picture.

I suggested that he was in love with her, but this he vehemently denied.

I suggested that he was in love with her, but he strongly denied it.

“No, Sir; I haven’t got no sort of affection for the lady. My trouble is that she puts me out of countenance, and I can’t fit her in as an antagonist. I guess we Americans haven’t got the right poise for dealing with that kind of female. We’ve exalted our womenfolk into little tin gods, and at the same time left them out of the real business of life. Consequently, when we strike one playing the biggest kind of man’s game we can’t place her. We aren’t used to regarding them as anything except angels and children. I wish I had had you boys’ upbringing.”

“No, Sir; I don’t have any feelings for the lady. My problem is that she throws me off balance, and I can’t see her as an opponent. I guess us Americans just don’t have the right mindset for dealing with that kind of woman. We’ve elevated our women into little tin gods, while at the same time leaving them out of the real aspects of life. As a result, when we encounter someone playing a major man’s game, we don’t know how to handle it. We’re not accustomed to seeing them as anything other than angels and children. I wish I had been raised like you boys.”

Angora was like my notion of some place such as Amiens in the retreat from Mons. It was one mass of troops and transport—the neck of the bottle, for more arrived every hour, and the only outlet was the single eastern road. The town was pandemonium into which distracted German officers were trying to introduce some order. They didn’t worry much about us, for the heart of Anatolia wasn’t a likely hunting-ground for suspicious characters. We took our passport to the commandant, who visaed them readily, and told us he’d do his best to get us transport. We spent the night in a sort of hotel, where all four crowded into one little bedroom, and next morning I had my work cut out getting a motor-car. It took four hours, and the use of every great name in the Turkish Empire, to raise a dingy sort of Studebaker, and another two to get the petrol and spare tyres. As for a chauffeur, love or money couldn’t find him, and I was compelled to drive the thing myself.

Angora was like my idea of a place such as Amiens during the retreat from Mons. It was packed with troops and transport—the bottleneck, as more arrived every hour, and the only way out was the single eastern road. The town was chaos, with frantic German officers trying to establish some order. They didn’t worry much about us since the heart of Anatolia wasn’t a likely place for suspicious characters. We took our passports to the commandant, who stamped them without hesitation and told us he’d do his best to arrange transport for us. We spent the night in a kind of hotel, cramming all four of us into one tiny bedroom, and the next morning I had my hands full trying to get a car. It took four hours and the influence of every important name in the Turkish Empire to secure a rundown Studebaker, and another two to find petrol and spare tires. As for a chauffeur, neither love nor money could find one, so I had to drive it myself.

We left just after midday and swung out into bare bleak downs patched with scrubby woodlands. There was no snow here, but a wind was blowing from the east which searched the marrow. Presently we climbed up into hills, and the road, though not badly engineered to begin with, grew as rough as the channel of a stream. No wonder, for the traffic was like what one saw on that awful stretch between Cassel and Ypres, and there were no gangs of Belgian roadmakers to mend it up. We found troops by the thousands striding along with their impassive Turkish faces, ox convoys, mule convoys, wagons drawn by sturdy little Anatolian horses, and, coming in the contrary direction, many shabby Red Crescent cars and wagons of the wounded. We had to crawl for hours on end, till we got past a block. Just before the darkening we seemed to outstrip the first press, and had a clear run for about ten miles over a low pass in the hills. I began to get anxious about the car, for it was a poor one at the best, and the road was guaranteed sooner or later to knock even a Rolls-Royce into scrap iron.

We left just after noon and headed out into the bare, bleak hills dotted with scrubby woodlands. There was no snow here, but a cold wind was blowing from the east that chilled us to the bone. Soon, we climbed into the hills, and the road, which wasn’t bad at first, became as rough as a streambed. It’s no surprise, considering the traffic was like that terrible stretch between Cassel and Ypres, and there were no Belgian road crews to fix it. We encountered thousands of troops marching along with their stoic Turkish faces, along with ox and mule convoys, and wagons pulled by sturdy little Anatolian horses. Coming the other way were many worn-out Red Crescent vehicles and wagons filled with the wounded. We had to crawl for hours until we finally got past a jam. Just before dark, we seemed to pull ahead of the first wave and enjoyed a clear run for about ten miles over a low pass in the hills. I started to worry about the car since it wasn’t very reliable to begin with, and the road was bound to turn even a Rolls-Royce into scrap metal sooner or later.

All the same it was glorious to be out in the open again. Peter’s face wore a new look, and he sniffed the bitter air like a stag. There floated up from little wayside camps the odour of wood-smoke and dung-fires. That, and the curious acrid winter smell of great wind-blown spaces, will always come to my memory as I think of that day. Every hour brought me peace of mind and resolution. I felt as I had felt when the battalion first marched from Aire towards the firing-line, a kind of keying-up and wild expectation. I’m not used to cities, and lounging about Constantinople had slackened my fibre. Now, as the sharp wind buffeted us, I felt braced to any kind of risk. We were on the great road to the east and the border hills, and soon we should stand upon the farthest battle-front of the war. This was no commonplace intelligence job. That was all over, and we were going into the firing-zone, going to take part in what might be the downfall of our enemies. I didn’t reflect that we were among those enemies, and would probably share their downfall if we were not shot earlier. The truth is, I had got out of the way of regarding the thing as a struggle between armies and nations. I hardly bothered to think where my sympathies lay. First and foremost it was a contest between the four of us and a crazy woman, and this personal antagonism made the strife of armies only a dimly-felt background.

It was still amazing to be outside again. Peter had a new expression on his face, and he sniffed the cold air like a deer. From the small roadside camps came the smell of wood smoke and dung fires. That, along with the sharp winter scent of wide-open spaces, will always stick in my memory when I think of that day. Every hour brought me calm and determination. I felt the same way I did when the battalion first marched from Aire toward the front lines, filled with a kind of excitement and nervous energy. I’m not used to city life, and hanging around Constantinople had made me feel less sharp. Now, as the brisk wind hit us, I felt ready for any kind of challenge. We were on the major road to the east and the border hills, and soon we’d be at the front lines of the war. This wasn’t just another intelligence job. That was all done, and we were heading into the combat zone, about to take part in what could be the defeat of our enemies. I didn’t stop to think that we were among those enemies and would probably share their downfall if we weren’t shot first. The truth is, I had gotten out of the habit of viewing this as a battle between armies and nations. I hardly even thought about where my loyalties lay. Above all, it was a showdown between the four of us and a crazy woman, and this personal conflict made the armies’ strife feel like a distant background.

We slept that night like logs on the floor of a dirty khan, and started next morning in a powder of snow. We were getting very high up now, and it was perishing cold. The Companion—his name sounded like Hussin—had travelled the road before and told me what the places were, but they conveyed nothing to me. All morning we wriggled through a big lot of troops, a brigade at least, who swung along at a great pace with a fine free stride that I don’t think I have ever seen bettered. I must say I took a fancy to the Turkish fighting man: I remembered the testimonial our fellows gave him as a clean fighter, and I felt very bitter that Germany should have lugged him into this dirty business. They halted for a meal, and we stopped, too, and lunched off some brown bread and dried figs and a flask of very sour wine. I had a few words with one of the officers who spoke a little German. He told me they were marching straight for Russia, since there had been a great Turkish victory in the Caucasus. “We have beaten the French and the British, and now it is Russia’s turn,” he said stolidly, as if repeating a lesson. But he added that he was mortally sick of war.

We slept that night like logs on the floor of a dirty inn and started the next morning in a flurry of snow. We were getting really high up now, and it was freezing cold. The Companion—his name sounded like Hussin—had traveled this road before and told me what the places were, but they didn’t mean anything to me. All morning we wriggled through a large group of troops, at least a brigade, who marched along at a fast pace with a confident stride that I don’t think I’ve ever seen matched. I must say I took a liking to the Turkish soldiers: I remembered how our troops praised him as a clean fighter, and I felt really bitter that Germany dragged him into this messy situation. They paused for a meal, and we did too, eating some brown bread, dried figs, and a flask of very sour wine. I had a few words with one of the officers who spoke a little German. He told me they were marching straight for Russia, since there had been a significant Turkish victory in the Caucasus. “We’ve beaten the French and the British, and now it’s Russia’s turn,” he said flatly, as if repeating something he’d memorized. But he added that he was utterly fed up with war.

In the afternoon we cleared the column and had an open road for some hours. The land now had a tilt eastward, as if we were moving towards the valley of a great river. Soon we began to meet little parties of men coming from the east with a new look in their faces. The first lots of wounded had been the ordinary thing you see on every front, and there had been some pretence at organization. But these new lots were very weary and broken; they were often barefoot, and they seemed to have lost their transport and to be starving. You would find a group stretched by the roadside in the last stages of exhaustion. Then would come a party limping along, so tired that they never turned their heads to look at us. Almost all were wounded, some badly, and most were horribly thin. I wondered how my Turkish friend behind would explain the sight to his men, if he believed in a great victory. They had not the air of the backwash of a conquering army.

In the afternoon, we cleared the column and had an open road for a few hours. The land started to tilt eastward, as if we were heading towards the valley of a major river. Soon, we began to encounter small groups of men coming from the east with a new expression on their faces. The first batches of wounded had been the usual sight on every front, and there was some attempt at organization. But these new groups looked very tired and defeated; many were barefoot, and they seemed to have lost their means of transport and were starving. You would find a group sprawled by the roadside on the verge of collapse. Then another group would come limping along, too exhausted to even glance at us. Almost all were injured, some seriously, and most were painfully thin. I wondered how my Turkish friend behind would explain this scene to his men if he believed in a great victory. They didn’t have the look of the aftermath of a victorious army.

Even Blenkiron, who was no soldier, noticed it.

Even Blenkiron, who wasn’t a soldier, noticed it.

“These boys look mighty bad,” he observed. “We’ve got to hustle, Major, if we’re going to get seats for the last act.”

“These guys look really rough,” he said. “We need to hurry, Major, if we want to get seats for the last act.”

That was my own feeling. The sight made me mad to get on faster, for I saw that big things were happening in the East. I had reckoned that four days would take us from Angora to Erzerum, but here was the second nearly over and we were not yet a third of the way. I pressed on recklessly, and that hurry was our undoing.

That was how I felt. Seeing that made me eager to move faster because I could tell that big things were happening in the East. I thought it would take us four days to get from Angora to Erzerum, but here we were, nearing the end of the second day and we weren’t even a third of the way there. I pushed ahead without thinking, and that rush was our downfall.

I have said that the Studebaker was a rotten old car. Its steering-gear was pretty dicky, and the bad surface and continual hairpin bends of the road didn’t improve it. Soon we came into snow lying fairly deep, frozen hard and rutted by the big transport-wagons. We bumped and bounced horribly, and were shaken about like peas in a bladder. I began to be acutely anxious about the old boneshaker, the more as we seemed a long way short of the village I had proposed to spend the night in. Twilight was falling and we were still in an unfeatured waste, crossing the shallow glen of a stream. There was a bridge at the bottom of a slope—a bridge of logs and earth which had apparently been freshly strengthened for heavy traffic. As we approached it at a good pace the car ceased to answer to the wheel.

I’ve said that the Studebaker was a terrible old car. Its steering was pretty unreliable, and the poor surface and constant sharp turns in the road didn’t help. Soon we hit some deep, frozen snow, rutted by big transport wagons. We bumped and bounced like crazy, getting jostled around like peas in a bag. I started to worry seriously about the old clunker, especially since we seemed far from the village where I planned to spend the night. Twilight was setting in, and we were still in a featureless wasteland, crossing a shallow glen by a stream. There was a bridge at the bottom of a slope—a bridge made of logs and earth that seemed to have been recently reinforced for heavy traffic. As we approached it at a good speed, the car stopped responding to the wheel.

I struggled desperately to keep it straight, but it swerved to the left and we plunged over a bank into a marshy hollow. There was a sickening bump as we struck the lower ground, and the whole party were shot out into the frozen slush. I don’t yet know how I escaped, for the car turned over and by rights I should have had my back broken. But no one was hurt. Peter was laughing, and Blenkiron, after shaking the snow out of his hair, joined him. For myself I was feverishly examining the machine. It was about as ugly as it could be, for the front axle was broken.

I fought hard to keep it steady, but it swerved left and we went over a bank into a muddy dip. There was a jarring thud as we hit the lower ground, and everyone was thrown out into the icy slush. I still don't know how I got free, because the car flipped over and I should have ended up with a broken back. But everyone was okay. Peter was laughing, and Blenkiron, after shaking the snow out of his hair, joined in. Meanwhile, I was anxiously checking the vehicle. It was as ugly as it could get because the front axle was broken.

Here was a piece of hopeless bad luck. We were stuck in the middle of Asia Minor with no means of conveyance, for to get a new axle there was as likely as to find snowballs on the Congo. It was all but dark and there was no time to lose. I got out the petrol tins and spare tyres and cached them among some rocks on the hillside. Then we collected our scanty baggage from the derelict Studebaker. Our only hope was Hussin. He had got to find us some lodging for the night, and next day we would have a try for horses or a lift in some passing wagon. I had no hope of another car. Every automobile in Anatolia would now be at a premium.

This was just a stroke of bad luck. We were stranded in the middle of Asia Minor with no way to get around, since finding a new axle there was as unlikely as finding snowballs in the Congo. It was almost dark, and we didn't have much time. I took out the gas cans and spare tires and hid them among some rocks on the hillside. Then we gathered our few belongings from the abandoned Studebaker. Our only chance was Hussin. He had to find us a place to stay for the night, and the next day we would try to get horses or catch a ride in some passing wagon. I didn't expect to find another car. Every vehicle in Anatolia would be in high demand now.

It was so disgusting a mishap that we all took it quietly. It was too bad to be helped by hard swearing. Hussin and Peter set off on different sides of the road to prospect for a house, and Blenkiron and I sheltered under the nearest rock and smoked savagely.

It was such a disgusting accident that we all kept quiet about it. It was too bad to fix with cursing. Hussin and Peter went off on opposite sides of the road to look for a house, while Blenkiron and I sheltered under the nearest rock and smoked angrily.

Hussin was the first to strike oil. He came back in twenty minutes with news of some kind of dwelling a couple of miles up the stream. He went off to collect Peter, and, humping our baggage, Blenkiron and I plodded up the waterside. Darkness had fallen thick by this time, and we took some bad tosses among the bogs. When Hussin and Peter overtook us they found a better road, and presently we saw a light twinkle in the hollow ahead.

Hussin was the first to hit oil. He returned in twenty minutes with news of some kind of dwelling a couple of miles upstream. He went to get Peter, and while Blenkiron and I carried our bags, we trudged along the water's edge. It was pretty dark by then, and we stumbled around in the bogs. When Hussin and Peter caught up with us, they found a better path, and soon we spotted a light flickering in the hollow ahead.

It proved to be a wretched tumble-down farm in a grove of poplars—a foul-smelling, muddy yard, a two-roomed hovel of a house, and a barn which was tolerably dry and which we selected for our sleeping-place. The owner was a broken old fellow whose sons were all at the war, and he received us with the profound calm of one who expects nothing but unpleasantness from life.

It turned out to be a terrible, rundown farm in a grove of poplar trees—a stinky, muddy yard, a tiny two-room house, and a barn that was somewhat dry, which we chose for our sleeping quarters. The owner was an old man who seemed defeated, with all his sons at war, and he welcomed us with the deep calm of someone who expects nothing but misery from life.

By this time we had recovered our tempers, and I was trying hard to put my new Kismet philosophy into practice. I reckoned that if risks were foreordained, so were difficulties, and both must be taken as part of the day’s work. With the remains of our provisions and some curdled milk we satisfied our hunger and curled ourselves up among the pease straw of the barn. Blenkiron announced with a happy sigh that he had now been for two days quit of his dyspepsia.

By this time, we had calmed down, and I was really trying to put my new Kismet philosophy into action. I figured that if risks were destined to happen, then so were difficulties, and we had to accept both as part of the daily grind. Using what was left of our supplies and some sour milk, we filled our stomachs and nestled ourselves into the pea straw in the barn. Blenkiron happily announced with a contented sigh that he had now been free of his upset stomach for two days.

That night, I remember, I had a queer dream. I seemed to be in a wild place among mountains, and I was being hunted, though who was after me I couldn’t tell. I remember sweating with fright, for I seemed to be quite alone and the terror that was pursuing me was more than human. The place was horribly quiet and still, and there was deep snow lying everywhere, so that each step I took was heavy as lead. A very ordinary sort of nightmare, you will say. Yes, but there was one strange feature in this one. The night was pitch dark, but ahead of me in the throat of the pass there was one patch of light, and it showed a rum little hill with a rocky top: what we call in South Africa a castrol or saucepan. I had a notion that if I could get to that castrol I should be safe, and I panted through the drifts towards it with the avenger of blood at my heels. I woke, gasping, to find the winter morning struggling through the cracked rafters, and to hear Blenkiron say cheerily that his duodenum had behaved all night like a gentleman. I lay still for a bit trying to fix the dream, but it all dissolved into haze except the picture of the little hill, which was quite clear in every detail. I told myself it was a reminiscence of the veld, some spot down in the Wakkerstroom country, though for the life of me I couldn’t place it.

That night, I remember, I had a weird dream. I felt like I was in a wild place among mountains, being chased, though I couldn’t tell who was after me. I remember sweating in fear, feeling completely alone, and the terror pursuing me felt more than human. The place was eerily quiet and still, with deep snow everywhere, making each step I took feel heavy. You might call it a typical nightmare. Yes, but there was one strange detail in this one. The night was pitch dark, but up ahead in the pass, there was one patch of light illuminating a funny little hill with a rocky top: what we call in South Africa a castrol or saucepan. I had this idea that if I could reach that castrol, I would be safe, so I pushed through the snow towards it with the pursuer at my back. I woke up gasping, finding the winter morning struggling through the cracked rafters, and I heard Blenkiron cheerfully say that his gut had behaved all night like a gentleman. I lay still for a moment trying to hold onto the dream, but it all faded into a blur except for the image of the little hill, which was clear in every detail. I told myself it was a memory of the veld, some spot in the Wakkerstroom area, though I couldn’t for the life of me place it.

I pass over the next three days, for they were one uninterrupted series of heart-breaks. Hussin and Peter scoured the country for horses, Blenkiron sat in the barn and played Patience, while I haunted the roadside near the bridge in the hope of picking up some kind of conveyance. My task was perfectly futile. The columns passed, casting wondering eyes on the wrecked car among the frozen rushes, but they could offer no help. My friend the Turkish officer promised to wire to Angora from some place or other for a fresh car, but, remembering the state of affairs at Angora, I had no hope from that quarter. Cars passed, plenty of them, packed with staff-officers, Turkish and German, but they were in far too big a hurry even to stop and speak. The only conclusion I reached from my roadside vigil was that things were getting very warm in the neighbourhood of Erzerum. Everybody on that road seemed to be in mad haste either to get there or to get away.

I skip over the next three days because they were nothing but heartbreaks. Hussin and Peter searched the countryside for horses, Blenkiron stayed in the barn playing Solitaire, while I lingered by the roadside near the bridge, hoping to find some kind of ride. My efforts were completely pointless. The columns passed by, casting curious glances at the wrecked car among the frozen reeds, but they couldn't offer any help. My friend, the Turkish officer, promised to send a wire to Angora from somewhere for a new car, but, considering the situation in Angora, I had no expectations from that direction. Plenty of cars drove by, filled with staff officers, both Turkish and German, but they were in such a rush that they didn't even stop to talk. The only conclusion I reached from my time waiting on the roadside was that things were getting tense near Erzerum. Everyone on that road seemed to be in a frantic hurry, either to get there or to get away.

Hussin was the best chance, for, as I have said, the Companions had a very special and peculiar graft throughout the Turkish Empire. But the first day he came back empty-handed. All the horses had been commandeered for the war, he said; and though he was certain that some had been kept back and hidden away, he could not get on their track. The second day he returned with two—miserable screws and deplorably short in the wind from a diet of beans. There was no decent corn or hay left in the countryside. The third day he picked up a nice little Arab stallion: in poor condition, it is true, but perfectly sound. For these beasts we paid good money, for Blenkiron was well supplied and we had no time to spare for the interminable Oriental bargaining.

Hussin was our best option because, as I mentioned, the Companions had a unique network throughout the Turkish Empire. However, he came back empty-handed on the first day. He said all the horses had been taken for the war, and while he was sure some had been hidden away, he couldn’t find them. On the second day, he returned with two—awkward, worn-out horses that were severely out of shape from a diet of beans. There wasn't any decent corn or hay left in the countryside. On the third day, he managed to find a nice little Arab stallion: it was in poor condition, true, but otherwise healthy. We paid a good price for these animals because Blenkiron had plenty of money, and we didn’t have time to waste on endless bargaining typical of the East.

Hussin said he had cleaned up the countryside, and I believed him. I dared not delay another day, even though it meant leaving him behind. But he had no notion of doing anything of the kind. He was a good runner, he said, and could keep up with such horses as ours for ever. If this was the manner of our progress, I reckoned we would be weeks in getting to Erzerum.

Hussin said he had tidied up the countryside, and I believed him. I couldn't afford to wait another day, even if it meant leaving him behind. But he had no intention of doing that. He claimed he was a good runner and could keep up with our horses forever. If this was how we were going to make progress, I figured it would take us weeks to reach Erzerum.

We started at dawn on the morning of the fourth day, after the old farmer had blessed us and sold us some stale rye-bread. Blenkiron bestrode the Arab, being the heaviest, and Peter and I had the screws. My worst forebodings were soon realized, and Hussin, loping along at my side, had an easy job to keep up with us. We were about as slow as an ox-wagon. The brutes were unshod, and with the rough roads I saw that their feet would very soon go to pieces. We jogged along like a tinker’s caravan, about five miles to the hour, as feckless a party as ever disgraced a highroad.

We set off at dawn on the fourth day, after the old farmer had blessed us and sold us some stale rye bread. Blenkiron rode the Arab since he was the heaviest, and Peter and I had the screws. My worst fears quickly became reality, and Hussin, jogging alongside me, found it easy to keep up with us. We were as slow as an ox cart. The horses were unshod, and with the rough roads ahead, I knew their hooves would soon be damaged. We moved along like a tinker’s caravan, traveling about five miles an hour, as useless a group as ever disgraced a highway.

The weather was now a drizzle, which increased my depression. Cars passed us and disappeared in the mist, going at thirty miles an hour to mock our slowness. None of us spoke, for the futility of the business clogged our spirits. I bit hard on my lip to curb my restlessness, and I think I would have sold my soul there and then for anything that could move fast. I don’t know any sorer trial than to be mad for speed and have to crawl at a snail’s pace. I was getting ripe for any kind of desperate venture.

The weather had turned into a light drizzle, which only deepened my sadness. Cars zoomed past us and vanished into the mist, driving at thirty miles an hour as if to mock our slow pace. None of us said a word, as the futility of the situation weighed heavily on our spirits. I bit down hard on my lip to keep my restlessness in check, and I think I would have given anything to be able to move quickly. There’s no worse torture than craving speed while having to creep along like a snail. I was ready for any sort of desperate venture.

About midday we descended on a wide plain full of the marks of rich cultivation. Villages became frequent, and the land was studded with olive groves and scarred with water furrows. From what I remembered of the map I judged that we were coming to that champagne country near Siwas, which is the granary of Turkey, and the home of the true Osmanli stock.

About midday we arrived at a large plain filled with signs of rich farming. Villages appeared more often, and the land was dotted with olive groves and marked with irrigation channels. From what I recalled from the map, I figured we were approaching the champagne region near Siwas, which is the breadbasket of Turkey and the home of the true Osmanli lineage.

Then at the turning of the road we came to the caravanserai.

Then, at the bend in the road, we arrived at the inn.

It was a dingy, battered place, with the pink plaster falling in patches from its walls. There was a courtyard abutting on the road, and a flat-topped house with a big hole in its side. It was a long way from any battle-ground, and I guessed that some explosion had wrought the damage. Behind it, a few hundred yards off, a detachment of cavalry were encamped beside a stream, with their horses tied up in long lines of pickets.

It was a rundown, shabby place, with pink plaster peeling off the walls in patches. There was a courtyard next to the road and a flat-topped house with a large hole in its side. It was far from any battlefield, and I figured that some explosion had caused the damage. Behind it, a few hundred yards away, a group of cavalry was set up beside a stream, with their horses tied up in long lines.

And by the roadside, quite alone and deserted, stood a large new motor-car.

And by the side of the road, all alone and abandoned, stood a large new car.

In all the road before and behind there was no man to be seen except the troops by the stream. The owners, whoever they were, must be inside the caravanserai.

In all the road ahead and behind, there wasn't a single person in sight except for the soldiers by the stream. The owners, whoever they were, must be inside the inn.

I have said I was in the mood for some desperate deed, and lo and behold providence had given me the chance! I coveted that car as I have never coveted anything on earth. At the moment all my plans had narrowed down to a feverish passion to get to the battle-field. We had to find Greenmantle at Erzerum, and once there we should have Hilda von Einem’s protection. It was a time of war, and a front of brass was the surest safety. But, indeed, I could not figure out any plan worth speaking of. I saw only one thing—a fast car which might be ours.

I had mentioned that I was feeling like doing something desperate, and suddenly, fate gave me the opportunity! I wanted that car more than I've ever wanted anything in my life. Right then, all my thoughts were consumed with a burning desire to reach the battlefield. We needed to find Greenmantle in Erzerum, and once we got there, we would have Hilda von Einem’s protection. It was wartime, and being on the front line was the safest place to be. But honestly, I couldn't come up with any solid plan. All I could see was that fast car that might be ours.

I said a word to the others, and we dismounted and tethered our horses at the near end of the courtyard. I heard the low hum of voices from the cavalrymen by the stream, but they were three hundred yards off and could not see us. Peter was sent forward to scout in the courtyard. In the building itself there was but one window looking on the road, and that was in the upper floor.

I said a word to the others, and we got off our horses and tied them up at the near end of the courtyard. I heard the low murmur of voices from the cavalrymen by the stream, but they were three hundred yards away and couldn't see us. Peter was sent ahead to scout in the courtyard. In the building itself, there was only one window facing the road, and that was on the upper floor.

Meantime I crawled along beside the wall to where the car stood, and had a look at it. It was a splendid six-cylinder affair, brand new, with the tyres little worn. There were seven tins of petrol stacked behind as well as spare tyres, and, looking in, I saw map-cases and field-glasses strewn on the seats as if the owners had only got out for a minute to stretch their legs.

Meantime, I crawled along the wall to where the car was parked and took a look at it. It was a fantastic six-cylinder model, brand new, with hardly any wear on the tires. There were seven cans of gas stacked in the back along with spare tires, and when I peered inside, I saw map cases and binoculars scattered across the seats as if the owners had just stepped out for a quick break.

Peter came back and reported that the courtyard was empty.

Peter returned and said that the courtyard was empty.

“There are men in the upper room,” he said; “more than one, for I heard their voices. They are moving about restlessly, and may soon be coming out.”

“There are guys in the upper room,” he said; “more than one, because I heard their voices. They’re moving around restlessly and might be coming out soon.”

I reckoned that there was no time to be lost, so I told the others to slip down the road fifty yards beyond the caravanserai and be ready to climb in as I passed. I had to start the infernal thing, and there might be shooting.

I figured there was no time to waste, so I told the others to move down the road fifty yards past the caravan and be ready to jump in as I went by. I had to get that damn thing started, and there might be gunfire.

I waited by the car till I saw them reach the right distance. I could hear voices from the second floor of the house and footsteps moving up and down. I was in a fever of anxiety, for any moment a man might come to the window. Then I flung myself on the starting handle and worked like a demon.

I waited by the car until I saw them get close enough. I could hear voices from the second floor of the house and footsteps going up and down. I was extremely anxious, as any moment a man might come to the window. Then I grabbed the starting handle and worked like a madman.

The cold made the job difficult, and my heart was in my mouth, for the noise in that quiet place must have woke the dead. Then, by the mercy of Heaven, the engine started, and I sprang to the driving seat, released the clutch, and opened the throttle. The great car shot forward, and I seemed to hear behind me shrill voices. A pistol bullet bored through my hat, and another buried itself in a cushion beside me.

The cold made the job tough, and my heart was racing, since the noise in that quiet spot must have woken the dead. Then, by some miracle, the engine started, and I jumped into the driver's seat, released the clutch, and hit the gas. The huge car took off, and I could almost hear piercing voices behind me. A bullet went through my hat, and another lodged itself in a cushion next to me.

In a second I was clear of the place and the rest of the party were embarking. Blenkiron got on the step and rolled himself like a sack of coals into the tonneau. Peter nipped up beside me, and Hussin scrambled in from the back over the folds of the hood. We had our baggage in our pockets and had nothing to carry.

In a second, I was out of there and the rest of the group was getting on. Blenkiron stepped up and tumbled into the back seat like a sack of coal. Peter hopped up next to me, and Hussin climbed in from the back over the folds of the roof. We had our things in our pockets and didn’t have anything to carry.

Bullets dropped round us, but did no harm. Then I heard a report at my ear, and out of a corner of my eye saw Peter lower his pistol. Presently we were out of range, and, looking back, I saw three men gesticulating in the middle of the road.

Bullets dropped around us, but didn't hit anything. Then I heard a shot right by my ear, and out of the corner of my eye, I saw Peter lower his gun. Before long, we were out of range, and looking back, I saw three men waving their arms in the middle of the road.

“May the devil fly away with this pistol,” said Peter ruefully. “I never could make good shooting with a little gun. Had I had my rifle...”

“May the devil take this pistol,” Peter said with a sigh. “I’ve never been able to shoot well with a small gun. If I had my rifle...”

“What did you shoot for?” I asked in amazement. “We’ve got the fellows’ car, and we don’t want to do them any harm.”

“What were you aiming for?” I asked in surprise. “We have the guys' car, and we don’t want to hurt them.”

“It would have saved trouble had I had my rifle,” said Peter, quietly. “The little man you call Rasta was there, and he knew you. I heard him cry your name. He is an angry little man, and I observe that on this road there is a telegraph.”

“It would have saved us a lot of trouble if I had my rifle,” Peter said quietly. “The little guy you call Rasta was there, and he recognized you. I heard him shout your name. He’s an angry little man, and I noticed that there’s a telegraph station on this road.”

CHAPTER XVII.
Trouble by The Waters of Babylon

From that moment I date the beginning of my madness. Suddenly I forgot all cares and difficulties of the present and future and became foolishly light-hearted. We were rushing towards the great battle where men were busy at my proper trade. I realized how much I had loathed the lonely days in Germany, and still more the dawdling week in Constantinople. Now I was clear of it all, and bound for the clash of armies. It didn’t trouble me that we were on the wrong side of the battle line. I had a sort of instinct that the darker and wilder things grew the better chance for us.

From that moment, I mark the start of my insanity. Suddenly, I forgot all the worries and challenges of the present and future and became recklessly carefree. We were racing towards the big battle where men were engaged in my true profession. I realized how much I had hated the lonely days in Germany, and even more the wasting week in Constantinople. Now I was free from it all, heading for the clash of armies. It didn’t bother me that we were on the wrong side of the battle line. I had a feeling that the darker and crazier things got, the better our chances were.

“Seems to me,” said Blenkiron, bending over me, “that this joy-ride is going to come to an untimely end pretty soon. Peter’s right. That young man will set the telegraph going, and we’ll be held up at the next township.”

“Seems to me,” said Blenkiron, leaning over me, “that this joyride is about to come to a quick end pretty soon. Peter’s right. That young guy is going to start sending telegrams, and we’ll be stuck at the next town.”

“He’s got to get to a telegraph office first,” I answered. “That’s where we have the pull on him. He’s welcome to the screws we left behind, and if he finds an operator before the evening I’m the worst kind of a Dutchman. I’m going to break all the rules and bucket this car for what she’s worth. Don’t you see that the nearer we get to Erzerum the safer we are?”

“He has to get to a telegraph office first,” I replied. “That’s where we have the leverage on him. He’s free to deal with the mess we left behind, and if he finds an operator before the evening, I’ll be the biggest fool. I’m going to go against all the rules and cash in this car for what it's worth. Don’t you see that the closer we get to Erzerum, the safer we are?”

“I don’t follow,” he said slowly. “At Erzerum I reckon they’ll be waiting for us with the handcuffs. Why in thunder couldn’t those hairy ragamuffins keep the little cuss safe? Your record’s a bit too precipitous, Major, for the most innocent-minded military boss.”

“I don’t get it,” he said slowly. “I bet they’ll be waiting for us with handcuffs at Erzerum. Why on earth couldn’t those scruffy guys keep the little kid safe? Your track record's a bit too sketchy, Major, for the most naive military leader.”

“Do you remember what you said about the Germans being open to bluff? Well, I’m going to put up the steepest sort of bluff. Of course they’ll stop us. Rasta will do his damnedest. But remember that he and his friends are not very popular with the Germans, and Madame von Einem is. We’re her proteges, and the bigger the German swell I get before the safer I’ll feel. We’ve got our passports and our orders, and he’ll be a bold man that will stop us once we get into the German zone. Therefore I’m going to hurry as fast as God will let me.”

“Do you remember what you said about the Germans being easy to bluff? Well, I'm going to put on the biggest bluff possible. Of course, they'll try to stop us. Rasta will give it his all. But keep in mind that he and his crew aren’t very liked by the Germans, while Madame von Einem is. We're her projects, and the more important German I can get in front of, the safer I'll feel. We have our passports and our orders, and it'll take a brave person to stop us once we’re in the German zone. So, I'm going to hurry as fast as I can."

It was a ride that deserved to have an epic written about it. The car was good, and I handled her well, though I say it who shouldn’t. The road in that big central plain was fair, and often I knocked fifty miles an hour out of her. We passed troops by a circuit over the veld, where we took some awful risks, and once we skidded by some transport with our off wheels almost over the lip of a ravine. We went through the narrow streets of Siwas like a fire-engine, while I shouted out in German that we carried despatches for headquarters. We shot out of drizzling rain into brief spells of winter sunshine, and then into a snow blizzard which all but whipped the skin from our faces. And always before us the long road unrolled, with somewhere at the end of it two armies clinched in a death-grapple.

It was a ride that deserved an epic written about it. The car was great, and I handled it well, though I shouldn’t really say that. The road across that vast central plain was decent, and I often pushed her to fifty miles an hour. We passed troops by taking a detour over the open fields, where we took some crazy risks, and once we skidded past some transport with our off wheels nearly hanging over the edge of a ravine. We raced through the narrow streets of Siwas like a fire truck, while I yelled in German that we were delivering dispatches to headquarters. We burst out of drizzling rain into brief moments of winter sunshine, and then into a snowstorm that nearly whipped the skin off our faces. And always ahead of us, the long road stretched out, leading to two armies locked in a deadly struggle.

That night we looked for no lodging. We ate a sort of meal in the car with the hood up, and felt our way on in the darkness, for the headlights were in perfect order. Then we turned off the road for four hours’ sleep, and I had a go at the map. Before dawn we started again, and came over a pass into the vale of a big river. The winter dawn showed its gleaming stretches, ice-bound among the sprinkled meadows. I called to Blenkiron:

That night, we didn’t look for a place to stay. We had a kind of meal in the car with the hood up and navigated through the darkness since the headlights were working perfectly. Then we pulled off the road to get four hours of sleep, and I took a shot at the map. Before dawn, we started again and crossed a pass into the valley of a large river. The winter dawn revealed its shining stretches, frozen among the scattered meadows. I called to Blenkiron:

“I believe that river is the Euphrates,” I said.

“I think that river is the Euphrates,” I said.

“So,” he said, acutely interested. “Then that’s the waters of Babylon. Great snakes, that I should have lived to see the fields where King Nebuchadnezzar grazed! Do you know the name of that big hill, Major?”

“So,” he said, really intrigued. “So that’s the waters of Babylon. Wow, I can’t believe I get to see the fields where King Nebuchadnezzar grazed! Do you know the name of that big hill, Major?”

“Ararat, as like as not,” I cried, and he believed me.

“Ararat, most likely,” I exclaimed, and he believed me.

We were among the hills now, great, rocky, black slopes, and, seen through side glens, a hinterland of snowy peaks. I remember I kept looking for the castrol I had seen in my dream. The thing had never left off haunting me, and I was pretty clear now that it did not belong to my South African memories. I am not a superstitious man, but the way that little kranz clung to my mind made me think it was a warning sent by Providence. I was pretty certain that when I clapped eyes on it I would be in for bad trouble.

We were now among the hills, massive, rocky, dark slopes, and, seen through side valleys, a background of snowy peaks. I remember I kept searching for the castrol I had seen in my dream. That image never stopped haunting me, and I was pretty sure it didn’t come from my South African memories. I’m not a superstitious person, but the way that little kranz stuck in my mind made me think it was a warning from Providence. I was pretty certain that when I finally saw it, I’d be in big trouble.

All morning we travelled up that broad vale, and just before noon it spread out wider, the road dipped to the water’s edge, and I saw before me the white roofs of a town. The snow was deep now, and lay down to the riverside, but the sky had cleared, and against a space of blue heaven some peaks to the south rose glittering like jewels. The arches of a bridge, spanning two forks of the stream, showed in front, and as I slowed down at the bend a sentry’s challenge rang out from a block-house. We had reached the fortress of Erzingjan, the headquarters of a Turkish corps and the gate of Armenia.

All morning we traveled up that wide valley, and just before noon it opened up further, the road dipped down to the water’s edge, and I saw the white roofs of a town ahead. The snow was deep now and extended all the way to the riverside, but the sky had cleared, and against a stretch of blue sky, some peaks to the south glimmered like jewels. The arches of a bridge spanning two forks of the stream appeared in front, and as I slowed down at the bend, a sentry’s challenge echoed from a blockhouse. We had arrived at the fortress of Erzingjan, the headquarters of a Turkish corps and the gateway to Armenia.

I showed the man our passports, but he did not salute and let us move on. He called another fellow from the guardhouse, who motioned us to keep pace with him as he stumped down a side lane. At the other end was a big barracks with sentries outside. The man spoke to us in Turkish, which Hussin interpreted. There was somebody in that barracks who wanted badly to see us.

I showed the man our passports, but he didn’t acknowledge us and let us go. He called over another guy from the guardhouse, who signaled for us to follow him down a side street. At the end was a large barracks with guards outside. The man spoke to us in Turkish, which Hussin translated. Someone in that barracks really wanted to see us.

“By the waters of Babylon we sat down and wept,” quoted Blenkiron softly. “I fear, Major, we’ll soon be remembering Zion.”

“By the waters of Babylon we sat down and wept,” Blenkiron quoted softly. “I’m afraid, Major, we’ll soon be remembering Zion.”

I tried to persuade myself that this was merely the red tape of a frontier fortress, but I had an instinct that difficulties were in store for us. If Rasta had started wiring I was prepared to put up the brazenest bluff, for we were still eighty miles from Erzerum, and at all costs we were going to be landed there before night.

I tried to convince myself that this was just the bureaucracy of a remote military outpost, but I sensed that challenges were ahead for us. If Rasta had begun sending messages, I was ready to put on the boldest act, because we were still eighty miles from Erzerum, and we were determined to get there before nightfall.

A fussy staff-officer met us at the door. At the sight of us he cried to a friend to come and look.

A picky staff officer met us at the door. When he saw us, he yelled to a friend to come and check it out.

“Here are the birds safe. A fat man and two lean ones and a savage who looks like a Kurd. Call the guard and march them off. There’s no doubt about their identity.”

“Here are the birds safe. A big guy and two skinny ones and a savage who looks like a Kurd. Call the guard and take them away. There’s no doubt about who they are.”

“Pardon me, Sir,” I said, “but we have no time to spare and we’d like to be in Erzerum before the dark. I would beg you to get through any formalities as soon as possible. This man,” and I pointed to the sentry, “has our passports.”

“Excuse me, Sir,” I said, “but we don’t have time to waste and we’d like to reach Erzerum before nightfall. I kindly ask you to complete any formalities as quickly as you can. This man,” and I pointed to the guard, “has our passports.”

“Compose yourself,” he said impudently; “you’re not going on just yet, and when you do it won’t be in a stolen car.” He took the passports and fingered them casually. Then something he saw there made him cock his eyebrows.

“Calm down,” he said cheekily; “you’re not leaving just yet, and when you do, it won’t be in a stolen car.” He picked up the passports and casually handled them. Then something he noticed made him raise his eyebrows.

“Where did you steal these?” he asked, but with less assurance in his tone.

“Where did you get these?” he asked, but with less certainty in his tone.

I spoke very gently. “You seem to be the victim of a mistake, sir. These are our papers. We are under orders to report ourselves at Erzerum without an hour’s delay. Whoever hinders us will have to answer to General von Liman. We will be obliged if you will conduct us at once to the Governor.”

I spoke softly. “It looks like you’ve made a mistake, sir. These are our papers. We’ve been ordered to report to Erzerum immediately. Anyone who gets in our way will have to answer to General von Liman. We would appreciate it if you could take us to the Governor right away.”

“You can’t see General Posselt,” he said; “this is my business. I have a wire from Siwas that four men stole a car belonging to one of Enver Damad’s staff. It describes you all, and says that two of you are notorious spies wanted by the Imperial Government. What have you to say to that?”

“You can’t see General Posselt,” he said; “this is my job. I have a message from Siwas that four men stole a car belonging to one of Enver Damad’s team. It describes all of you and says that two of you are notorious spies wanted by the Imperial Government. What do you have to say about that?”

“Only that it is rubbish. My good Sir, you have seen our passes. Our errand is not to be cried on the housetops, but five minutes with General Posselt will make things clear. You will be exceedingly sorry for it if you delay another minute.”

“Just that it's nonsense. My good sir, you have seen our passes. Our purpose isn't to shout about it from the rooftops, but a five-minute meeting with General Posselt will clarify things. You'll be very sorry if you wait another minute.”

He was impressed in spite of himself, and after pulling his moustache turned on his heel and left us. Presently he came back and said very gruffly that the Governor would see us. We followed him along a corridor into a big room looking out on the river, where an oldish fellow sat in an arm-chair by a stove, writing letters with a fountain pen.

He was surprisingly impressed, and after stroking his moustache, he turned on his heel and walked away. Soon, he returned and said rather gruffly that the Governor would see us. We followed him down a hallway into a large room overlooking the river, where an older guy sat in an armchair by a stove, writing letters with a fountain pen.

This was Posselt, who had been Governor of Erzerum till he fell sick and Ahmed Fevzi took his place. He had a peevish mouth and big blue pouches below his eyes. He was supposed to be a good engineer and to have made Erzerum impregnable, but the look on his face gave me the impression that his reputation at the moment was a bit unstable.

This was Posselt, who had been the Governor of Erzerum until he got sick and Ahmed Fevzi took over. He had a grumpy mouth and large blue bags under his eyes. He was supposed to be a good engineer and claimed to have made Erzerum unbeatable, but the expression on his face made me think that his reputation was a little shaky at the moment.

The staff-officer spoke to him in an undertone.

The staff officer spoke to him quietly.

“Yes, yes, I know,” he said testily. “Are these the men? They look a pretty lot of scoundrels. What’s that you say? They deny it. But they’ve got the car. They can’t deny that. Here, you,” and he fixed on Blenkiron, “who the devil are you?”

“Yes, yes, I get it,” he said irritably. “Are these the guys? They look like a bunch of crooks. What’s that? They’re denying it? But they have the car. They can’t deny that. Hey, you,” he said, directing his gaze at Blenkiron, “who the hell are you?”

Blenkiron smiled sleepily at him, not understanding one word, and I took up the parable.

Blenkiron smiled at him lazily, not catching a single word, and I picked up the story.

“Our passports, Sir, give our credentials,” I said. He glanced through them, and his face lengthened.

“Our passports, sir, verify our credentials,” I said. He looked through them, and his expression became serious.

“They’re right enough. But what about this story of stealing a car?”

“They’re not wrong. But what’s this about stealing a car?”

“It is quite true,” I said, “but I would prefer to use a pleasanter word. You will see from our papers that every authority on the road is directed to give us the best transport. Our own car broke down, and after a long delay we got some wretched horses. It is vitally important that we should be in Erzerum without delay, so I took the liberty of appropriating an empty car we found outside an inn. I am sorry for the discomfort of the owners, but our business was too grave to wait.”

“It’s true,” I said, “but I’d rather use a nicer word. You’ll see from our documents that every authority on the road has been instructed to provide us with the best transport. Our own car broke down, and after a long wait, we ended up with some terrible horses. It’s crucial that we get to Erzerum without delay, so I took the liberty of taking an empty car we found outside an inn. I feel sorry for the owners, but our business was too serious to wait.”

“But the telegram says you are notorious spies!”

“But the telegram says you’re infamous spies!”

I smiled. “Who sent the telegram?”

I smiled. “Who sent the text message?”

“I see no reason why I shouldn’t give you his name. It was Rasta Bey. You’ve picked an awkward fellow to make an enemy of.”

"I don’t see any reason why I shouldn’t tell you his name. It was Rasta Bey. You’ve chosen a strange guy to make an enemy out of."

I did not smile but laughed. “Rasta!” I cried. “He’s one of Enver’s satellites. That explains many things. I should like a word with you alone, Sir.”

I didn’t smile but laughed. “Rasta!” I exclaimed. “He’s one of Enver’s satellites. That explains a lot. I’d like to speak with you alone, Sir.”

He nodded to the staff-officer, and when he had gone I put on my most Bible face and looked as important as a provincial mayor at a royal visit.

He nodded at the staff officer, and once he left, I put on my most serious expression and looked as important as a small-town mayor during a royal visit.

“I can speak freely,” I said, “for I am speaking to a soldier of Germany. There is no love lost between Enver and those I serve. I need not tell you that. This Rasta thought he had found a chance of delaying us, so he invents this trash about spies. Those Comitadjis have spies on the brain ... Especially he hates Frau von Einem.”

“I can speak openly,” I said, “because I’m talking to a soldier from Germany. There's no love lost between Enver and the people I work for. I don’t need to explain that. This Rasta thought he could find a way to slow us down, so he makes up this nonsense about spies. Those Comitadjis are obsessed with spies... Especially, he can’t stand Frau von Einem.”

He jumped at the name.

He flinched at the name.

“You have orders from her?” he asked, in a respectful tone.

“You have orders from her?” he asked, respectfully.

“Why, yes,” I answered, “and those orders will not wait.”

"Of course," I replied, "and those orders can't be delayed."

He got up and walked to a table, whence he turned a puzzled face on me. “I’m torn in two between the Turks and my own countrymen. If I please one I offend the other, and the result is a damnable confusion. You can go on to Erzerum, but I shall send a man with you to see that you report to headquarters there. I’m sorry, gentlemen, but I’m obliged to take no chances in this business. Rasta’s got a grievance against you, but you can easily hide behind the lady’s skirts. She passed through this town two days ago.”

He got up and walked to a table, where he looked at me with a puzzled expression. “I’m caught between the Turks and my own people. If I please one side, I offend the other, and it creates a complicated mess. You can go on to Erzerum, but I’ll send someone with you to ensure you report to headquarters there. I’m sorry, gentlemen, but I can’t take any risks in this situation. Rasta has a problem with you, but you can easily use the lady as a shield. She passed through this town two days ago.”

Ten minutes later we were coasting through the slush of the narrow streets with a stolid German lieutenant sitting beside me.

Ten minutes later, we were gliding through the slush of the narrow streets with a calm German lieutenant sitting next to me.

The afternoon was one of those rare days when in the pauses of snow you have a spell of weather as mild as May. I remembered several like it during our winter’s training in Hampshire. The road was a fine one, well engineered, and well kept too, considering the amount of traffic. We were little delayed, for it was sufficiently broad to let us pass troops and transport without slackening pace. The fellow at my side was good-humoured enough, but his presence naturally put the lid on our conversation. I didn’t want to talk, however. I was trying to piece together a plan, and making very little of it, for I had nothing to go upon. We must find Hilda von Einem and Sandy, and between us we must wreck the Greenmantle business. That done, it didn’t matter so much what happened to us. As I reasoned it out, the Turks must be in a bad way, and, unless they got a fillip from Greenmantle, would crumple up before the Russians. In the rout I hoped we might get a chance to change our sides. But it was no good looking so far forward; the first thing was to get to Sandy.

The afternoon was one of those rare days when the breaks in the snow gave us weather as mild as May. I remembered several like it during our winter training in Hampshire. The road was nice, well-engineered, and well-maintained too, considering the amount of traffic. We weren’t delayed much since it was wide enough to let us pass troops and transport without slowing down. The guy next to me was in a good mood, but his presence naturally kept our conversation to a minimum. I didn’t really want to talk anyway. I was trying to come up with a plan, but I wasn’t getting far because I had nothing to go on. We needed to find Hilda von Einem and Sandy, and together we had to take down the Greenmantle operation. Once that was done, it didn’t matter as much what happened to us. As I thought it through, the Turks must be in bad shape, and unless they got a boost from Greenmantle, they would collapse against the Russians. In the chaos, I hoped we might get a chance to switch sides. But it was no good looking too far ahead; first, we needed to find Sandy.

Now I was still in the mood of reckless bravado which I had got from bagging the car. I did not realize how thin our story was, and how easily Rasta might have a big graft at headquarters. If I had, I would have shot out the German lieutenant long before we got to Erzerum, and found some way of getting mixed up in the ruck of the population. Hussin could have helped me to that. I was getting so confident since our interview with Posselt that I thought I could bluff the whole outfit.

Now I was still riding the high of the reckless confidence I felt from stealing the car. I didn't realize how shaky our story was and how easily Rasta could pull a big scam at headquarters. If I had, I would have taken out the German lieutenant long before we reached Erzerum and found a way to blend in with the crowd. Hussin could have helped me with that. After our meeting with Posselt, I was feeling so bold that I thought I could outsmart the whole operation.

But my main business that afternoon was pure nonsense. I was trying to find my little hill. At every turn of the road I expected to see the castrol before us. You must know that ever since I could stand I have been crazy about high mountains. My father took me to Basutoland when I was a boy, and I reckon I have scrambled over almost every bit of upland south of the Zambesi, from the Hottentots Holland to the Zoutpansberg, and from the ugly yellow kopjes of Damaraland to the noble cliffs of Mont aux Sources. One of the things I had looked forward to in coming home was the chance of climbing the Alps. But now I was among peaks that I fancied were bigger than the Alps, and I could hardly keep my eyes on the road. I was pretty certain that my castrol was among them, for that dream had taken an almighty hold on my mind. Funnily enough, I was ceasing to think it a place of evil omen, for one soon forgets the atmosphere of nightmare. But I was convinced that it was a thing I was destined to see, and to see pretty soon.

But my main focus that afternoon was pretty silly. I was trying to find my little hill. At every turn of the road, I expected to see the castrol ahead of us. You should know that ever since I could stand, I've been obsessed with high mountains. My dad took me to Basutoland when I was a kid, and I think I've climbed almost every bit of upland south of the Zambesi, from Hottentots Holland to Zoutpansberg, and from the ugly yellow kopjes of Damaraland to the impressive cliffs of Mont aux Sources. One of the things I had been looking forward to coming home was the chance to climb the Alps. But now I was surrounded by peaks that I thought were even bigger than the Alps, and I could barely keep my eyes on the road. I was pretty sure that my castrol was among them, because that dream had taken a strong hold on my mind. Strangely, I was starting to stop thinking of it as a place of bad omens, because you quickly forget that nightmare vibe. But I was convinced it was something I was meant to see, and soon.

Darkness fell when we were some miles short of the city, and the last part was difficult driving. On both sides of the road transport and engineers’ stores were parked, and some of it strayed into the highway. I noticed lots of small details—machine-gun detachments, signalling parties, squads of stretcher-bearers—which mean the fringe of an army, and as soon as the night began the white fingers of searchlights began to grope in the skies.

Darkness set in when we were a few miles away from the city, and the last stretch was tough to drive. On both sides of the road, trucks and engineering supplies were parked, spilling into the highway. I noticed many small details—machine-gun units, signaling teams, groups of stretcher-bearers—which indicate the edge of an army, and as soon as night fell, the white beams of searchlights started sweeping across the sky.

And then, above the hum of the roadside, rose the voice of the great guns. The shells were bursting four or five miles away, and the guns must have been as many more distant. But in that upland pocket of plain in the frosty night they sounded most intimately near. They kept up their solemn litany, with a minute’s interval between each—no rafale which rumbles like a drum, but the steady persistence of artillery exactly ranged on a target. I judged they must be bombarding the outer forts, and once there came a loud explosion and a red glare as if a magazine had suffered.

And then, above the noise of the roadside, the sound of the big guns rose up. The shells were exploding four or five miles away, and the guns had to be even farther. But in that elevated spot of the plain on the chilly night, they felt surprisingly close. They maintained their serious rhythm, with a minute's pause between each—a not a rumble like thunder, but the consistent beat of artillery precisely aimed at a target. I figured they must be attacking the outer forts, and at one point, there was a loud explosion and a red flash as if a munitions store had blown up.

It was a sound I had not heard for five months, and it fairly crazed me. I remembered how I had first heard it on the ridge before Laventie. Then I had been half-afraid, half-solemnized, but every nerve had been quickened. Then it had been the new thing in my life that held me breathless with anticipation; now it was the old thing, the thing I had shared with so many good fellows, my proper work, and the only task for a man. At the sound of the guns I felt that I was moving in natural air once more. I felt that I was coming home.

It was a sound I hadn’t heard in five months, and it drove me a bit wild. I remembered how I first heard it on the ridge before Laventie. Back then, I had been half afraid and half inspired, but every nerve in me was alive. At that moment, it felt like something new in my life that left me breathless with anticipation; now it was something familiar, something I had shared with so many great guys, my true work, and the only real job for a man. When I heard the guns, I felt like I was finally moving in fresh air again. It felt like I was coming home.

We were stopped at a long line of ramparts, and a German sergeant stared at us till he saw the lieutenant beside me, when he saluted and we passed on. Almost at once we dipped into narrow twisting streets, choked with soldiers, where it was hard business to steer. There were few lights—only now and then the flare of a torch which showed the grey stone houses, with every window latticed and shuttered. I had put out my headlights and had only side lamps, so we had to pick our way gingerly through the labyrinth. I hoped we would strike Sandy’s quarters soon, for we were all pretty empty, and a frost had set in which made our thick coats seem as thin as paper.

We were stopped at a long line of barricades, and a German sergeant stared at us until he noticed the lieutenant next to me, then he saluted and we moved on. Almost immediately, we turned into narrow, twisting streets packed with soldiers, making it difficult to navigate. There were few lights—just the occasional flare of a torch that revealed the grey stone houses, each window covered and shuttered. I had turned off my headlights and was only using side lamps, so we had to carefully make our way through the maze. I hoped we would find Sandy’s quarters soon, because we were all running low, and a frost had set in that made our heavy coats feel as light as paper.

The lieutenant did the guiding. We had to present our passports, and I anticipated no more difficulty than in landing from the boat at Boulogne. But I wanted to get it over, for my hunger pinched me and it was fearsome cold. Still the guns went on, like hounds baying before a quarry. The city was out of range, but there were strange lights on the ridge to the east.

The lieutenant took charge of the navigation. We had to show our passports, and I expected no more trouble than when we disembarked from the boat in Boulogne. But I just wanted to get it done because I was really hungry and it was freezing. Still, the guns kept firing, like hounds howling before a hunt. The city was too far away, but there were weird lights on the ridge to the east.

At last we reached our goal and marched through a fine old carved archway into a courtyard, and thence into a draughty hall.

At last we reached our goal and walked through a beautifully carved archway into a courtyard, and then into a chilly hall.

“You must see the Sektionschef,” said our guide. I looked round to see if we were all there, and noticed that Hussin had disappeared. It did not matter, for he was not on the passports.

“You have to see the Sektionschef,” said our guide. I looked around to check if everyone was there and noticed that Hussin was gone. It didn't matter, though, because he wasn't on the passports.

We followed as we were directed through an open door. There was a man standing with his back towards us looking at a wall map, a very big man with a neck that bulged over his collar. I would have known that neck among a million. At the sight of it I made a half-turn to bolt back. It was too late, for the door had closed behind us and there were two armed sentries beside it.

We walked in as instructed through an open door. There was a man facing a wall map, a really big guy with a thick neck that stuck out over his collar. I would have recognized that neck anywhere. Just seeing it made me want to turn around and run. But it was too late; the door had closed behind us and there were two armed guards standing beside it.

The man slewed round and looked into my eyes. I had a despairing hope that I might bluff it out, for I was in different clothes and had shaved my beard. But you cannot spend ten minutes in a death-grapple without your adversary getting to know you.

The man turned sharply and looked into my eyes. I desperately hoped that I could fake my way through, since I was wearing different clothes and had shaved my beard. But you can't spend ten minutes in a life-or-death struggle without your opponent figuring out who you are.

He went very pale, then recollected himself and twisted his features into the old grin.

He went very pale, then pulled himself together and forced a smile.

“So,” he said, “the little Dutchmen! We meet after many days.”

"So," he said, "the little Dutchmen! It's been a long time since we last met."

It was no good lying or saying anything. I shut my teeth and waited.

It was useless to lie or say anything. I clenched my teeth and waited.

“And you, Herr Blenkiron? I never liked the look of you. You babbled too much, like all your damned Americans.”

“And you, Mr. Blenkiron? I never liked how you looked. You talked way too much, just like all your damn Americans.”

“I guess your personal dislikes haven’t got anything to do with the matter,” said Blenkiron, calmly. “If you’re the boss here, I’ll thank you to cast your eye over these passports, for we can’t stand waiting for ever.”

“I guess your personal dislikes don’t matter here,” Blenkiron said calmly. “If you’re in charge, I’d appreciate it if you could look over these passports, because we can’t wait forever.”

This fairly angered him. “I’ll teach you manners,” he cried, and took a step forward to reach for Blenkiron’s shoulder—the game he had twice played with me.

This really pissed him off. “I’ll teach you some respect,” he shouted, and took a step forward to grab Blenkiron’s shoulder—the trick he had pulled on me twice before.

Blenkiron never took his hands from his coat pockets. “Keep your distance,” he drawled in a new voice. “I’ve got you covered, and I’ll make a hole in your bullet head if you lay a hand on me.”

Blenkiron never took his hands out of his coat pockets. “Stay back,” he said in a different tone. “I’ve got you covered, and I’ll put a bullet in your head if you touch me.”

With an effort Stumm recovered himself. He rang a bell and fell to smiling. An orderly appeared to whom he spoke in Turkish, and presently a file of soldiers entered the room.

With some effort, Stumm gathered himself. He rang a bell and started smiling. An orderly showed up, and he spoke to him in Turkish, and soon a line of soldiers entered the room.

“I’m going to have you disarmed, gentlemen,” he said. “We can conduct our conversation more pleasantly without pistols.”

“I’m going to have you disarmed, gentlemen,” he said. “We can have our conversation more pleasantly without guns.”

It was idle to resist. We surrendered our arms, Peter almost in tears with vexation. Stumm swung his legs over a chair, rested his chin on the back and looked at me.

It was pointless to fight back. We gave up our weapons, and Peter was almost in tears with frustration. Stumm kicked his legs over a chair, rested his chin on the back, and looked at me.

“Your game is up, you know,” he said. “These fools of Turkish police said the Dutchmen were dead, but I had the happier inspiration. I believed the good God had spared them for me. When I got Rasta’s telegram I was certain, for your doings reminded me of a little trick you once played me on the Schwandorf road. But I didn’t think to find this plump old partridge,” and he smiled at Blenkiron. “Two eminent American engineers and their servant bound for Mesopotamia on business of high Government importance! It was a good lie; but if I had been in Constantinople it would have had a short life. Rasta and his friends are no concern of mine. You can trick them as you please. But you have attempted to win the confidence of a certain lady, and her interests are mine. Likewise you have offended me, and I do not forgive. By God,” he cried, his voice growing shrill with passion, “by the time I have done with you your mothers in their graves will weep that they ever bore you!”

“Your time is up, you know,” he said. “These Turkish cops said the Dutchmen were dead, but I had a better idea. I believed that God had saved them for me. When I got Rasta’s telegram, I knew for sure, because your actions reminded me of a little trick you once played on me on the Schwandorf road. But I didn’t expect to find this plump old partridge,” and he smiled at Blenkiron. “Two prominent American engineers and their servant heading to Mesopotamia on important government business! It was a clever lie; but if I had been in Constantinople, it wouldn’t have lasted long. Rasta and his friends don’t concern me. You can fool them as you like. But you’ve tried to win the trust of a certain lady, and her interests are mine. Also, you’ve offended me, and I don’t forgive easily. By God,” he shouted, his voice rising with rage, “by the time I’m done with you, your mothers in their graves will weep that they ever gave birth to you!”

It was Blenkiron who spoke. His voice was as level as the chairman’s of a bogus company, and it fell on that turbid atmosphere like acid on grease.

It was Blenkiron who spoke. His voice was as even as the chairman's of a fake company, and it hit that murky atmosphere like acid on grease.

“I don’t take no stock in high-falutin’. If you’re trying to scare me by that dime-novel talk I guess you’ve hit the wrong man. You’re like the sweep that stuck in the chimney, a bit too big for your job. I reckon you’ve a talent for romance that’s just wasted in soldiering. But if you’re going to play any ugly games on me I’d like you to know that I’m an American citizen, and pretty well considered in my own country and in yours, and you’ll sweat blood for it later. That’s a fair warning, Colonel Stumm.”

“I don’t go for any fancy nonsense. If you think you can scare me with that dime-novel talk, you’ve got the wrong guy. You’re like a chimney sweep stuck in the flue, a bit too big for your job. I guess you have a talent for romance that’s just wasted on being a soldier. But if you’re planning to pull any shady moves on me, I want you to know that I’m an American citizen, well-respected both in my country and yours, and you’ll regret it later. That’s a fair warning, Colonel Stumm.”

I don’t know what Stumm’s plans were, but that speech of Blenkiron’s put into his mind just the needed amount of uncertainty. You see, he had Peter and me right enough, but he hadn’t properly connected Blenkiron with us, and was afraid either to hit out at all three, or to let Blenkiron go. It was lucky for us that the American had cut such a dash in the Fatherland.

I’m not sure what Stumm was planning, but Blenkiron’s speech introduced just the right amount of doubt in his mind. You see, he had Peter and me figured out, but he hadn’t really linked Blenkiron to us, and he was hesitant to go after all three of us, or to let Blenkiron off the hook. It worked out for us that the American had made such a splash in the Fatherland.

“There is no hurry,” he said blandly. “We shall have long happy hours together. I’m going to take you all home with me, for I am a hospitable soul. You will be safer with me than in the town gaol, for it’s a trifle draughty. It lets things in, and it might let things out.”

“There’s no rush,” he said flatly. “We’re going to have plenty of happy hours together. I’ll take you all home with me because I’m a welcoming person. You’ll be safer with me than in the town jail, since it’s a bit drafty. It lets things in, and it might let things out.”

Again he gave an order, and we were marched out, each with a soldier at his elbow. The three of us were bundled into the back seat of the car, while two men sat before us with their rifles between their knees, one got up behind on the baggage rack, and one sat beside Stumm’s chauffeur. Packed like sardines we moved into the bleak streets, above which the stars twinkled in ribbons of sky.

Again he gave an order, and we were marched out, each with a soldier at our side. The three of us were crammed into the back seat of the car, while two men sat in front of us with their rifles between their knees, one got up behind on the luggage rack, and one sat next to Stumm’s driver. Packed in tightly, we moved through the grim streets, above which the stars twinkled in ribbons of sky.

Hussin had disappeared from the face of the earth, and quite right too. He was a good fellow, but he had no call to mix himself up in our troubles.

Hussin had vanished from the world, and honestly, it was for the best. He was a decent guy, but he had no reason to get involved in our problems.

CHAPTER XVIII.
Sparrows on the Housetops

“I’ve often regretted,” said Blenkiron, “that miracles have left off happening.”

“I’ve often regretted,” said Blenkiron, “that miracles have stopped happening.”

He got no answer, for I was feeling the walls for something in the nature of a window.

He didn’t get a response because I was searching the walls for something like a window.

“For I reckon,” he went on, “that it wants a good old-fashioned copper-bottomed miracle to get us out of this fix. It’s plumb against all my principles. I’ve spent my life using the talents God gave me to keep things from getting to the point of rude violence, and so far I’ve succeeded. But now you come along, Major, and you hustle a respectable middle-aged citizen into an aboriginal mix-up. It’s mighty indelicate. I reckon the next move is up to you, for I’m no good at the housebreaking stunt.”

“For I figure,” he continued, “that we could really use a good old-fashioned miracle to get us out of this situation. It goes completely against my principles. I’ve spent my life using the talents God gave me to prevent things from escalating into outright violence, and up until now, I’ve managed to do that. But now you come along, Major, and you drag a respectable middle-aged citizen into a primitive mess. It’s quite inconsiderate. I guess the next move is on you, because I’m not good at breaking and entering.”

“No more am I,” I answered; “but I’m hanged if I’ll chuck up the sponge. Sandy’s somewhere outside, and he’s got a hefty crowd at his heels.”

“No more am I,” I replied; “but there’s no way I’m giving up. Sandy’s out there somewhere, and he’s got a big crowd following him.”

I simply could not feel the despair which by every law of common sense was due to the case. The guns had intoxicated me. I could still hear their deep voices, though yards of wood and stone separated us from the upper air.

I just couldn’t feel the despair that, by all common sense, should have been there. The guns had gotten to me. I could still hear their deep tones, even though we were separated from the outside world by yards of wood and stone.

What vexed us most was our hunger. Barring a few mouthfuls on the road we had eaten nothing since the morning, and as our diet for the past days had not been generous we had some leeway to make up. Stumm had never looked near us since we were shoved into the car. We had been brought to some kind of house and bundled into a place like a wine-cellar. It was pitch dark, and after feeling round the walls, first on my feet and then on Peter’s back, I decided that there were no windows. It must have been lit and ventilated by some lattice in the ceiling. There was not a stick of furniture in the place: nothing but a damp earth floor and bare stone sides, The door was a relic of the Iron Age, and I could hear the paces of a sentry outside it.

What bothered us the most was our hunger. Apart from a few bites on the road, we hadn’t eaten anything since the morning, and since our meals over the past few days had been scarce, we had some catching up to do. Stumm hadn’t checked on us since we were shoved into the car. We were taken to some kind of house and thrown into a space that felt like a wine cellar. It was completely dark, and after feeling around the walls, first with my feet and then on Peter’s back, I figured there were no windows. It must have been lit and ventilated by some kind of grid in the ceiling. The place had no furniture at all: just a damp earth floor and bare stone walls. The door looked ancient, and I could hear the footsteps of a guard outside it.

When things get to the pass that nothing you can do can better them, the only thing is to live for the moment. All three of us sought in sleep a refuge from our empty stomachs. The floor was the poorest kind of bed, but we rolled up our coats for pillows and made the best of it. Soon I knew by Peter’s regular breathing that he was asleep, and I presently followed him ...

When things reach a point where nothing you do can improve the situation, the only option is to live in the moment. All three of us sought refuge from our empty stomachs in sleep. The floor was the worst kind of bed, but we rolled up our coats for pillows and made the best of it. Soon, I could tell by Peter’s steady breathing that he was asleep, and I quickly followed him...

I was awakened by a pressure below my left ear. I thought it was Peter, for it is the old hunter’s trick of waking a man so that he makes no noise. But another voice spoke. It told me that there was no time to lose and to rise and follow, and the voice was the voice of Hussin.

I was awakened by a pressure just below my left ear. I thought it was Peter, since that's an old hunter’s trick to wake someone quietly. But then I heard another voice. It told me there wasn’t a moment to waste and to get up and follow, and that voice was Hussin's.

Peter was awake, and we stirred Blenkiron out of heavy slumber. We were bidden take off our boots and hang them by their laces round our necks as country boys do when they want to go barefoot. Then we tiptoed to the door, which was ajar.

Peter was awake, and we roused Blenkiron from his deep sleep. We were instructed to take off our boots and hang them by their laces around our necks like country boys do when they want to go barefoot. Then we quietly approached the door, which was slightly open.

Outside was a passage with a flight of steps at one end which led to the open air. On these steps lay a faint shine of starlight, and by its help I saw a man huddled up at the foot of them. It was our sentry, neatly and scientifically gagged and tied up.

Outside was a passage with a set of stairs at one end that led to the open air. On these steps lay a faint glimmer of starlight, and with its help, I saw a man curled up at the bottom of them. It was our guard, securely and methodically gagged and tied up.

The steps brought us to a little courtyard about which the walls of the houses rose like cliffs. We halted while Hussin listened intently. Apparently the coast was clear and our guide led us to one side, which was clothed by a stout wooden trellis. Once it may have supported fig-trees, but now the plants were dead and only withered tendrils and rotten stumps remained.

The steps led us to a small courtyard surrounded by the walls of the houses that rose like cliffs. We stopped while Hussin listened carefully. It seemed the coast was clear, and our guide directed us to one side, which was covered by a sturdy wooden trellis. It might have once supported fig trees, but now the plants were dead, leaving only withered tendrils and decayed stumps.

It was child’s play for Peter and me to go up that trellis, but it was the deuce and all for Blenkiron. He was in poor condition and puffed like a grampus, and he seemed to have no sort of head for heights. But he was as game as a buffalo, and started in gallantly till his arms gave out and he fairly stuck. So Peter and I went up on each side of him, taking an arm apiece, as I had once seen done to a man with vertigo in the Kloof Chimney on Table Mountain. I was mighty thankful when I got him panting on the top and Hussin had shinned up beside us.

It was a piece of cake for Peter and me to climb that trellis, but it was really tough for Blenkiron. He was in bad shape and gasping for air, and he clearly had no head for heights. But he was as brave as a buffalo and started off strong until his arms gave out and he got stuck. So Peter and I helped him up on either side, taking one of his arms each, just like I'd seen done with a guy who had vertigo in the Kloof Chimney on Table Mountain. I was really relieved when I finally got him panting at the top and Hussin had climbed up next to us.

We crawled along a broadish wall, with an inch or two of powdery snow on it, and then up a sloping buttress on to the flat roof of the house. It was a miserable business for Blenkiron, who would certainly have fallen if he could have seen what was below him, and Peter and I had to stand to attention all the time. Then began a more difficult job. Hussin pointed out a ledge which took us past a stack of chimneys to another building slightly lower, this being the route he fancied. At that I sat down resolutely and put on my boots, and the others followed. Frost-bitten feet would be a poor asset in this kind of travelling.

We crawled along a wide wall, with an inch or two of powdery snow on it, and then up a sloping ledge to the flat roof of the house. It was a tough situation for Blenkiron, who definitely would have fallen if he could have seen what was below him, and Peter and I had to stay alert the whole time. Then came a more challenging task. Hussin pointed out a ledge that took us past a stack of chimneys to another building that was slightly lower, which was the route he preferred. At that, I sat down firmly and put on my boots, and the others followed. Frostbitten feet would be a poor asset for this kind of traveling.

It was a bad step for Blenkiron, and we only got him past it by Peter and I spread-eagling ourselves against the wall and passing him in front of us with his face towards us. We had no grip, and if he had stumbled we should all three have been in the courtyard. But we got it over, and dropped as softly as possible on to the roof of the next house. Hussin had his finger on his lips, and I soon saw why. For there was a lighted window in the wall we had descended.

It was a risky move for Blenkiron, and Peter and I only managed to get him through it by bracing ourselves against the wall and passing him in front of us with his face towards us. We had no hold on him, and if he had tripped, we all would have landed in the courtyard. But we got through it and dropped as quietly as we could onto the roof of the next building. Hussin had a finger on his lips, and I quickly understood why—there was a lit window in the wall we had just descended.

Some imp prompted me to wait behind and explore. The others followed Hussin and were soon at the far end of the roof, where a kind of wooden pavilion broke the line, while I tried to get a look inside. The window was curtained, and had two folding sashes which clasped in the middle. Through a gap in the curtain I saw a little lamp-lit room and a big man sitting at a table littered with papers.

Some urge made me stay back and explore. The others went after Hussin and quickly reached the far end of the roof, where there was a wooden pavilion that interrupted the line, while I attempted to peek inside. The window was covered with a curtain and had two folding sashes that met in the middle. Through a gap in the curtain, I saw a small room lit by a lamp and a large man sitting at a table cluttered with papers.

I watched him, fascinated, as he turned to consult some document and made a marking on the map before him. Then he suddenly rose, stretched himself, cast a glance at the window, and went out of the room, making a great clatter in descending the wooden staircase. He left the door ajar and the lamp burning.

I watched him, intrigued, as he turned to check a document and made a mark on the map in front of him. Then he suddenly stood up, stretched, glanced out the window, and left the room, making a loud noise as he went down the wooden staircase. He left the door slightly open and the lamp on.

I guessed he had gone to have a look at his prisoners, in which case the show was up. But what filled my mind was an insane desire to get a sight of his map. It was one of those mad impulses which utterly cloud right reason, a thing independent of any plan, a crazy leap in the dark. But it was so strong that I would have pulled that window out by its frame, if need be, to get to that table.

I figured he had gone to check on his prisoners, which meant the situation was over. But what really consumed me was an overwhelming urge to see his map. It was one of those wild impulses that completely cloud judgment, something that had nothing to do with any plan, just a reckless jump into the unknown. But it was so intense that I would have ripped that window out of its frame, if necessary, just to get to that table.

There was no need, for the flimsy clasp gave at the first pull, and the sashes swung open. I scrambled in, after listening for steps on the stairs. I crumpled up the map and stuck it in my pocket, as well as the paper from which I had seen him copying. Very carefully I removed all marks of my entry, brushed away the snow from the boards, pulled back the curtain, got out and refastened the window. Still there was no sound of his return. Then I started off to catch up the others.

There was no need because the weak clasp came undone with the first pull, and the sashes flew open. I rushed inside after listening for footsteps on the stairs. I balled up the map and shoved it in my pocket, along with the paper he had been copying from. I carefully erased all signs of my entry, brushed the snow off the boards, pulled back the curtain, slipped out, and locked the window again. Still, there was no sign of him coming back. So I headed off to catch up with the others.

I found them shivering in the roof pavilion. “We’ve got to move pretty fast,” I said, “for I’ve just been burgling old Stumm’s private cabinet. Hussin, my lad, d’you hear that? They may be after us any moment, so I pray Heaven we soon strike better going.”

I found them shivering in the rooftop pavilion. “We need to move quickly,” I said, “because I just broke into old Stumm’s private cabinet. Hussin, my friend, did you hear that? They could be coming after us any minute, so I hope we find better ground soon.”

Hussin understood. He led us at a smart pace from one roof to another, for here they were all of the same height, and only low parapets and screens divided them. We never saw a soul, for a winter’s night is not the time you choose to saunter on your housetop. I kept my ears open for trouble behind us, and in about five minutes I heard it. A riot of voices broke out, with one louder than the rest, and, looking back, I saw lanterns waving. Stumm had realized his loss and found the tracks of the thief.

Hussin got it. He guided us quickly from one roof to another, since they were all the same height, divided only by low walls and screens. We didn’t see anyone around because a winter night isn’t the time people choose to stroll on their rooftops. I stayed alert for any trouble behind us, and after about five minutes, I heard it. A clamor of voices erupted, with one voice louder than the others, and when I looked back, I saw lanterns waving. Stumm had figured out he was robbed and had followed the thief’s trail.

Hussin gave one glance behind and then hurried us on at break-neck pace, with old Blenkiron gasping and stumbling. The shouts behind us grew louder, as if some eye quicker than the rest had caught our movement in the starlit darkness. It was very evident that if they kept up the chase we should be caught, for Blenkiron was about as useful on a roof as a hippo.

Hussin took a quick look back and then rushed us forward at a frantic pace, with old Blenkiron wheezing and tripping. The shouts behind us got louder, as if someone had noticed our movement in the starry darkness faster than the others. It was clear that if they continued chasing us, we would be caught, because Blenkiron was about as useful on a roof as a hippo.

Presently we came to a big drop, with a kind of ladder down it, and at the foot a shallow ledge running to the left into a pit of darkness. Hussin gripped my arm and pointed down it. “Follow it,” he whispered, “and you will reach a roof which spans a street. Cross it, and on the other side is a mosque. Turn to the right there and you will find easy going for fifty metres, well screened from the higher roofs. For Allah’s sake keep in the shelter of the screen. Somewhere there I will join you.”

Right now, we reached a steep drop with a sort of ladder leading down. At the bottom, there was a shallow ledge extending to the left into a dark pit. Hussin grabbed my arm and pointed down it. “Follow that way,” he whispered, “and you’ll come to a roof covering a street. Cross it, and on the other side, there's a mosque. Turn to the right there, and you'll have an easy path for about fifty meters, well shielded from the higher roofs. Please, for Allah’s sake, stay in the shelter of that cover. I will meet you somewhere there.”

He hurried us along the ledge for a bit and then went back, and with snow from the corners covered up our tracks. After that he went straight on himself, taking strange short steps like a bird. I saw his game. He wanted to lead our pursuers after him, and he had to multiply the tracks and trust to Stumm’s fellows not spotting that they all were made by one man.

He rushed us along the ledge for a while and then turned back, using snow from the corners to cover our tracks. After that, he moved on by himself, taking odd short steps like a bird. I understood his plan. He wanted to draw our pursuers after him, and he needed to create more tracks, hoping Stumm's guys wouldn't notice that they were all made by the same person.

But I had quite enough to think of in getting Blenkiron along that ledge. He was pretty nearly foundered, he was in a sweat of terror, and as a matter of fact he was taking one of the biggest risks of his life, for we had no rope and his neck depended on himself. I could hear him invoking some unknown deity called Holy Mike. But he ventured gallantly, and we got to the roof which ran across the street. That was easier, though ticklish enough, but it was no joke skirting the cupola of that infernal mosque. At last we found the parapet and breathed more freely, for we were now under shelter from the direction of danger. I spared a moment to look round, and thirty yards off, across the street, I saw a weird spectacle.

But I had more than enough to focus on getting Blenkiron along that ledge. He was nearly collapsing from fear, sweating with terror, and honestly, he was taking one of the biggest risks of his life since we had no rope and his safety depended entirely on him. I could hear him calling out to some unknown god named Holy Mike. But he bravely pressed on, and we reached the roof that spanned across the street. That part was easier, although still pretty nerve-wracking, but it was no joke trying to navigate around the dome of that damned mosque. Finally, we found the parapet and were able to breathe a little easier, as we were now sheltered from the threat. I took a moment to look around, and thirty yards away, across the street, I saw a strange sight.

The hunt was proceeding along the roofs parallel to the one we were lodged on. I saw the flicker of the lanterns, waved up and down as the bearers slipped in the snow, and I heard their cries like hounds on a trail. Stumm was not among them: he had not the shape for that sort of business. They passed us and continued to our left, now hid by a jutting chimney, now clear to view against the sky line. The roofs they were on were perhaps six feet higher than ours, so even from our shelter we could mark their course. If Hussin were going to be hunted across Erzerum it was a bad look-out for us, for I hadn’t the foggiest notion where we were or where we were going to.

The hunt was moving along the roofs next to the one we were staying on. I saw the flicker of the lanterns, waving up and down as the bearers slipped in the snow, and I heard their shouts like hounds on a scent. Stumm wasn’t with them; he wasn’t built for that kind of activity. They passed us and moved to our left, disappearing behind a chimney, then coming back into view against the skyline. The roofs they were on were probably six feet higher than ours, so even from our spot, we could see their path. If Hussin was going to be hunted across Erzerum, it didn’t look good for us, because I had no idea where we were or where we were heading.

But as we watched we saw something more. The wavering lanterns were now three or four hundred yards away, but on the roofs just opposite us across the street there appeared a man’s figure. I thought it was one of the hunters, and we all crouched lower, and then I recognized the lean agility of Hussin. He must have doubled back, keeping in the dusk to the left of the pursuit, and taking big risks in the open places. But there he was now, exactly in front of us, and separated only by the width of the narrow street.

But as we watched, we noticed something more. The flickering lanterns were now three or four hundred yards away, but on the roofs directly across the street from us, a man's figure appeared. I thought it was one of the hunters, and we all crouched down lower. Then I recognized the lean agility of Hussin. He must have doubled back, staying in the shadows to the left of the pursuit and taking big risks in the open areas. But there he was now, right in front of us, separated only by the width of the narrow street.

He took a step backward, gathered himself for a spring, and leaped clean over the gap. Like a cat he lighted on the parapet above us, and stumbled forward with the impetus right on our heads.

He took a step back, got himself ready to jump, and leaped right over the gap. Like a cat, he landed on the ledge above us and stumbled forward with the momentum right onto our heads.

“We are safe for the moment,” he whispered, “but when they miss me they will return. We must make good haste.”

“We're safe for now,” he whispered, “but when they realize I'm gone, they'll come back. We need to hurry.”

The next half-hour was a maze of twists and turns, slipping down icy roofs and climbing icier chimney-stacks. The stir of the city had gone, and from the black streets below came scarcely a sound. But always the great tattoo of guns beat in the east. Gradually we descended to a lower level, till we emerged on the top of a shed in a courtyard. Hussin gave an odd sort of cry, like a demented owl, and something began to stir below us.

The next thirty minutes were a confusing mix of movement, sliding down icy rooftops and climbing even icier chimneys. The energy of the city had faded, and the black streets beneath us were almost silent. Yet, the steady sound of gunfire echoed from the east. Slowly, we went down to a lower level until we found ourselves on top of a shed in a courtyard. Hussin let out a strange cry, like a crazy owl, and something began to move below us.

It was a big covered wagon, full of bundles of forage, and drawn by four mules. As we descended from the shed into the frozen litter of the yard, a man came out of the shade and spoke low to Hussin. Peter and I lifted Blenkiron into the cart, and scrambled in beside him, and I never felt anything more blessed than the warmth and softness of that place after the frosty roofs. I had forgotten all about my hunger, and only yearned for sleep. Presently the wagon moved out of the courtyard into the dark streets.

It was a large covered wagon, packed with bundles of feed, and pulled by four mules. As we stepped down from the shed into the frozen debris of the yard, a man emerged from the shadow and spoke quietly to Hussin. Peter and I helped Blenkiron into the cart and scrambled in next to him. I had never felt anything more comforting than the warmth and softness of that space after the cold roofs. I had completely forgotten about my hunger and only longed for sleep. Soon, the wagon rolled out of the courtyard and into the dark streets.

Then Blenkiron began to laugh, a deep internal rumble which shook him violently and brought down a heap of forage on his head. I thought it was hysterics, the relief from the tension of the past hour. But it wasn’t. His body might be out of training, but there was never anything the matter with his nerves. He was consumed with honest merriment.

Then Blenkiron started to laugh, a deep, hearty sound that shook him hard and sent a pile of hay toppling onto his head. I figured it was hysterics, a release from the stress of the last hour. But it wasn't. His body might not have been in shape, but his nerves were perfectly fine. He was filled with genuine laughter.

“Say, Major,” he gasped, “I don’t usually cherish dislikes for my fellow men, but somehow I didn’t cotton to Colonel Stumm. But now I almost love him. You hit his jaw very bad in Germany, and now you’ve annexed his private file, and I guess it’s important or he wouldn’t have been so mighty set on steeple-chasing over those roofs. I haven’t done such a thing since I broke into neighbour Brown’s woodshed to steal his tame “possum, and that’s forty years back. It’s the first piece of genooine amusement I’ve struck in this game, and I haven’t laughed so much since old Jim Hooker told the tale of ‘Cousin Sally Dillard’ when we were hunting ducks in Michigan and his wife’s brother had an apoplexy in the night and died of it.”

“Say, Major,” he panted, “I don’t usually hold grudges against my fellow men, but for some reason, I never liked Colonel Stumm. But now I almost admire him. You really nailed him in Germany, and now you’ve taken his private file, which must be important or he wouldn’t be so desperate to leap over those roofs. I haven’t done anything like that since I broke into neighbor Brown’s woodshed to steal his pet ‘possum, and that was forty years ago. This is the first real fun I’ve had in this game, and I haven’t laughed this much since old Jim Hooker told the story of ‘Cousin Sally Dillard’ while we were hunting ducks in Michigan and his wife’s brother had a stroke in the night and died from it.”

To the accompaniment of Blenkiron’s chuckles I did what Peter had done in the first minute, and fell asleep.

To the sound of Blenkiron's laughter, I did what Peter had done right from the start and fell asleep.

When I woke it was still dark. The wagon had stopped in a courtyard which seemed to be shaded by great trees. The snow lay deeper here, and by the feel of the air we had left the city and climbed to higher ground. There were big buildings on one side, and on the other what looked like the lift of a hill. No lights were shown, the place was in profound gloom, but I felt the presence near me of others besides Hussin and the driver.

When I woke up, it was still dark. The wagon had stopped in a courtyard that seemed to be covered by large trees. The snow was deeper here, and from the chill in the air, we had left the city and gone up to higher ground. There were large buildings on one side, and on the other, what looked like the slope of a hill. No lights were on; the place was in complete darkness, but I sensed the presence of others near me besides Hussin and the driver.

We were hurried, Blenkiron only half awake, into an outbuilding, and then down some steps to a roomy cellar. There Hussin lit a lantern, which showed what had once been a storehouse for fruit. Old husks still strewed the floor and the place smelt of apples. Straw had been piled in corners for beds, and there was a rude table and a divan of boards covered with sheepskins.

We were rushed, with Blenkiron still half asleep, into a shed, and then down some steps to a spacious basement. There, Hussin lit a lantern, revealing what had once been a fruit storage area. Old husks were scattered across the floor, and the place smelled like apples. Straw was piled in the corners for bedding, and there was a rough table along with a makeshift couch made of boards covered with sheepskins.

“Where are we?” I asked Hussin.

“Where are we?” I asked Hussin.

“In the house of the Master,” he said. “You will be safe here, but you must keep still till the Master comes.”

“In the Master’s house,” he said. “You’ll be safe here, but you need to stay quiet until the Master arrives.”

“Is the Frankish lady here?” I asked.

“Is the Frankish lady here?” I asked.

Hussin nodded, and from a wallet brought out some food—raisins and cold meat and a loaf of bread. We fell on it like vultures, and as we ate Hussin disappeared. I noticed that he locked the door behind him.

Hussin nodded and pulled out some food from his wallet—raisins, cold meat, and a loaf of bread. We dove into it like vultures, and while we ate, Hussin slipped out. I saw that he locked the door behind him.

As soon as the meal was ended the others returned to their interrupted sleep. But I was wakeful now and my mind was sharp-set on many things. I got Blenkiron’s electric torch and lay down on the divan to study Stumm’s map.

As soon as the meal was over, the others went back to their interrupted sleep. But I was wide awake now, and my mind was focused on many things. I grabbed Blenkiron's flashlight and lay down on the couch to examine Stumm's map.

The first glance showed me that I had lit on a treasure. It was the staff map of the Erzerum defences, showing the forts and the field trenches, with little notes scribbled in Stumm’s neat small handwriting. I got out the big map which I had taken from Blenkiron, and made out the general lie of the land. I saw the horseshoe of Deve Boyun to the east which the Russian guns were battering. Stumm’s was just like the kind of squared artillery map we used in France, 1 in 10,000, with spidery red lines showing the trenches, but with the difference that it was the Turkish trenches that were shown in detail and the Russian only roughly indicated. The thing was really a confidential plan of the whole Erzerum enceinte, and would be worth untold gold to the enemy. No wonder Stumm had been in a wax at its loss.

At first glance, I realized I had discovered something valuable. It was the staff map of the Erzerum defenses, showing the forts and the field trenches, with little notes written in Stumm’s neat, small handwriting. I pulled out the large map I had taken from Blenkiron and figured out the general layout of the area. I noted the horseshoe-shaped Deve Boyun to the east, where the Russian guns were hitting hard. Stumm’s map was just like the squared artillery maps we used in France, at a scale of 1 in 10,000, with thin red lines marking the trenches, except it detailed the Turkish trenches while only roughly indicating the Russian ones. This map was essentially a confidential plan of the entire Erzerum defenses and would be worth a fortune to the enemy. It’s no surprise that Stumm had been furious about losing it.

The Deve Boyun lines seemed to me monstrously strong, and I remembered the merits of the Turk as a fighter behind strong defences. It looked as if Russia were up against a second Plevna or a new Gallipoli.

The Deve Boyun lines looked incredibly strong to me, and I recalled how effective the Turks were as fighters behind solid defenses. It seemed like Russia was facing another Plevna or a fresh Gallipoli.

Then I took to studying the flanks. South lay the Palantuken range of mountains, with forts defending the passes, where ran the roads to Mush and Lake Van. That side, too, looked pretty strong. North in the valley of the Euphrates I made out two big forts, Tafta and Kara Gubek, defending the road from Olti. On this part of the map Stumm’s notes were plentiful, and I gave them all my attention. I remembered Blenkiron’s news about the Russians advancing on a broad front, for it was clear that Stumm was taking pains about the flank of the fortress.

Then I focused on the sides. To the south was the Palantuken mountain range, protected by forts guarding the passes, leading to Mush and Lake Van. That side looked pretty solid. To the north, in the Euphrates valley, I spotted two major forts, Tafta and Kara Gubek, protecting the road from Olti. In this area of the map, Stumm’s notes were plentiful, and I paid close attention to them. I recalled Blenkiron’s update about the Russians advancing on a wide front, as it was clear that Stumm was carefully considering the fortress's flanks.

Kara Gubek was the point of interest. It stood on a rib of land between two peaks, which from the contour lines rose very steep. So long as it was held it was clear that no invader could move down the Euphrates glen. Stumm had appended a note to the peaks—“not fortified”; and about two miles to the north-east there was a red cross and the name “Prjevalsky”. I assumed that to be the farthest point yet reached by the right wing of the Russian attack.

Kara Gubek was the focal point. It sat on a ridge of land between two peaks, which rose very steeply according to the contour lines. As long as it was held, it was clear that no invader could advance down the Euphrates valley. Stumm had added a note to the peaks—“not fortified”; and about two miles to the northeast, there was a red cross and the name “Prjevalsky.” I assumed that was the furthest point reached by the right wing of the Russian attack.

Then I turned to the paper from which Stumm had copied the jottings on to his map. It was typewritten, and consisted of notes on different points. One was headed “Kara Gubek” and read: “No time to fortify adjacent peaks. Difficult for enemy to get batteries there, but not impossible. This the real point of danger, for if Prjevalsky wins the peaks Kara Gubek and Tafta must fall, and enemy will be on left rear of Deve Boyun main position.”

Then I looked at the paper that Stumm had copied his notes from onto his map. It was typed and contained notes on different locations. One was titled “Kara Gubek” and stated: “No time to strengthen the surrounding peaks. It's hard for the enemy to get artillery up there, but not impossible. This is the real point of danger because if Prjevalsky takes the peaks, Kara Gubek and Tafta will definitely fall, and the enemy will be on the left flank of the Deve Boyun main position.”

I was soldier enough to see the tremendous importance of this note. On Kara Gubek depended the defence of Erzerum, and it was a broken reed if one knew where the weakness lay. Yet, searching the map again, I could not believe that any mortal commander would see any chance in the adjacent peaks, even if he thought them unfortified. That was information confined to the Turkish and German staff. But if it could be conveyed to the Grand Duke he would have Erzerum in his power in a day. Otherwise he would go on battering at the Deve Boyun ridge for weeks, and long ere he won it the Gallipoli divisions would arrive, he would be out-numbered by two to one, and his chance would have vanished.

I was smart enough to recognize how crucial this note was. The defense of Erzerum depended on Kara Gubek, and it would be useless if someone knew where the weaknesses were. However, after looking at the map again, I couldn't believe that any commander would see any opportunity in the nearby peaks, even if he thought they were unfortified. That was information only known to the Turkish and German staff. But if it could be communicated to the Grand Duke, he would have control over Erzerum in a day. Otherwise, he would keep trying to take the Deve Boyun ridge for weeks, and long before he succeeded, the Gallipoli divisions would arrive, outnumbering him two to one, and his chances would be gone.

My discovery set me pacing up and down that cellar in a perfect fever of excitement. I longed for wireless, a carrier pigeon, an aeroplane—anything to bridge over that space of half a dozen miles between me and the Russian lines. It was maddening to have stumbled on vital news and to be wholly unable to use it. How could three fugitives in a cellar, with the whole hornet’s nest of Turkey and Germany stirred up against them, hope to send this message of life and death?

My discovery had me pacing back and forth in that cellar, filled with excitement. I desperately wanted a phone, a carrier pigeon, a plane—anything to cover the distance of about six miles between me and the Russian front lines. It was maddening to have come across crucial news and be completely unable to share it. How could three runaways in a cellar, with all of Turkey and Germany against them, expect to send this message of life and death?

I went back to the map and examined the nearest Russian positions. They were carefully marked. Prjevalsky in the north, the main force beyond Deve Boyun, and the southern columns up to the passes of the Palantuken but not yet across them. I could not know which was nearest to us till I discovered where we were. And as I thought of this I began to see the rudiments of a desperate plan. It depended on Peter, now slumbering like a tired dog on a couch of straw.

I went back to the map and looked at the closest Russian positions. They were clearly marked. Prjevalsky in the north, the main force beyond Deve Boyun, and the southern columns up to the Palantuken passes but not across them yet. I couldn't tell which was closest to us until I figured out where we were. As I pondered this, I started to visualize the basics of a risky plan. It hinged on Peter, who was now asleep like a tired dog on a bed of straw.

Hussin had locked the door and I must wait for information till he came back. But suddenly I noticed a trap in the roof, which had evidently been used for raising and lowering the cellar’s stores. It looked ill-fitting and might be unbarred, so I pulled the table below it, and found that with a little effort I could raise the flap. I knew I was taking immense risks, but I was so keen on my plan that I disregarded them. After some trouble I got the thing prised open, and catching the edges of the hole with my fingers raised my body and got my knees on the edge.

Hussin had locked the door, and I had to wait for information until he returned. But then I suddenly noticed a trapdoor in the ceiling, which seemed to have been used for raising and lowering the cellar's supplies. It looked a bit off and might be unlatched, so I pulled the table underneath it and discovered that with a little effort, I could lift the flap. I knew I was taking a huge risk, but I was so determined about my plan that I ignored the dangers. After some struggle, I managed to pry it open, and gripping the edges of the opening with my fingers, I lifted my body up and positioned my knees on the edge.

It was the outbuilding of which our refuge was the cellar, and it was half filled with light. Not a soul was there, and I hunted about till I found what I wanted. This was a ladder leading to a sort of loft, which in turn gave access to the roof. Here I had to be very careful, for I might be overlooked from the high buildings. But by good luck there was a trellis for grape vines across the place, which gave a kind of shelter. Lying flat on my face I stared over a great expanse of country.

It was the outbuilding where we took refuge in the cellar, and it was half filled with light. There wasn't a soul around, so I searched until I found what I needed. It was a ladder that led to a sort of loft, which in turn provided access to the roof. I had to be really careful up there, as I could be seen from the tall buildings nearby. Fortunately, there was a trellis for grapevines that offered some cover. Lying flat on my stomach, I gazed out over a vast stretch of countryside.

Looking north I saw the city in a haze of morning smoke, and, beyond, the plain of the Euphrates and the opening of the glen where the river left the hills. Up there, among the snowy heights, were Tafta and Kara Gubek. To the east was the ridge of Deve Boyun, where the mist was breaking before the winter’s sun. On the roads up to it I saw transport moving, I saw the circle of the inner forts, but for a moment the guns were silent. South rose a great wall of white mountain, which I took to be the Palantuken. I could see the roads running to the passes, and the smoke of camps and horse-lines right under the cliffs.

Looking north, I saw the city shrouded in morning smoke, and beyond it, the plain of the Euphrates and the opening of the valley where the river flowed away from the hills. Up there, among the snowy peaks, were Tafta and Kara Gubek. To the east was the Deve Boyun ridge, where the mist was lifting in the light of the winter sun. On the roads leading up to it, I saw transport moving and the circle of the inner forts, but for a moment, the guns were quiet. To the south rose a massive wall of white mountains, which I figured was the Palantuken. I could see the roads heading to the passes, along with the smoke from camps and horse lines right beneath the cliffs.

I had learned what I needed. We were in the outbuildings of a big country house two or three miles south of the city. The nearest point of the Russian front was somewhere in the foothills of the Palantuken.

I had learned what I needed. We were in the outbuildings of a large country house, two or three miles south of the city. The closest point of the Russian front was somewhere in the foothills of the Palantuken.

As I descended I heard, thin and faint and beautiful, like the cry of a wild bird, the muezzin from the minarets of Erzerum.

As I went down, I heard, soft and subtle and lovely, like the call of a wild bird, the muezzin from the minarets of Erzerum.

When I dropped through the trap the others were awake. Hussin was setting food on the table, and viewing my descent with anxious disapproval.

When I fell through the trap, the others were already awake. Hussin was putting food on the table and watching me come down with worried disapproval.

“It’s all right,” I said; “I won’t do it again, for I’ve found out all I wanted. Peter, old man, the biggest job of your life is before you!”

“It’s okay,” I said; “I won’t do it again, for I’ve figured out everything I needed. Peter, my friend, the biggest opportunity of your life is ahead of you!”

CHAPTER XIX.
Greenmantle

Peter scarcely looked up from his breakfast.

Peter barely glanced up from his breakfast.

“I’m willing, Dick,” he said. “But you mustn’t ask me to be friends with Stumm. He makes my stomach cold, that one.”

“I’m up for it, Dick,” he said. “But you can't ask me to be friends with Stumm. He gives me the creeps, that guy.”

For the first time he had stopped calling me “Cornelis”. The day of make-believe was over for all of us.

For the first time, he had stopped calling me “Cornelis.” The day of pretending was over for all of us.

“Not to be friends with him,” I said, “but to bust him and all his kind.”

“Not to be friends with him,” I said, “but to expose him and all his kind.”

“Then I’m ready,” said Peter cheerfully. “What is it?”

“Then I’m ready,” Peter said happily. “What is it?”

I spread out the maps on the divan. There was no light in the place but Blenkiron’s electric torch, for Hussin had put out the lantern. Peter got his nose into the things at once, for his intelligence work in the Boer War had made him handy with maps. It didn’t want much telling from me to explain to him the importance of the one I had looted.

I laid the maps out on the couch. The only light in the room came from Blenkiron’s flashlight, since Hussin had turned off the lantern. Peter dove right into the maps because his intelligence work during the Boer War had made him skilled with them. I didn’t need to say much to explain to him how important the one I had taken was.

“That news is worth many a million pounds,” said he, wrinkling his brows, and scratching delicately the tip of his left ear. It was a way he had when he was startled.

“That news is worth a lot of money,” he said, furrowing his brow and gently scratching the tip of his left ear. It was something he did when he was surprised.

“How can we get it to our friends?”

“How can we send it to our friends?”

Peter cogitated. “There is but one way. A man must take it. Once, I remember, when we fought the Matabele it was necessary to find out whether the chief Makapan was living. Some said he had died, others that he’d gone over the Portuguese border, but I believed he lived. No native could tell us, and since his kraal was well defended no runner could get through. So it was necessary to send a man.”

Peter thought for a moment. “There’s only one way. A man has to go. I remember when we fought the Matabele, we needed to find out if Chief Makapan was still alive. Some said he was dead, others said he had crossed over into Portuguese territory, but I believed he was alive. No native could give us an answer, and since his kraal was heavily guarded, no messenger could get through. So we needed to send a man.”

Peter lifted up his head and laughed. “The man found the chief Makapan. He was very much alive, and made good shooting with a shot-gun. But the man brought the chief Makapan out of his kraal and handed him over to the Mounted Police. You remember Captain Arcoll, Dick—Jim Arcoll? Well, Jim laughed so much that he broke open a wound in his head, and had to have a doctor.”

Peter lifted his head and laughed. “The guy found Chief Makapan. He was very much alive and shot well with a shotgun. But the guy brought Chief Makapan out of his kraal and handed him over to the Mounted Police. You remember Captain Arcoll, Dick—Jim Arcoll? Well, Jim laughed so hard that he reopened a wound on his head and had to see a doctor.”

“You were that man, Peter,” I said.

“You were that man, Peter,” I said.

Ja. I was the man. There are more ways of getting into kraals than there are ways of keeping people out.”

Yeah. I was the guy. There are more ways to get into enclosures than there are to keep people out.

“Will you take this chance?”

"Are you going to take this chance?"

“For certain, Dick. I am getting stiff with doing nothing, and if I sit in houses much longer I shall grow old. A man bet me five pounds on the ship that I could not get through a trench-line, and if there had been a trench-line handy I would have taken him on. I will be very happy, Dick, but I do not say I will succeed. It is new country to me, and I will be hurried, and hurry makes bad stalking.”

“For sure, Dick. I'm getting restless doing nothing, and if I stay cooped up in these houses much longer, I’ll feel old. A guy bet me five pounds on the ship that I couldn’t get through a trench line, and if there had been one nearby, I would have taken him up on it. I’ll be really happy, Dick, but I’m not saying I’ll succeed. This is all new to me, and I’ll be in a rush, and rushing leads to messy stalking.”

I showed him what I thought the likeliest place—in the spurs of the Palantuken mountains. Peter’s way of doing things was all his own. He scraped earth and plaster out of a corner and sat down to make a little model of the landscape on the table, following the contours of the map. He did it extraordinarily neatly, for, like all great hunters, he was as deft as a weaver bird. He puzzled over it for a long time, and conned the map till he must have got it by heart. Then he took his field-glasses—a very good single Zeiss which was part of the spoils from Rasta’s motor-car—and announced that he was going to follow my example and get on to the house-top. Presently his legs disappeared through the trap, and Blenkiron and I were left to our reflections.

I showed him what I thought was the most likely spot—in the foothills of the Palantuken mountains. Peter had his own unique way of doing things. He scraped dirt and plaster out of a corner and started making a small model of the landscape on the table, following the map’s contours. He did it remarkably well because, like all great hunters, he was as skilled as a weaver bird. He focused on it for a long time, studying the map until he probably memorized it. Then he grabbed his binoculars—a really good single Zeiss from Rasta’s car—and announced that he was going to follow my lead and climb up to the rooftop. Soon, his legs disappeared through the trapdoor, and Blenkiron and I were left to our thoughts.

Peter must have found something uncommon interesting, for he stayed on the roof the better part of the day. It was a dull job for us, since there was no light, and Blenkiron had not even the consolation of a game of Patience. But for all that he was in good spirits, for he had had no dyspepsia since we left Constantinople, and announced that he believed he was at last getting even with his darned duodenum. As for me I was pretty restless, for I could not imagine what was detaining Sandy. It was clear that our presence must have been kept secret from Hilda von Einem, for she was a pal of Stumm’s, and he must by now have blown the gaff on Peter and me. How long could this secrecy last, I asked myself. We had now no sort of protection in the whole outfit. Rasta and the Turks wanted our blood: so did Stumm and the Germans; and once the lady found we were deceiving her she would want it most of all. Our only hope was Sandy, and he gave no sign of his existence. I began to fear that with him, too, things had miscarried.

Peter must have found something really interesting because he stayed on the roof for most of the day. It was a boring job for us since there was no light, and Blenkiron didn’t even have the comfort of playing a game of Patience. Still, he was in a good mood because he hadn’t had any stomach issues since we left Constantinople, and he claimed he was finally getting the better of his annoying duodenum. As for me, I was quite restless because I couldn’t figure out what was taking Sandy so long. It was obvious that we had to keep our presence hidden from Hilda von Einem since she was friendly with Stumm, and he must have already spilled the beans about Peter and me. I kept wondering how long this secrecy could last. We had no protection from anyone. Rasta and the Turks wanted to kill us; so did Stumm and the Germans; and once Hilda found out we were deceiving her, she would want it more than anyone else. Our only hope was Sandy, and he was giving no sign of being around. I started to worry that something had gone wrong with him too.

And yet I wasn’t really depressed, only impatient. I could never again get back to the beastly stagnation of that Constantinople week. The guns kept me cheerful. There was the devil of a bombardment all day, and the thought that our Allies were thundering there half a dozen miles off gave me a perfectly groundless hope. If they burst through the defence Hilda von Einem and her prophet and all our enemies would be overwhelmed in the deluge. And that blessed chance depended very much on old Peter, now brooding like a pigeon on the house-tops.

And yet I wasn’t really feeling depressed, just impatient. I could never return to the horrible stagnation of that week in Constantinople. The gunfire kept my spirits up. There was an intense bombardment all day, and the thought that our Allies were raining down fire just a few miles away gave me a completely unfounded sense of hope. If they broke through the defenses, Hilda von Einem, her prophet, and all our enemies would be swept away in the chaos. That blessed chance relied heavily on old Peter, who was now brooding like a pigeon on the rooftops.

It was not till the late afternoon that Hussin appeared again. He took no notice of Peter’s absence, but lit a lantern and set it on the table. Then he went to the door and waited. Presently a light step fell on the stairs, and Hussin drew back to let someone enter. He promptly departed and I heard the key turn in the lock behind him.

It wasn't until late afternoon that Hussin showed up again. He didn't acknowledge Peter's absence, but he lit a lantern and placed it on the table. Then he went to the door and waited. Soon, I heard light footsteps on the stairs, and Hussin stepped back to let someone in. He quickly left and I heard the key turn in the lock behind him.

Sandy stood there, but a new Sandy who made Blenkiron and me jump to our feet. The pelts and skin-cap had gone, and he wore instead a long linen tunic clasped at the waist by a broad girdle. A strange green turban adorned his head, and as he pushed it back I saw that his hair had been shaved. He looked like some acolyte—a weary acolyte, for there was no spring in his walk or nerve in his carriage. He dropped numbly on the divan and laid his head in his hands. The lantern showed his haggard eyes with dark lines beneath them.

Sandy stood there, but he was a different Sandy that made Blenkiron and me jump to our feet. The furs and skin cap were gone; instead, he wore a long linen tunic cinched at the waist with a wide belt. A strange green turban decorated his head, and as he pushed it back, I noticed that his hair had been shaved. He looked like some exhausted acolyte—because there was no energy in his stride or confidence in his posture. He numbly dropped onto the divan and rested his head in his hands. The lantern revealed his worn-out eyes, dark circles underneath them.

“Good God, old man, have you been sick?” I cried.

“Good God, man, have you been unwell?” I exclaimed.

“Not sick,” he said hoarsely. “My body is right enough, but the last few days I have been living in hell.”

“Not sick,” he said hoarsely. “My body is fine, but the last few days have felt like hell.”

Blenkiron nodded sympathetically. That was how he himself would have described the company of the lady.

Blenkiron nodded with understanding. That's how he would have described the company of the lady too.

I marched across to him and gripped both his wrists.

I walked over to him and grabbed both of his wrists.

“Look at me,” I said, “straight in the eyes.”

“Look at me,” I said, “right in the eyes.”

His eyes were like a sleep-walker’s, unwinking, unseeing. “Great heavens, man, you’ve been drugged!” I said.

His eyes were like a sleepwalker's, staring blankly, not seeing anything. "Oh my gosh, man, you've been drugged!" I said.

“Drugged,” he cried, with a weary laugh. “Yes, I have been drugged, but not by any physic. No one has been doctoring my food. But you can’t go through hell without getting your eyes red-hot.”

“Drugged,” he said, with a tired laugh. “Yeah, I’ve been drugged, but not by any medicine. No one has been messing with my food. But you can’t go through hell without getting your eyes burning.”

I kept my grip on his wrists. “Take your time, old chap, and tell us about it. Blenkiron and I are here, and old Peter’s on the roof not far off. We’ll look after you.”

I held onto his wrists. “Take your time, buddy, and tell us about it. Blenkiron and I are here, and old Peter’s on the roof nearby. We’ve got your back.”

“It does me good to hear your voice, Dick,” he said. “It reminds me of clean, honest things.”

“It’s really nice to hear your voice, Dick,” he said. “It reminds me of pure, honest things.”

“They’ll come back, never fear. We’re at the last lap now. One more spurt and it’s over. You’ve got to tell me what the new snag is. Is it that woman?”

“They’ll come back, don’t worry. We’re in the final stretch now. Just one more push and it’s done. You need to tell me what the new problem is. Is it that woman?”

He shivered like a frightened colt. “Woman!” he cried. “Does a woman drag a man through the nether-pit? She’s a she-devil. Oh, it isn’t madness that’s wrong with her. She’s as sane as you and as cool as Blenkiron. Her life is an infernal game of chess, and she plays with souls for pawns. She is evil—evil—evil.” And once more he buried his head in his hands.

He shivered like a scared colt. “Woman!” he shouted. “Does a woman pull a man through the abyss? She’s a she-devil. Oh, it’s not madness that’s the problem with her. She’s as sane as you and as calm as Blenkiron. Her life is a hellish game of chess, and she uses souls as pawns. She is evil—evil—evil.” And once again, he buried his head in his hands.

It was Blenkiron who brought sense into this hectic atmosphere. His slow, beloved drawl was an antiseptic against nerves.

It was Blenkiron who brought clarity to this chaotic environment. His calm, familiar drawl was a soothing remedy for nerves.

“Say, boy,” he said, “I feel just like you about the lady. But our job is not to investigate her character. Her Maker will do that good and sure some day. We’ve got to figure how to circumvent her, and for that you’ve got to tell us what exactly’s been occurring since we parted company.”

“Hey, kid,” he said, “I feel the same way you do about the lady. But our job isn’t to look into her character. Her Creator will take care of that for sure someday. We need to figure out how to get around her, and for that, you have to tell us what exactly has been happening since we last separated.”

Sandy pulled himself together with a great effort.

Sandy gathered himself with a lot of effort.

“Greenmantle died that night I saw you. We buried him secretly by her order in the garden of the villa. Then came the trouble about his successor ... The four Ministers would be no party to a swindle. They were honest men, and vowed that their task now was to make a tomb for their master and pray for the rest of their days at his shrine. They were as immovable as a granite hill and she knew it.... Then they, too, died.”

“Greenmantle passed away the night I saw you. We secretly buried him by her orders in the garden of the villa. Then the issues arose regarding his successor... The four Ministers wouldn’t agree to a scam. They were honest men and swore that their job now was to build a tomb for their master and pray at his shrine for the rest of their lives. They were as unyielding as a granite mountain, and she knew it... Then they, too, died.”

“Murdered?” I gasped.

“Murdered?” I exclaimed.

“Murdered ... all four in one morning. I do not know how, but I helped to bury them. Oh, she had Germans and Kurds to do her foul work, but their hands were clean compared to hers. Pity me, Dick, for I have seen honesty and virtue put to the shambles and have abetted the deed when it was done. It will haunt me to my dying day.”

“Murdered ... all four in one morning. I don’t know how, but I helped bury them. Oh, she had Germans and Kurds to do her dirty work, but their hands were clean compared to hers. Pity me, Dick, for I have seen honesty and virtue destroyed and have played a part in it when it happened. It will haunt me for the rest of my life.”

I did not stop to console him, for my mind was on fire with his news.

I didn’t stop to comfort him because I was consumed by his news.

“Then the prophet is gone, and the humbug is over,” I cried.

“Then the prophet is gone, and the nonsense is done,” I exclaimed.

“The prophet still lives. She has found a successor.”

“The prophet is still alive. She has found a successor.”

He stood up in his linen tunic.

He stood up in his linen shirt.

“Why do I wear these clothes? Because I am Greenmantle. I am the Kaába-i-hurriyeh for all Islam. In three days’ time I will reveal myself to my people and wear on my breast the green ephod of the prophet.”

“Why do I wear these clothes? Because I am Greenmantle. I am the Kaába-i-hurriyeh for all Islam. In three days, I will reveal myself to my people and wear the green ephod of the prophet on my chest.”

He broke off with an hysterical laugh. “Only you see, I won’t. I will cut my throat first.”

He stopped with a hysterical laugh. “But you see, I won’t. I’d rather cut my throat first.”

“Cheer up!” said Blenkiron soothingly. “We’ll find some prettier way than that.”

“Cheer up!” Blenkiron said in a comforting tone. “We’ll come up with a better way than that.”

“There is no way,” he said; “no way but death. We’re done for, all of us. Hussin got you out of Stumm’s clutches, but you’re in danger every moment. At the best you have three days, and then you, too, will be dead.”

“There’s no way,” he said; “no way but death. We’re all finished. Hussin got you out of Stumm’s grip, but you’re in danger every second. At best, you have three days, and then you’ll be dead too.”

I had no words to reply. This change in the bold and unshakeable Sandy took my breath away.

I was at a loss for words. This transformation in the confident and steadfast Sandy left me speechless.

“She made me her accomplice,” he went on. “I should have killed her on the graves of those innocent men. But instead I did all she asked and joined in her game ... She was very candid, you know ... She cares no more than Enver for the faith of Islam. She can laugh at it. But she has her own dreams, and they consume her as a saint is consumed by his devotion. She has told me them, and if the day in the garden was hell, the days since have been the innermost fires of Tophet. I think—it is horrible to say it—that she has got some kind of crazy liking for me. When we have reclaimed the East I am to be by her side when she rides on her milk-white horse into Jerusalem ... And there have been moments—only moments, I swear to God—when I have been fired myself by her madness ...”

“She made me her partner in crime,” he continued. “I should have killed her on the graves of those innocent men. But instead, I did everything she asked and played along in her game ... She was very honest, you know ... She cares no more than Enver does about the faith of Islam. She can laugh at it. But she has her own dreams, and they consume her like a saint consumed by devotion. She’s shared them with me, and if that day in the garden was hell, the days since have been the deepest fires of damnation. I think—it’s awful to say it—that she has some kind of crazy affection for me. When we take back the East, I’m supposed to be by her side when she rides her milk-white horse into Jerusalem ... And there have been moments—just moments, I swear to God—when I’ve been ignited by her madness myself ...”

Sandy’s figure seemed to shrink and his voice grew shrill and wild. It was too much for Blenkiron. He indulged in a torrent of blasphemy such as I believe had never before passed his lips.

Sandy's figure seemed to diminish, and his voice became high-pitched and frantic. It was overwhelming for Blenkiron. He unleashed a stream of curses that I believe had never been uttered by him before.

“I’m blessed if I’ll listen to this God-darned stuff. It isn’t delicate. You get busy, Major, and pump some sense into your afflicted friend.”

“I’ll be damned if I listen to this nonsense. It’s not subtle. You get to work, Major, and make some sense out of your troubled friend.”

I was beginning to see what had happened. Sandy was a man of genius—as much as anybody I ever struck—but he had the defects of such high-strung, fanciful souls. He would take more than mortal risks, and you couldn’t scare him by any ordinary terror. But let his old conscience get cross-eyed, let him find himself in some situation which in his eyes involved his honour, and he might go stark crazy. The woman, who roused in me and Blenkiron only hatred, could catch his imagination and stir in him—for the moment only—an unwilling response. And then came bitter and morbid repentance, and the last desperation.

I was starting to understand what had happened. Sandy was a genius—one of the most remarkable people I’d ever met—but he also had the flaws that often come with highly sensitive, creative individuals. He would take incredible risks, and ordinary fears wouldn’t faze him. But if his conscience got mixed up or if he found himself in a situation that he felt threatened his honor, he could lose it completely. The woman, who provoked nothing but hatred in me and Blenkiron, could capture his imagination and briefly evoke a reluctant response in him. Then would come the bitterness, the dark remorse, and utter desperation.

It was no time to mince matters. “Sandy, you old fool,” I cried, “be thankful you have friends to keep you from playing the fool. You saved my life at Loos, and I’m jolly well going to get you through this show. I’m bossing the outfit now, and for all your confounded prophetic manners, you’ve got to take your orders from me. You aren’t going to reveal yourself to your people, and still less are you going to cut your throat. Greenmantle will avenge the murder of his ministers, and make that bedlamite woman sorry she was born. We’re going to get clear away, and inside of a week we’ll be having tea with the Grand Duke Nicholas.”

It was no time to beat around the bush. “Sandy, you old fool,” I shouted, “be glad you have friends to stop you from being a fool. You saved my life at Loos, and I’m definitely going to get you through this situation. I'm in charge now, and despite your annoying prophetic ways, you have to take orders from me. You’re not going to expose yourself to your people, and you definitely aren’t going to harm yourself. Greenmantle will get revenge for his ministers' murder and make that crazy woman regret ever being born. We’re going to get away from here, and within a week, we’ll be having tea with Grand Duke Nicholas.”

I wasn’t bluffing. Puzzled as I was about ways and means I had still the blind belief that we should win out. And as I spoke two legs dangled through the trap and a dusty and blinking Peter descended in our midst.

I wasn’t bluffing. Although I was confused about how everything would work out, I still had a relentless belief that we would come out on top. As I spoke, two legs dangled through the trap, and a dusty, blinking Peter came down into our midst.

I took the maps from him and spread them on the table.

I took the maps from him and laid them out on the table.

“First, you must know that we’ve had an almighty piece of luck. Last night Hussin took us for a walk over the roofs of Erzerum, and by the blessing of Providence I got into Stumm’s room, and bagged his staff map ... Look there ... d’you see his notes? That’s the danger-point of the whole defence. Once the Russians get that fort, Kara Gubek, they’ve turned the main position. And it can be got; Stumm knows it can; for these two adjacent hills are not held ... It looks a mad enterprise on paper, but Stumm knows that it is possible enough. The question is: Will the Russians guess that? I say no, not unless someone tells them. Therefore, by hook or by crook, we’ve got to get that information through to them.”

“First, you need to know that we’ve had a huge stroke of luck. Last night, Hussin took us for a walk across the rooftops of Erzerum, and by some divine intervention, I got into Stumm’s room and grabbed his staff map... Look there... do you see his notes? That’s the weak point of the entire defense. Once the Russians capture that fort, Kara Gubek, they’ll have compromised the main position. And it’s manageable; Stumm knows it is, because these two nearby hills aren’t guarded... It seems like a crazy plan on paper, but Stumm is confident it can be done. The question is: Will the Russians figure this out? I say no, not unless someone informs them. So, by any means necessary, we need to get that information to them.”

Sandy’s interest in ordinary things was beginning to flicker up again. He studied the map and began to measure distances.

Sandy’s interest in everyday things was starting to spark back up. He looked at the map and began to measure distances.

“Peter’s going to have a try for it. He thinks there’s a sporting chance of his getting through the lines. If he does—if he gets this map to the Grand Duke’s staff—then Stumm’s goose is cooked. In three days the Cossacks will be in the streets of Erzerum.”

“Peter's going to give it a shot. He thinks there's a good chance he can get through the lines. If he does—if he gets this map to the Grand Duke's staff—then Stumm's done for. In three days, the Cossacks will be in the streets of Erzerum.”

“What are the chances?” Sandy asked.

“What are the odds?” Sandy asked.

I glanced at Peter. “We’re hard-bitten fellows and can face the truth. I think the chances against success are about five to one.”

I looked over at Peter. “We're tough guys and can handle the truth. I think the odds of success are about five to one.”

“Two to one,” said Peter modestly. “Not worse than that. I don’t think you’re fair to me, Dick, my old friend.”

“Two to one,” Peter said modestly. “Not worse than that. I don’t think you’re being fair to me, Dick, my old friend.”

I looked at that lean, tight figure and the gentle, resolute face, and I changed my mind. “I’m hanged if I think there are any odds,” I said. “With anybody else it would want a miracle, but with Peter I believe the chances are level.”

I looked at that fit, toned figure and the calm, determined face, and I changed my mind. “I can't believe there's any disadvantage,” I said. “With anyone else it would take a miracle, but with Peter I think the odds are even.”

“Two to one,” Peter persisted. “If it was evens I wouldn’t be interested.”

“Two to one,” Peter insisted. “If it were even odds, I wouldn’t care.”

“Let me go,” Sandy cried. “I talk the lingo, and can pass as a Turk, and I’m a million times likelier to get through. For God’s sake, Dick, let me go.”

“Let me go,” Sandy cried. “I speak the language and can blend in as a Turk, and I’m way more likely to get through. For God’s sake, Dick, let me go.”

“Not you. You’re wanted here. If you disappear the whole show’s busted too soon, and the three of us left behind will be strung up before morning ... No, my son. You’re going to escape, but it will be in company with Blenkiron and me. We’ve got to blow the whole Greenmantle business so high that the bits of it will never come to earth again ... First, tell me how many of your fellows will stick by you? I mean the Companions.”

“Not you. You’re needed here. If you vanish, the whole plan falls apart too soon, and the three of us left behind will be in serious trouble by morning... No, my son. You’re going to get away, but only with Blenkiron and me. We have to blow the whole Greenmantle operation sky-high so that no part of it ever lands again... First, tell me how many of your friends will stand by you? I mean the Companions.”

“The whole half-dozen. They are very worried already about what has happened. She made me sound them in her presence, and they were quite ready to accept me as Greenmantle’s successor. But they have their suspicions about what happened at the villa, and they’ve no love for the woman ... They’d follow me through hell if I bade them, but they would rather it was my own show.”

“The whole group of six. They’re already really concerned about what went down. She had me gauge their feelings in her presence, and they were more than willing to see me as Greenmantle’s replacement. But they have their doubts about what happened at the villa, and they don’t care for the woman... They’d follow me anywhere if I asked them to, but they’d prefer it was my own deal.”

“That’s all right,” I cried. “It is the one thing I’ve been doubtful about. Now observe this map. Erzerum isn’t invested by a long chalk. The Russians are round it in a broad half-moon. That means that all the west, south-west, and north-west is open and undefended by trench lines. There are flanks far away to the north and south in the hills which can be turned, and once we get round a flank there’s nothing between us and our friends ... I’ve figured out our road,” and I traced it on the map. “If we can make that big circuit to the west and get over that pass unobserved we’re bound to strike a Russian column the next day. It’ll be a rough road, but I fancy we’ve all ridden as bad in our time. But one thing we must have, and that’s horses. Can we and your six ruffians slip off in the darkness on the best beasts in this township? If you can manage that, we’ll do the trick.”

"That's fine," I exclaimed. "It's the one thing I've been unsure about. Now take a look at this map. Erzerum isn't surrounded by a long shot. The Russians are surrounding it in a wide half-moon. That means the entire west, southwest, and northwest areas are open and undefended by trenches. There are flanks far off to the north and south in the hills that can be bypassed, and once we get around a flank, there's nothing between us and our allies... I've mapped out our route," and I traced it on the map. "If we can make that big loop to the west and get over that pass without being seen, we're sure to encounter a Russian column the next day. It'll be a rough path, but I reckon we've all ridden worse in our time. But there's one thing we need, and that's horses. Can you and your six guys sneak off in the dark with the best horses in this area? If you can pull that off, we'll make it happen."

Sandy sat down and pondered. Thank heaven, he was thinking now of action and not of his own conscience.

Sandy sat down and thought. Thank goodness, he was focused on taking action and not on his own conscience.

“It must be done,” he said at last, “but it won’t be easy. Hussin’s a great fellow, but as you know well, Dick, horses right up at the battle-front are not easy to come by. Tomorrow I’ve got some kind of infernal fast to observe, and the next day that woman will be coaching me for my part. We’ll have to give Hussin time ... I wish to heaven it could be tonight.” He was silent again for a bit, and then he said: “I believe the best time would be the third night, the eve of the Revelation. She’s bound to leave me alone that night.”

“It has to be done,” he finally said, “but it won’t be easy. Hussin’s a great guy, but as you know well, Dick, it’s tough to find horses right up at the battle front. Tomorrow I have some sort of terrible fast to observe, and the day after that, that woman will be coaching me for my part. We’ll have to give Hussin time… I just wish it could be tonight.” He was quiet for a moment, then added, “I think the best time would be the third night, the eve of the Revelation. She’s sure to leave me alone that night.”

“Right-o,” I said. “It won’t be much fun sitting waiting in this cold sepulchre; but we must keep our heads and risk nothing by being in a hurry. Besides, if Peter wins through, the Turk will be a busy man by the day after tomorrow.”

“Alright,” I said. “It won’t be much fun sitting here in this cold tomb; but we have to stay calm and not rush things. Besides, if Peter makes it, the Turk will be busy by the day after tomorrow.”

The key turned in the door and Hussin stole in like a shade. It was the signal for Sandy to leave.

The key turned in the door, and Hussin slipped in like a ghost. That was the signal for Sandy to go.

“You fellows have given me a new lease of life,” he said. “I’ve got a plan now, and I can set my teeth and stick it out.”

“You guys have given me a new lease on life,” he said. “I’ve got a plan now, and I can grit my teeth and get through it.”

He went up to Peter and gripped his hand. “Good luck. You’re the bravest man I’ve ever met, and I’ve seen a few.” Then he turned abruptly and went out, followed by an exhortation from Blenkiron to “Get busy about the quadrupeds.”

He approached Peter and shook his hand. “Good luck. You’re the bravest person I’ve ever met, and I’ve encountered a few.” Then he turned quickly and walked out, while Blenkiron urged him to “Get busy with the animals.”

Then we set about equipping Peter for his crusade. It was a simple job, for we were not rich in properties. His get-up, with his thick fur-collared greatcoat, was not unlike the ordinary Turkish officer seen in a dim light. But Peter had no intention of passing for a Turk, or indeed of giving anybody the chance of seeing him, and he was more concerned to fit in with the landscape. So he stripped off the greatcoat and pulled a grey sweater of mine over his jacket, and put on his head a woollen helmet of the same colour. He had no need of the map for he had long since got his route by heart, and what was once fixed in that mind stuck like wax; but I made him take Stumm’s plan and paper, hidden below his shirt. The big difficulty, I saw, would be getting to the Russians without getting shot, assuming he passed the Turkish trenches. He could only hope that he would strike someone with a smattering of English or German. Twice he ascended to the roof and came back cheerful, for there was promise of wild weather.

Then we got Peter ready for his mission. It was an easy task, since we didn't have many resources. His outfit, complete with a thick fur-collared overcoat, resembled that of a typical Turkish officer in low light. But Peter didn't plan to disguise himself as a Turk or give anyone the chance to see him, so he focused on blending in with his surroundings. He took off the overcoat, threw on a grey sweater of mine over his jacket, and put on a woolen helmet in the same color. He didn’t need the map since he had memorized his route long ago, and once it was in his mind, it stuck like glue; but I insisted he take Stumm’s plan and paper, tucked away under his shirt. The main challenge, as I saw it, would be reaching the Russians without getting shot, assuming he could get past the Turkish trenches. He could only hope to encounter someone who spoke a bit of English or German. Twice he went up to the roof and returned in good spirits, as there was the promise of wild weather.

Hussin brought in our supper, and Peter made up a parcel of food. Blenkiron and I had both small flasks of brandy and I gave him mine.

Hussin brought in our dinner, and Peter packed up some food. Blenkiron and I both had little flasks of brandy, and I handed him mine.

Then he held out his hand quite simply, like a good child who is going off to bed. It was too much for Blenkiron. With large tears rolling down his face he announced that, if we all came through, he was going to fit him into the softest berth that money could buy. I don’t think he was understood, for old Peter’s eyes had now the faraway absorption of the hunter who has found game. He was thinking only of his job.

Then he simply held out his hand, like a good child heading off to bed. It was too much for Blenkiron. With big tears rolling down his face, he said that if we all made it through, he was going to find him the softest spot that money could buy. I don’t think he was really understood, because old Peter’s eyes had taken on the distant focus of a hunter who has found prey. He was only thinking about his task.

Two legs and a pair of very shabby boots vanished through the trap, and suddenly I felt utterly lonely and desperately sad. The guns were beginning to roar again in the east, and in the intervals came the whistle of the rising storm.

Two legs and a pair of really worn-out boots disappeared through the trap, and suddenly I felt completely alone and incredibly sad. The guns were starting to roar again in the east, and in between the sounds came the whistle of the approaching storm.

CHAPTER XX.
Peter Pienaar Goes to the Wars

This chapter is the tale that Peter told me—long after, sitting beside a stove in the hotel at Bergen, where we were waiting for our boat.

This chapter is the story that Peter shared with me—much later, sitting next to a stove in the hotel in Bergen, where we were waiting for our boat.

He climbed on the roof and shinned down the broken bricks of the outer wall. The outbuilding we were lodged in abutted on a road, and was outside the proper enceinte of the house. At ordinary times I have no doubt there were sentries, but Sandy and Hussin had probably managed to clear them off this end for a little. Anyhow he saw nobody as he crossed the road and dived into the snowy fields.

He climbed onto the roof and slid down the broken bricks of the outer wall. The outbuilding we were staying in was next to a road and was outside the main area of the house. Normally, I’m sure there were guards, but Sandy and Hussin had probably managed to clear them out for a bit. Anyway, he didn’t see anyone as he crossed the road and jumped into the snowy fields.

He knew very well that he must do the job in the twelve hours of darkness ahead of him. The immediate front of a battle is a bit too public for anyone to lie hidden in by day, especially when two or three feet of snow make everything kenspeckle. Now hurry in a job of this kind was abhorrent to Peter’s soul, for, like all Boers, his tastes were for slowness and sureness, though he could hustle fast enough when haste was needed. As he pushed through the winter fields he reckoned up the things in his favour, and found the only one the dirty weather. There was a high, gusty wind, blowing scuds of snow but never coming to any great fall. The frost had gone, and the lying snow was as soft as butter. That was all to the good, he thought, for a clear, hard night would have been the devil.

He knew he had to get the job done in the twelve hours of darkness ahead of him. The front lines of a battle are just too exposed for anyone to stay hidden during the day, especially when there’s two or three feet of snow making everything so visible. Now, rushing on a job like this was something Peter absolutely hated, because, like all Boers, he preferred to take things slowly and carefully, although he could move quickly when he needed to. As he made his way through the winter fields, he considered what advantages he had, and found that the only one was the terrible weather. There was a strong, gusty wind blowing patches of snow but not a heavy snowfall. The frost had faded, and the snow on the ground was as soft as butter. That was a positive, he thought, because a clear, cold night would have been a nightmare.

The first bit was through farmlands, which were seamed with little snow-filled water-furrows. Now and then would come a house and a patch of fruit trees, but there was nobody abroad. The roads were crowded enough, but Peter had no use for roads. I can picture him swinging along with his bent back, stopping every now and then to sniff and listen, alert for the foreknowledge of danger. When he chose he could cover country like an antelope.

The first part was through farmlands, marked by small, snowy water channels. Every so often, there was a house and some fruit trees, but no one was outside. The roads were busy enough, but Peter didn’t care about roads. I can imagine him moving along with his hunched back, pausing now and then to sniff the air and listen, ready to sense any danger ahead. When he wanted to, he could move across the land like an antelope.

Soon he struck a big road full of transport. It was the road from Erzerum to the Palantuken pass, and he waited his chance and crossed it. After that the ground grew rough with boulders and patches of thorn-trees, splendid cover where he could move fast without worrying. Then he was pulled up suddenly on the bank of a river. The map had warned him of it, but not that it would be so big.

Soon he came across a busy road. It was the road from Erzerum to the Palantuken pass, and he waited for the right moment to cross it. After that, the terrain became rough with boulders and patches of thorny bushes, great cover where he could move quickly without concern. Then he suddenly found himself on the bank of a river. The map had warned him about it, but not that it would be so wide.

It was a torrent swollen with melting snow and rains in the hills, and it was running fifty yards wide. Peter thought he could have swum it, but he was very averse to a drenching. “A wet man makes too much noise,” he said, and besides, there was the off-chance that the current would be too much for him. So he moved up stream to look for a bridge.

It was a rushing river filled with melting snow and rain from the hills, and it was fifty yards wide. Peter thought he could swim across it, but he really didn't want to get soaked. “A wet man makes too much noise,” he said, and besides, there was a chance the current might be too strong for him. So he headed upstream to find a bridge.

In ten minutes he found one, a new-made thing of trestles, broad enough to take transport wagons. It was guarded, for he heard the tramp of a sentry, and as he pulled himself up the bank he observed a couple of long wooden huts, obviously some kind of billets. These were on the near side of the stream, about a dozen yards from the bridge. A door stood open and a light showed in it, and from within came the sound of voices.... Peter had a sense of hearing like a wild animal, and he could detect even from the confused gabble that the voices were German.

In ten minutes, he found one, a newly built structure of trestles, wide enough for transport wagons. It was being guarded; he could hear the sound of a sentry’s footsteps. As he climbed up the bank, he noticed a couple of long wooden huts, clearly some kind of barracks. These were on the near side of the stream, about twelve yards from the bridge. A door was open, and light spilled out, along with the sound of voices coming from inside... Peter had the hearing of a wild animal, and even through the mixed chatter, he could tell the voices were in German.

As he lay and listened someone came over the bridge. It was an officer, for the sentry saluted. The man disappeared in one of the huts. Peter had struck the billets and repairing shop of a squad of German sappers.

As he lay there listening, someone walked over the bridge. It was an officer, as the sentry saluted. The man went into one of the huts. Peter had found the barracks and repair shop of a group of German sappers.

He was just going ruefully to retrace his steps and try to find a good place to swim the stream when it struck him that the officer who had passed him wore clothes very like his own. He, too, had had a grey sweater and a Balaclava helmet, for even a German officer ceases to be dressy on a mid-winter’s night in Anatolia. The idea came to Peter to walk boldly across the bridge and trust to the sentry not seeing the difference.

He was about to retrace his steps, feeling regretful, and look for a good spot to swim across the stream when it hit him that the officer who had just passed by was wearing clothes that looked a lot like his. He also had a gray sweater and a Balaclava helmet, because even a German officer won't be dressed up on a mid-winter night in Anatolia. Peter had the idea to walk confidently across the bridge and hope the sentry wouldn’t notice the difference.

He slipped round a corner of the hut and marched down the road. The sentry was now at the far end, which was lucky, for if the worst came to the worst he could throttle him. Peter, mimicking the stiff German walk, swung past him, his head down as if to protect him from the wind.

He slipped around a corner of the hut and walked down the road. The guard was now at the far end, which was fortunate, because if things went south, he could take him out. Peter, copying the rigid German walk, swung past him, his head down as if to shield himself from the wind.

The man saluted. He did more, for he offered conversation. The officer must have been a genial soul.

The man saluted. He did more; he started a conversation. The officer must have been a friendly person.

“It’s a rough night, Captain,” he said in German. “The wagons are late. Pray God, Michael hasn’t got a shell in his lot. They’ve begun putting over some big ones.”

“It’s a tough night, Captain,” he said in German. “The wagons are running late. Let’s hope Michael hasn’t got a shell in his load. They’ve started firing some big ones.”

Peter grunted good night in German and strode on. He was just leaving the road when he heard a great halloo behind him.

Peter grunted good night in German and walked on. He was just leaving the road when he heard a loud shout behind him.

The real officer must have appeared on his heels, and the sentry’s doubts had been stirred. A whistle was blown, and, looking back, Peter saw lanterns waving in the gale. They were coming out to look for the duplicate.

The real officer must have shown up right behind him, and the sentry’s doubts had been raised. A whistle blew, and looking back, Peter saw lanterns flickering in the wind. They were coming out to search for the duplicate.

He stood still for a second, and noticed the lights spreading out south of the road. He was just about to dive off it on the north side when he was aware of a difficulty. On that side a steep bank fell to a ditch, and the bank beyond bounded a big flood. He could see the dull ruffle of the water under the wind.

He paused for a moment and saw the lights spreading out to the south of the road. He was just about to jump off the road on the north side when he realized there was a problem. On that side, a steep bank dropped down to a ditch, and the bank beyond led to a large flood. He could see the dull ripples of the water stirred by the wind.

On the road itself he would soon be caught; south of it the search was beginning; and the ditch itself was no place to hide, for he saw a lantern moving up it. Peter dropped into it all the same and made a plan. The side below the road was a little undercut and very steep. He resolved to plaster himself against it, for he would be hidden from the road, and a searcher in the ditch would not be likely to explore the unbroken sides. It was always a maxim of Peter’s that the best hiding-place was the worst, the least obvious to the minds of those who were looking for you.

On the road itself, he would soon be caught; south of it, the search was starting; and the ditch wasn't a good hiding spot because he could see a lantern moving along it. Still, Peter dropped down into it and came up with a plan. The side below the road was a bit undercut and really steep. He decided to press himself against it because he would be hidden from the road, and someone searching the ditch probably wouldn’t explore the solid sides. Peter always believed that the best hiding place was often the worst one, the least obvious to those looking for you.

He waited until the lights both in the road and the ditch came nearer, and then he gripped the edge with his left hand, where some stones gave him purchase, dug the toes of his boots into the wet soil and stuck like a limpet. It needed some strength to keep the position for long, but the muscles of his arms and legs were like whipcord.

He waited until the lights in the road and the ditch got closer, and then he grabbed the edge with his left hand, where some stones offered support, dug the toes of his boots into the wet soil, and held on like a limpet. It took some strength to maintain his position for long, but the muscles in his arms and legs were like steel wire.

The searcher in the ditch soon got tired, for the place was very wet, and joined his comrades on the road. They came along, running, flashing the lanterns into the trench, and exploring all the immediate countryside.

The guy searching in the ditch quickly got tired because it was really muddy and joined his friends on the road. They ran up, shining their lanterns into the trench and checking out the surrounding area.

Then rose a noise of wheels and horses from the opposite direction. Michael and the delayed wagons were approaching. They dashed up at a great pace, driven wildly, and for one horrid second Peter thought they were going to spill into the ditch at the very spot where he was concealed. The wheels passed so close to the edge that they almost grazed his fingers. Somebody shouted an order and they pulled up a yard or two nearer the bridge. The others came up and there was a consultation.

Then a loud noise of wheels and horses came from the opposite direction. Michael and the delayed wagons were getting closer. They sped up at a fast pace, driven recklessly, and for a terrifying second, Peter thought they were going to tumble into the ditch right where he was hidden. The wheels passed so close to the edge that they almost brushed against his fingers. Someone shouted an order, and they stopped a yard or two nearer to the bridge. The others arrived, and there was a discussion.

Michael swore he had passed no one on the road.

Michael swore he hadn't seen anyone on the road.

“That fool Hannus has seen a ghost,” said the officer testily. “It’s too cold for this child’s play.”

“That idiot Hannus thinks he’s seen a ghost,” the officer snapped. “It’s too cold for this kind of nonsense.”

Hannus, almost in tears, repeated his tale. “The man spoke to me in good German,” he cried.

Hannus, nearly in tears, repeated his story. “The guy talked to me in fluent German,” he exclaimed.

“Ghost or no ghost he is safe enough up the road,” said the officer. “Kind God, that was a big one!” He stopped and stared at a shell-burst, for the bombardment from the east was growing fiercer.

“Ghost or no ghost, he’s safe enough up the road,” said the officer. “Good God, that was a big one!” He paused and stared at a shell explosion, as the bombardment from the east was getting more intense.

They stood discussing the fire for a minute and presently moved off. Peter gave them two minutes’ law and then clambered back to the highway and set off along it at a run. The noise of the shelling and the wind, together with the thick darkness, made it safe to hurry.

They stood talking about the fire for a minute and then moved on. Peter waited a couple of minutes and then climbed back to the highway and took off running along it. The sounds of the shelling and the wind, along with the thick darkness, made it safe to rush.

He left the road at the first chance and took to the broken country. The ground was now rising towards a spur of the Palantuken, on the far slope of which were the Turkish trenches. The night had begun by being pretty nearly as black as pitch; even the smoke from the shell explosions, which is often visible in darkness, could not be seen. But as the wind blew the snow-clouds athwart the sky patches of stars came out. Peter had a compass, but he didn’t need to use it, for he had a kind of “feel” for landscape, a special sense which is born in savages and can only be acquired after long experience by the white man. I believe he could smell where the north lay. He had settled roughly which part of the line he would try, merely because of its nearness to the enemy. But he might see reason to vary this, and as he moved he began to think that the safest place was where the shelling was hottest. He didn’t like the notion, but it sounded sense.

He left the road at the first opportunity and ventured into the rugged terrain. The ground was now rising toward a spur of the Palantuken, where the Turkish trenches lay on the far slope. The night had started off nearly pitch-black; even the smoke from the shell explosions, which is often visible in the dark, was absent. But as the wind pushed the snow clouds across the sky, patches of stars appeared. Peter had a compass, but he didn’t need it because he had an instinct for the landscape, a special sense that’s inherent to some indigenous people and can only be developed over time by others. I believe he could almost smell where north was. He had roughly determined which section of the line he would target, mainly because of its proximity to the enemy. However, he might find reasons to change that plan, and as he moved, he started to think that the safest spot was where the shelling was the heaviest. He didn’t like the idea, but it made some sense.

Suddenly he began to puzzle over queer things in the ground, and, as he had never seen big guns before, it took him a moment to fix them. Presently one went off at his elbow with a roar like the Last Day. These were Austrian howitzers—nothing over eight-inch, I fancy, but to Peter they looked like leviathans. Here, too, he saw for the first time a big and quite recent shell-hole, for the Russian guns were searching out the position. He was so interested in it all that he poked his nose where he shouldn’t have been, and dropped plump into the pit behind a gun-emplacement.

Suddenly, he started to wonder about strange things in the ground, and since he had never seen big guns before, it took him a moment to understand what they were. Then, one fired right next to him with a noise like the end of the world. These were Austrian howitzers—nothing bigger than eight inches, I think, but to Peter, they appeared massive. Here, he also saw a big, fairly recent shell hole for the first time, as the Russian guns were targeting the position. He was so captivated by it all that he poked his nose where he shouldn’t have and fell right into the pit behind a gun emplacement.

Gunners all the world over are the same—shy people, who hide themselves in holes and hibernate and mortally dislike being detected.

Gunners everywhere are the same—they're shy individuals who stay hidden in their spots, keeping to themselves, and really don’t like being found out.

A gruff voice cried “Wer da?” and a heavy hand seized his neck.

A rough voice shouted “Who’s there?” and a strong hand grabbed his neck.

Peter was ready with his story. He belonged to Michael’s wagon-team and had been left behind. He wanted to be told the way to the sappers’ camp. He was very apologetic, not to say obsequious.

Peter was prepared with his story. He was part of Michael’s wagon team and had been left behind. He wanted to be shown the way to the sappers’ camp. He was extremely apologetic, if not downright fawning.

“It is one of those Prussian swine from the Marta bridge,” said a gunner. “Land him a kick to teach him sense. Bear to your right, mannikin, and you will find a road. And have a care when you get there, for the Russkoes are registering on it.”

“It’s one of those Prussian pigs from the Marta bridge,” said a gunner. “Give him a kick to knock some sense into him. Turn to your right, little man, and you’ll find a road. And watch out when you get there, because the Russians are targeting it.”

Peter thanked them and bore off to the right. After that he kept a wary eye on the howitzers, and was thankful when he got out of their area on to the slopes up the hill. Here was the type of country that was familiar to him, and he defied any Turk or Boche to spot him among the scrub and boulders. He was getting on very well, when once more, close to his ear, came a sound like the crack of doom.

Peter thanked them and headed off to the right. After that, he kept a watchful eye on the howitzers and was relieved when he moved out of their range and up the slopes of the hill. This was the kind of terrain he knew well, and he challenged any Turk or German to find him among the shrubs and rocks. He was making good progress when, suddenly, a noise like the crack of doom rang close to his ear once again.

It was the field-guns now, and the sound of a field-gun close at hand is bad for the nerves if you aren’t expecting it. Peter thought he had been hit, and lay flat for a little to consider. Then he found the right explanation, and crawled forward very warily.

It was the field guns now, and the sound of a field gun nearby is tough on the nerves if you're not ready for it. Peter thought he had been hit, so he lay flat for a moment to think it over. Then he figured it out and crawled forward very cautiously.

Presently he saw his first Russian shell. It dropped half a dozen yards to his right, making a great hole in the snow and sending up a mass of mixed earth, snow, and broken stones. Peter spat out the dirt and felt very solemn. You must remember that never in his life had he seen big shelling, and was now being landed in the thick of a first-class show without any preparation. He said he felt cold in his stomach, and very wishful to run away, if there had been anywhere to run to. But he kept on to the crest of the ridge, over which a big glow was broadening like sunrise. He tripped once over a wire, which he took for some kind of snare, and after that went very warily. By and by he got his face between two boulders and looked over into the true battle-field.

Right now, he saw his first Russian shell. It landed a few yards to his right, creating a big crater in the snow and sending up a mix of dirt, snow, and broken stones. Peter spat out the dirt and felt really serious. You have to remember that he had never seen heavy shelling before, and now he was thrown into the midst of a major event completely unprepared. He said he felt a coldness in his stomach and really wanted to run away, if only there was somewhere to go. But he kept moving to the top of the ridge, over which a big glow was spreading like sunrise. He tripped once over a wire, which he thought was some kind of trap, and after that, he moved very carefully. Eventually, he found himself between two boulders and looked out over the actual battlefield.

He told me it was exactly what the predikant used to say that Hell would be like. About fifty yards down the slope lay the Turkish trenches—they were dark against the snow, and now and then a black figure like a devil showed for an instant and disappeared. The Turks clearly expected an infantry attack, for they were sending up calcium rockets and Very flares. The Russians were battering their line and spraying all the hinterland, not with shrapnel, but with good, solid high-explosives. The place would be as bright as day for a moment, all smothered in a scurry of smoke and snow and debris, and then a black pall would fall on it, when only the thunder of the guns told of the battle.

He told me it was exactly what the preacher used to say Hell would be like. About fifty yards down the slope were the Turkish trenches—they stood out dark against the snow, and occasionally a black figure, like a devil, would appear for a moment and then vanish. The Turks clearly anticipated an infantry attack because they were launching calcium rockets and Very flares. The Russians were pounding their line and covering the entire area, not with shrapnel, but with solid high-explosives. The place would light up like day for a moment, all engulfed in a rush of smoke, snow, and debris, and then a dark cloud would descend over it, with only the roar of the guns revealing the battle.

Peter felt very sick. He had not believed there could be so much noise in the world, and the drums of his ears were splitting. Now, for a man to whom courage is habitual, the taste of fear—naked, utter fear—is a horrible thing. It seems to wash away all his manhood. Peter lay on the crest, watching the shells burst, and confident that any moment he might be a shattered remnant. He lay and reasoned with himself, calling himself every name he could think of, but conscious that nothing would get rid of that lump of ice below his heart.

Peter felt really sick. He never thought there could be so much noise in the world, and his ears were pounding. For someone who usually has courage, feeling pure, raw fear is a terrible experience. It seems to strip away all his strength. Peter lay on the hill, watching the shells explode, certain that at any moment he could be reduced to a broken remnant. He lay there and talked himself down, calling himself every name he could think of, but he knew that nothing would shake off that lump of ice in his chest.

Then he could stand it no longer. He got up and ran for his life.

Then he couldn't take it anymore. He got up and ran for his life.

But he ran forward.

But he sprinted ahead.

It was the craziest performance. He went hell-for-leather over a piece of ground which was being watered with H.E., but by the mercy of heaven nothing hit him. He took some fearsome tosses in shell-holes, but partly erect and partly on all fours he did the fifty yards and tumbled into a Turkish trench right on top of a dead man.

It was the wildest performance. He charged across a patch of ground that was being watered with H.E., but thankfully nothing got to him. He took some brutal falls into shell-holes, but partly standing and partly on all fours, he covered the fifty yards and fell into a Turkish trench right on top of a dead man.

The contact with that body brought him to his senses. That men could die at all seemed a comforting, homely thing after that unnatural pandemonium. The next moment a crump took the parapet of the trench some yards to his left, and he was half buried in an avalanche.

The contact with that body brought him back to reality. The idea that people could die at all felt strangely comforting and familiar after such chaotic madness. But then, an explosion hit the trench a few yards to his left, and he was partly buried in debris.

He crawled out of that, pretty badly cut about the head. He was quite cool now and thinking hard about his next step. There were men all around him, sullen dark faces as he saw them when the flares went up. They were manning the parapets and waiting tensely for something else than the shelling. They paid no attention to him, for I fancy in that trench units were pretty well mixed up, and under a bad bombardment no one bothers about his neighbour. He found himself free to move as he pleased. The ground of the trench was littered with empty cartridge-cases, and there were many dead bodies.

He crawled out of that, pretty badly cut on his head. He was pretty calm now and thinking hard about his next move. There were men all around him, their faces dark and sullen as he saw them when the flares lit up. They were at the parapets, waiting tensely for something other than the shelling. They didn’t notice him because I guess in that trench the units were all mixed together, and during heavy bombardment, nobody pays attention to their neighbor. He realized he was free to move as he wanted. The ground of the trench was covered with empty cartridge cases, and there were many dead bodies.

The last shell, as I have said, had played havoc with the parapet. In the next spell of darkness Peter crawled through the gap and twisted among some snowy hillocks. He was no longer afraid of shells, any more than he was afraid of a veld thunderstorm. But he was wondering very hard how he should ever get to the Russians. The Turks were behind him now, but there was the biggest danger in front.

The last shell, as I mentioned, had wrecked the parapet. During the next period of darkness, Peter crawled through the gap and maneuvered among some snowy hillocks. He was no longer scared of shells, just like he wasn't afraid of a thunderstorm in the veld. But he was thinking hard about how he would ever reach the Russians. The Turks were behind him now, but the biggest danger lay ahead.

Then the artillery ceased. It was so sudden that he thought he had gone deaf, and could hardly realize the blessed relief of it. The wind, too, seemed to have fallen, or perhaps he was sheltered by the lee of the hill. There were a lot of dead here also, and that he couldn’t understand, for they were new dead. Had the Turks attacked and been driven back? When he had gone about thirty yards he stopped to take his bearings. On the right were the ruins of a large building set on fire by the guns. There was a blur of woods and the debris of walls round it. Away to the left another hill ran out farther to the east, and the place he was in seemed to be a kind of cup between the spurs. Just before him was a little ruined building, with the sky seen through its rafters, for the smouldering ruin on the right gave a certain light. He wondered if the Russian firing-line lay there.

Then the artillery stopped. It was so abrupt that he thought he had gone deaf and could hardly grasp the wonderful relief of it. The wind seemed to have died down too, or maybe he was shielded by the hill. There were quite a few dead here as well, and he couldn't understand why, since they were new dead. Had the Turks attacked and been pushed back? After walking about thirty yards, he paused to get his bearings. On the right were the ruins of a large building set ablaze by the guns. There was a blur of trees and debris around it. To the left, another hill stretched further east, and the spot he was in felt like a bowl nestled between the slopes. Right in front of him was a small ruined building, with the sky visible through its rafters, as the smoldering wreckage on the right cast a certain light. He wondered if the Russian firing line was located there.

Just then he heard voices—smothered voices—not a yard away and apparently below the ground. He instantly jumped to what this must mean. It was a Turkish trench—a communication trench. Peter didn’t know much about modern warfare, but he had read in the papers, or heard from me, enough to make him draw the right moral. The fresh dead pointed to the same conclusion. What he had got through were the Turkish support trenches, not their firing-line. That was still before him.

Just then, he heard voices—muffled voices—less than a yard away and apparently underground. He quickly figured out what this meant. It was a Turkish trench—a communication trench. Peter didn’t know a lot about modern warfare, but he had read in the news, or heard from me, enough to come to the right conclusion. The fresh dead confirmed the same thing. What he had passed through were the Turkish support trenches, not their front line. That was still ahead of him.

He didn’t despair, for the rebound from panic had made him extra courageous. He crawled forward, an inch at a time, taking no sort of risk, and presently found himself looking at the parados of a trench. Then he lay quiet to think out the next step.

He didn’t lose hope, because the relief from panic had made him braver. He crawled forward, inch by inch, taking no risks, and soon found himself looking at the back of a trench. Then he stayed still to figure out his next move.

The shelling had stopped, and there was that queer kind of peace which falls sometimes on two armies not a quarter of a mile distant. Peter said he could hear nothing but the far-off sighing of the wind. There seemed to be no movement of any kind in the trench before him, which ran through the ruined building. The light of the burning was dying, and he could just make out the mound of earth a yard in front. He began to feel hungry, and got out his packet of food and had a swig at the brandy flask. That comforted him, and he felt a master of his fate again. But the next step was not so easy. He must find out what lay behind that mound of earth.

The shelling had stopped, and there was that strange kind of peace that sometimes settles over two armies less than a quarter of a mile apart. Peter said he could hear nothing except the distant sound of the wind. There didn't seem to be any movement in the trench in front of him, which ran through the ruined building. The fires were dying down, and he could barely make out the mound of earth a yard away. He started to feel hungry, so he took out his food pack and had a sip from the brandy flask. That made him feel better, and he felt in control of his fate again. But figuring out what was behind that mound of earth was going to be tougher.

Suddenly a curious sound fell on his ears. It was so faint that at first he doubted the evidence of his senses. Then as the wind fell it came louder. It was exactly like some hollow piece of metal being struck by a stick, musical and oddly resonant.

Suddenly, a strange sound reached his ears. It was so faint that at first he questioned if he was really hearing it. Then, as the wind died down, it grew louder. It sounded just like a hollow piece of metal being hit by a stick, musical and oddly resonant.

He concluded it was the wind blowing a branch of a tree against an old boiler in the ruin before him. The trouble was that there was scarcely enough wind now for that in this sheltered cup.

He figured it was the wind pushing a branch from a tree against an old boiler in the ruins in front of him. The problem was that there was hardly any wind now in this sheltered area.

But as he listened he caught the note again. It was a bell, a fallen bell, and the place before him must have been a chapel. He remembered that an Armenian monastery had been marked on the big map, and he guessed it was the burned building on his right.

But as he listened, he heard the sound again. It was a bell, a broken bell, and the location in front of him must have been a chapel. He recalled that there had been an Armenian monastery marked on the large map, and he assumed it was the charred building to his right.

The thought of a chapel and a bell gave him the notion of some human agency. And then suddenly the notion was confirmed. The sound was regular and concerted—dot, dash, dot—dash, dot, dot. The branch of a tree and the wind may play strange pranks, but they do not produce the longs and shorts of the Morse Code.

The idea of a chapel and a bell made him think of some human involvement. Then, just like that, his idea was confirmed. The sound was steady and coordinated—dot, dash, dot—dash, dot, dot. A tree branch and the wind can create odd noises, but they don't make the long and short signals of Morse Code.

This was where Peter’s intelligence work in the Boer War helped him. He knew the Morse, he could read it, but he could make nothing of the signalling. It was either in some special code or in a strange language.

This was where Peter's intelligence work during the Boer War came in handy. He knew Morse code and could read it, but he couldn't make sense of the signaling. It was either in a special code or in a foreign language.

He lay still and did some calm thinking. There was a man in front of him, a Turkish soldier, who was in the enemy’s pay. Therefore he could fraternize with him, for they were on the same side. But how was he to approach him without getting shot in the process? Again, how could a man send signals to the enemy from a firing-line without being detected? Peter found an answer in the strange configuration of the ground. He had not heard a sound until he was a few yards from the place, and they would be inaudible to men in the reserve trenches and even in the communication trenches. If somebody moving up the latter caught the noise, it would be easy to explain it naturally. But the wind blowing down the cup would carry it far in the enemy’s direction.

He lay still and thought calmly. There was a man in front of him, a Turkish soldier, who was working for the enemy. So, he could connect with him since they were on the same side. But how could he approach him without risking being shot? And how could a man send signals to the enemy from the front lines without being noticed? Peter found an answer in the unusual layout of the ground. He hadn't heard a sound until he was just a few yards away, and any noise would be unnoticeable to the men in the reserve trenches and even in the communication trenches. If someone moving up the latter heard the noise, it would be easy to explain it away. But the wind blowing down the dip would carry it far into enemy territory.

There remained the risk of being heard by those parallel with the bell in the firing trenches. Peter concluded that that trench must be very thinly held, probably only by a few observers, and the nearest might be a dozen yards off. He had read about that being the French fashion under a big bombardment.

There was still a chance of being heard by those next to the bell in the firing trenches. Peter figured that the trench had to be very lightly staffed, probably just a few watchers, and the closest one might be only about ten yards away. He had read that this was the French way of doing things during heavy bombardments.

The next thing was to find out how to make himself known to this ally. He decided that the only way was to surprise him. He might get shot, but he trusted to his strength and agility against a man who was almost certainly wearied. When he had got him safe, explanations might follow.

The next thing was to figure out how to introduce himself to this ally. He decided that the only way was to catch him off guard. He might get shot, but he relied on his strength and agility against a man who was likely tired. Once he had him secured, they could explain things afterward.

Peter was now enjoying himself hugely. If only those infernal guns kept silent he would play out the game in the sober, decorous way he loved. So very delicately he began to wriggle forward to where the sound was.

Peter was really enjoying himself now. If only those damn guns would stay quiet, he could play the game in the serious, proper way he liked. Very carefully, he started to move forward toward the sound.

The night was now as black as ink around him, and very quiet, too, except for soughings of the dying gale. The snow had drifted a little in the lee of the ruined walls, and Peter’s progress was naturally very slow. He could not afford to dislodge one ounce of snow. Still the tinkling went on, now in greater volume. Peter was in terror lest it should cease before he got his man.

The night was as dark as ink around him, and it was really quiet too, except for the soft sounds of the dying wind. The snow had piled up a bit against the ruined walls, which meant Peter was moving extremely slowly. He couldn’t afford to disturb even a bit of snow. Still, the tinkling continued, now louder. Peter was terrified it would stop before he could catch his target.

Presently his hand clutched at empty space. He was on the lip of the front trench. The sound was now a yard to his right, and with infinite care he shifted his position. Now the bell was just below him, and he felt the big rafter of the woodwork from which it had fallen. He felt something else—a stretch of wire fixed in the ground with the far end hanging in the void. That would be the spy’s explanation if anyone heard the sound and came seeking the cause.

Presently, his hand grasped at empty air. He was at the edge of the front trench. The noise was now a foot to his right, and with great caution, he adjusted his position. Now the bell was right below him, and he felt the heavy beam of the woodwork from which it had dropped. He sensed something else—a stretch of wire anchored in the ground, with the far end dangling in mid-air. That would be the spy’s cover story if anyone heard the noise and came looking for the source.

Somewhere in the darkness before him and below was the man, not a yard off. Peter remained very still, studying the situation. He could not see, but he could feel the presence, and he was trying to decide the relative position of the man and bell and their exact distance from him. The thing was not so easy as it looked, for if he jumped for where he believed the figure was, he might miss it and get a bullet in the stomach. A man who played so risky a game was probably handy with his firearms. Besides, if he should hit the bell, he would make a hideous row and alarm the whole front.

Somewhere in the darkness ahead and below him was the man, just a few feet away. Peter stayed completely still, assessing the situation. He couldn't see, but he could sense the presence and was trying to figure out the relative positions of the man and the bell and how far away they were. It wasn't as straightforward as it seemed because if he jumped toward where he thought the figure was, he might miss and end up with a bullet in the stomach. A person who played such a dangerous game was probably good with guns. Plus, if he accidentally hit the bell, it would make a loud noise and alert everyone nearby.

Fate suddenly gave him the right chance. The unseen figure stood up and moved a step, till his back was against the parados. He actually brushed against Peter’s elbow, who held his breath.

Fate suddenly gave him the perfect opportunity. The unseen figure stood up and took a step until his back was against the wall. He actually brushed against Peter’s elbow, making him hold his breath.

There is a catch that the Kaffirs have which would need several diagrams to explain. It is partly a neck hold, and partly a paralysing backward twist of the right arm, but if it is practised on a man from behind, it locks him as sure as if he were handcuffed. Peter slowly got his body raised and his knees drawn under him, and reached for his prey.

There’s a trick that the Kaffirs have that would take several diagrams to explain. It’s partly a neck hold and partly a paralyzing backward twist of the right arm, but if it’s executed on a person from behind, it locks them in place just like handcuffs. Peter slowly lifted his body and pulled his knees under him, reaching for his target.

He got him. A head was pulled backward over the edge of the trench, and he felt in the air the motion of the left arm pawing feebly but unable to reach behind.

He had him. A head was yanked back over the edge of the trench, and he felt the left arm flailing weakly in the air but unable to reach behind.

“Be still,” whispered Peter in German; “I mean you no harm. We are friends of the same purpose. Do you speak German?”

“Be still,” whispered Peter in German; “I don't want to hurt you. We’re friends with the same goal. Do you speak German?”

Nein,” said a muffled voice.

“No,” said a muffled voice.

“English?”

"Do you speak English?"

“Yes,” said the voice.

“Yeah,” said the voice.

“Thank God,” said Peter. “Then we can understand each other. I’ve watched your notion of signalling, and a very good one it is. I’ve got to get through to the Russian lines somehow before morning, and I want you to help me. I’m English—a kind of English, so we’re on the same side. If I let go your neck, will you be good and talk reasonably?”

“Thank God,” Peter said. “Now we can understand each other. I’ve been observing your idea of signaling, and it’s a really good one. I need to get through the Russian lines somehow before morning, and I want your help. I’m English—a sort of English, so we’re on the same side. If I let go of your neck, will you behave and talk reasonably?”

The voice assented. Peter let go, and in the same instant slipped to the side. The man wheeled round and flung out an arm but gripped vacancy.

The voice agreed. Peter released his hold and, at the same time, moved to the side. The man turned around and reached out an arm but grasped nothing.

“Steady, friend,” said Peter; “you mustn’t play tricks with me or I’ll be angry.”

“Easy there, buddy,” said Peter; “don’t mess with me or I’ll get upset.”

“Who are you? Who sent you?” asked the puzzled voice.

“Who are you? Who sent you?” asked the confused voice.

Peter had a happy thought. “The Companions of the Rosy Hours,” he said.

Peter had a great idea. “The Companions of the Rosy Hours,” he said.

“Then are we friends indeed,” said the voice. “Come out of the darkness, friend, and I will do you no harm. I am a good Turk, and I fought beside the English in Kordofan and learned their tongue. I live only to see the ruin of Enver, who has beggared my family and slain my twin brother. Therefore I serve the Muscov ghiaours.”

“Then we are truly friends,” said the voice. “Step out of the shadows, my friend, and I won’t hurt you. I’m a good Turk, and I fought alongside the English in Kordofan and learned their language. I live only to witness the downfall of Enver, who has left my family in poverty and killed my twin brother. That’s why I serve the Muscov ghiaours.”

“I don’t know what the Musky Jaws are, but if you mean the Russians I’m with you. I’ve got news for them which will make Enver green. The question is, how I’m to get to them, and that is where you shall help me, my friend.”

“I’m not sure what the Musky Jaws are, but if you’re talking about the Russians, I’m on your side. I have information for them that will make Enver envious. The real issue is how I can reach them, and that’s where you come in, my friend.”

“How?”

“How?”

“By playing that little tune of yours again. Tell them to expect within the next half-hour a deserter with an important message. Tell them, for God’s sake, not to fire at anybody till they’ve made certain it isn’t me.”

“By playing that little tune of yours again. Tell them to expect a deserter with an important message in the next half-hour. For God’s sake, tell them not to shoot at anyone until they’re sure it isn’t me.”

The man took the blunt end of his bayonet and squatted beside the bell. The first stroke brought out a clear, searching note which floated down the valley. He struck three notes at slow intervals. For all the world, Peter said, he was like a telegraph operator calling up a station.

The man took the dull end of his bayonet and crouched next to the bell. The first hit produced a clear, resonant sound that echoed down the valley. He struck three notes at slow intervals. For all the world, Peter said, he was like a telegraph operator trying to reach a station.

“Send the message in English,” said Peter.

“Send the message in English,” Peter said.

“They may not understand it,” said the man.

“They might not get it,” said the man.

“Then send it any way you like. I trust you, for we are brothers.”

“Then send it however you want. I trust you because we’re brothers.”

After ten minutes the man ceased and listened. From far away came the sound of a trench-gong, the kind of thing they used on the Western Front to give the gas-alarm.

After ten minutes, the man stopped and listened. In the distance, he heard the sound of a trench gong, the kind they used on the Western Front to signal a gas alarm.

“They say they will be ready,” he said. “I cannot take down messages in the darkness, but they have given me the signal which means ‘Consent’.”

“They say they’ll be ready,” he said. “I can’t take down messages in the dark, but they’ve given me the sign that means ‘Okay’.”

“Come, that is pretty good,” said Peter. “And now I must be moving. You take a hint from me. When you hear big firing up to the north get ready to beat a quick retreat, for it will be all up with that city of yours. And tell your folk, too, that they’re making a bad mistake letting those fool Germans rule their land. Let them hang Enver and his little friends, and we’ll be happy once more.”

“Come on, that's pretty good,” Peter said. “I need to get going now. Take my advice: when you hear heavy gunfire to the north, get ready to make a quick escape, because that's the end for your city. And let your people know they're making a big mistake by letting those silly Germans control their land. They should hang Enver and his little buddies, and then we’ll be happy again.”

“May Satan receive his soul!” said the Turk. “There is wire before us, but I will show you a way through. The guns this evening made many rents in it. But haste, for a working party may be here presently to repair it. Remember there is much wire before the other lines.”

“May Satan take his soul!” said the Turk. “There’s barbed wire ahead, but I’ll show you a way through. The guns this evening made a lot of gaps in it. But hurry, because a repair crew might be here soon. Remember, there’s a lot of wire in front of the other lines.”

Peter, with certain directions, found it pretty easy to make his way through the entanglement. There was one bit which scraped a hole in his back, but very soon he had come to the last posts and found himself in open country. The place, he said, was a graveyard of the unburied dead that smelt horribly as he crawled among them. He had no inducements to delay, for he thought he could hear behind him the movement of the Turkish working party, and was in terror that a flare might reveal him and a volley accompany his retreat.

Peter, following some specific instructions, found it fairly easy to navigate through the mess. There was one spot that scraped his back, but soon he reached the last posts and emerged into open land. He described the area as a cemetery of unburied bodies that smelled awful as he crawled among them. He had no reason to stick around, as he thought he could hear the Turkish work crew behind him, and he was terrified that a flare might expose him, followed by gunfire as he tried to escape.

From one shell-hole to another he wormed his way, till he struck an old ruinous communication trench which led in the right direction. The Turks must have been forced back in the past week, and the Russians were now in the evacuated trenches. The thing was half full of water, but it gave Peter a feeling of safety, for it enabled him to get his head below the level of the ground. Then it came to an end and he found before him a forest of wire.

From one shell hole to another, he crawled until he found an old, crumbling trench that went the right way. The Turks must have been pushed back in the past week, and the Russians were now in the abandoned trenches. The trench was half full of water, but it made Peter feel safer because he could get his head below ground level. Then it came to an end, and he saw a tangle of barbed wire in front of him.

The Turk in his signal had mentioned half an hour, but Peter thought it was nearer two hours before he got through that noxious entanglement. Shelling had made little difference to it. The uprights were all there, and the barbed strands seemed to touch the ground. Remember, he had no wire-cutter; nothing but his bare hands. Once again fear got hold of him. He felt caught in a net, with monstrous vultures waiting to pounce on him from above. At any moment a flare might go up and a dozen rifles find their mark. He had altogether forgotten about the message which had been sent, for no message could dissuade the ever-present death he felt around him. It was, he said, like following an old lion into bush when there was but one narrow way in, and no road out.

The Turk in his signal had mentioned half an hour, but Peter thought it was closer to two hours before he got through that awful mess. The shelling hadn’t really changed anything. The posts were still there, and the barbed wire seemed to hang all the way to the ground. Remember, he had no wire cutter; just his bare hands. Once again, fear took hold of him. He felt trapped in a net, with monstrous vultures waiting to swoop down on him from above. At any moment, a flare could launch, and a dozen rifles could take aim. He completely forgot about the message that had been sent because no message could change the constant feeling of death surrounding him. It was, he said, like following an old lion into the bush when there was only one narrow way in, and no way out.

The guns began again—the Turkish guns from behind the ridge—and a shell tore up the wire a short way before him. Under cover of the burst he made good a few yards, leaving large portions of his clothing in the strands. Then, quite suddenly, when hope had almost died in his heart, he felt the ground rise steeply. He lay very still, a star-rocket from the Turkish side lit up the place, and there in front was a rampart with the points of bayonets showing beyond it. It was the Russian hour for stand-to.

The gunfire started up again—the Turkish guns from behind the ridge—and a shell blew up the barbed wire just ahead of him. Taking advantage of the explosion, he managed to move a few yards, leaving chunks of his clothing caught in the strands. Then, just when hope seemed lost, he felt the ground steepen. He lay very still as a flare shot up from the Turkish side, revealing a rampart with the tips of bayonets visible beyond it. It was the Russians' hour to hold their ground.

He raised his cramped limbs from the ground and shouted “Friend! English!”

He lifted his stiff limbs off the ground and shouted, “Friend! English!”

A face looked down at him, and then the darkness again descended.

A face looked down at him, and then the darkness fell again.

“Friend,” he said hoarsely. “English.”

"Friend," he said hoarsely. "English."

He heard speech behind the parapet. An electric torch was flashed on him for a second. A voice spoke, a friendly voice, and the sound of it seemed to be telling him to come over.

He heard voices behind the wall. A flashlight was shone on him for a moment. A voice spoke, a friendly voice, and it seemed to be inviting him over.

He was now standing up, and as he got his hands on the parapet he seemed to feel bayonets very near him. But the voice that spoke was kindly, so with a heave he scrambled over and flopped into the trench. Once more the electric torch was flashed, and revealed to the eyes of the onlookers an indescribably dirty, lean, middle-aged man with a bloody head, and scarcely a rag of shirt on his back. The said man, seeing friendly faces around him, grinned cheerfully.

He was now standing up, and as he placed his hands on the edge, he felt bayonets very close to him. But the voice that spoke was friendly, so he heaved himself over and fell into the trench. Once again, the flashlight was turned on, revealing to the onlookers an incredibly dirty, thin, middle-aged man with a bloody head and barely any shirt on his back. The man, seeing friendly faces around him, grinned cheerfully.

“That was a rough trek, friends,” he said; “I want to see your general pretty quick, for I’ve got a present for him.”

“That was a tough journey, guys,” he said; “I want to see your leader soon, because I have a gift for him.”

He was taken to an officer in a dug-out, who addressed him in French, which he did not understand. But the sight of Stumm’s plan worked wonders. After that he was fairly bundled down communication trenches and then over swampy fields to a farm among trees. There he found staff officers, who looked at him and looked at his map, and then put him on a horse and hurried him eastwards. At last he came to a big ruined house, and was taken into a room which seemed to be full of maps and generals.

He was brought to an officer in a dugout, who spoke to him in French, which he didn’t understand. But the sight of Stumm’s plan worked magic. After that, he was quickly taken down communication trenches and then across muddy fields to a farm surrounded by trees. There, he encountered staff officers, who examined him and his map, then put him on a horse and rushed him eastward. Finally, he arrived at a large abandoned house and was taken into a room that appeared to be filled with maps and generals.

The conclusion must be told in Peter’s words.

The conclusion must be expressed in Peter's words.

“There was a big man sitting at a table drinking coffee, and when I saw him my heart jumped out of my skin. For it was the man I hunted with on the Pungwe in ’98—him whom the Kaffirs called ‘Buck’s Horn’, because of his long curled moustaches. He was a prince even then, and now he is a very great general. When I saw him, I ran forward and gripped his hand and cried, ‘Hoe gat het, Mynheer?’ and he knew me and shouted in Dutch, ‘Damn, if it isn’t old Peter Pienaar!’ Then he gave me coffee and ham and good bread, and he looked at my map.

“There was a big guy sitting at a table drinking coffee, and when I saw him, my heart skipped a beat. It was the guy I hunted with on the Pungwe in ’98—whom the locals called ‘Buck’s Horn’ because of his long curled mustache. He was a prince even back then, and now he’s a very high-ranking general. When I saw him, I ran up and shook his hand, shouting, ‘Hoe gat het, Mynheer?’ and he recognized me and exclaimed in Dutch, ‘Damn, if it isn’t old Peter Pienaar!’ Then he offered me coffee, ham, and good bread, and he checked out my map."

“‘What is this?’ he cried, growing red in the face.

“‘What is this?’ he shouted, his face turning red.”

“‘It is the staff-map of one Stumm, a German skellum who commands in yon city,’ I said.

“‘It’s the staff map of one Stumm, a German skellum who is in charge over there in that city,’ I said.

“He looked at it close and read the markings, and then he read the other paper which you gave me, Dick. And then he flung up his arms and laughed. He took a loaf and tossed it into the air so that it fell on the head of another general. He spoke to them in their own tongue, and they, too, laughed, and one or two ran out as if on some errand. I have never seen such merrymaking. They were clever men, and knew the worth of what you gave me.

“He examined it closely and read the markings, and then he read the other paper you gave me, Dick. Then he threw his arms up and laughed. He grabbed a loaf and tossed it into the air, striking another general on the head. He spoke to them in their own language, and they laughed too, while one or two rushed off as if on some mission. I’ve never seen such a celebration. They were smart guys and recognized the value of what you gave me.

“Then he got to his feet and hugged me, all dirty as I was, and kissed me on both cheeks.

“Then he stood up, hugged me, even though I was all dirty, and kissed me on both cheeks.”

“‘Before God, Peter,’ he said, ‘you’re the mightiest hunter since Nimrod. You’ve often found me game, but never game so big as this!’”

“‘Honestly, Peter,’ he said, ‘you’re the greatest hunter since Nimrod. You’ve often helped me find game, but never anything this big!’”

CHAPTER XXI.
The Little Hill

It was a wise man who said that the biggest kind of courage was to be able to sit still. I used to feel that when we were getting shelled in the reserve trenches outside Vermelles. I felt it before we went over the parapets at Loos, but I never felt it so much as on the last two days in that cellar. I had simply to set my teeth and take a pull on myself. Peter had gone on a crazy errand which I scarcely believed could come off. There were no signs of Sandy; somewhere within a hundred yards he was fighting his own battles, and I was tormented by the thought that he might get jumpy again and wreck everything. A strange Companion brought us food, a man who spoke only Turkish and could tell us nothing; Hussin, I judged, was busy about the horses. If I could only have done something to help on matters I could have scotched my anxiety, but there was nothing to be done, nothing but wait and brood. I tell you I began to sympathize with the general behind the lines in a battle, the fellow who makes the plan which others execute. Leading a charge can be nothing like so nerve-shaking a business as sitting in an easy-chair and waiting on the news of it.

It was a wise person who said that the greatest kind of courage is being able to stay calm. I used to feel this when we were getting shelled in the reserve trenches outside Vermelles. I sensed it before we went over the parapets at Loos, but I never felt it as intensely as during the last two days in that cellar. I just had to grit my teeth and pull myself together. Peter had gone on some wild errand that I hardly believed would work out. There were no signs of Sandy; somewhere within a hundred yards he was fighting his own battles, and I was tormented by the thought that he might get anxious again and mess everything up. A strange companion brought us food, a man who spoke only Turkish and couldn’t tell us anything; I assumed Hussin was busy with the horses. If only I could have done something to help, it would have eased my anxiety, but there was nothing to do, just wait and worry. I tell you, I started to understand the general behind the lines in a battle, the one who makes the plans that others carry out. Leading a charge has to be nothing compared to the nerve-wracking experience of sitting in a comfortable chair and waiting for news.

It was bitter cold, and we spent most of the day wrapped in our greatcoats and buried deep in the straw. Blenkiron was a marvel. There was no light for him to play Patience by, but he never complained. He slept a lot of the time, and when he was awake talked as cheerily as if he were starting out on a holiday. He had one great comfort, his dyspepsia was gone. He sang hymns constantly to the benign Providence that had squared his duodenum.

It was freezing, and we spent most of the day bundled up in our coats and buried deep in the straw. Blenkiron was amazing. There was no light for him to play Patience by, but he never complained. He slept a lot of the time, and when he was awake, he chatted as cheerfully as if he were heading off on a vacation. He had one big comfort: his indigestion was gone. He continually sang hymns to the kind Providence that had settled his stomach.

My only occupation was to listen for the guns. The first day after Peter left they were very quiet on the front nearest us, but in the late evening they started a terrific racket. The next day they never stopped from dawn to dusk, so that it reminded me of that tremendous forty-eight hours before Loos. I tried to read into this some proof that Peter had got through, but it would not work. It looked more like the opposite, for this desperate hammering must mean that the frontal assault was still the Russian game.

My only job was to listen for the guns. On the first day after Peter left, they were really quiet on the front closest to us, but in the late evening, they started making an awful noise. The next day, they didn't stop from dawn to dusk, which reminded me of that intense forty-eight hours before Loos. I tried to see this as a sign that Peter had made it, but it didn't add up. It seemed more like the opposite because that constant pounding probably meant that the frontal assault was still the Russian strategy.

Two or three times I climbed on the housetop for fresh air. The day was foggy and damp, and I could see very little of the countryside. Transport was still bumping southward along the road to the Palantuken, and the slow wagon-loads of wounded returning. One thing I noticed, however; there was a perpetual coming and going between the house and the city. Motors and mounted messengers were constantly arriving and departing, and I concluded that Hilda von Einem was getting ready for her part in the defence of Erzerum.

Two or three times, I went up to the rooftop for some fresh air. The day was foggy and damp, and I could barely see any of the countryside. Vehicles were still bumping south along the road to the Palantuken, along with slow wagons carrying the wounded back home. However, one thing I noticed was that there was a constant stream of people moving between the house and the city. Cars and mounted messengers were always arriving and leaving, and I figured that Hilda von Einem was preparing for her role in the defense of Erzerum.

These ascents were all on the first day after Peter’s going. The second day, when I tried the trap, I found it closed and heavily weighted. This must have been done by our friends, and very right, too. If the house were becoming a place of public resort, it would never do for me to be journeying roof-ward.

These climbs all happened on the first day after Peter left. On the second day, when I checked the trap, I found it shut tight and weighed down. Our friends must have done that, and rightly so. If the house was turning into a public hangout, it wouldn't be appropriate for me to be heading up to the roof.

Late on the second night Hussin reappeared. It was after supper, when Blenkiron had gone peacefully to sleep and I was beginning to count the hours till the morning. I could not close an eye during these days and not much at night.

Late on the second night, Hussin showed up again. It was after dinner, when Blenkiron had fallen asleep peacefully, and I was starting to count down the hours until morning. I couldn’t close my eyes during those days and hardly at night.

Hussin did not light a lantern. I heard his key in the lock, and then his light step close to where we lay.

Hussin didn't turn on a lantern. I heard his key in the lock, and then I heard his light footsteps getting close to where we were lying.

“Are you asleep?” he said, and when I answered he sat down beside me.

“Are you asleep?” he asked, and when I replied, he sat down next to me.

“The horses are found,” he said, “and the Master bids me tell you that we start in the morning three hours before dawn.”

“The horses are ready,” he said, “and the Master wants me to let you know that we’ll be leaving in the morning three hours before sunrise.”

It was welcome news. “Tell me what is happening,” I begged; “we have been lying in this tomb for three days and heard nothing.”

It was great news. “Please tell me what’s going on,” I pleaded; “we’ve been stuck in this tomb for three days and haven’t heard anything.”

“The guns are busy,” he said. “The Allemans come to this place every hour, I know not for what. Also there has been a great search for you. The searchers have been here, but they were sent away empty.... Sleep, my lord, for there is wild work before us.”

“The guns are busy,” he said. “The Allemans come to this place every hour, but I don’t know why. There has also been a big search for you. The searchers have been here, but they left without finding anything... Sleep, my lord, because there’s a lot of wild work ahead of us.”

I did not sleep much, for I was strung too high with expectation, and I envied Blenkiron his now eupeptic slumbers. But for an hour or so I dropped off, and my old nightmare came back. Once again I was in the throat of a pass, hotly pursued, straining for some sanctuary which I knew I must reach. But I was no longer alone. Others were with me: how many I could not tell, for when I tried to see their faces they dissolved in mist. Deep snow was underfoot, a grey sky was over us, black peaks were on all sides, but ahead in the mist of the pass was that curious castrol which I had first seen in my dream on the Erzerum road.

I didn’t sleep much because I was too wired with anticipation, and I envied Blenkiron his peaceful sleep. However, I dozed off for about an hour, and my old nightmare returned. Once again, I found myself in the throat of a pass, being chased, desperate to reach some safe place I knew I had to get to. But I wasn’t alone anymore. There were others with me; I couldn’t tell how many because every time I tried to see their faces, they faded into the mist. There was deep snow beneath us, a gray sky above, and black peaks all around, but ahead in the mist of the pass was that strange castrol I had first seen in my dream on the Erzerum road.

I saw it distinct in every detail. It rose to the left of the road through the pass, above a hollow where great boulders stood out in the snow. Its sides were steep, so that the snow had slipped off in patches, leaving stretches of glistening black shale. The kranz at the top did not rise sheer, but sloped at an angle of forty-five, and on the very summit there seemed a hollow, as if the earth within the rock-rim had been beaten by weather into a cup.

I could see it clearly in every detail. It rose to the left of the road through the pass, above a dip where huge boulders were visible in the snow. Its sides were steep, causing the snow to slide off in patches, revealing areas of shiny black shale. The kranz at the top didn’t rise straight up but sloped at a forty-five degree angle, and at the very peak, there seemed to be a hollow, as if the earth inside the rock rim had been shaped by the weather into a cup.

That is often the way with a South African castrol, and I knew it was so with this. We were straining for it, but the snow clogged us, and our enemies were very close behind.

That’s often how it goes with a South African castrol, and I realized it was the same this time. We were pushing hard for it, but the snow held us back, and our enemies were really close behind.

Then I was awakened by a figure at my side. “Get ready, my lord,” it said; “it is the hour to ride.”

Then I was awakened by someone next to me. “Get ready, my lord,” they said; “it’s time to ride.”

Like sleep-walkers we moved into the sharp air. Hussin led us out of an old postern and then through a place like an orchard to the shelter of some tall evergreen trees. There horses stood, champing quietly from their nosebags. “Good,” I thought; “a feed of oats before a big effort.”

Like sleepwalkers, we entered the crisp air. Hussin guided us out of an old gate and then through a space like an orchard to the cover of some tall evergreen trees. There, horses were standing, quietly munching from their nosebags. “Good,” I thought; “a feed of oats before a big effort.”

There were nine beasts for nine riders. We mounted without a word and filed through a grove of trees to where a broken paling marked the beginning of cultivated land. There for the matter of twenty minutes Hussin chose to guide us through deep, clogging snow. He wanted to avoid any sound till we were well beyond earshot of the house. Then we struck a by-path which presently merged in a hard highway, running, as I judged, south-west by west. There we delayed no longer, but galloped furiously into the dark.

There were nine animals for nine riders. We got on silently and went through a grove of trees to where a broken fence marked the start of farmed land. For about twenty minutes, Hussin led us through heavy, thick snow. He wanted to keep quiet until we were far enough away from the house. Then we took a side path that soon joined a solid road, heading, as I guessed, southwest by west. We didn't stop there, but raced fiercely into the dark.

I had got back all my exhilaration. Indeed I was intoxicated with the movement, and could have laughed out loud and sung. Under the black canopy of the night perils are either forgotten or terribly alive. Mine were forgotten. The darkness I galloped into led me to freedom and friends. Yes, and success, which I had not dared to hope and scarcely even to dream of.

I had rediscovered all my excitement. Honestly, I felt like I was high on the thrill of it all and could have laughed and sung out loud. Under the dark cover of night, dangers either fade away or feel incredibly real. Mine faded away. The darkness I rode into brought me freedom and friends. Yes, and success, which I had never dared to hope for or even truly dream about.

Hussin rode first, with me at his side. I turned my head and saw Blenkiron behind me, evidently mortally unhappy about the pace we set and the mount he sat. He used to say that horse-exercise was good for his liver, but it was a gentle amble and a short gallop that he liked, and not this mad helter-skelter. His thighs were too round to fit a saddle leather. We passed a fire in a hollow, the bivouac of some Turkish unit, and all the horses shied violently. I knew by Blenkiron’s oaths that he had lost his stirrups and was sitting on his horse’s neck.

Hussin was in the lead, with me right beside him. I turned my head and saw Blenkiron behind me, clearly very unhappy about the speed we were going and the horse he was riding. He always claimed that riding was good for his liver, but he preferred a gentle stroll and a short sprint, not this wild dash. His thighs were too thick to fit properly in the saddle. We passed a campfire in a hollow, where some Turkish unit was set up, and all the horses jumped nervously. I could tell by Blenkiron's curses that he had lost his stirrups and was sitting on his horse's neck.

Beside him rode a tall figure swathed to the eyes in wrappings, and wearing round his neck some kind of shawl whose ends floated behind him. Sandy, of course, had no European ulster, for it was months since he had worn proper clothes. I wanted to speak to him, but somehow I did not dare. His stillness forbade me. He was a wonderful fine horseman, with his firm English hunting seat, and it was as well, for he paid no attention to his beast. His head was still full of unquiet thoughts.

Beside him rode a tall figure wrapped up to the eyes, wearing some sort of shawl around his neck with the ends trailing behind him. Sandy, of course, didn’t have a European coat since it had been months since he’d worn proper clothes. I wanted to talk to him, but for some reason, I didn’t dare. His stillness made me hesitate. He was an incredible horseman, sitting tall in his firm English hunting style, which was good because he didn’t pay any attention to his horse. His mind was still filled with restless thoughts.

Then the air around me began to smell acrid and raw, and I saw that a fog was winding up from the hollows.

Then the air around me started to smell sharp and harsh, and I noticed that a fog was rising from the low areas.

“Here’s the devil’s own luck,” I cried to Hussin. “Can you guide us in a mist?”

“Here’s the worst luck ever,” I shouted to Hussin. “Can you lead us through this fog?”

“I do not know.” He shook his head. “I had counted on seeing the shape of the hills.”

“I don’t know.” He shook his head. “I was counting on seeing the outline of the hills.”

“We’ve a map and compass, anyhow. But these make slow travelling. Pray God it lifts!”

“We have a map and a compass, at least. But they make for slow travel. Let’s hope the weather improves!”

Presently the black vapour changed to grey, and the day broke. It was little comfort. The fog rolled in waves to the horses’ ears, and riding at the head of the party I could but dimly see the next rank.

Presently, the black smoke turned gray, and day began to break. It offered little comfort. The fog rolled in waves up to the horses' ears, and as I rode at the front of the group, I could barely see the next line of riders.

“It is time to leave the road,” said Hussin, “or we may meet inquisitive folk.”

“It’s time to get off the road,” said Hussin, “or we might run into curious people.”

We struck to the left, over ground which was for all the world like a Scotch moor. There were pools of rain on it, and masses of tangled snow-laden junipers, and long reefs of wet slaty stone. It was bad going, and the fog made it hopeless to steer a good course. I had out the map and the compass, and tried to fix our route so as to round the flank of a spur of the mountains which separated us from the valley we were aiming at.

We headed to the left, across terrain that looked just like a Scottish moor. There were puddles of rain, clumps of tangled, snow-covered junipers, and long stretches of wet, slate-colored stone. The ground was tough to navigate, and the fog made it impossible to stay on course. I pulled out the map and the compass, trying to plot a route around a spur of the mountains that separated us from the valley we were trying to reach.

“There’s a stream ahead of us,” I said to Hussin. “Is it fordable?”

“There’s a stream in front of us,” I said to Hussin. “Can we cross it?”

“It is only a trickle,” he said, coughing. “This accursed mist is from Eblis.” But I knew long before we reached it that it was no trickle. It was a hill stream coming down in spate, and, as I soon guessed, in a deep ravine. Presently we were at its edge, one long whirl of yeasty falls and brown rapids. We could as soon get horses over it as to the topmost cliffs of the Palantuken.

“It’s just a trickle,” he said, coughing. “This cursed mist is from Eblis.” But I had known well before we got there that it was no trickle. It was a hill stream surging down, and, as I quickly figured out, it was in a deep ravine. Soon, we were at its edge, a continuous swirl of frothy waterfalls and brown rapids. We could get horses over it just as easily as we could reach the highest cliffs of the Palantuken.

Hussin stared at it in consternation. “May Allah forgive my folly, for I should have known. We must return to the highway and find a bridge. My sorrow, that I should have led my lords so ill.”

Hussin stared at it in dismay. “May Allah forgive my mistake, for I should have known better. We need to go back to the highway and look for a bridge. I'm so sorry that I led my lords so poorly.”

Back over that moor we went with my spirits badly damped. We had none too long a start, and Hilda von Einem would rouse heaven and earth to catch us up. Hussin was forcing the pace, for his anxiety was as great as mine.

Back over that moor we went with my spirits low. We didn’t have a long head start, and Hilda von Einem would raise hell to catch up with us. Hussin was pushing us to move faster, as his anxiety was just as strong as mine.

Before we reached the road the mist blew back and revealed a wedge of country right across to the hills beyond the river. It was a clear view, every object standing out wet and sharp in the light of morning. It showed the bridge with horsemen drawn up across it, and it showed, too, cavalry pickets moving along the road.

Before we got to the road, the mist cleared away and revealed a stretch of land all the way to the hills beyond the river. It was a clear view, with every object standing out, wet and sharp in the morning light. You could see the bridge with horsemen lined up across it, and you could also see cavalry pickets moving along the road.

They saw us at the same instant. A word was passed down the road, a shrill whistle blew, and the pickets put their horses at the bank and started across the moor.

They spotted us at the same moment. A word was relayed down the road, a loud whistle sounded, and the guards urged their horses over the bank and began to cross the moor.

“Did I not say this mist was from Eblis?” growled Hussin, as we swung round and galloped back on our tracks. “These cursed Zaptiehs have seen us, and our road is cut.”

“Did I not say this mist was from Eblis?” growled Hussin, as we turned around and galloped back on our path. “These damned Zaptiehs have spotted us, and our way is blocked.”

I was for trying the stream at all costs, but Hussin pointed out that it would do us no good. The cavalry beyond the bridge was moving up the other bank. “There is a path through the hills that I know, but it must be travelled on foot. If we can increase our lead and the mist cloaks us, there is yet a chance.”

I was determined to try for the stream no matter what, but Hussin said it wouldn't help us. The cavalry on the other side of the bridge was advancing along the opposite bank. “I know a path through the hills, but we have to go on foot. If we can extend our lead and the mist covers us, there’s still a chance.”

It was a weary business plodding up to the skirts of the hills. We had the pursuit behind us now, and that put an edge on every difficulty. There were long banks of broken screes, I remember, where the snow slipped in wreaths from under our feet. Great boulders had to be circumvented, and patches of bog, where the streams from the snows first made contact with the plains, mired us to our girths. Happily the mist was down again, but this, though it hindered the chase, lessened the chances of Hussin finding the path.

It was a tiring task trudging up to the foothills. We had the chase behind us now, and that made every challenge feel sharper. I remember there were long stretches of broken rocks where the snow slipped away in curls from beneath our feet. Huge boulders had to be navigated around, and there were muddy patches where the melting snow first met the plains, sticking us up to our waists. Luckily, the fog had come down again, but while it slowed the pursuit, it also reduced Hussin's chances of finding the trail.

He found it nevertheless. There was the gully and the rough mule-track leading upwards. But there also had been a landslip, quite recent from the marks. A large scar of raw earth had broken across the hillside, which with the snow above it looked like a slice cut out of an iced chocolate-cake.

He found it anyway. There was the gully and the rough mule path going uphill. But there had also been a recent landslide, judging by the marks. A big scar of raw earth had cut across the hillside, which, with the snow on top, looked like a piece taken out of an iced chocolate cake.

We stared blankly for a second, till we recognized its hopelessness.

We stared blankly for a moment until we realized how hopeless it was.

“I’m trying for the crags,” I said. “Where there once was a way another can be found.”

“I’m aiming for the cliffs,” I said. “Where there used to be a path, another can be found.”

“And be picked off at their leisure by these marksmen,” said Hussin grimly. “Look!”

“And be picked off at their leisure by these marksmen,” Hussin said grimly. “Look!”

The mist had opened again, and a glance behind showed me the pursuit closing up on us. They were now less than three hundred yards off. We turned our horses and made off east-ward along the skirts of the cliffs.

The fog had lifted again, and a quick look back revealed that the pursuers were getting closer to us. They were now less than three hundred yards away. We turned our horses and headed east along the edges of the cliffs.

Then Sandy spoke for the first time. “I don’t know how you fellows feel, but I’m not going to be taken. There’s nothing much to do except to find a place and put up a fight. We can sell our lives dearly.”

Then Sandy spoke for the first time. “I don’t know how you guys feel, but I’m not going to go down without a fight. There’s not much we can do except find a place and stand our ground. We can make them pay for our lives.”

“That’s about all,” said Blenkiron cheerfully. He had suffered such tortures on that gallop that he welcomed any kind of stationary fight.

"That’s about it," Blenkiron said cheerfully. He had endured so much pain during that ride that he welcomed any kind of stationary fight.

“Serve out the arms,” said Sandy.

“Hand out the weapons,” said Sandy.

The Companions all carried rifles slung across their shoulders. Hussin, from a deep saddle-bag, brought out rifles and bandoliers for the rest of us. As I laid mine across my saddle-bow I saw it was a German Mauser of the latest pattern.

The Companions all had rifles slung over their shoulders. Hussin pulled out rifles and bandoliers from a deep saddlebag for the rest of us. As I laid mine across my saddle, I noticed it was a German Mauser of the latest model.

“It’s hell-for-leather till we find a place for a stand,” said Sandy. “The game’s against us this time.”

“It’s a mad rush until we find a spot to set up,” said Sandy. “The odds are against us this time.”

Once more we entered the mist, and presently found better going on a long stretch of even slope. Then came a rise, and on the crest of it I saw the sun. Presently we dipped into bright daylight and looked down on a broad glen, with a road winding up it to a pass in the range. I had expected this. It was one way to the Palantuken pass, some miles south of the house where we had been lodged.

Once again we entered the mist and soon found smoother travel on a long stretch of even ground. Then we hit a slope, and at the top, I spotted the sun. Before long, we emerged into bright daylight and looked down at a wide valley, with a road winding up through it towards a pass in the mountains. I had anticipated this. It was one route to the Palantuken pass, located a few miles south of the place where we had stayed.

And then, as I looked southward, I saw what I had been watching for for days. A little hill split the valley, and on its top was a kranz of rocks. It was the castrol of my persistent dream.

And then, as I looked south, I saw what I had been waiting for, for days. A small hill divided the valley, and on its peak was a kranz of rocks. It was the castrol of my relentless dream.

On that I promptly took charge. “There’s our fort,” I cried. “If we once get there we can hold it for a week. Sit down and ride for it.”

On that, I quickly took control. “There’s our fort,” I shouted. “If we can get there, we can hold it for a week. Sit down and ride for it.”

We bucketed down that hillside like men possessed, even Blenkiron sticking on manfully among the twists and turns and slithers. Presently we were on the road and were racing past marching infantry and gun teams and empty wagons. I noted that most seemed to be moving downward and few going up. Hussin screamed some words in Turkish that secured us a passage, but indeed our crazy speed left them staring. Out of a corner of my eye I saw that Sandy had flung off most of his wrappings and seemed to be all a dazzle of rich colour. But I had thought for nothing except the little hill, now almost fronting us across the shallow glen.

We rushed down that hillside like we were on a mission, even Blenkiron managing to keep up through all the twists, turns, and slips. Soon, we were on the road, zooming past marching soldiers, artillery teams, and empty wagons. I noticed that most were heading downhill and very few were going uphill. Hussin shouted some words in Turkish that got us through, but honestly, our wild speed had them all staring in surprise. Out of the corner of my eye, I saw that Sandy had shed most of his layers and was now a burst of bright color. But all I could focus on was the small hill that was now almost in front of us across the shallow valley.

No horses could breast that steep. We urged them into the hollow, and then hastily dismounted, humped the packs, and began to struggle up the side of the castrol. It was strewn with great boulders, which gave a kind of cover that very soon was needed. For, snatching a glance back, I saw that our pursuers were on the road above us and were getting ready to shoot.

No horses could climb that steep slope. We urged them into the dip, quickly got off, adjusted the packs, and started to struggle up the side of the castrol. It was covered in large boulders, which provided some cover that we soon needed. Because, glancing back, I saw that our pursuers were on the road above us and were getting ready to shoot.

At normal times we would have been easy marks, but, fortunately, wisps and streamers of mist now clung about that hollow. The rest could fend for themselves, so I stuck to Blenkiron and dragged him, wholly breathless, by the least exposed route. Bullets spattered now and then against the rocks, and one sang unpleasantly near my head. In this way we covered three-fourths of the distance, and had only the bare dozen yards where the gradient eased off up to the edge of the kranz.

At normal times, we would have been easy targets, but luckily, strands of mist were hanging around that hollow. The others could take care of themselves, so I stayed with Blenkiron and pulled him, completely out of breath, along the least exposed path. Bullets occasionally ricocheted off the rocks, and one whizzed uncomfortably close to my head. In this way, we covered three-quarters of the distance and had only about twelve more yards where the slope leveled off leading up to the edge of the kranz.

Blenkiron got hit in the leg, our only casualty. There was nothing for it but to carry him, so I swung him on my shoulders, and with a bursting heart did that last lap. It was hottish work, and the bullets were pretty thick about us, but we all got safely to the kranz, and a short scramble took us over the edge. I laid Blenkiron inside the castrol and started to prepare our defence.

Blenkiron got shot in the leg, our only casualty. There was no choice but to carry him, so I hoisted him onto my shoulders and, with a heavy heart, completed that last stretch. It was pretty grueling, and the bullets were flying around us, but we all made it safely to the kranz, and a quick scramble got us over the edge. I set Blenkiron down inside the castrol and began getting our defense ready.

We had little time to do it. Out of the thin fog figures were coming, crouching in cover. The place we were in was a natural redoubt, except that there were no loopholes or sandbags. We had to show our heads over the rim to shoot, but the danger was lessened by the superb field of fire given by those last dozen yards of glacis. I posted the men and waited, and Blenkiron, with a white face, insisted on taking his share, announcing that he used to be handy with a gun.

We had very little time to act. Figures were emerging from the light fog, crouching for cover. The spot we were in was a natural defensive position, except there were no firing slots or sandbags. We had to lean over the edge to shoot, but the risk was reduced by the excellent field of view provided by those last dozen yards of slope. I positioned the men and waited, and Blenkiron, looking pale, insisted on joining in, claiming that he was good with a gun.

I gave the order that no man was to shoot till the enemy had come out of the rocks on to the glacis. The thing ran right round the top, and we had to watch all sides to prevent them getting us in flank or rear. Hussin’s rifle cracked out presently from the back, so my precautions had not been needless.

I ordered that no one should fire until the enemy came out of the rocks onto the flat ground. The situation was tense all around, and we had to keep an eye on all sides to avoid being attacked from the side or behind. Hussin’s rifle fired from the back, proving that my precautions were not unnecessary.

We were all three fair shots, though none of us up to Peter’s miraculous standard, and the Companions, too, made good practice. The Mauser was the weapon I knew best, and I didn’t miss much. The attackers never had a chance, for their only hope was to rush us by numbers, and, the whole party being not above two dozen, they were far too few. I think we killed three, for their bodies were left lying, and wounded at least six, while the rest fell back towards the road. In a quarter of an hour it was all over.

We were all decent shots, though none of us measured up to Peter’s incredible skill, and the others were pretty good too. The Mauser was the gun I was most familiar with, and I hardly missed. The attackers didn’t stand a chance; their only hope was to overwhelm us with numbers, but since there were only about twenty of them, that wasn’t enough. I think we took down three of them, as their bodies were left behind, and at least six were injured while the rest retreated toward the road. In about fifteen minutes, it was all done.

“They are dogs of Kurds,” I heard Hussin say fiercely. “Only a Kurdish giaour would fire on the livery of the Kaába.”

“They're dogs of Kurds,” I heard Hussin say fiercely. “Only a Kurdish giaour would shoot at the livery of the Kaаба.”

Then I had a good look at Sandy. He had discarded shawls and wrappings, and stood up in the strangest costume man ever wore in battle. Somehow he had procured field-boots and an old pair of riding-breeches. Above these, reaching well below his middle, he had a wonderful silken jibbah or ephod of a bright emerald. I call it silk, but it was like no silk I have ever known, so exquisite in the mesh, with such a sheen and depth in it. Some strange pattern was woven on the breast, which in the dim light I could not trace. I’ll warrant no rarer or costlier garment was ever exposed to lead on a bleak winter hill.

Then I took a good look at Sandy. He had taken off his shawls and wrappings and stood there in the strangest outfit ever worn in battle. Somehow, he had gotten his hands on field boots and an old pair of riding pants. Above these, reaching well below his waist, he wore a stunning silken shirt or ephod in a bright emerald color. I call it silk, but it was unlike any silk I had ever seen, so exquisite in the weave, with such shine and depth. Some unusual pattern was woven into the chest, which I couldn’t make out in the dim light. I can guarantee that no rarer or more expensive garment had ever faced gunfire on a bleak winter hill.

Sandy seemed unconscious of his garb. His eye, listless no more, scanned the hollow. “That’s only the overture,” he cried. “The opera will soon begin. We must put a breastwork up in these gaps or they’ll pick us off from a thousand yards.”

Sandy seemed unaware of his outfit. His once-listless gaze now surveyed the area. “That’s just the introduction,” he shouted. “The main event will start soon. We need to build a barrier in these openings, or they’ll take us out from a thousand yards away.”

I had meantime roughly dressed Blenkiron’s wound with a linen rag which Hussin provided. It was from a ricochet bullet which had chipped into his left shin. Then I took a hand with the others in getting up earthworks to complete the circuit of the defence. It was no easy job, for we wrought only with our knives and had to dig deep down below the snowy gravel. As we worked I took stock of our refuge.

I had quickly bandaged Blenkiron’s wound with a piece of cloth that Hussin gave us. It was from a ricochet bullet that had hit his left shin. Then, I joined the others in building up earthworks to finish the defense perimeter. It wasn’t an easy task since we were only using our knives and had to dig deep into the snowy gravel. As we worked, I assessed our shelter.

The castrol was a rough circle about ten yards in diameter, its interior filled with boulders and loose stones, and its parapet about four feet high. The mist had cleared for a considerable space, and I could see the immediate surroundings. West, beyond the hollow, was the road we had come, where now the remnants of the pursuit were clustered. North, the hill fell steeply to the valley bottom, but to the south, after a dip there was a ridge which shut the view. East lay another fork of the stream, the chief fork I guessed, and it was evidently followed by the main road to the pass, for I saw it crowded with transport. The two roads seemed to converge somewhere farther south of my sight.

The castrol was a rough circle about ten yards across, filled with boulders and loose stones, and its wall was about four feet high. The mist had cleared over a large area, allowing me to see the nearby surroundings. To the west, beyond the dip, was the road we had traveled, where the remnants of the chase were now gathered. To the north, the hill dropped steeply to the valley floor, but to the south, after a dip, a ridge blocked the view. To the east was another fork in the stream, the main one I guessed, and it was clearly the route taken by the main road to the pass, as I saw it packed with transport. The two roads appeared to merge somewhere further south of my view.

I guessed we could not be very far from the front, for the noise of guns sounded very near, both the sharp crack of the field-pieces, and the deeper boom of the howitzers. More, I could hear the chatter of the machine-guns, a magpie note among the baying of hounds. I even saw the bursting of Russian shells, evidently trying to reach the main road. One big fellow—an eight-inch—landed not ten yards from a convoy to the east of us, and another in the hollow through which we had come. These were clearly ranging shots, and I wondered if the Russians had observation-posts on the heights to mark them. If so, they might soon try a curtain, and we should be very near its edge. It would be an odd irony if we were the target of friendly shells.

I guessed we couldn't be too far from the front, because the sound of gunfire was really close, both the sharp crack of the field guns and the deeper boom of the howitzers. I could also hear the chatter of the machine guns, a sharp note among the howling of the hounds. I even saw Russian shells burst, apparently trying to hit the main road. One big shell—an eight-inch—landed less than ten yards from a convoy to the east of us, and another one hit the hollow we had just passed through. These were clearly practice shots, and I wondered if the Russians had observation posts on the heights to track them. If they did, they might soon try a barrage, and we would be very close to its edge. It would be a bizarre twist if we became the target of friendly fire.

“By the Lord Harry,” I heard Sandy say, “if we had a brace of machine-guns we could hold this place against a division.”

“By the Lord Harry,” I heard Sandy say, “if we had a couple of machine guns we could hold this place against a division.”

“What price shells?” I asked. “If they get a gun up they can blow us to atoms in ten minutes.”

“What do shells cost?” I asked. “If they get a gun set up, they can blow us to bits in ten minutes.”

“Please God the Russians keep them too busy for that,” was his answer.

“Let’s hope the Russians keep them too occupied for that,” was his answer.

With anxious eyes I watched our enemies on the road. They seemed to have grown in numbers. They were signalling, too, for a white flag fluttered. Then the mist rolled down on us again, and our prospect was limited to ten yards of vapour.

With anxious eyes, I watched our enemies on the road. They seemed to have increased in number. They were signaling, too, as a white flag was waving. Then the mist rolled down on us again, and our view was restricted to ten yards of fog.

“Steady,” I cried; “they may try to rush us at any moment. Every man keep his eye on the edge of the fog, and shoot at the first sign.”

“Steady,” I shouted; “they might try to charge at us any second. Every man, keep an eye on the edge of the fog, and shoot at the first sign.”

For nearly half an hour by my watch we waited in that queer white world, our eyes smarting with the strain of peering. The sound of the guns seemed to be hushed, and everything grown deathly quiet. Blenkiron’s squeal, as he knocked his wounded leg against a rock, made every man start.

For almost half an hour by my watch, we waited in that strange white world, our eyes burning from the effort of straining to see. The sound of the guns seemed muffled, and everything became eerily quiet. Blenkiron's yelp as he hit his injured leg against a rock made every man jump.

Then out of the mist there came a voice.

Then out of the mist came a voice.

It was a woman’s voice, high, penetrating, and sweet, but it spoke in no tongue I knew. Only Sandy understood. He made a sudden movement as if to defend himself against a blow.

It was a woman’s voice, high, piercing, and sweet, but it spoke in a language I didn’t recognize. Only Sandy understood. He suddenly moved as if to protect himself from a hit.

The speaker came into clear sight on the glacis a yard or two away. Mine was the first face she saw.

The speaker came into clear view on the slope just a couple of yards away. I was the first face she noticed.

“I come to offer terms,” she said in English. “Will you permit me to enter?”

“I’m here to propose some terms,” she said in English. “Will you let me in?”

I could do nothing except take off my cap and say, “Yes, ma’am.”

I could do nothing but take off my hat and say, “Yes, ma’am.”

Blenkiron, snuggled up against the parapet, was cursing furiously below his breath.

Blenkiron, pressed against the wall, was cursing loudly under his breath.

She climbed up the kranz and stepped over the edge as lightly as a deer. Her clothes were strange—spurred boots and breeches over which fell a short green kirtle. A little cap skewered with a jewelled pin was on her head, and a cape of some coarse country cloth hung from her shoulders. She had rough gauntlets on her hands, and she carried for weapon a riding-whip. The fog-crystals clung to her hair, I remember, and a silvery film of fog lay on her garments.

She climbed up the kranz and stepped over the edge as lightly as a deer. Her clothes were unusual—spurred boots and breeches underneath a short green dress. A little cap with a jeweled pin was on her head, and a cape made of coarse country fabric hung from her shoulders. She wore rough gloves on her hands and carried a riding whip as her weapon. I remember the fog crystals clinging to her hair, and a silvery layer of fog covering her outfit.

I had never before thought of her as beautiful. Strange, uncanny, wonderful, if you like, but the word beauty had too kindly and human a sound for such a face. But as she stood with heightened colour, her eyes like stars, her poise like a wild bird’s, I had to confess that she had her own loveliness. She might be a devil, but she was also a queen. I considered that there might be merits in the prospect of riding by her side into Jerusalem.

I had never really seen her as beautiful before. Odd, eerie, amazing, if you will, but the word beauty felt too gentle and human to describe her face. But as she stood there with flushed cheeks, her eyes sparkling like stars, and her posture graceful like a wild bird’s, I had to admit that she had her own kind of charm. She might be a devil, but she was also a queen. I thought there could be advantages to riding alongside her into Jerusalem.

Sandy stood rigid, his face very grave and set. She held out both hands to him, speaking softly in Turkish. I noticed that the six Companions had disappeared from the castrol and were somewhere out of sight on the farther side.

Sandy stood tense, his expression serious and focused. She extended both hands to him, speaking gently in Turkish. I noticed that the six Companions had vanished from the castrol and were out of sight on the other side.

I do not know what she said, but from her tone, and above all from her eyes, I judged that she was pleading—pleading for his return, for his partnership in her great adventure; pleading, for all I knew, for his love.

I don’t know what she said, but from her tone, and especially from her eyes, I realized she was begging—begging for him to come back, for him to join her in her big adventure; begging, for all I knew, for his love.

His expression was like a death-mask, his brows drawn tight in a little frown and his jaw rigid.

His expression was like a death mask, his brows tightly furrowed in a slight frown and his jaw stiff.

“Madam,” he said, “I ask you to tell your business quick and to tell it in English. My friends must hear it as well as me.”

“Ma'am,” he said, “please tell me your business quickly and in English. My friends need to hear it too.”

“Your friends!” she cried. “What has a prince to do with these hirelings? Your slaves, perhaps, but not your friends.”

“Your friends!” she shouted. “What does a prince have to do with these hired hands? Your servants, maybe, but not your friends.”

“My friends,” Sandy repeated grimly. “You must know, Madam, that I am a British officer.”

“My friends,” Sandy said seriously. “You should know, Madam, that I’m a British officer.”

That was beyond doubt a clean staggering stroke. What she had thought of his origin God knows, but she had never dreamed of this. Her eyes grew larger and more lustrous, her lips parted as if to speak, but her voice failed her. Then by an effort she recovered herself, and out of that strange face went all the glow of youth and ardour. It was again the unholy mask I had first known.

That was definitely an impressive blow. What she thought about his background, only God knows, but she never expected this. Her eyes widened and sparkled more, her lips parted as if to say something, but she couldn't find her voice. Then, with some effort, she collected herself, and all the youthful energy and passion disappeared from that strange face. It was once again the unholy mask I had first encountered.

“And these others?” she asked in a level voice.

“And what about these others?” she asked calmly.

“One is a brother officer of my regiment. The other is an American friend. But all three of us are on the same errand. We came east to destroy Greenmantle and your devilish ambitions. You have yourself destroyed your prophets, and now it is your turn to fail and disappear. Make no mistake, Madam; that folly is over. I will tear this sacred garment into a thousand pieces and scatter them on the wind. The people wait today for the revelation, but none will come. You may kill us if you can, but we have at least crushed a lie and done service to our country.”

“One is a fellow officer from my regiment. The other is an American friend. But all three of us are on the same mission. We came east to take down Greenmantle and your wicked ambitions. You've already destroyed your own prophets, and now it’s your turn to fail and vanish. Make no mistake, Madam; that foolishness is finished. I will rip this sacred garment into a thousand pieces and scatter them to the wind. The people are waiting for a revelation today, but none will come. You may kill us if you can, but at least we have exposed a lie and served our country.”

I would not have taken my eyes from her face for a king’s ransom. I have written that she was a queen, and of that there is no manner of doubt. She had the soul of a conqueror, for not a flicker of weakness or disappointment marred her air. Only pride and the stateliest resolution looked out of her eyes.

I wouldn't have taken my eyes off her face for anything in the world. I've said before that she was a queen, and there's no doubt about it. She had the spirit of a conqueror, as not a hint of weakness or disappointment showed in her demeanor. Only pride and the strongest determination were visible in her eyes.

“I said I came to offer terms. I will still offer them, though they are other than I thought. For the fat American, I will send him home safely to his own country. I do not make war on such as he. He is Germany’s foe, not mine. You,” she said, turning fiercely on me, “I will hang before dusk.”

“I said I came to offer terms. I will still offer them, though they are different from what I originally thought. For the overweight American, I will send him home safely to his own country. I do not wage war against someone like him. He is Germany’s enemy, not mine. You,” she said, turning angrily toward me, “I will hang before nightfall.”

Never in my life had I been so pleased. I had got my revenge at last. This woman had singled me out above the others as the object of her wrath, and I almost loved her for it.

Never in my life had I been so happy. I had finally gotten my revenge. This woman had chosen me above the others as the target of her anger, and I almost admired her for it.

She turned to Sandy, and the fierceness went out of her face.

She turned to Sandy, and the intensity faded from her face.

“You seek the truth,” she said. “So also do I, and if we use a lie it is only to break down a greater. You are of my household in spirit, and you alone of all men I have seen are fit to ride with me on my mission. Germany may fail, but I shall not fail. I offer you the greatest career that mortal has known. I offer you a task which will need every atom of brain and sinew and courage. Will you refuse that destiny?”

“You're looking for the truth,” she said. “So am I, and if we use a lie, it's just to dismantle a bigger one. You are like family to me in spirit, and among all the men I've met, you are the only one who's worthy to join me on my mission. Germany might fall, but I will not fail. I’m giving you the greatest opportunity anyone has ever had. I’m offering you a challenge that will require every ounce of brainpower, strength, and courage. Will you turn down that destiny?”

I do not know what effect this vapouring might have had in hot scented rooms, or in the languor of some rich garden; but up on that cold hill-top it was as unsubstantial as the mist around us. It sounded not even impressive, only crazy.

I don't know what effect this ranting might have had in warm, fragrant rooms, or in the laziness of some lavish garden; but up on that chilly hilltop, it felt as insubstantial as the mist surrounding us. It didn’t even sound impressive, just crazy.

“I stay with my friends,” said Sandy.

“I’m hanging out with my friends,” said Sandy.

“Then I will offer more. I will save your friends. They, too, shall share in my triumph.”

“Then I’ll give even more. I’ll save your friends. They will also share in my victory.”

This was too much for Blenkiron. He scrambled to his feet to speak the protest that had been wrung from his soul, forgot his game leg, and rolled back on the ground with a groan.

This was too much for Blenkiron. He jumped to his feet to voice the complaint that had come from deep within him, forgot about his injured leg, and fell back to the ground with a groan.

Then she seemed to make a last appeal. She spoke in Turkish now, and I do not know what she said, but I judged it was the plea of a woman to her lover. Once more she was the proud beauty, but there was a tremor in her pride—I had almost written tenderness. To listen to her was like horrid treachery, like eavesdropping on something pitiful. I know my cheeks grew scarlet and Blenkiron turned away his head.

Then she seemed to make a final appeal. She spoke in Turkish now, and I don’t know what she said, but I guessed it was a plea from a woman to her lover. Once again, she was the proud beauty, but there was a tremor in her pride—I almost wrote tenderness. Listening to her felt like a terrible betrayal, like eavesdropping on something sad. I felt my cheeks flush, and Blenkiron turned his head away.

Sandy’s face did not move. He spoke in English.

Sandy's face stayed expressionless. He spoke in English.

“You can offer me nothing that I desire,” he said. “I am the servant of my country, and her enemies are mine. I can have neither part nor lot with you. That is my answer, Madam von Einem.”

“You can’t give me anything I want,” he said. “I serve my country, and her enemies are my enemies. I can have nothing to do with you. That’s my answer, Madam von Einem.”

Then her steely restraint broke. It was like a dam giving before a pent-up mass of icy water. She tore off one of her gauntlets and hurled it in his face. Implacable hate looked out of her eyes.

Then her steely control snapped. It was like a dam breaking under a flood of icy water. She ripped off one of her gloves and threw it in his face. Unyielding hate shone in her eyes.

“I have done with you,” she cried. “You have scorned me, but you have dug your own grave.”

“I’m done with you,” she shouted. “You’ve disrespected me, but you’ve sealed your own fate.”

She leaped on the parapet and the next second was on the glacis. Once more the mist had fled, and across the hollow I saw a field-gun in place and men around it who were not Turkish. She waved her hand to them, and hastened down the hillside.

She jumped onto the wall and in the next moment was on the slope. Again, the mist had vanished, and across the dip, I spotted a field gun set up with men around it who weren’t Turkish. She waved to them and hurried down the hill.

But at that moment I heard the whistle of a long-range Russian shell. Among the boulders there was the dull shock of an explosion and a mushroom of red earth. It all passed in an instant of time: I saw the gunners on the road point their hands and I heard them cry; I heard too, a kind of sob from Blenkiron—all this before I realized myself what had happened. The next thing I saw was Sandy, already beyond the glacis, leaping with great bounds down the hill. They were shooting at him, but he heeded them not. For the space of a minute he was out of sight, and his whereabouts was shown only by the patter of bullets.

But at that moment, I heard the whistle of a long-range Russian shell. Among the boulders, there was a dull thud of an explosion and a cloud of red earth. It all happened in an instant: I saw the gunners on the road point their hands and heard them shout; I also heard a kind of sob from Blenkiron—this all before I even realized what had happened. The next thing I saw was Sandy, already beyond the protective mound, leaping down the hill. They were shooting at him, but he didn’t care. For about a minute, he was out of sight, and the only sign of where he was came from the sound of bullets hitting around him.

Then he came back—walking quite slowly up the last slope, and he was carrying something in his arms. The enemy fired no more; they realized what had happened.

Then he came back—walking slowly up the last hill, and he was carrying something in his arms. The enemy stopped firing; they understood what had happened.

He laid his burden down gently in a corner of the castrol. The cap had fallen off, and the hair was breaking loose. The face was very white but there was no wound or bruise on it.

He gently set his load down in a corner of the castrol. The cap had fallen off, and the hair was coming undone. The face was very pale, but there were no cuts or bruises on it.

“She was killed at once,” I heard him saying. “Her back was broken by a shell-fragment. Dick, we must bury her here ... You see, she ... she liked me. I can make her no return but this.”

“She was killed instantly,” I heard him say. “A shell fragment broke her back. Dick, we have to bury her here ... You see, she ... she liked me. I can only repay her with this.”

We set the Companions to guard, and with infinite slowness, using our hands and our knives, we made a shallow grave below the eastern parapet. When it was done we covered her face with the linen cloak which Sandy had worn that morning. He lifted the body and laid it reverently in its place.

We positioned the Companions to stand guard, and very slowly, using our hands and knives, we dug a shallow grave below the eastern wall. Once it was ready, we covered her face with the linen cloak that Sandy had worn that morning. He lifted the body gently and placed it with respect in its resting spot.

“I did not know that anything could be so light,” he said.

“I didn’t know anything could be this light,” he said.

It wasn’t for me to look on at that kind of scene. I went to the parapet with Blenkiron’s field-glasses and had a stare at our friends on the road. There was no Turk there, and I guessed why, for it would not be easy to use the men of Islam against the wearer of the green ephod. The enemy were German or Austrian, and they had a field-gun. They seemed to have got it laid on our fort; but they were waiting. As I looked I saw behind them a massive figure I seemed to recognize. Stumm had come to see the destruction of his enemies.

It wasn't my place to watch that kind of scene. I went to the parapet with Blenkiron's binoculars and took a look at our friends on the road. There was no Turk in sight, and I figured out why; it wouldn't be easy to use the Muslim fighters against the one in the green ephod. The enemies were German or Austrian, and they had a field gun. It seemed like they had it aimed at our fort, but they were just waiting. As I looked, I noticed a large figure in the background that I thought I recognized. Stumm had come to witness the downfall of his enemies.

To the east I saw another gun in the fields just below the main road. They had got us on both sides, and there was no way of escape. Hilda von Einem was to have a noble pyre and goodly company for the dark journey.

To the east, I spotted another gun in the fields just below the main road. They had us surrounded, and there was no way out. Hilda von Einem was meant to have a grand pyre and decent company for the dark journey ahead.

Dusk was falling now, a clear bright dusk where the stars pricked through a sheen of amethyst. The artillery were busy all around the horizon, and towards the pass on the other road, where Fort Palantuken stood, there was the dust and smoke of a furious bombardment. It seemed to me, too, that the guns on the other fronts had come nearer. Deve Boyun was hidden by a spur of hill, but up in the north, white clouds, like the streamers of evening, were hanging over the Euphrates glen. The whole firmament hummed and twanged like a taut string that has been struck ...

Dusk was settling in now, a clear bright dusk where the stars peeked through a layer of purple. The artillery was busy all around the horizon, and towards the pass on the other road, where Fort Palantuken stood, there was dust and smoke from intense bombardment. It also seemed to me that the guns on the other fronts had moved closer. Deve Boyun was blocked by a spur of hill, but up in the north, white clouds, like ribbons of evening, were hanging over the Euphrates valley. The whole sky buzzed and vibrated like a tight string that has been struck...

As I looked, the gun to the west fired—the gun where Stumm was. The shell dropped ten yards to our right. A second later another fell behind us.

As I watched, the gun to the west fired—the one where Stumm was stationed. The shell landed ten yards to our right. A second later, another one dropped behind us.

Blenkiron had dragged himself to the parapet. I don’t suppose he had ever been shelled before, but his face showed curiosity rather than fear.

Blenkiron had made his way to the edge of the wall. I don't think he had ever been under fire before, but his face showed more curiosity than fear.

“Pretty poor shooting, I reckon,” he said.

“Pretty bad shooting, I think,” he said.

“On the contrary,” I said, “they know their business. They’re bracketing ...”

“On the contrary,” I said, “they know what they're doing. They’re bracketing ...”

The words were not out of my mouth when one fell right among us. It struck the far rim of the castrol, shattering the rock, but bursting mainly outside. We all ducked, and barring some small scratches no one was a penny the worse. I remember that much of the debris fell on Hilda von Einem’s grave.

The words were barely out of my mouth when one fell right among us. It hit the far edge of the castrol, shattering the rock but mainly bursting outward. We all ducked, and aside from some minor scratches, no one was seriously hurt. I remember that a lot of the debris landed on Hilda von Einem’s grave.

I pulled Blenkiron over the far parapet, and called on the rest to follow, meaning to take cover on the rough side of the hill. But as we showed ourselves shots rang out from our front, shots fired from a range of a few hundred yards. It was easy to see what had happened. Riflemen had been sent to hold us in rear. They would not assault so long as we remained in the castrol, but they would block any attempt to find safety outside it. Stumm and his gun had us at their mercy.

I pulled Blenkiron over to the far edge, and told the rest to follow, planning to take cover on the rough side of the hill. But as we exposed ourselves, shots rang out from the front, fired from a distance of a few hundred yards. It was clear what had happened. Riflemen had been sent to keep us back. They wouldn't attack as long as we stayed in the castrol, but they would prevent any effort to find safety outside it. Stumm and his gun had us at their mercy.

We crouched below the parapet again. “We may as well toss for it,” I said. “There’s only two ways—to stay here and be shelled or try to break through those fellows behind. Either’s pretty unhealthy.”

We huddled down behind the wall again. “We might as well flip a coin,” I said. “There are only two options—to stay here and get bombed or try to push through those guys behind us. Both are pretty risky.”

But I knew there was no choice. With Blenkiron crippled we were pinned to the castrol. Our numbers were up all right.

But I knew there was no choice. With Blenkiron injured, we were stuck at the castrol. Our situation was definitely hopeless.

CHAPTER XXII.
The Guns of the North

But no more shells fell.

But no more shells dropped.

The night grew dark and showed a field of glittering stars, for the air was sharpening again towards frost. We waited for an hour, crouching just behind the far parapets, but never came that ominous familiar whistle.

The night turned dark and revealed a sky full of sparkling stars, as the air started to chill again with frost. We waited for an hour, hunkered down just behind the far walls, but that familiar ominous whistle never came.

Then Sandy rose and stretched himself. “I’m hungry,” he said. “Let’s have out the food, Hussin. We’ve eaten nothing since before daybreak. I wonder what is the meaning of this respite?”

Then Sandy got up and stretched. “I’m hungry,” he said. “Let’s get the food out, Hussin. We haven’t eaten anything since before dawn. I wonder what this break is all about?”

I fancied I knew.

I thought I knew.

“It’s Stumm’s way,” I said. “He wants to torture us. He’ll keep us hours on tenterhooks, while he sits over yonder exulting in what he thinks we’re enduring. He has just enough imagination for that ... He would rush us if he had the men. As it is, he’s going to blow us to pieces, but do it slowly and smack his lips over it.”

“It’s Stumm’s style,” I said. “He wants to put us through hell. He’ll keep us waiting for hours, enjoying the thought of what we’re going through. He has just enough creativity for that... He would attack us if he had the manpower. As it stands, he’s going to blow us to bits, but he’s going to do it slowly and relish every moment.”

Sandy yawned. “We’ll disappoint him, for we won’t be worried, old man. We three are beyond that kind of fear.”

Sandy yawned. “We’ll let him down, because we won’t be scared, old man. The three of us have moved past that kind of fear.”

“Meanwhile we’re going to do the best we can,” I said. “He’s got the exact range for his whizz-bangs. We’ve got to find a hole somewhere just outside the castrol, and some sort of head-cover. We’re bound to get damaged whatever happens, but we’ll stick it out to the end. When they think they have finished with us and rush the place, there may be one of us alive to put a bullet through old Stumm. What do you say?”

“Meanwhile, we’re going to do our best,” I said. “He’s got the perfect range for his explosives. We need to find a spot just outside the castrol, and some kind of cover for our heads. No matter what, we’re going to get hurt, but we’ll stick it out until the end. When they think they’ve wrapped things up and rush in, there might be one of us left to take a shot at old Stumm. What do you think?”

They agreed, and after our meal Sandy and I crawled out to prospect, leaving the others on guard in case there should be an attack. We found a hollow in the glacis a little south of the castrol, and, working very quietly, managed to enlarge it and cut a kind of shallow cave in the hill. It would be no use against a direct hit, but it would give some cover from flying fragments. As I read the situation, Stumm could land as many shells as he pleased in the castrol and wouldn’t bother to attend to the flanks. When the bad shelling began there would be shelter for one or two in the cave.

They agreed, and after we finished our meal, Sandy and I crawled out to scout, leaving the others on watch in case of an attack. We found a dip in the slope just south of the castrol, and by working quietly, we managed to expand it and carve out a shallow cave in the hill. It wouldn’t protect us from a direct hit, but it would provide some cover from flying debris. From what I could tell, Stumm could drop as many shells as he wanted on the castrol and wouldn’t worry about the sides. When the heavy shelling started, there would be a place for one or two people to take shelter in the cave.

Our enemies were watchful. The riflemen on the east burnt Very flares at intervals, and Stumm’s lot sent up a great star-rocket. I remember that just before midnight hell broke loose round Fort Palantuken. No more Russian shells came into our hollow, but all the road to the east was under fire, and at the Fort itself there was a shattering explosion and a queer scarlet glow which looked as if a magazine had been hit. For about two hours the firing was intense, and then it died down. But it was towards the north that I kept turning my head. There seemed to be something different in the sound there, something sharper in the report of the guns, as if shells were dropping in a narrow valley whose rock walls doubled the echo. Had the Russians by any blessed chance worked round that flank?

Our enemies were alert. The riflemen to the east were firing Very flares at intervals, and Stumm's group sent up a huge star rocket. I remember that just before midnight, all hell broke loose around Fort Palantuken. No more Russian shells came into our area, but the entire road to the east was under fire, and at the Fort itself, there was a massive explosion and a strange scarlet glow that looked like a magazine had been hit. For about two hours, the firing was intense, and then it calmed down. But I kept turning my head towards the north. There seemed to be something different in the sound coming from there, something sharper in the gunfire, as if shells were falling in a narrow valley whose rocky walls echoed the noise. Could it be that the Russians had somehow flanked us?

I got Sandy to listen, but he shook his head. “Those guns are a dozen miles off,” he said. “They’re no nearer than three days ago. But it looks as if the sportsmen on the south might have a chance. When they break through and stream down the valley, they’ll be puzzled to account for what remains of us ... We’re no longer three adventurers in the enemy’s country. We’re the advance guard of the Allies. Our pals don’t know about us, and we’re going to be cut off, which has happened to advance guards before now. But all the same, we’re in our own battle-line again. Doesn’t that cheer you, Dick?”

I got Sandy to listen, but he shook his head. “Those guns are a dozen miles away,” he said. “They’re no closer than they were three days ago. But it seems like the guys on the south might have a shot. When they break through and come down the valley, they’ll be confused about what’s left of us... We’re not just three adventurers in enemy territory anymore. We’re the advance guard of the Allies. Our friends have no idea we’re here, and we’re going to get cut off, which has happened to advance guards before. But still, we’re back in our own battle line again. Doesn’t that make you feel better, Dick?”

It cheered me wonderfully, for I knew now what had been the weight on my heart ever since I accepted Sir Walter’s mission. It was the loneliness of it. I was fighting far away from my friends, far away from the true fronts of battle. It was a side-show which, whatever its importance, had none of the exhilaration of the main effort. But now we had come back to familiar ground. We were like the Highlanders cut off at Cite St Auguste on the first day of Loos, or those Scots Guards at Festubert of whom I had heard. Only, the others did not know of it, would never hear of it. If Peter succeeded he might tell the tale, but most likely he was lying dead somewhere in the no-man’s-land between the lines. We should never be heard of again any more, but our work remained. Sir Walter would know that, and he would tell our few belongings that we had gone out in our country’s service.

It lifted my spirits tremendously because I finally understood the burden on my heart ever since I took on Sir Walter’s mission. It was the loneliness of it all. I was fighting far from my friends, away from the real battlefronts. It felt like a sideshow that, no matter how significant, lacked the excitement of the main effort. But now we were back on familiar ground. We were like the Highlanders stranded at Cite St Auguste on the first day of Loos, or those Scots Guards at Festubert I had heard about. The others wouldn’t know about it and would never hear of it. If Peter made it, he might share the story, but more likely, he was lying dead somewhere in the no-man’s-land between the lines. We might never be heard from again, but our work would persist. Sir Walter would know that, and he would let our few belongings know that we had gone out to serve our country.

We were in the castrol again, sitting under the parapets. The same thoughts must have been in Sandy’s mind, for he suddenly laughed.

We were back in the castrol, sitting under the parapets. Sandy must have been thinking the same thing, because he suddenly laughed.

“It’s a queer ending, Dick. We simply vanish into the infinite. If the Russians get through they will never recognize what is left of us among so much of the wreckage of battle. The snow will soon cover us, and when the spring comes there will only be a few bleached bones. Upon my soul it is the kind of death I always wanted.” And he quoted softly to himself a verse of an old Scots ballad:

“It’s a strange ending, Dick. We just disappear into nothingness. If the Russians come through, they won’t even see what’s left of us amidst the ruins of war. The snow will blanket us soon, and when spring arrives, there will be nothing but a few bleached bones. Honestly, it's the kind of death I've always wanted.” And he softly quoted a line from an old Scots ballad:

“Mony’s the ane for him maks mane,
But nane sall ken whar he is gane.
Ower his white banes, when they are bare,
The wind sall blaw for evermair.”

“Money is the one for him that makes noise,
But no one will know where he has gone.
Over his white bones, when they are bare,
The wind will blow forevermore.”

“But our work lives,” I cried, with a sudden great gasp of happiness. “It’s the job that matters, not the men that do it. And our job’s done. We have won, old chap—won hands down—and there is no going back on that. We have won anyway; and if Peter has had a slice of luck, we’ve scooped the pool ... After all, we never expected to come out of this thing with our lives.”

“But our work lives,” I exclaimed, feeling a rush of happiness. “It’s the job that matters, not the people doing it. And our job’s done. We’ve won, my friend—won by a long shot—and there’s no taking that back. We’ve won regardless; and if Peter got a bit of luck, we’ve hit the jackpot ... After all, we never thought we’d come out of this thing alive.”

Blenkiron, with his leg stuck out stiffly before him, was humming quietly to himself, as he often did when he felt cheerful. He had only one song, “John Brown’s Body”; usually only a line at a time, but now he got as far as the whole verse:

Blenkiron, with his leg sticking out straight in front of him, was humming softly to himself, which he often did when he was in a good mood. He only knew one song, “John Brown’s Body”; usually just a line at a time, but now he managed to get through the whole verse:

“He captured Harper’s Ferry, with his nineteen men so true,
And he frightened old Virginny till she trembled through and through.
They hung him for a traitor, themselves the traitor crew,
But his soul goes marching along.”

“He took Harper’s Ferry, with his nineteen loyal men,
And he scared old Virginia till she shook all over.
They executed him as a traitor, while they were the real traitors,
But his spirit keeps marching on.”

“Feeling good?” I asked.

"Feeling good?" I asked.

“Fine. I’m about the luckiest man on God’s earth, Major. I’ve always wanted to get into a big show, but I didn’t see how it would come the way of a homely citizen like me, living in a steam-warmed house and going down town to my office every morning. I used to envy my old dad that fought at Chattanooga, and never forgot to tell you about it. But I guess Chattanooga was like a scrap in a Bowery bar compared to this. When I meet the old man in Glory he’ll have to listen some to me.”

“Fine. I’m about the luckiest man on this planet, Major. I’ve always wanted to get into a big show, but I never thought it would happen for an ordinary guy like me, living in a house with steam heat and going to my office every morning. I used to envy my dad who fought at Chattanooga, and he never forgot to mention it. But I suppose Chattanooga was just a brawl in a bar compared to this. When I see my old man in the afterlife, he’s going to have to listen to me some.”

It was just after Blenkiron spoke that we got a reminder of Stumm’s presence. The gun was well laid, for a shell plumped on the near edge of the castro. It made an end of one of the Companions who was on guard there, badly wounded another, and a fragment gashed my thigh. We took refuge in the shallow cave, but some wild shooting from the east side brought us back to the parapets, for we feared an attack. None came, nor any more shells, and once again the night was quiet.

It was right after Blenkiron talked that we got a reminder of Stumm’s presence. The gun was aimed perfectly, as a shell landed on the near edge of the fort. It took out one of the guards there, badly injured another, and a piece hit my thigh. We sought shelter in the shallow cave, but some random gunfire from the east side made us return to the parapets, as we were worried about an attack. Nothing came, nor any more shells, and once again the night was quiet.

I asked Blenkiron if he had any near relatives.

I asked Blenkiron if he had any close relatives.

“Why, no, except a sister’s son, a college-boy who has no need of his uncle. It’s fortunate that we three have no wives. I haven’t any regrets, neither, for I’ve had a mighty deal out of life. I was thinking this morning that it was a pity I was going out when I had just got my duo-denum to listen to reason. But I reckon that’s another of my mercies. The good God took away the pain in my stomach so that I might go to Him with a clear head and a thankful heart.”

“Why, no, just a nephew, a college kid who doesn’t need his uncle. It’s lucky that the three of us don’t have wives. I don’t have any regrets either, because I’ve gotten a lot out of life. I was thinking this morning that it was a shame I was leaving just as I finally got my intestines to listen to reason. But I guess that’s just another one of my blessings. The good Lord took away the pain in my stomach so I could go to Him with a clear mind and a thankful heart.”

“We’re lucky fellows,” said Sandy; “we’ve all had our whack. When I remember the good times I’ve had I could sing a hymn of praise. We’ve lived long enough to know ourselves, and to shape ourselves into some kind of decency. But think of those boys who have given their lives freely when they scarcely knew what life meant. They were just at the beginning of the road, and they didn’t know what dreary bits lay before them. It was all sunshiny and bright-coloured, and yet they gave it up without a moment’s doubt. And think of the men with wives and children and homes that were the biggest things in life to them. For fellows like us to shirk would be black cowardice. It’s small credit for us to stick it out. But when those others shut their teeth and went forward, they were blessed heroes....”

“We’re lucky guys,” said Sandy; “we’ve all had our turn. When I think about the good times I’ve had, I could sing a song of gratitude. We’ve lived long enough to know who we are and to shape ourselves into decent people. But consider those guys who gave their lives without really understanding what life was all about. They were just at the start of their journey, with no idea of the tough times ahead. Everything seemed bright and cheerful, and yet they gave it up without a second thought. And think about the men with wives, kids, and homes that meant everything to them. For guys like us to back down would be pure cowardice. It’s not much of an achievement for us to hang in there. But when those others gritted their teeth and moved forward, they were true heroes....”

After that we fell silent. A man’s thoughts at a time like that seem to be double-powered, and the memory becomes very sharp and clear. I don’t know what was in the others’ minds, but I know what filled my own...

After that, we went quiet. A man's thoughts during moments like that feel supercharged, and memories become really sharp and clear. I can't say what others were thinking, but I know what was going through my mind...

I fancy it isn’t the men who get most out of the world and are always buoyant and cheerful that most fear to die. Rather it is the weak-engined souls who go about with dull eyes, that cling most fiercely to life. They have not the joy of being alive which is a kind of earnest of immortality ... I know that my thoughts were chiefly about the jolly things that I had seen and done; not regret, but gratitude. The panorama of blue noons on the veld unrolled itself before me, and hunter’s nights in the bush, the taste of food and sleep, the bitter stimulus of dawn, the joy of wild adventure, the voices of old staunch friends. Hitherto the war had seemed to make a break with all that had gone before, but now the war was only part of the picture. I thought of my battalion, and the good fellows there, many of whom had fallen on the Loos parapets. I had never looked to come out of that myself. But I had been spared, and given the chance of a greater business, and I had succeeded. That was the tremendous fact, and my mood was humble gratitude to God and exultant pride. Death was a small price to pay for it. As Blenkiron would have said, I had got good value in the deal.

I think it's not the people who are always upbeat and enjoying life that are most afraid of dying. Instead, it’s the weary souls with dull eyes who cling to life the hardest. They lack the joy of being alive, which feels like a promise of immortality... I realized my thoughts were mainly about the fun experiences I’d had, not regret but gratitude. The beautiful scene of blue afternoons in the veld filled my mind, along with the nights spent hunting in the bush, the simple pleasures of food and sleep, the sharp awakening at dawn, the thrill of wild adventures, and the voices of my old, reliable friends. Until now, the war had seemed to break everything that had come before, but now it was just part of the whole experience. I thought about my battalion and the good guys there, many of whom had fallen at Loos. I had never expected to make it out myself. But I was spared and given the chance for a bigger purpose, and I succeeded. That was the significant truth, and I felt humble gratitude to God and immense pride. Death felt like a small price to pay for that. Like Blenkiron would say, I got good value from this deal.

The night was getting bitter cold, as happens before dawn. It was frost again, and the sharpness of it woke our hunger. I got out the remnants of the food and wine and we had a last meal. I remember we pledged each other as we drank.

The night was turning really cold, like it does just before dawn. There was frost again, and the chill made us feel even hungrier. I brought out the leftovers of our food and wine, and we had one last meal. I remember we made a promise to each other as we drank.

“We have eaten our Passover Feast,” said Sandy. “When do you look for the end?”

“We have eaten our Passover Feast,” Sandy said. “When are you expecting the end?”

“After dawn,” I said. “Stumm wants daylight to get the full savour of his revenge.”

“After dawn,” I said. “Stumm wants daylight to fully enjoy his revenge.”

Slowly the sky passed from ebony to grey, and black shapes of hill outlined themselves against it. A wind blew down the valley, bringing the acrid smell of burning, but something too of the freshness of morn. It stirred strange thoughts in me, and woke the old morning vigour of the blood which was never to be mine again. For the first time in that long vigil I was torn with a sudden regret.

Slowly, the sky changed from deep black to gray, and the dark shapes of the hills became visible against it. A wind swept down the valley, carrying the sharp smell of smoke, but also a hint of morning freshness. It stirred unusual thoughts in me and revived the old morning energy in my blood that I would never feel again. For the first time during that long watch, I was overwhelmed by a sudden sense of regret.

“We must get into the cave before it is full light,” I said. “We had better draw lots for the two to go.”

“We need to get into the cave before it’s fully light,” I said. “We should draw lots to see who will go.”

The choice fell on one of the Companions and Blenkiron. “You can count me out,” said the latter. “If it’s your wish to find a man to be alive when our friends come up to count their spoil, I guess I’m the worst of the lot. I’d prefer, if you don’t mind, to stay here. I’ve made my peace with my Maker, and I’d like to wait quietly on His call. I’ll play a game of Patience to pass the time.”

The choice landed on one of the Companions and Blenkiron. “Count me out,” Blenkiron said. “If you want someone to be alive when our friends show up to count their loot, I’m probably the worst choice. I’d rather, if it’s okay with you, just stay here. I’ve made my peace with my Maker, and I’d like to wait quietly for His call. I’ll play a game of Solitaire to pass the time.”

He would take no denial, so we drew again, and the lot fell to Sandy.

He wouldn't accept no for an answer, so we drew again, and the chance went to Sandy.

“If I’m the last to go,” he said, “I promise I don’t miss. Stumm won’t be long in following me.”

“If I’m the last one standing,” he said, “I promise I won’t miss. Stumm won’t be far behind me.”

He shook hands with his cheery smile, and he and the Companion slipped over the parapet in the final shadows before dawn.

He shook hands with a cheerful smile, and he and the Companion climbed over the wall in the last shadows before dawn.

Blenkiron spread his Patience cards on a flat rock, and dealt out the Double Napoleon. He was perfectly calm, and hummed to himself his only tune. For myself I was drinking in my last draught of the hill air. My contentment was going. I suddenly felt bitterly loath to die.

Blenkiron laid out his Patience cards on a flat rock and dealt out the Double Napoleon. He was completely calm and hummed his only tune to himself. As for me, I was taking in my last sip of the fresh hill air. My sense of peace was fading. I suddenly felt a deep reluctance to die.

Something of the same kind must have passed through Blenkiron’s head. He suddenly looked up and asked, “Sister Anne, Sister Anne, do you see anybody coming?”

Something similar must have crossed Blenkiron's mind. He suddenly looked up and asked, “Sister Anne, Sister Anne, do you see anyone coming?”

I stood close to the parapet, watching every detail of the landscape as shown by the revealing daybreak. Up on the shoulders of the Palantuken, snowdrifts lipped over the edges of the cliffs. I wondered when they would come down as avalanches. There was a kind of croft on one hillside, and from a hut the smoke of breakfast was beginning to curl. Stumm’s gunners were awake and apparently holding council. Far down on the main road a convoy was moving—I heard the creak of the wheels two miles away, for the air was deathly still.

I stood close to the edge, taking in every detail of the landscape as the morning light broke. On the slopes of the Palantuken, snowdrifts hung over the cliffs. I wondered when they would come crashing down as avalanches. There was a small farm on one hillside, and from a hut, the smoke from breakfast was starting to rise. Stumm’s gunners were awake and seemingly having a meeting. Far down the main road, a convoy was moving—I could hear the creak of the wheels two miles away because the air was completely still.

Then, as if a spring had been loosed, the world suddenly leaped to a hideous life. With a growl the guns opened round all the horizon. They were especially fierce to the south, where a rafale beat as I had never heard it before. The one glance I cast behind me showed the gap in the hills choked with fumes and dust.

Then, as if a spring had snapped, the world suddenly came to a terrifying life. With a growl, the guns fired all around the horizon. They were especially intense to the south, where a rafale raged like I had never heard before. The one look I took behind me revealed the gap in the hills filled with smoke and dust.

But my eyes were on the north. From Erzerum city tall tongues of flame leaped from a dozen quarters. Beyond, towards the opening of the Euphrates glen, there was the sharp crack of field-guns. I strained eyes and ears, mad with impatience, and I read the riddle.

But my eyes were fixed on the north. In Erzerum city, tall flames shot up from multiple places. Further on, near the entrance to the Euphrates valley, I could hear the sharp sound of field guns. I pushed my eyes and ears to their limits, frantic with impatience, and I deciphered the mystery.

“Sandy,” I yelled, “Peter has got through. The Russians are round the flank. The town is burning. Glory to God, we’ve won, we’ve won!”

“Sandy,” I shouted, “Peter has made it through. The Russians are on the flanks. The town is on fire. Thank God, we’ve won, we’ve won!”

And as I spoke the earth seemed to split beside me, and I was flung forward on the gravel which covered Hilda von Einem’s grave.

And as I spoke, the ground seemed to crack open next to me, and I was thrown forward onto the gravel covering Hilda von Einem’s grave.

As I picked myself up, and to my amazement found myself uninjured, I saw Blenkiron rubbing the dust out of his eyes and arranging a disordered card. He had stopped humming, and was singing aloud:

As I got back on my feet and, to my surprise, realized I was unhurt, I saw Blenkiron wiping dust from his eyes and straightening a messed-up card. He had stopped humming and was now singing out loud:

“He captured Harper’s Ferry, with his nineteen men so true
And he frightened old Virginny ...”

“He took over Harper’s Ferry with his nineteen loyal men
And scared old Virginia ...”

“Say, Major,” he cried, “I believe this game of mine is coming out.”

“Hey, Major,” he shouted, “I think my game is working out.”

I was now pretty well mad. The thought that old Peter had won, that we had won beyond our wildest dreams, that if we died there were those coming who would exact the uttermost vengeance, rode my brain like a fever. I sprang on the parapet and waved my hand to Stumm, shouting defiance. Rifle shots cracked out from behind, and I leaped back just in time for the next shell.

I was now pretty much crazy. The idea that old Peter had triumphed, that we had won beyond our wildest dreams, and that if we died, there were people coming who would take complete revenge, consumed my mind like a fever. I jumped onto the parapet and waved my hand at Stumm, shouting challenges. Gunshots rang out from behind, and I jumped back just in time to avoid the next shell.

The charge must have been short, for it was a bad miss, landing somewhere on the glacis. The next was better and crashed on the near parapet, carving a great hole in the rocky kranz. This time my arm hung limp, broken by a fragment of stone, but I felt no pain. Blenkiron seemed to bear a charmed life, for he was smothered in dust, but unhurt. He blew the dust away from his cards very gingerly and went on playing.

The shot must have been weak because it missed badly, landing somewhere on the slope. The next one was better and hit the nearby wall, making a big hole in the rocky ledge. This time my arm hung uselessly, broken by a piece of stone, but I didn't feel any pain. Blenkiron appeared to be lucky, as he was covered in dust but uninjured. He carefully blew the dust off his cards and kept playing.

Then came a dud which dropped neatly inside on the soft ground. I was determined to break for the open and chance the rifle fire, for if Stumm went on shooting the castrol was certain death. I caught Blenkiron round the middle, scattering his cards to the winds, and jumped over the parapet.

Then a dud landed perfectly on the soft ground. I was set on making a break for the open and risking the gunfire because if Stumm kept firing, the castrol was a guaranteed death sentence. I grabbed Blenkiron around the waist, sending his cards flying everywhere, and jumped over the parapet.

“Don’t apologize, Major,” said he. “The game was as good as won. But for God’s sake drop me, for if you wave me like the banner of freedom I’ll get plugged sure and good.”

“Don’t apologize, Major,” he said. “The game was practically won. But for God’s sake, let me go, because if you wave me around like a flag of freedom, I’m definitely going to get shot.”

My one thought was to get cover for the next minutes, for I had an instinct that our vigil was near its end. The defences of Erzerum were crumbling like sand-castles, and it was a proof of the tenseness of my nerves that I seemed to be deaf to the sound. Stumm had seen us cross the parapet, and he started to sprinkle all the surroundings of the castrol. Blenkiron and I lay like a working-party between the lines caught by machine-guns, taking a pull on ourselves as best we could. Sandy had some kind of cover, but we were on the bare farther slope, and the riflemen on that side might have had us at their mercy.

My only thought was to find cover for the next few minutes because I had a feeling that our watch was coming to an end. The defenses of Erzerum were crumbling like sandcastles, and it showed how tense my nerves were that I felt completely deaf to the noise. Stumm had seen us cross the parapet, and he began to spray the area around the castrol. Blenkiron and I were stranded like a work party caught in between the lines by machine guns, trying to gather ourselves as best we could. Sandy had some kind of cover, but we were out in the open on the further slope, and the riflemen on that side could have picked us off easily.

But no shots came from them. As I looked east, the hillside, which a little before had been held by our enemies, was as empty as the desert. And then I saw on the main road a sight which for a second time made me yell like a maniac. Down that glen came a throng of men and galloping limbers—a crazy, jostling crowd, spreading away beyond the road to the steep slopes, and leaving behind it many black dots to darken the snows. The gates of the South had yielded, and our friends were through them.

But no shots came from them. As I looked east, the hillside, which not long ago had been occupied by our enemies, was as empty as the desert. Then I saw something on the main road that made me yell like a madman for the second time. Down that valley came a crowd of men and galloping wagons—a chaotic, jostling mob, spreading beyond the road to the steep slopes, and leaving behind many dark spots on the snow. The gates of the South had opened, and our allies had passed through.

At that sight I forgot all about our danger. I didn’t give a cent for Stumm’s shells. I didn’t believe he could hit me. The fate which had mercifully preserved us for the first taste of victory would see us through to the end.

At that sight, I forgot all about our danger. I didn’t care at all about Stumm’s shells. I didn’t think he could hit me. The fate that had kindly spared us for the first taste of victory would see us through to the end.

I remember bundling Blenkiron along the hill to find Sandy. But our news was anticipated. For down our own side-glen came the same broken tumult of men. More; for at their backs, far up at the throat of the pass, I saw horsemen—the horsemen of the pursuit. Old Nicholas had flung his cavalry in.

I remember helping Blenkiron up the hill to find Sandy. But our news was already expected. Coming down our side-glen was the same chaotic group of men. Even more so, behind them, way up at the entrance of the pass, I spotted horsemen—the pursuers. Old Nicholas had sent in his cavalry.

Sandy was on his feet, with his lips set and his eye abstracted. If his face hadn’t been burned black by weather it would have been pale as a dish-clout. A man like him doesn’t make up his mind for death and then be given his life again without being wrenched out of his bearings. I thought he didn’t understand what had happened, so I beat him on the shoulders.

Sandy was standing up, his lips tight and his gaze distant. If his face hadn’t been weathered to a dark tan, it would have been as pale as a rag. A guy like him doesn’t just accept he’s going to die and then suddenly get his life back without being completely shaken up. I figured he didn’t grasp what had just happened, so I patted him on the shoulders.

“Man, d’you see?” I cried. “The Cossacks! The Cossacks! God! How they’re taking that slope! They’re into them now. By heaven, we’ll ride with them! We’ll get the gun horses!”

“Man, do you see?” I yelled. “The Cossacks! The Cossacks! Wow! Look at how they’re charging up that slope! They’re right in there now. I swear we’ll ride with them! We’ll grab the artillery horses!”

A little knoll prevented Stumm and his men from seeing what was happening farther up the glen, till the first wave of the rout was on them. He had gone on bombarding the castrol and its environs while the world was cracking over his head. The gun team was in the hollow below the road, and down the hill among the boulders we crawled, Blenkiron as lame as a duck, and me with a limp left arm.

A small hill blocked Stumm and his men from seeing what was going on further up the valley until the first wave of the retreat hit them. He continued shelling the castrol and its surroundings while chaos erupted above him. The gun crew was in the hollow below the road, and we crawled down the hill among the boulders, Blenkiron as lame as a duck and I with a limp left arm.

The poor beasts were straining at their pickets and sniffing the morning wind, which brought down the thick fumes of the great bombardment and the indescribable babbling cries of a beaten army. Before we reached them that maddened horde had swept down on them, men panting and gasping in their flight, many of them bloody from wounds, many tottering in the first stages of collapse and death. I saw the horses seized by a dozen hands, and a desperate fight for their possession. But as we halted there our eyes were fixed on the battery on the road above us, for round it was now sweeping the van of the retreat.

The poor animals were straining at their ties and sniffing the morning breeze, which carried the heavy fumes of the ongoing bombardment and the chaotic cries of a defeated army. Before we got to them, that frenzied mob had rushed down on them, men panting and gasping as they fled, many covered in blood from their wounds, many staggering in the early stages of collapse and death. I saw horses grabbed by countless hands, and a frantic struggle for their ownership. But as we stopped there, our eyes were fixed on the battery on the road above us, for around it was now sweeping the front of the retreat.

I had never seen a rout before, when strong men come to the end of their tether and only their broken shadows stumble towards the refuge they never find. No more had Stumm, poor devil. I had no ill-will left for him, though coming down that hill I was rather hoping that the two of us might have a final scrap. He was a brute and a bully, but, by God! he was a man. I heard his great roar when he saw the tumult, and the next I saw was his monstrous figure working at the gun. He swung it south and turned it on the fugitives.

I had never witnessed a rout before, when strong men reach their breaking point and only their broken shadows stumble toward the refuge they never find. Stumm, poor guy, was no different. I didn’t harbor any ill will toward him, although as I was coming down that hill, I secretly hoped we might have one last fight. He was a brute and a bully, but, damn! he was a man. I heard his loud roar when he saw the chaos, and the next thing I noticed was his huge figure working at the gun. He swung it south and aimed it at the fleeing crowd.

But he never fired it. The press was on him, and the gun was swept sideways. He stood up, a foot higher than any of them, and he seemed to be trying to check the rush with his pistol. There is power in numbers, even though every unit is broken and fleeing. For a second to that wild crowd Stumm was the enemy, and they had strength enough to crush him. The wave flowed round and then across him. I saw the butt-ends of rifles crash on his head and shoulders, and the next second the stream had passed over his body.

But he never shot it. The media was all over him, and the gun was pushed aside. He stood up, a foot taller than anyone else, and he looked like he was trying to hold back the crowd with his pistol. There’s strength in numbers, even if every individual is scared and running away. For a brief moment, that chaotic group saw Stumm as the enemy, and they were strong enough to take him down. The wave surged around him and then over him. I saw the butt-ends of rifles smash down on his head and shoulders, and in the next moment, the wave had swept past his body.

That was God’s judgement on the man who had set himself above his kind.

That was God's judgment on the man who had placed himself above his fellow humans.

Sandy gripped my shoulder and was shouting in my ear:

Sandy grabbed my shoulder and was yelling in my ear:

“They’re coming, Dick. Look at the grey devils ... Oh, God be thanked, it’s our friends!”

“They’re coming, Dick. Look at the gray devils ... Oh, thank God, it’s our friends!”

The next minute we were tumbling down the hillside, Blenkiron hopping on one leg between us. I heard dimly Sandy crying, “Oh, well done our side!” and Blenkiron declaiming about Harper’s Ferry, but I had no voice at all and no wish to shout. I know the tears were in my eyes, and that if I had been left alone I would have sat down and cried with pure thankfulness. For sweeping down the glen came a cloud of grey cavalry on little wiry horses, a cloud which stayed not for the rear of the fugitives, but swept on like a flight of rainbows, with the steel of their lance-heads glittering in the winter sun. They were riding for Erzerum.

The next minute, we were tumbling down the hillside, Blenkiron hopping on one leg between us. I could faintly hear Sandy shouting, “Oh, well done our side!” and Blenkiron talking about Harper’s Ferry, but I couldn’t make a sound and didn't want to yell. I knew tears were in my eyes, and if I had been alone, I would have sat down and cried out of pure gratitude. Coming down the glen was a cloud of grey cavalry on small, wiry horses, a cloud that didn’t stop to chase the fleeing ones but swept on like a flight of rainbows, with the steel of their lance-heads shining in the winter sun. They were headed for Erzerum.

Remember that for three months we had been with the enemy and had never seen the face of an Ally in arms. We had been cut off from the fellowship of a great cause, like a fort surrounded by an army. And now we were delivered, and there fell around us the warm joy of comradeship as well as the exultation of victory.

Remember that for three months we had been with the enemy and had never seen the face of an ally in battle. We had been cut off from the fellowship of a great cause, like a fort surrounded by an army. And now we were free, and there enveloped us the warm joy of friendship as well as the exhilaration of victory.

We flung caution to the winds, and went stark mad. Sandy, still in his emerald coat and turban, was scrambling up the farther slope of the hollow, yelling greetings in every language known to man. The leader saw him, with a word checked his men for a moment—it was marvellous to see the horses reined in in such a break-neck ride—and from the squadron half a dozen troopers swung loose and wheeled towards us. Then a man in a grey overcoat and a sheepskin cap was on the ground beside us wringing our hands.

We threw caution to the wind and went completely wild. Sandy, still wearing his green coat and turban, was climbing the far slope of the hollow, shouting greetings in every language known to humans. The leader spotted him and, with a word, momentarily held his men back—it was amazing to see the horses come to a halt during such a wild ride—and from the squadron, half a dozen soldiers broke off and turned toward us. Then a man in a gray coat and a sheepskin cap was on the ground next to us, shaking our hands.

“You are safe, my old friends”—it was Peter’s voice that spoke—“I will take you back to our army, and get you breakfast.”

“You’re safe, my old friends”—it was Peter’s voice that spoke—“I’ll take you back to our army and get you breakfast.”

“No, by the Lord, you won’t,” cried Sandy. “We’ve had the rough end of the job and now we’ll have the fun. Look after Blenkiron and these fellows of mine. I’m going to ride knee by knee with your sportsmen for the city.”

“No way, I swear,” shouted Sandy. “We’ve done all the hard work, and now it’s our turn to enjoy ourselves. Take care of Blenkiron and my guys. I’m going to ride side by side with your city athletes.”

Peter spoke a word, and two of the Cossacks dismounted. The next I knew I was mixed up in the cloud of greycoats, galloping down the road up which the morning before we had strained to the castrol.

Peter said something, and two of the Cossacks got off their horses. The next thing I knew, I was caught up in a cloud of gray coats, racing down the road we had pushed up to the castrol the morning before.

That was the great hour of my life, and to live through it was worth a dozen years of slavery. With a broken left arm I had little hold on my beast, so I trusted my neck to him and let him have his will. Black with dirt and smoke, hatless, with no kind of uniform, I was a wilder figure than any Cossack. I soon was separated from Sandy, who had two hands and a better horse, and seemed resolute to press forward to the very van. That would have been suicide for me, and I had all I could do to keep my place in the bunch I rode with.

That was the best moment of my life, and experiencing it was worth a dozen years of hardship. With a broken left arm, I had little control over my horse, so I put my trust in him and let him take the lead. Covered in dirt and smoke, without a hat and no uniform, I looked wilder than any Cossack. I quickly got separated from Sandy, who had both hands and a better horse, and was determined to push ahead to the very front. That would have been reckless for me, and I had enough trouble just staying with the group I was riding with.

But, Great God! what an hour it was! There was loose shooting on our flank, but nothing to trouble us, though the gun team of some Austrian howitzer, struggling madly at a bridge, gave us a bit of a tussle. Everything flitted past me like smoke, or like the mad finale of a dream just before waking. I knew the living movement under me, and the companionship of men, but all dimly, for at heart I was alone, grappling with the realization of a new world. I felt the shadows of the Palantuken glen fading, and the great burst of light as we emerged on the wider valley. Somewhere before us was a pall of smoke seamed with red flames, and beyond the darkness of still higher hills. All that time I was dreaming, crooning daft catches of song to myself, so happy, so deliriously happy that I dared not try to think. I kept muttering a kind of prayer made up of Bible words to Him who had shown me His goodness in the land of the living.

But, oh my God! what an hour it was! There was random gunfire on our side, but nothing to worry us, although the gun crew of some Austrian howitzer, desperately trying to cross a bridge, gave us a bit of a challenge. Everything flew by me like smoke or like the crazy ending of a dream just before waking up. I sensed the movement around me and the presence of other men, but only vaguely, because deep down I was alone, struggling with the understanding of a new reality. I felt the shadows of the Palantuken glen disappearing and the bright light as we came into the wider valley. Ahead of us, there was a cloud of smoke streaked with red flames, and beyond that, the darkness of even taller hills. Throughout that time, I was lost in thought, humming silly little songs to myself, so happy, so incredibly happy that I didn’t dare to think too much. I kept whispering a sort of prayer made up of Bible verses to Him who had shown me His kindness in the land of the living.

But as we drew out from the skirts of the hills and began the long slope to the city, I woke to clear consciousness. I felt the smell of sheepskin and lathered horses, and above all the bitter smell of fire. Down in the trough lay Erzerum, now burning in many places, and from the east, past the silent forts, horsemen were closing in on it. I yelled to my comrades that we were nearest, that we would be first in the city, and they nodded happily and shouted their strange war-cries. As we topped the last ridge I saw below me the van of our charge—a dark mass on the snow—while the broken enemy on both sides were flinging away their arms and scattering in the fields.

But as we came down from the hills and started the long descent to the city, I became fully aware. I could smell sheepskin and sweaty horses, and especially the sharp scent of smoke. Down in the valley lay Erzerum, now on fire in several places, and from the east, past the silent fortresses, horsemen were closing in. I shouted to my comrades that we were closest, that we would be the first in the city, and they nodded in agreement and yelled their unique battle cries. As we reached the top of the last ridge, I saw below the front of our charge—a dark mass on the snow—while the defeated enemy on both sides were tossing away their weapons and fleeing into the fields.

In the very front, now nearing the city ramparts, was one man. He was like the point of the steel spear soon to be driven home. In the clear morning air I could see that he did not wear the uniform of the invaders. He was turbaned and rode like one possessed, and against the snow I caught the dark sheen of emerald. As he rode it seemed that the fleeing Turks were stricken still, and sank by the roadside with eyes strained after his unheeding figure ...

In the very front, now close to the city walls, was one man. He was like the tip of a steel spear about to strike. In the clear morning air, I could see that he wasn't wearing the invaders' uniform. He had a turban and rode as if he were driven by a force. Against the snow, I noticed the dark shine of emerald. As he rode, it seemed that the fleeing Turks were paralyzed, sinking by the roadside with their eyes fixed on his oblivious figure...

Then I knew that the prophecy had been true, and that their prophet had not failed them. The long-looked for revelation had come. Greenmantle had appeared at last to an awaiting people.

Then I realized that the prophecy had been accurate, and that their prophet hadn't let them down. The long-anticipated revelation had arrived. Greenmantle had finally shown up for a waiting people.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!